summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-25 09:49:53 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-25 09:49:53 -0800
commitd4f157910874557789bae9a358132f8d3127a02e (patch)
treecbd032dabc864fe2f90b656ef754eb35fa2847d9
parent2bc16f92a572ceb23c86898755414ba2be7501a1 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/69816-0.txt9569
-rw-r--r--old/69816-0.zipbin192931 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69816-h.zipbin315791 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69816-h/69816-h.htm14945
-rw-r--r--old/69816-h/images/cover.jpgbin29874 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69816-h/images/titlepage.pngbin77530 -> 0 bytes
9 files changed, 17 insertions, 24514 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c2b46b6
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #69816 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/69816)
diff --git a/old/69816-0.txt b/old/69816-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 0db7117..0000000
--- a/old/69816-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9569 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The works of Richard Hurd, volume 7
-(of 8), by Richard Hurd
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The works of Richard Hurd, volume 7 (of 8)
-
-Author: Richard Hurd
-
-Release Date: January 16, 2023 [eBook #69816]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Charlene Taylor, Bryan Ness and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by The
- Internet Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WORKS OF RICHARD HURD,
-VOLUME 7 (OF 8) ***
-
-[Transcriber’s Note:
-
-Italicized text delimited by underscores.
-
-There are many special characters in this text that require a utf-8
-compliant font. If you find characters that appear as a question mark in
-a black box or a small rectangle with numbers in it, you should check
-your reader’s default font. If you have a font installed with SIL after
-the font name, you should use that one.]
-
-
-
-
- THE
-
- WORKS
-
- OF
-
- RICHARD HURD, D.D.
-
- LORD BISHOP OF WORCESTER.
-
- VOL. VII.
-
- Printed by J. Nichols and Son,
- Red Lion Passage, Fleet Street, London.
-
-
-
-
- THE
-
- WORKS
-
- OF
-
- RICHARD HURD, D.D.
-
- LORD BISHOP OF WORCESTER.
-
- IN EIGHT VOLUMES.
-
- VOL. VII.
-
- [Illustration]
-
- LONDON:
-
- PRINTED FOR T. CADELL AND W. DAVIES, STRAND.
-
- 1811.
-
-
-
-
- THEOLOGICAL WORKS.
-
- VOL. III.
-
-
-
-
- SERMONS
-
- PREACHED AT
-
- LINCOLN’S-INN,
-
- BETWEEN THE YEARS 1765 AND 1776:
-
- WITH
-
- A LARGER DISCOURSE,
-
- ON
-
- CHRIST’S DRIVING THE MERCHANTS
- OUT OF THE TEMPLE;
-
- IN WHICH THE NATURE AND END OF THAT FAMOUS
-
- TRANSACTION IS EXPLAINED.
-
- SATIS ME VIXISSE ARBITRABOR, ET OFFICIUM
- HOMINIS IMPLESSE, SI LABOR MEUS ALIQUOS
- HOMINES, AB ERRORIBUS LIBERATOS, AD ITER
- CŒLESTE DIREXERIT.
- LACTANTIUS.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-OF
-
-THE SEVENTH VOLUME.
-
-
- SERMON XXIX. Preached March 21, 1773.
-
- ACTS xxiv. 24, 25.
-
- _After certain days, when Felix came with his
- wife Drusilla, which was a Jew, he sent
- for Paul, and heard him concerning the
- faith of Christ. And, as he reasoned of
- righteousness, temperance, and judgment to
- come, Felix trembled, and answered_, GO
- THY WAY FOR THIS TIME, WHEN I HAVE A
- CONVENIENT SEASON, I WILL CALL FOR
- THEE. 1
-
-
- SERMON XXX. Preached Dec. 19, 1773.
-
- 1 JOHN v. 11.
-
- _And this is the record, that God hath given to
- us eternal life; and_ THIS LIFE IS IN HIS
- SON. 18
-
-
- SERMON XXXI. Preached June 12, 1774.
-
- GAL. vi. 8.
-
- _He that soweth to the Spirit, shall_ OF THE
- SPIRIT REAP LIFE EVERLASTING. 32
-
-
- SERMON XXXII. Preached June 19, 1774.
-
- 2 COR. vii. 1.
-
- _Having therefore these promises (dearly beloved)
- let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness
- of flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness
- in the fear of God._ 46
-
-
- SERMON XXXIII. Preached April 28, 1776.
-
- 1 TIM. iii. 16.
-
- _Without controversy great is the mystery of
- godliness: God was manifest in the flesh;
- justified in the spirit; seen of Angels;
- preached to the Gentiles; believed on in the
- world; received up into glory._ 62
-
-
- SERMON XXXIV. Preached May 19, 1776.
-
- ISAIAH l. 11.
-
- _Behold, all ye that kindle a fire, that compass
- yourselves about with sparks; Walk in the
- light of your fire, and in the sparks which
- ye have kindled: This shall ye have of my
- hand, ye shall lie down in sorrow._ 77
-
-
- SERMON XXXV. Preached Nov. 15, 1767.
-
- 2 COR. iv. 3.
-
- _If our Gospel be hid, it is hid to them that
- are lost._ 95
-
-
- SERMON XXXVI. Preached Nov. 13, 1774.
-
- 1 PETER iii. 15.
-
- _—Be ready always to give an answer to every
- man that asketh you a reason of the hope
- that is in you, with meekness and fear._ 110
-
-
- SERMON XXXVII. Preached Feb. 4, 1770.
-
- JOHN vii. 46.
-
- _Never man spake like this man._ 124
-
-
- SERMON XXXVIII. Preached Nov. 20, 1774.
-
- MATTH. xiii. 10.
-
- _The Disciples came, and said unto him, Why
- speakest Thou to them in Parables?_ 143
-
-
- SERMON XXXIX. Preached Nov. 27, 1774.
-
- MATTH. xiii. 58.
-
- _And he did not many mighty works there, because
- of their unbelief._ 159
-
-
- SERMON XL. Preached May 23, 1773.
-
- 2 COR. iv. 5.
-
- _We preach not ourselves, but Christ Jesus the
- Lord._ 176
-
-
- SERMON XLI. Preached. Dec. 15, 1771.
-
- MATTH. xi. 5.
-
- _The Poor have the Gospel preached unto
- them._ 193
-
-
- SERMON XLII. Preached Jan. 24, 1773.
-
- JOHN xiv. 2.
-
- _In my Father’s house are many mansions: if
- it were not so, I would have told you._ 210
-
-
- SERMON XLIII. Preached May 5, 1776.
-
- JOHN xvi. 12, 13.
-
- _I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye
- cannot bear them now. Howbeit, when he,
- the Spirit of truth, shall come, he will guide
- you into all truth: for he shall not speak
- of himself; but whatsoever he shall hear,
- that shall he speak: and he will shew you
- things to come._ 222
-
-
- SERMON XLIV. Preached May 29, 1774. T.S.
-
- ACTS i. 11.
-
- _Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up
- into heaven? This same Jesus, which is taken
- up from you, shall so come, in like manner
- as ye have seen him go into heaven._ 237
-
-
- SERMON XLV. Preached June 23, 1776.
-
- St. MATTH. xiii. 55, 56.
-
- _Is not this the carpenter’s son? Is not his
- mother called Mary? And his brethren,
- James and Joses and Simon and Judas?
- And his sisters, are not they all with us?
- Whence then hath this man all these things?
- And they were offended in him._ 253
-
-
- SERMON XLVI. Preached Feb. 4, 1776.
-
- JAMES iv. 7.
-
- _Resist the Devil, and he will flee from you._ 267
-
-
- SERMON XLVII. Preached March 29, 1772.
-
- PROV. xvi. 6.
-
- _By the fear of the Lord men depart from
- evil._ 283
-
-
- SERMON XLVIII. Preached May 31, 1772.
-
- 1 COR. vi. 12.
-
- _All things are lawful unto, me; but all things
- are not expedient: All things are lawful for
- me; but I will not be brought under the
- power of any._ 296
-
-
- SERMON XLIX. Preached July 5, 1772.
-
- MATTH. v. 38, 39, 40, 41.
-
- _Ye have heared that it hath been said, an eye
- for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth. But I
- say unto you, that ye resist not evil: but
- whosoever shall smite thee on thy right cheek,
- turn to him the other also: And, if any
- man will sue thee at the law, and take away
- thy coat, let him have thy cloak also: And
- whosoever shall compel thee to go a mile,
- go with him twain._ 310
-
-
- SERMON L. Preached May 14, 1775.
-
- LUKE ix. 26.
-
- _Whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my
- words, of him shall the Son of man be
- ashamed, when he shall come in his own
- glory and in his Father’s, and of the holy
- Angels._ 327
-
-
- SERMON LI. Preached May 21, 1775.
-
- LUKE ix. 26.
-
- _Whosoever shall be ashamed of me, and of my
- words, of him shall the Son of man be
- ashamed, when he shall come in his own
- glory, and in his Father’s, and of the holy
- Angels._ 341
-
-
- SERMON LII. Preached Jan. 29, 1775.
-
- St. MATTH. xvi. 18.
-
- _I say also unto thee, that thou art Peter, and upon
- this rock I will build my Church; and the
- gates of Hell shall not prevail against it._ 354
-
-
- SERMON LIII. Preached Feb. 5, 1775.
-
- St. MATTH. xvi. 18.
-
- _And I say also unto thee, that thou art Peter,
- and upon this rock will I build my Church,
- and the gates of Hell shall not prevail
- against it._ 367
-
-
- A LARGER DISCOURSE, _by way of Commentary,
- on that remarkable Part of the Gospel-history,
- in which Jesus is represented, as
- driving the Buyers and Sellers out of the
- Temple_[1]. 383
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXIX.
-
-PREACHED MARCH 21, 1773.
-
-ACTS xxiv. 24, 25.
-
-_After certain days, when Felix came with his wife Drusilla, which was a
-Jewess, he sent for Paul, and heard him concerning the faith of Christ.
-And, as he reasoned of righteousness, temperance, and judgment to come,
-Felix trembled, and answered_, GO THY WAY FOR THIS TIME; WHEN I HAVE A
-CONVENIENT SEASON, I WILL CALL FOR THEE.
-
-
-This Felix, whose name is become so memorable in the Christian church,
-had been made Procurator of Judæa by the Emperor Claudius, and continued
-in that government during the six or seven first years of Nero: when
-he was recalled to answer for his oppressive administration before the
-emperor; who, we are told, would have punished him, according to his
-deserts, but for the interposition of Pallas, at that time Nero’s chief
-minister.
-
-He was, indeed, in all respects a very corrupt and profligate man, as
-appears from the testimony of Tacitus[2] and Josephus[3]; from whom we
-learn, that he was more especially addicted to the vices of _lust and
-cruelty_; both which he exercised in the most audacious manner; vexing
-the people with all sorts of oppression, and rioting in his excesses,
-without restraint. Drusilla, too, is represented to us in a light, not
-much more favourable. For, though a Jewess, and the wife of another man,
-she had contracted a marriage, or rather lived in adultery with this
-pagan governor of Judæa; transgressing at once both a moral and positive
-law of her religion, for the sake of ascending to that honour.
-
-One would wonder how persons of this character should have any curiosity
-to _hear Paul concerning the faith of Christ_. And, without doubt,
-they had no serious desire of information. It is likely they proposed
-to themselves some entertainment from questioning the prisoner; and the
-presence of Drusilla makes it credible that the entertainment was chiefly
-designed for _her_; who might be a bigot to her religion, though she
-scorned to live up to it; and therefore wanted, we may suppose, to insult
-Jesus in the person of his disciple.
-
-However, let their purpose be what it would, such were FELIX and
-DRUSILLA, before whom Paul _reasoned of righteousness, temperance, and a
-judgment to come_.
-
-Paul was not in the number of those complaisant preachers, who take a
-text, in which their hearers have no concern. He had to do with persons,
-who bade defiance to religion in all its forms; and his subject was well
-suited to the occasion. They expected an amusing tale of Jesus Christ:
-but the Apostle, who knew how unworthy they were of being instructed in
-the faith, as not yet possessing the fist principles of morals, took up
-the matter a great deal higher; and, discoursing to them on the natural
-duties of justice and temperance, which they had grossly violated, and
-on the natural doctrine of a judgment to come, which they had never
-believed or respected, gave them to understand, that they had much to
-learn, or practise at least, before they were fit hearers of what he had
-further to say concerning the Christian revelation.
-
-Being taken at this advantage, we may easily conceive their surprise and
-disappointment: and, as the speaker knew how to give an energy to his
-discourse on these interesting topics, we cannot wonder, that one or both
-of them should be much discomposed by it. Of Drusilla the sacred text
-says nothing: she was, perhaps, the more skilful dissembler of the two;
-or her rage and indignation might, for the moment, get the better of her
-fears: but Felix had not the address, or the fortune, to disguise his
-feelings; he _trembled_ before this plain, intrepid speaker.
-
-This event is instructive, indeed, as it sets before us the power of
-conscience over the worst of men; and, at the same time, the meanness
-of guilt, which, in such place and dignity, could not help shrinking at
-the voice of truth, though speaking by the mouth of a poor dependant
-prisoner. But when we have made the proper use of these reflexions, on
-the case of Felix, we shall find a still more instructive lesson in _the
-subsequent conduct of this affrighted sinner_.
-
-When the fit of trembling came upon him, he said hastily to the preacher:
-_Go thy way for this time; when I have a convenient season, I will call
-for thee._
-
-How striking a picture of that fatal disposition which men have to put
-off repentance, even under the fullest conviction of guilt; and that too,
-on the most frivolous pretences! What Felix should have done instantly,
-when his conscience was so much alarmed, he omits to do: _Go thy way for
-this time_: and yet, to quiet that conscience, he would not be thought to
-lay aside all purpose of reformation: _When I have a convenient season, I
-will call for thee._
-
-With this famous example in my eye, I shall attempt to shew in the
-following discourse: 1. _That_ PROCRASTINATION _is the usual support of
-vice_: 2. _That false reasoning_, or, what we may call, _the_ SOPHISTRY
-OF VICE, _is the great support of procrastination_: 3. That a FINAL
-IMPENITENCE is the too common effect of this pernicious confederacy. And
-
-I. PROCRASTINATION is the main support of vice; the favourite stratagem,
-by which the grand deceiver himself ensnares the souls of men, and
-maintains his empire over them.
-
-There are few persons so desperately wicked but they resolve, secretly
-at least, and in their own minds, to amend their bad lives, at some time
-or other. But that time is rarely the present. They have other business
-in hand: some scheme of interest to manage, some project of ambition to
-pursue, some intrigue of pleasure to accomplish; in short, some darling
-sin or other to gratify, before they can be at leisure to execute this
-intended work of reformation.
-
-Nay, there are seasons of recollection, in which the memory of their past
-lives afflicts and torments them; there are hours of melancholy, or ill
-health, in which the necessity of repentance seems pressing and instant;
-there are certain moments of terror, in which the final resolution is on
-the point of being taken: yet still, this delusive idea of _to-morrow_
-steps in: the memory, the necessity, the terror, are over-ruled: the
-ungrateful task is, for the present, deferred; to-morrow laid aside, and
-the next day forgotten.
-
-This was the case of Felix in the text. When bad men are clothed with
-power, it is not easy for truth of any kind, especially for moral truth,
-to gain access to them. Yet it made its way to this potent governor,
-and with a force which nothing could resist. It borrowed the thunder of
-Paul’s rhetoric to speak home and loudly to his affrighted conscience.
-It shook his guilty mind with the sense of his crimes, his incontinence
-and injustice, his riot and rapine, his lust and cruelty; and still more,
-with the apprehension of _a judgment to come_, armed with terror, and
-ready to take vengeance of his multiplied iniquities.
-
-You expect now, that, in this agony, he should take the part, which duty
-and prudence, his conviction and his fears, equally recommended to him.
-You expect, that he should apply to his instructor, who had raised this
-storm, to compose it; and that, leaving his chair of state, he should
-spring forth and accost his prisoner, as the honest jaylor at Philippi
-had done, on a similar occasion: _What must I do to be saved[4]?_ But,
-no; it was not yet convenient to put that question. His pleasures, his
-fortune, his ambition, might be endangered by it. It was not the moment
-to take this decisive step. Better to think twice of it, and dismiss the
-preacher _for this time_.
-
-And is there nothing in this case which we may apply to ourselves? Is
-there none here, whom the free remonstrance of a friend, an unexpected
-sentence in a moral writer, the admonition of a preacher, and, above
-all, the _word of God_, hath, at any time, awakened to a lively sense
-of his condition? A reproof from one or other of these sometimes falls
-in so exactly with a man’s own case, and goes so directly to the heart,
-that he is more than commonly disturbed and confounded by it. It flashes
-such conviction on the mind, and shews the sinner to himself in so just
-a light, that he stands aghast at the deformity of his conduct, and at
-the peril of it. In the agitation of this distress, he half resolves to
-repent: nay, he strives for a moment to enforce this good resolution:
-when, let but that dæmon, which every sinner carries about with him,
-whisper the word, _to-morrow_, and his conscience revives, his fears
-disperse, and this precious opportunity is lost, though at the hazard of
-never returning any more.
-
-Not that he permits this idle insinuation to banish all thoughts of
-future repentance, or to prevail with him, for the present, in its true
-and proper form: No: to be thus far the dupe of his own folly, would
-disgrace him too much, and expose his prevarication too plainly: if it
-pass upon him, it shall be under the mask of wisdom. He turns sophister
-then in his own defence, and is easily convinced, “That his conduct is
-not altogether absurd or unreasonable.”
-
-And thus, as I proposed to shew,
-
-II. In the next place, this fatal procrastination, which supports vice,
-is itself supported by a READY AND CONVENIENT SOPHISTRY.
-
-The case of Felix will again illustrate this second observation; and shew
-us the whole process of that preverted ingenuity, by which the credulous
-mind is made easy under its delusion.
-
-He thought it not sufficient to say to Paul; _Go thy way for this time_.
-This abrupt dismission of the preacher was to be justified, in some sort,
-to himself, and to those who were witnesses of his consternation. He
-covers it, then, with this pretence; _When I have a convenient season, I
-will call for thee_.
-
-The TIME, it seems, was not proper for his immediate conversion. To
-become a penitent just then; on the instant; to be surprised into a good
-life, had the appearance of too much facility and inconsideration. He
-must take a space to reflect on the grounds and reasons of what had been
-offered to him. He had, besides, other affairs, which pressed upon him at
-this moment: or, if not, to deliberate on the matter, would render his
-conversion more solemn and effectual.
-
-The PLACE, too, we may believe, was as little suited, as the time,
-to this business. “What! in a public apartment of his palace! in the
-presence of Drusilla, whose tenderest interests were concerned in the
-case, and whose delicacy required managing! before his pagan courtiers,
-and many, we may suppose, of his Jewish subjects, who would be equally
-scandalized at this precipitate conversion of their master and governor!”
-These, and other pretences of the like sort, without doubt, occurred to
-him: and on the strength of these he concludes his procrastination to be
-fit, and decent, and justifiable, in a good degree, on the principles of
-virtue and prudence.
-
-“But why, unhappy man (if one may presume to expostulate the case with
-thee) why this hasty and unweighed conclusion? Could there be any time
-more convenient for thy conversion, or any place more suitable, if thou
-wert in earnest to be converted?
-
-Wast thou ever so prepared for this change as now? Was thy mind ever so
-convinced, or thy heart so affected? Didst thou ever hear and _tremble_
-till this day, and wilt thou expect such a miracle a second time? Can thy
-bad life be reformed too soon, or can it need an afterthought to justify
-such reformation? Can any other business come in competition with this?
-and can it deserve the name of weakness and surprise to give way to the
-powerful workings of thy own conscience? In a doubtful case, it may be
-well to deliberate: but can it be a secret even to thyself, that nothing
-is questionable here, but thy sincerity?
-
-For what, let me ask, is that _convenient season_, which flatters thy
-present irresolution? Wilt thou find such a monitor, as Paul, in thy
-dependants? Will thy tax-gatherers preach _righteousness_ to thee, and
-thy centurions, _temperance_? or, thy philosophers (if, perhaps, thou
-hast of these about thee, to grace thy provincial pomp) will they reason
-with thee, on a _judgment to come_?
-
-But the PLACE is unfit; and thou wilt send for Paul to confer in private
-with thee.
-
-Wast thou then afraid to expose thy honour by this step? And did it seem
-too much to give to God and truth, the glory of thy conversion? True
-penitence knows nothing of these punctilios. The example had edified
-thy unbelieving court; and might have had its effect on the insensible
-Drusilla. Thy injustice and incontinence had been open to all men. Was it
-not fit thou shouldst atone for this scandal by as public a reformation?
-Yet still thy pretence is, _a convenient season_! As if the first
-season, that offers for renouncing a bad life, were not always the most
-convenient.”
-
-But I continue this address to the Roman governor too long, if you
-consider me as directing it to him only. Let me profess, then, that by
-Felix I mean every sinner at this day, who procrastinates in the affair
-of his salvation, and would colour that procrastination by a still more
-contemptible sophistry. For, let us be ingenuous. This miserable Pagan,
-after all, had something to say for himself. This was, probably, the
-only time that repentance had ever been preached to him. He still,
-perhaps, was acquainted with little more than the name of Jesus: for his
-teacher, as we have seen, insisted chiefly on the great truths of natural
-religion. If he then scrupled to take the benefit of this first and
-imperfect lecture, there is some allowance to be made for his folly. But
-what shall we say of those who possess every possible advantage of light
-and knowledge, who have grown up in the profession of Christianity, and
-are not now to learn either its duties or terrors? If such as these have
-sinned themselves into the condition of Felix, and yet resist the calls
-of grace, the commands of the Gospel, the exhortations of its ministers,
-the admonitions of their own conscience, all of them concurring to
-press upon them an immediate repentance; if there be among us such
-procrastinators as these, what topics of defence are there by which they
-can hope to excuse, or so much as palliate, their prodigious infatuation?
-
-“Shall we say for them, or will they say for themselves, that they are
-young and healthy? that they have time enough before them, in which
-to grow wise at their leisure? that they wait till the boisterous
-passions have been calmed by reason and experience? that they expect _a
-convenient season_ for repentance, in declining life, and the languor of
-old age? or that they shall find it, as others have done, on the bed of
-sickness, or on the bed of death?”
-
-I have never heard that Christians have any better reasons than these for
-delaying repentance: and, if they have not, though the sophistry of Felix
-deserved to be laid open, the respect I owe to those who now hear me,
-will not permit me to imagine that such sophistry as this, can want to be
-exposed.
-
-It will be to better purpose to set before you,
-
-III. In the last place, the issue of this too natural alliance between
-procrastination and vice, in a FINAL IMPENITENCE; of which the case of
-Felix, again, affords us a striking example.
-
-_When I have a convenient season_, says he to Paul, _I will call for
-thee_. This season came, and Paul attended; to what effect, we shall now
-understand.
-
-When Felix dismissed him from his presence, he insinuated, nay perhaps
-thought, that he should have a disposition hereafter to profit by his
-religious instructions. But time and bad company quieted his fears: and
-a favourite vice inspired other motives for the interview, than those of
-religion. _For he hoped_, says the historian, _that money should have
-been given him of Paul, that he might loose him: wherefore he sent for
-him the oftener, and communed with him_.
-
-The case, we see, is well altered. He _trembled_ before at Paul’s charge
-against him of rapine and extortion: he would now exercise these very
-vices on Paul himself. Such was the fruit of that _convenient season_,
-which was to have teemed with better things!
-
-But this is not all: _For, after two years Portius Festus came into
-Felix’s room; and Felix, willing to shew the Jews a pleasure, left Paul
-bound_.
-
-Felix then had his preacher within call for _two whole years_: time
-sufficient, one would think, to afford the opportunity of many a lecture
-_concerning the faith of Christ_. Yet, though he communed with Paul
-oft, it does not appear that his conferences with him turned on this
-subject. What he wanted to draw from him was, not truth, but money; and,
-when this hope failed, he was little concerned about the rest. Nay, the
-impression which Paul had made upon him was so entirely effaced, that he
-left an innocent man _in bonds_, for the sake of _doing a pleasure to
-the Jews_. But he had his reason still for this unwonted courtesy. For
-their complaints were ready to follow him (as indeed they did) to the
-throne of Cæsar; whither he went, at last, unrepentant and unreformed, to
-encounter, as he could, the rigors of imperial justice; just as so many
-others, by the like misuse of time and opportunity, expose themselves to
-all the terrors of divine.
-
-Not but there is yet this advantage in the parallel on the side of
-_Felix_. He neglected to use the space of _two years_, which was
-mercifully allowed him for the season of reformation: but how many
-Christians omit this work, not for _two_ only, but for twenty, forty
-years; nay, for the whole extent of a long life; and never find a
-_convenient season_ for doing the only thing, which it greatly concerns
-them to do, although with the astonishing delusion of always intending it.
-
-To conclude: We have seen that procrastination serves the ends of vice;
-and that vice, in return, is but too successful in pleading the cause of
-procrastination: leaving between them this salutary lesson to mankind,
-“That he who seriously intends to repent to-morrow, should in all reason
-begin to-day; _to-day_, as the Apostle admonishes, _while it is called
-to-day, lest the heart_, in the mean time, _be hardened through the
-deceitfulness of sin_[5].”
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXX.
-
-PREACHED DECEMBER 19, 1773.
-
-1 JOHN v. 11.
-
-_And this is the record that God hath given to us, eternal life; and_
-THIS LIFE IS IN HIS SON.
-
-
-We are indebted to the Gospel for the knowledge and hope we have of
-eternal life; this important doctrine having, _first_, been delivered by
-Jesus Christ, and _only_ by him, on any proper grounds of authority. This
-then is the _record_, or the substance of what the Gospel _testifies_ and
-affirms, _That God hath given to us eternal life: and this life_, adds
-the Apostle, IS IN HIS SON: that is, he _procured_ this blessing for us;
-he is not only the teacher, but the _author_ of eternal life.
-
-This last is a distinct and very momentous consideration. Reason might
-seem to have some part in discovering, or at least in confirming, the
-doctrine itself: but the _manner_ of conveying the inestimable gift
-of eternal life, whether _immediately_ from the giver of it, or by
-the _mediation_ of some other, this is a matter of pure revelation;
-and reason hath nothing more to do in the case, than to see that the
-revelation is, indeed, made, and then with all humility to acquiesce in
-it.
-
-Being, then, to treat this sublime subject, _the redemption of mankind
-through Christ_, I shall do it simply in the _terms_ of scripture, or at
-least with a scrupulous regard to the plain and obvious _sense_ of them.
-The text says, _eternal life is in the Son of God_; and my discourse must
-be merely a _scriptural comment_ on this declaration.
-
-Now, the scripture teaches, that immortality was originally, and from the
-beginning, the free gift of God to man, on the condition of his obeying
-a certain law, or command, prescribed to him: whether that command be
-interpreted _literally_, of not eating the fruit of the forbidden tree
-in paradise, as we read in the second and third chapters of Genesis; or
-_allegorically_, of some other prohibition, expressed agreeably to the
-oriental genius, in these terms. This diversity of interpretation makes
-no difference in the case: whatever the test of man’s disobedience was,
-the will of the law-giver is clearly announced: If thou art guilty of
-disobedience, _thou shalt surely die_[6].
-
-Obedience, then, had the promise of _continued_ life; the penalty
-threatened to disobedience, was _death_: which was only saying, that the
-gift freely bestowed on a certain condition (and surely what man had no
-right to demand, might be offered on what terms the giver pleased) should
-be withdrawn on the breach of it. The loss, indeed, was immense; but
-to the loser no wrong was done: and of him who recalled the free gift,
-conditionally bestowed, and justly forfeited, no complaint, in reason,
-can be made.
-
-But to what purpose, some will ask, to give that with one hand, which was
-presently to be withdrawn by the other? for the best reason, no doubt,
-whether conceivable by us, or not. However, the sad event was certainly
-foreseen: and, what is more, such provision was made against it, as to
-infinite wisdom and goodness seemed meet.
-
-By contemplating the gradual steps of Providence, as we are able to trace
-them in the revelation itself, we understand, that it was in the eternal
-purpose of the divine Governor to restore life to fallen and mortal man,
-as _freely_ as it had been at first bestowed, and on _terms_ still more
-advantageous him. But _the ways of heaven are not as our ways_, nor to
-be regulated by our impatient wishes, or expectations. What man, in a
-moment, had wantonly thrown away, he was to recover once more; but in
-God’s good time; not instantly, but after a long succession of ages, and
-such a state of intermediate discipline and preparation, as might best
-serve to introduce the intended blessing with effect.
-
-Man, then was to be reinstated in his forfeited inheritance: and the
-_promise_ was made, though purposely in obscure terms, from the moment
-the forfeiture was incurred. In process of time, it was less, and still
-less obscurely signified; yet so as that the full discovery of what was
-intended, and, still more, the execution of it, was long deferred.
-
-At length, Jesus Christ came into the world to fulfill and to declare
-the whole will of God on this interesting subject: and from him, and
-from those commissioned by him, we learn what the wisest men, and even
-_angels_, _had desired to look into_, and could at most discern but
-imperfectly through the types and shadows of the patriarchal and Mosaic
-dispensations.
-
-The great mystery, now unveiled, was briefly this: that God of his
-infinite goodness had, indeed, from the foundation of the world, purposed
-the restoration of eternal life to his unworthy creature, man; but that
-in his wisdom he saw fit to confer this unmerited blessing in a way, that
-should at once secure the honour of his government; and, if any thing
-could secure it, the future obedience and happiness of his creature:
-that he would only confer this mighty privilege at the instance, as
-it were, and for the sake of a transcendantly divine person, his only
-begotten Son, the second person in the glorious Trinity, as we now style
-him: that this divine person; of his own free will co-operating with the
-_eternal purpose_[7] of the all-gracious Father, should descend from
-Heaven; should become incarnate; should as man, converge with men, and
-instruct them by his heavenly doctrine; should taste deeply of all their
-sorrows and infirmities (_sin only excepted_); should even pour out his
-blood unto death, and by that blood should wash away the stain of guilt;
-and, on the condition of _faith_ in his name, operating, as of course
-it must do, by a sincere obedience to his authority, should admit us,
-once more, to the possession of eternal happiness; of which, finally,
-we have a _lively_ and certain hope, in that he who had laid down his
-life, had power to take it again, as was declared to all the world by his
-resurrection from the dead[8].
-
-In this awfully stupendous manner (at which reason stands aghast, and
-faith herself is half confounded) was the Grace of God to man, at length,
-manifested: and thus it is, when we come a little to unfold the _record_,
-or testimony of the Gospel, that _God hath given to as eternal life_; and
-that _this life is in his Son_.
-
-Curious men have perplexed themselves and others by inquiring into the
-nature of this astonishing scheme, and have seemed half inclined not to
-accept so _great salvation_, till they could reconcile it to their ideas
-of philosophy. Hence those endless altercations concerning _merit,
-satisfaction, imputed sin, and vicarious punishment_; in which it is
-hard to say, whether more subtlety has been shewn, or more perverseness;
-more ingenuity, or presumption. If most of these questions were well
-examined, it would appear, perhaps, that they are mere verbal disputes,
-and as frivolous as they are contentious. But, be the difference between
-the parties nominal or real, this we are sure of, without taking part in
-the controversy, that the scriptures speak of the _death_ of Christ, as
-a _ransom for many_[9]; _the price of our redemption_[10]; _a sacrifice
-for us_[11]; _a propitiation for the sins of the whole world_[12]: that
-they speak of Christ himself, _as dying for us_[13], _as bearing our sins
-in his own body on the tree_[14]; as _suffering for sins, the just for
-the unjust_[15]; as _tasting death for every man_[16]; _as giving himself
-for us, an offering and sacrifice to God_[17]; as _justifying us by his
-blood_[18]; and _redeeming us by the price of it_[19]: with a multitude
-of other passages to the same purpose. Now let men use what art they
-will in torturing such expressions as these; they will hardly prevent
-our seeing what the plain doctrine of scripture is, “That it pleased
-God to give us eternal life only _in his Son_; and in his Son _only_ as
-suffering and dying for us.”
-
-But in this consideration the whole mystery consists; how to be fully
-cleared up to our reason, men may dispute if they will, and they will
-dispute the rather, because the subject is out of their sphere, and
-beyond their comprehension. Whether God _could_ accept such a sacrifice
-for sin as the death of his own Son, many have presumptuously asked.
-Whether he _could not_ have given life to man, in another way, some have
-more modestly doubted: but the issue of all this arrogant or needless
-curiosity, is but the discovery of their own weakness, on the one hand,
-and the confession of this stupendous truth, on the other; That God
-did not see fit to bestow eternal salvation on mankind, but in his own
-appointed way, through Christ Jesus.
-
-In this momentous truth, then, enough for us to know, let us humbly
-acquiesce, and leave to others the vanity of disputing the grounds of it.
-
-But, though the reasons of this dispensation be inscrutable to us, the
-measure of its _influence_, some think, they have the means to discover.
-For it seems to follow from St. Paul’s assertion, that, _as in Adam all
-died, so in Christ shall all be made alive_[20]; and from the idea given
-us of the Redeemer, as of _the lamb slain from the foundation of the
-world_[21]; that the benefits of Christ’s death extend to all men, of all
-times, and are, in the proper sense of the word, _universal_. Only it is
-to be remembered, that, if all men have an interest in Christ, whether
-they know it or not, _we_ who do know what our interest in him is, have
-infinitely the advantage of them, and are inexcusable, if we reject it.
-
-Thus far then we go upon safe grounds, and affirm without hesitation,
-that _God_, through his mercies in Christ Jesus, _is the Saviour of all
-men_, but _especially of them that believe_[22].
-
-Another consideration, and of the utmost moment, is yet behind. Though
-eternal life be now again bestowed on mankind, this gift is not one and
-the same thing to all, but is differently modified according to the
-different conduct of those to whom it is given. All shall _live_; but
-whether to happiness, or misery, and to what degree of _either_, will
-depend on the use of those advantages, whether of nature or grace, which
-every one enjoys. Not, that any degree of eternal happiness is, or can
-be strictly due to any man, but that the several degrees of it will be
-_proportioned_ to our respective moral and religious qualifications. To
-have done otherwise, would have been to confound the order of things,
-and to appoint a scheme of salvation, which must utterly extinguish all
-virtuous industry among men. Hence, we are told, that the righteous shall
-shine out in different degrees of happiness, _as one star differeth from
-another star in glory_[23].
-
-In like manner, they who shall be found worthy, not of happiness, but
-misery, will be sentenced to several allotments of it, by the same equal
-rule.
-
-It may seem, perhaps, that, as our best works could not _merit_ eternal
-life in happiness, so our worst cannot _deserve_ eternal life in misery.
-But let us take care how we push our inquiries into this aweful subject.
-In rewarding obedience, the _divine goodness_ is chiefly displayed; and
-who shall presume to set bounds to it? But, in punishing disobedience,
-the _divine Wisdom_, of which we conceive much more imperfectly, is
-mainly concerned: and what examples of severity in the punishment of
-incorrigibly impenitent offenders, after such means as have been devised
-to reclaim them, and for the support of his moral government over more
-worlds than we have any idea of, this attribute may demand, we shall do
-well, with all submission and modesty, to leave unexplored.
-
-Still, what is just, that is, what is right and fit, on the whole,
-undoubtedly take place: but we _are_ not, we _cannot_, be competent
-judges of what is fit and right in this instance. It will be safest to
-rely, without further inquiry, on the general declaration of him, who
-was not only our Redeemer, but shall one day be our merciful judge:
-_These_, says he, [that is, the wicked] _shall go away into everlasting
-punishment: but the righteous into life eternal_[24].
-
-What remains on this subject, is only to admonish you of those
-_relations_, in which we stand towards the Author of our salvation, and
-the correspondent _duties_ they impose upon us. I can but just point out
-these _relations_ and _duties_: though they deserve to be inculcated (as,
-in fact, they have been, by the sacred writers) with all the force of
-eloquent persuasion, that words can give.
-
-With regard, to the supreme cause of all things, who is of himself only
-the source, and principle of deity, and the original author of our
-salvation, God, thus understood, is graciously pleased to present himself
-to us in the Gospel, under the idea of THE FATHER, and to consider us in
-the tender relation of _sons_. We owe him, therefore, all possible filial
-love and reverence, and must so conceive of his part in the mystery of
-our redemption, as to refer all the fruits of it, ultimately, _to the
-glory of God the Father_[25].
-
-In subordination to the _Father_, HE in whom we have eternal life, is
-our _friend_[26], and therefore entitled to our warmest love: he is our
-greatest _benefactor_[27], and therefore claims our utmost gratitude:
-he is our only _master_[28], and of course, must be followed with all
-observance: he is our _redeemer_, and _sole mediator between God and
-man_[29]; therefore he challenges an implicit, an exclusive trust and
-confidence from us: he is the appointed _judge_ of the world[30];
-therefore to be regarded with the humblest fear and veneration: lastly,
-he is _the only begotten Son of God_[31], nay _our Lord and our God_[32];
-to whom therefore we are to pay transcendant honour, so as _to honour,
-the Son even as we honour the Father_[33].
-
-These are some, the chief of those duties, which, as Christians, we are
-bound to perform towards the Author of our salvation. The _relations_
-from which they spring, could not be discovered by the light of nature;
-but, when made known to us by revelation, they require as certainly, and
-as reasonably, the several _duties_ which correspond to them, as the
-_relations_ in which we stand to God and man, as discoverable by nature
-only, require their respective _duties_.
-
-You see, then, the sphere of a Christian’s duty is much enlarged beyond
-that of the natural man: and not in these instances only, for the gospel
-has made known another divine _person_, (so we are obliged to speak)
-_the holy Spirit of God_, who stands in a distinct relation to us; and
-to whom, therefore, his proper and peculiar honour is due. But of this
-divine person in the glorious Trinity, I shall find another occasion to
-lay before you, at large, what the scriptures have brought to light.
-
-For the present, it may suffice to have put you in mind of what we are
-taught concerning _the grace of God in his Son Jesus Christ_; to the end
-that, religiously observing all the duties which this revealed doctrine
-requires of us, we may fully correspond to the gracious intentions of the
-revealer, by having _our fruit unto holiness_; and _the end, everlasting
-life. For the wages of sin_ (be it ever remembered) _is death: but
-eternal life is the gift of God through Jesus Christ our Lord[34]: To
-whom be all praise, thanksgiving, and honour, now and for evermore.
-Amen._
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXI.
-
-PREACHED JUNE 12, 1774.
-
-GAL. vi. 8.
-
-_He that soweth to the spirit, shall_ OF THE SPIRIT REAP LIFE EVERLASTING.
-
-
-Without staying to point out the immediate occasion of these words, or
-to enumerate and define the several senses of the word _spirit_, in
-sacred scripture, it is sufficient to my present purpose to observe,
-that the text affirms _a general and fundamental truth of the Gospel_,
-more clearly and particularly explained elsewhere. It is this: That he
-who in this life conducts himself according to the rules and admonitions
-of God’s holy spirit, which the Apostle calls, _sowing to the spirit_,
-shall, through the influence of the same spirit, obtain, that is, in the
-Apostle’s figurative style, _shall reap, life everlasting_.
-
-But, what! you will say, everlasting life is the _gift of God through
-Christ_: how is it then that we receive this gift at the hands of
-another, of _God’s holy spirit_?
-
-To resolve this difficulty, and to open to you at the same time the
-Christian doctrine of grace, together with the concern which we have in
-it, I shall consider,
-
-I. In what _sense_ we are to understand the assertion, _That everlasting
-life is of the spirit_.
-
-II. In what _way_ this blessing is conferred upon us; under which head I
-shall have occasion to set forth the several _offices and operations_ of
-the holy Spirit.
-
-III. Lastly, what _returns of duty_, as corresponding to these _offices_
-of the Spirit, and as resulting from the _relations_ in which we stand
-towards him, are, in consequence of this revelation, reasonably required
-of us.
-
-I. To understand in what _sense_ the scriptures assert _everlasting
-life to be of the spirit_, it will be necessary to form to ourselves a
-distinct idea of the divine œconomy in the whole work of our redemption;
-which (to sum up briefly what is revealed to us) appears to have been
-conducted in the following manner.
-
-God the Father of his mere grace, purposed and _willed_[35], from all
-eternity, the restoration of _life_ to man, after his forfeiture of it by
-disobedience: but he saw fit to make our _title_ to this free gift depend
-on the death and sacrifice of his son Jesus Christ: and, lastly, to give
-the _actual possession_ of it only through the ministration of his holy
-Spirit.
-
-The whole of this process is full of wonder; but there is no
-contradiction, or inconsistency in its several parts.
-
-However, to open the œconomy of this dispensation a little more
-distinctly, it is to be observed, that eternal life may be taken in
-two senses. It may either imply _a mere state of_ ENDLESS EXISTENCE;
-and, in this sense, it is solely and properly the gift of God through
-Christ; _for as in Adam all died, even so in Christ shall all be made
-alive_[36]: Or, it may mean, what it always does mean in those passages
-of scripture, where it is magnified so much, _a state of_ HAPPINESS, in
-that existence; and then only a capacity of being put into this state is
-procured for us by the Redeemer. But this capacity, this _grace of God_,
-may be _frustrated by us_[37], may even turn against is, if we be not
-duly prepared to enjoy that _happiness_ of which we are made capable; and
-such _preparation_, is the proper distinctive work of God’s holy spirit.
-
-Further, to see the necessity, the importance at least, of such
-preparation, we are to reflect, that, by the fall of man, not only life
-was forfeited, but the powers of his mind were weakened. Transgression
-had clouded his understanding, and perverted his will. He neither saw his
-duty so clearly as before, nor was disposed to perform it so vigorously.
-And this depravation of his faculties, we easily conceive, _might_, as
-an original taint, be transmitted to his posterity; nay, we certainly
-feel that it _is_ so: yet, without any imputation on the author of our
-being, who might have placed us in this disadvantageous state, if he
-had pleased, from the beginning; and to whom we are accountable for the
-right use of the advantages we have, not of those we have not. Still, the
-purity of God’s nature might require what his wisdom has decreed, that
-_without holiness no man shall see the Lord_[38], and that Jesus should
-be _the author of eternal salvation to those_ only, who, in a higher
-degree than our fallen nature of itself permits, _obey him_[39]. And this
-change in our moral condition from bad to good, from a propensity to
-evil to a love of righteousness, is called in scripture, _a renewing of
-our minds_, _a new creation_, _a new man_; in opposition to the former
-so different state of our minds, which is called _the old man corrupted
-according to the deceitful lusts_[40].
-
-For the _change_ itself, it is represented in scripture as proceeding,
-not from the virtue of our own minds, but from the influence of the Holy
-Ghost upon them[41]: and when it has taken place in us, then, and not
-till then, is _our election sure_, and we are _made heirs according to
-the hope of eternal life_[42].
-
-This extraordinary provision for restoring man to the image of God,
-to _the new man, which after God is created in righteousness and true
-holiness_[43], is what reason could not have hoped for, but, when made
-known by revelation, seems to have been expedient, may be conceived to
-have been even necessary, and is clearly an expression of the divine
-goodness, which, though it fill our minds very justly with wonder, well
-as gratitude, none of our natural notions contradict.
-
-We see, then, in general, _how_ the new man receives the gift of eternal
-life from the spirit. Let us now consider more particularly,
-
-II. In the second place, in what _way_ this new creation is carried on
-and perfected in us. And here we shall find all the marks of that wisdom
-and fitness, which are discernable in the thing itself.
-
-_For_ we are _renewed in the spirit of our minds_[44], _by the teaching
-of the spirit of truth_[45], _through sanctification of the spirit_[46],
-and _comfort of the Holy Ghost_[47]: that is, we have a new and better
-turn given to our minds, by the light derived into them from the spirit;
-by the good thoughts and purposes which he excites in them; and by the
-joy and consolation with which he rewards our endeavours to profit by
-the assistance thus graciously afforded to us.
-
-That we very much want these helps and encouragements, we _all_ know:
-that we are very much indebted to them, we _Christians_ believe: and that
-they are not the less real, because, perhaps, not distinguishable from
-the workings of our own minds, now that revelation assures us of the
-fact, we have no scruple to affirm.
-
-To this divine Spirit, then, _the spirit of the Father_[48], and _the
-spirit of the Son_[49], as he is equally styled, because proceeding
-from both; to this spirit, I say, _enlightening_ our understandings,
-_purifying_ our wills, and _confirming_ our faith, we must impute all
-that is good in us, all that proficiency in _true holiness_ which
-qualifies us for the enjoyment of heaven: and through this discipline it
-is, that they _who sow to the spirit_, are, in the end, enabled _of the
-spirit to reap everlasting life_.
-
-These _three_ characters might be further opened and distinctly
-considered; and then it would appear, that all the revelations of
-God’s will, chiefly with regard to the redemption of man, made to the
-patriarchs of old, to the prophets under the law, to the Apostles of our
-Lord, nay to our Lord himself, as _the man Christ Jesus_, and all the
-secret illuminations of the faithful in all times, are to be regarded as
-so many emanations from the spirit of God, THE ENLIGHTENER: that at the
-gradual improvements of our virtue, all the graces which first descend
-upon our hearts, and then manifest themselves in every good word and
-work, are the production of the same spirit, in his office of SANCTIFIER:
-and, lastly, that all the firmness and resolution we possess under
-every trial in this world, all the foretaste we have of future favour
-and acceptance, all our joy and peace in believing, are the signs and
-proofs of the COMFORTER, speaking to us, and, according to our Saviour’s
-promise, _abiding in us_.
-
-It is very conceivable that all this diversity of operations may be
-justly and reasonably ascribed to the influence of the holy Spirit,
-without supposing that our own freedom is impeded or infringed. For
-influence is not compulsion; and we are every day induced by others to
-do that which we should not have done of ourselves, without feeling
-or suspecting that the least violence is offered to our free-will.
-_A convincing truth_ clearly presented to us; _a virtuous thought_
-incidentally suggested; _a gleam of hope or gladness_, suddenly let in
-upon us; all this is no more than we frequently experience in the company
-of wise and good men, who yet would be much surprised, and would have
-reason to think themselves much injured, if we complained of any undue
-influence exerted by them. Yet thus it is, and thus only, that the holy
-spirit _constraineth us_: and the scriptures are so far from representing
-this constraint under the idea of force, or physical necessity, that they
-speak of it as the perfection of moral freedom: _Where the spirit of the
-Lord is_, says the Apostle, _there is liberty_[50].
-
-Having, therefore, seen in _what sense_ it is affirmed that the spirit
-_giveth_ life; and in _what way_, consistently with the free use of our
-faculties, he dispenses this gift, and exercises a variety of offices
-towards us; it remains,
-
-III. In the last place, to see what _returns of duty_, as corresponding
-to the several characters of the holy Spirit, and resulting from the
-relations in which we stand to him, are required on our part; in other
-words, what we are to do, before we can hope to be _transformed by the
-renewing of our minds_, under the influence of the holy Spirit.
-
-One previous indispensable condition of our obtaining that influence
-seems to be, that we ASK _it_, that is, put up our petitions to God for
-it: a consideration, which, while it shews the utility, the necessity of
-prayer, sufficiently accounts, I doubt, to many of us, for the little
-or no effect which, as we pretend and sometimes lament, this renovating
-power of the spirit has upon us.
-
-This duty of prayer being supposed; with regard to the holy spirit
-himself, _in general_, all the reverence, honour, worship, which his
-divine nature exacts from us, and all the love and gratitude which his
-gracious concurrence with the Father and the Son, in the great work of
-our redemption, so eminently deserves, are to be religiously paid to him.
-
-More _particularly_, we are to consider, that to the several characters
-or offices, sustained by this divine person, and exercised towards us,
-several duties respectively correspond; which indeed are obvious enough,
-but must just be pointed out.
-
-1. If a ray of light break in upon us, if a new degree of knowledge be
-imparted to us, if we see the truth of the gospel more clearly in any
-respect than before we had done, we cannot mistake in ascribing this
-additional information or conviction (which comes very frequently we
-know not how, and when the general bent of our thoughts, perhaps, lies
-another way) to the illuminating spirit within us; and we are to see to
-what further purpose that illumination may serve, and how far it may go
-towards dissipating the darkness of our minds in other instances.
-
-2. If we feel (as at times we all of us do) a vicious inclination
-checked, a virtuous purpose encouraged, a moral or a pious sentiment
-suggested, these secret motions are, nay, must be, from the holy Spirit;
-and our duty is to entertain and to improve them.
-
-3. Or, again, if we perceive our devotions to be quickened, our hopes
-enlivened, our faith fortified, though the present state of our temper
-or constitution may be instrumental in producing these effects, yet, if
-they go no father than scripture warrants, and right reason allows, we
-shall not mistake (having the express promise of our Lord and Master) in
-ascribing these consolations of peace and joy to the _Comforter_; we may
-regard them as _the earnest and pledge of the spirit in our hearts_[51]:
-and then, our part is so to cherish and use them, as to _go on from
-strength to strength_[52], till we arrive at perfection.
-
-You see there is enough for us to do, though _the spirit strive with our
-spirit_[53], and in such sort that we derive the power _to will and to
-do_[54] what we ought, ultimately from him.
-
-I know that this, and other things, which on the authority of scripture,
-I have delivered on the present subject, will appear strange to natural
-reason. But so that scripture has prepared us to expect they would do.
-_For the natural man_, says the Apostle, _receiveth not the things of
-the spirit of God: for they are foolishness unto him_[55]. And to the
-same purpose our divine Master himself, speaking _of the spirit of truth;
-whom_, says he, _the world cannot receive, because it seeth him not,
-neither knoweth him: but ye_, addressing himself to his disciples [that
-is, to men, who walk by _faith_, and not by sight] _ye know him, for he
-dwelleth with you, and shall be in you_.
-
-On this assurance, then, we may reasonably believe what, by reason,
-we cannot understand. And the substance of what we are to believe on
-this whole subject, is contained in a single text of St. Peter, where
-the _three_ divine persons, yet ineffably _one_ God, “_the Trinity in
-unity_[56],” whom we adore, and their respective offices, are accurately
-distinguished. For in the opening of his first epistle, he pronounces the
-Christians, to whom he writes, ELECT, that is, entitled to salvation,
-_according to the foreknowledge_, or pre-determination[57], _of God the
-father; through the sanctification of the Spirit unto obedience; and
-sprinkling of the blood of Jesus Christ_.
-
-In these memorable words, we have a brief, yet clear epitome of our whole
-faith. And thus at length you see that, though eternal life be _the gift
-of_ GOD _in his_ SON, it is only ensured, and finally conveyed to us, by
-the ministry of _his_ HOLY SPIRIT: to which blessed TRINITY, therefore,
-be all honour, and praise, and adoration, now and for ever! AMEN.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXII.
-
-PREACHED JUNE 19, 1774.
-
-2 COR. vii. 1.
-
-_Having therefore these promises (dearly beloved) let us cleanse
-ourselves from all filthiness of flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness in
-the fear of God._
-
-
-Our discourses from this place turning very much, as they ought to do,
-on the great Christian doctrine of salvation, that is, of _eternal
-life_, considered as the gift of God to mortal and sinful man, through
-the redemption of his Son, and the sanctification of his holy Spirit, it
-would be a strange neglect in us, if we did not take care to remind our
-hearers of the effect which that doctrine ought to have upon them.
-
-This duty I mean now to discharge towards you: and I cannot do it
-more properly than by enforcing that advice which St. Paul gave the
-Corinthians, as the result of a long and eloquent discourse to them on
-the same subject. _Having_ THEREFORE (says he) these promises [i. e. the
-promise of _eternal life_, and of _acceptance through Christ_, so as to
-become _the people of God_, nay _the sons of God_, with other assurances
-of the like sort[58], interspersed in the two preceding chapters, _Having
-these promises_] _let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of flesh
-and spirit, perfecting holiness in the fear of God_.
-
-The inference, you see, is direct to our purpose: and common ingenuity,
-if nothing else, might well engage us, in return for such great and
-precious promises, to draw the same conclusion for ourselves. But, when
-we further consider that these promises are conditional, and made only
-to those who obey the giver of them[59], interest, as well as gratitude,
-will oblige us to yield that obedience so expressly required of us.
-
-This obedience is briefly summed up in the direction; _to cleanse
-ourselves from all filthiness of flesh and spirit_, that is, to take
-care, agreeably to the double obligation imposed upon us by the distinct
-parts of our constitution, that we consult the integrity both of our
-bodies and minds; and preserve them both from that defilement which each
-of them, according to its nature, is liable to contract in this state of
-moral probation.
-
-I. With regard to the FLESH, the gross vices which defile that part of
-our frame, are so expressly condemned by the law of reason, as well
-as of the gospel, and are so repugnant to the inbred modesty of every
-man, especially, a such as have had their natural sense of decency
-quickened by a good education, that but to mention them in this place,
-I would hope, is quite sufficient. If I go farther, it shall only be to
-remind you of one thing, which I have explained at large on a former
-occasion[60], That Christianity hath added unspeakably to the worth and
-dignity of the human body, by considering it no longer as the store-house
-of impure lusts, but as the habitation, the _temple_ of the living God,
-to whose sole use it is now dedicated[61].
-
-The turpitude, the dishonour, the impiety of desecrating this sanctuary
-of the holy Spirit by sordid, carnal excesses, is then apparent to every
-Christian.
-
-But the vices of the SPIRIT do not always strike the attention so
-forcibly; though they be as real as those of the body, and sometimes
-more fatal. The reason is, that the spiritual part of man does not lie
-so open to observation as the corporeal. The mind is not easily made an
-object to itself; and, when it is, we have a strange power of seeing it
-in a false light, and of overlooking its blemishes, or of even mistaking
-them for beauties. In short, _the filthiness of the spirit_ may be long
-unobserved, and therefore _uncleansed_, if it be not pointed out to us by
-some friendly monitor, who is more practised in this mental inspection
-than ourselves, or has less interest, however, to conceal our depravity
-from us.
-
-Permit me, then, to assume the charitable office of holding up to your
-view these _spiritual vices_; not all of every sort (for that would be
-endless) but the chief of those which tend more immediately to defeat the
-gracious _promises_ made to us in the gospel.
-
-II. I say nothing of that corruption which direct and positive infidelity
-strikes through the soul, whether it be the infidelity of Atheism,
-or what is called Deism; because, on men who espouse either of these
-systems, the promises of the gospel take no hold; and because it ought
-not, cannot be supposed, that men of no religion, or of no faith, appear
-in these Christian assemblies. You will think me better employed in
-pointing out such corruptions, as may not improbably adhere even to
-believers; though concealed from their own observation, it may be, or
-disguised, at least, to themselves, under various pretences.
-
-1. The first of these that I shall mention is a sort of HALF-BELIEF,
-which floats in the mind, and, though it do not altogether renounce
-the hopes of the Gospel, is far from reposing a firm trust in them.
-Many professed believers have, I doubt, this infirmity, this taint of
-infidelity, still cleaving to them. They think Christianity an useful
-institution; nay, they think it not destitute of all divine authority.
-But then they reduce this authority to just nothing, by allowing
-themselves to put it as low as they can—by taking great liberties in
-explaining both its doctrines and precepts—by admitting such parts
-of this revelation, as they believe themselves able to make out to
-the satisfaction of their own minds, and by rejecting, at least by
-questioning in some sort, whatever they cannot perfectly understand—by
-treating some things as incredible, others, as impracticable; one part
-of their religion as too mysterious, and another as too severe. “They
-believe, they say, what they can: but, after all, there are many strange
-things in this religion; and the evidence for the truth of them is not
-so controuling, but that there is room for some degree of doubt and
-hesitation.”
-
-All this, perhaps, they do not say to others; nay, not to themselves,
-except when they are pressed by some conclusion from scripture, which
-either their prejudices, or their passions, make them very unwilling
-to admit; and then they take leave to be as sceptical as the occasion
-requires.
-
-But now from such a faith as this, no wholesome or permanent fruits can
-be expected. It has no root in them; and the _promises_, that should feed
-and nourish it, have but a faint and feeble effect; just enough, perhaps,
-to keep their hopes from dying outright, but much too little to push
-them into any vigorous efforts of obedience.
-
-The way for such to _cleanse themselves_ from this pollution of spirit
-(for to the several defects, the proper remedy in each case shall, as
-we go along, be subjoined) is, once for all, to examine the foundations
-of their religion; and, if they find them, on the whole, solid and
-satisfactory, to rely upon them thenceforth with a confidence entire and
-unshaken. They should reflect, that every revealed doctrine, of whatever
-sort, as standing on the same ground of infallible truth, is equally to
-be admitted. There is no compromising matters with their divine Master:
-they must either quit his service, or follow him without reserve. And
-this, upon the whole, they will find to be the manly and the reasonable
-part for them to take. To halt between two opinions so repugnant to
-each other, to embrace so interesting a thing as religion by halves, is
-neither for the credit of their courage, nor of their understanding.
-
-Having then the _promise_ of eternal life, let them reckon upon that
-promise, like men who know its value, and do not mistrust on what ground
-it stands. If they are Christians at all, they cannot justify it even
-to themselves not to be Christians in good earnest. And thus will they
-happily escape the disgrace of an _irresolved and indolent faith_; which
-involves them in much of the guilt, and in almost all the mischiefs, of
-infidelity. But,
-
-2. There are those who have not a doubt about the truth of Christianity,
-and yet, through a certain LEVITY OF MIND, derive but little benefit from
-their conviction.
-
-This spiritual vice is, perhaps, the commonest of all others; and, though
-it seems to have something prodigious in it, is easily accounted for from
-the intoxication of health, youth, and high spirits; from the restless
-pursuit of pleasure, which occupies one part of the world, and of
-business, which distracts another; from a too passionate love of society
-in many; from feverish habits of dissipation in more; and from a fatal
-impatience of solitude and recollection in almost all.
-
-But, by whichsoever of these causes the vice of inconsideration, we
-have now before us, is produced and nourished, it is of the most
-malignant sort, and being ready to branch out into many others, should
-be resolutely checked and suppressed. Though there be nothing directly
-criminal in the pursuit which takes us from ourselves, it is always
-dangerous to lose sight of what we are, and whither we are going, and may
-be fatal. For, not to believe, and not to call to mind what we believe,
-is nearly the same thing. And when a temptation meets us thus unprepared,
-it wants no assistance from infidelity, but is secure of prevailing by
-its own strength, under cover of our inattention.
-
-Such, I doubt not, is the sad experience of thousands, every day; while
-yet the misjudging world, that part of it, especially, whose interest it
-is to suppose that all men are equally destitute of religious principles,
-rashly conclude that there is no faith, where there is so much folly.
-“These hypocrites, say they, are convicted of the same unbelief,
-which they perpetually object to us:” Alas, no: they are convicted of
-inconsequence, only.
-
-Not that this consideration excuses their guilt: it even aggravates and
-inflames it. For, when _one thing_, only, _is needful_, and they know
-it to be so, not to retain a practical, an habitual sense of it, but to
-suffer every trifle to mislead, every sudden gust of passion to drive
-them from _the hope_ and end _of their calling_, argues an extreme
-depravity of mind, and deserves a harsher name than we commonly give to
-this conduct.
-
-However, soften it to ourselves, as we will, under any fashionable
-denomination, the _spirit_ must be cured of this vice, or the _promises_
-of the Gospel are lost upon us. And the proper remedy is but one. We must
-resolve, at all events, to acquire the contrary habit of consideration.
-We must meditate much and often on what we believe: we must force our
-minds to dwell upon it: we must converse more with ourselves, how bad
-company soever we take that to be, and less with the world, which so
-easily dissipates our thoughts, and oversets our best resolutions.
-
-If we would but every day set apart a small portion of our time, were it
-but a few minutes, to supplicate the grace of God, and to say seriously
-to ourselves; _I believe the promises, and I acknowledge the authority
-of the gospel_; (and less than this, who can think excusable in any man,
-whatever his condition of life may be, that calls himself a Christian?)
-this short and easy discipline, regularly pursued, and, on no pretence
-whatever, intermitted, would presently effect the cure we so much want,
-and restore the sickly mind to its health and vigour.
-
-3. Still, there may be a general belief in the promises of the Gospel,
-and a good degree of attention to them, and yet men may be but little
-impressed by what they thus believe and consider. This affection of the
-mind is sometimes experienced, but has hardly acquired a distinct name.
-Let us call it, if you please, a DEADNESS, or INSENSIBILITY OF HEART;
-which, so far as it proceeds from natural constitution, is a misfortune
-only; but, when cherished or even neglected by us, it becomes a fault.
-
-The danger of it lies here, lest by seeing with indifference the most
-important objects of our hopes and fears, we come by degrees to neglect
-or overlook them; to question, perhaps, the reality of them; or, to
-lose, however, the benefit which even a calm view of these objects, when
-frequently set before the mind, must needs convey to us.
-
-The rule in this case plainly is, To prescribe to ourselves such a
-regimen as is proper to correct this spiritual lethargy: that is, to
-stimulate the sluggish mind by the most poignant reflexions; to bring
-the objects of our faith as near and close to us as we can; to paint them
-in the liveliest colours of the imagination, which, when touched itself,
-easily sets fire to the affections; and, above all, to keep our eye
-intently and steadily upon them.
-
-We may see the utility of this regimen, in a case which is familiar to
-every body.
-
-When we look forward to the end of life, it appears at a vast distance.
-The many, or the few years, that lie before us, take up a great deal of
-room in the mind, and present the idea of a long, and almost interminable
-duration. Hence the fatal security in which we most of us live, as
-conceiving that, when so much time is on our hands, we need not be
-sollicitous to make the most of it.
-
-But that all this is a mere delusion, we may see by looking back on the
-time that is already elapsed. We have lived in this world, twenty, forty,
-it may be, many more years: yet, in reflecting on this space, we find it
-just nothing: the several parts of it run together in the mind, and the
-first moment of our existence seems almost to touch upon the present.
-Now, by anticipating this experience, and applying it to the remaining
-period of our lives, we may satisfy ourselves, that the years to come
-will pass away as rapidly, and, when gone, will appear as inconsiderable
-as the past; and the effect of this anticipation must be, to convince us,
-that no part of this brief term is to be trifled with, or unimproved.
-
-Then, again, we have the power of imaging to ourselves, in a very lively
-manner, the circumstances in which death surprises very many thoughtless
-persons every day; and what we should feel in their situation.
-
-Lay then these two things together; make _the shortness of life_, and
-_the terrors of an unprepared death_, the frequent object of your
-meditation; and see if the most callous mind will not presently be much
-affected by them.
-
-4. The fourth and last vice of the spirit, which I have time to mention
-to you, is rather, perhaps, to be accounted a complication of vices.
-But what I mean is that unhappy turn of mind which prompts many persons
-to elude the effects of faith, reflexion, and even a lively sense, in
-matters of religion, by certain tricks of SOPHISTRY, which they practise
-on themselves. They believe, and they would gladly obtain, the promises
-of the gospel, but repentance, they suppose, will supply the place of
-uniform obedience: they will repent, but not yet; there is time enough,
-and fitter for that purpose, when passion cools, and the heat of life is
-over: or, they fancy to themselves an inexhaustible fund of goodness in
-their religion; the terms of it may not be rigidly insisted upon; the
-promises may not be so conditional as they seem to be; and the threats,
-without doubt, will not be punctually executed. At the worst, there is
-no need to despair of mercy, considering the frailty of man, and the
-infinite merits of the Redeemer.
-
-Such reasonings as these argue a depraved mind, and tend, further, to
-deprave it. But your good sense prevents me in the confutation of them.
-I would only observe, that this vice is, as I said, a complicated one:
-for, together with the unfairness and disingenuity (which belongs to all
-sophistry, as such) we have here united (what is too common in religious
-sophistry) a great deal of unwarrantable presumption.
-
-The remedy in the case is, To cultivate in ourselves a modest and
-ingenuous love of truth; an awful reverence of the revealed word, and
-that simplicity of heart which excludes all artifice and refinement.
-
-From these so pernicious vices of the spirit, then, that is, from a
-_fluctuating faith_, an _inconsiderate levity_, an _inapprehensive
-deadness of heart_, and a _perverse sophistical abuse of the
-understanding_, let us emancipate ourselves by a firm, attentive,
-vigorous, and ingenuous dependance on the promises of the gospel; from
-these defilements, I say, in particular (having shaken off the other
-more sordid corruptions of the _flesh and spirit_) let us anxiously
-_cleanse_ our minds, with the view of _perfecting holiness_, as the text
-admonishes, IN THE FEAR OF GOD.
-
-This last clause is by no means an insignificant one; as ye will see
-by recollecting, that the true temper of a Christian is, hope mixed
-with fear; _hope_, to animate his courage, and _fear_, to quicken his
-attention. For, unless this principle of fear, not a servile, but filial
-fear, inform the soul and invigorate its functions, we shall be far from
-PERFECTING HOLINESS; we shall at best exhibit in our lives but some
-broken, detached, incoherent parcels of it. A steady, uniform piety, such
-as begets that _hope, which maketh not ashamed_[62], is only kept up by
-a constant watchfulness and circumspection; which our probationary state
-plainly demands, and which nothing but _the fear of God_ effectually
-secures.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXIII.
-
-PREACHED APRIL 8, 1776.
-
-1 TIM. iii. 16.
-
-_Without controversy great is the mystery of godliness: God was manifest
-in the flesh; justified in the spirit; seen of Angels; preached to the
-Gentiles; believed on in the world; received up into glory._
-
-
-The inspired writers, sometimes, dilate on the articles of the Christian
-religion; pursue them separately, and at length, for the fuller and more
-distinct information of the faithful. Sometimes, again, they give them to
-us, as it were, in clusters: they accumulate their awful doctrines and
-discoveries, to strike and astonish the mind with their united force.
-
-This _last_ is the method of the text, which I shall a little open and
-explain; but so as to conform myself to the Apostle’s purpose in giving a
-brief collective view of Christianity, that, the whole of it being seen
-together, we may be the more sensibly affected by it.
-
-1. This _great mystery of godliness_ opens with—GOD MANIFEST IN THE FLESH.
-
-When the scheme of man’s redemption was laid, it was not thought fit
-that an Apostle, a prophet, a man like ourselves, no nor an Angel or
-Archangel, should be the instrument of it; but that the _word of God_,
-the _Son of God_, nay _God_ himself (as he is here and elsewhere[63]
-called) should take this momentous office upon him: that heaven should
-stoop to earth, and that the divine nature should condescend to leave the
-mansions of glory, inshrine itself in a fleshly tabernacle, should be
-_made man_, should _dwell among us_, and _die for us_.
-
-If you ask, why may not a man, or angel, have sufficed to execute this
-purpose of man’s salvation; or, if only this divine person was equal
-to it, why he did not rather assume a glorified, than our mortal body;
-why it was necessary for him to inherit all our infirmities (sin only
-excepted,) and yet be conceived, in so extraordinary a manner of the holy
-Spirit; nay, and why he should be so conceived, and born of a _virgin_
-(a miracle of that peculiar sort as scarce seems capable of proof, and,
-in fact, is only proved indirectly by the subsequent life and character
-and history of this divine person): If you ask these, and a hundred
-other such questions, I answer readily and frankly, _I know not_: But
-then consider, that _my_ ignorance, that is, any man’s ignorance, of
-the reasons why these things were done, is no argument, not so much as
-a presumption against there being reasons, nay, and the best reasons,
-for so mysterious a dispensation. Consider, too, that these mysteries no
-way contradict any clear principle of your own reason: all that appears
-is, that you should not have expected, previously to the revelation of
-it, such a design to be formed; and that, now it is revealed, you do not
-understand why it was so conducted. But we are just in the same state
-of ignorance, with regard to almost every part of the divine conduct.
-This world, so unquestionably the work of infinite wisdom and goodness,
-is not, in numberless respects, what we should expect it to have
-been; of many parts we see not the use and end; in some, there is the
-appearance of deformity; in others, of mischief; in all, when attentively
-considered, of something above, or beside, our apprehension.
-
-Such then being the case of the natural world, why may not the moral
-have its depths and difficulties? You see God in the creation: why
-not in redemption? In the former, he condescends, according to our
-best philosophy, to manifest himself in the meanest reptile, all whose
-instincts he immediately prompts, and whose movements he directs and
-governs: why then might he not manifest himself in man, though in another
-manner, and by an union with him still more close and intimate?
-
-But I pursue these questions no farther. It is enough that, admitting
-the fact, on the faith of the revelation itself, we see a wonderful
-goodness and condescension in this whole procedure: that we understand
-the importance of having such a saviour and guide and example of
-life, as _God manifest in the flesh_; that we are led to conceive,
-with astonishment, of the dignity of man, for whose sake the Godhead
-assumed our nature, and, at the same time, with consternation, of the
-guilt of man, for the atonement of which this assumption, with all its
-consequences, became necessary.
-
-_God manifest in the flesh_, is then the _first_ chapter of this
-mysterious book: and yet, as mysterious as it is, full of the clearest
-and most momentous instruction.
-
-2. The _second_ is, that this wonderfully compounded person was JUSTIFIED
-IN THE SPIRIT: that is, _by_, or _through_ the Spirit: another mystery,
-which, however, acquaints us with this fact, that a third divine person
-ministered in the great work of our redemption.
-
-And his ministry was seen in directing the ancient prophets to
-foretell the Redeemer’s coming[64]; in accomplishing his miraculous
-conception[65]; in assisting at his baptism[66]; in conducting him
-through his temptation[67]; in giving him the power to cast out devils,
-which is expressly said to be _by the Spirit of God_[68]; in raising
-him from the dead, by which event he was _declared the Son of God with
-power, according to the spirit of holiness_[69]; in descending on his
-disciples on the day of Pentecost[70]; in bestowing diversities of
-miraculous gifts[71] upon them, for the confirmation of his doctrine, and
-the propagation of it through the world; and lastly in sanctifying and
-illuminating the faithful of all times and places[72].
-
-In all these ways (and if there be any other) Jesus was _justified_,
-that is, his commission was authenticated by the testimony of the Holy
-Spirit. Here, again, many curious questions may be asked: but what we
-clearly learn is, the awful relation we bear to the Holy Ghost, as
-co-operating in the scheme of man’s redemption; and the infinite dignity
-of that scheme itself, the execution of which required the agency of that
-transcendantly divine person.
-
-Hitherto the mystery of godliness has been doubly mysterious, being
-wrapped up in the incomprehensible essence of the Deity. It now stoops,
-as it were, through this cloud of glory, and gives itself to be somewhat
-distinctly apprehended by us.
-
-3. In the _next_ view we have of the Redeemer, as being SEEN OF ANGELS.
-
-We have some grounds from analogy to conclude, that, as there is a scale
-of beings below us, there is also one above us: at least, the conclusion
-has been pretty generally drawn: and the belief almost universal of such
-a scale ascending from us to God, though the uppermost round of it still
-be at an infinite distance from his throne. But the direct, indeed the
-only solid proof of its existence, is the revealed word, which speaks
-of _Angels_ and _Archangels_, nay _myriads_[73] of them, disposed into
-different ranks, and rising above each other in a wonderful harmony and
-proportion.
-
-Such is the idea which scripture gives us of the invisible world. Now,
-to raise our minds to some just apprehension of the great scheme of our
-redemption, it represents that world, as being put in motion by that
-scheme, as attentive and _earnest to look into it_[74]: and, to exalt our
-conceptions of the Redeemer himself, it speaks of that world as being
-in subjection to him; of all its inhabitants, the highest in place and
-dignity, as serving in his retinue, and paying homage to his person[75].
-
-They accordingly ministered to him in this capacity, when they celebrated
-his birth in the fields of Bethlehem[76]; when they took part with him
-in his triumphs over the adversary in the desart[77]: when they flew to
-strengthen him in his last agonies[78]; when they attended, in their
-robes of state to grace his resurrection[79]: and when they ranked
-themselves, with all observance, about him, as he went up into heaven[80].
-
-_Of the angels_, then, _he was seen_, on all these, and doubtless other,
-occasions. But how was he seen? With love and wonder unspeakable, when
-they saw their Lord and Master thus humbling himself for the sake of man;
-when they contemplated this bright effulgence of the Deity, _the express
-image of his person_[81], veiling all his glories in flesh, and,
-
- —_low-rooft beneath the skies_,
-
-as our great poet sublimely represents his humiliation[82].
-
-Still the _mystery_ continues, though it now submits itself to the
-scrutiny of our senses; for it follows,
-
-4. That he was PREACHED TO THE GENTILES.
-
-To enter into the full meaning of this clause, we are to reflect, That,
-when the nations of the earth had so prodigiously corrupted themselves
-as to lose the memory of the true religion, and to give themselves over
-to the most abominable impieties, it pleased God to select one faithful
-family from the rest of the degenerate world, and in due time to advance
-it into a numerous people; which he vouchsafed to take into a near
-relation to himself, and, by a singular policy, to preserve distinct and
-separate from the surrounding tribes of Idolaters. Henceforth, the Jews
-(for of that people I speak) considered themselves as the sole favourites
-of Heaven (as they were, indeed, the sole worshippers of the true God),
-and all the heathen as the outcasts of its providence.
-
-This notion, in process of time, became so rooted in them, that when
-Jesus now appeared in Judea, they were ready to engross all his favours
-to themselves, and thought it strange and incredible, that any part of
-them should be conferred on the reprobate heathen. So that he himself
-was obliged to proceed with much caution in opening the extent of his
-commission, and St. Paul everywhere speaks of the design to save the
-Gentiles as the profoundest mystery, as _that which had been kept secret
-since the world began_[83].
-
-In the mean time, the mercy of God had much larger views, and sent the
-Messiah to be _the saviour of_ ALL _men, especially of them_, out of
-every nation, _that believe_[84].
-
-But this mercy, so _mysterious_ to the Jews, could not be much less so to
-the Gentiles, who must feel how disproportioned the blessing was to any
-deserts of man; and who saw how enormous and how general that corruption
-was, which in all likelihood must exclude them from it. Thus it might
-reasonably be matter of _silent wonder_[85], to both parties, to hear
-_Christ preached to the Gentiles_: only, this _latter_ (of which party
-we ourselves are) might say with a peculiar exultation, what the Jews,
-even in _glorifying_ the Author of it, were not, without some reluctance,
-brought to acknowledge; _Then hath God, also, to the Gentiles granted
-repentance unto life._
-
-And if the surprize be deservedly great to hear Christ _preached to the
-Gentiles_, it must in all reason grow upon us to find,
-
-5. In the succeeding link of this _mysterious_ chain, that he was
-even BELIEVED ON IN THE WORLD; that is, in the world both of Jews and
-Gentiles; in the former, to a certain extent; and, in the latter, to one
-which, though not universal, is truly astonishing.
-
-Of the Jews it is affirmed, that _multitudes_[86] of them believed: and
-what especially redounds to their honour and to our benefit, is, that out
-of the Jewish believers were taken those favoured servants of God, that
-opened the door of faith to the Gentiles, and became his instruments in
-conveying the light of the Gospel to all generations. And, considering
-the inveterate prejudices of that people, such a measure of faith, and
-such effects of it, could not well have been expected from that quarter.
-
-But then, for the Gentiles, it is astonishing to observe how quick and
-how general their conversion to the faith was: so that all men seemed
-to _press_[87] into the kingdom of God, and, as it were, to _take it by
-violence_[88]. For, within forty years from the death of Christ, the
-sound of the Gospel _had gone out into all lands_[89]; and, in less
-than three centuries from that event, the empire itself, that is, all
-the civilized part of the earth, became Christian: and this, in spite
-of every obstruction, which the lusts of men, operating with all their
-force, and confederated together, could throw in the way of the new
-religion.
-
-_So mightily grew the word of God, and prevailed[90]!_ and it still
-prevails: not every where indeed, nor any where to that degree in which,
-we trust, it one day will; but to a certain degree over a great part
-of the globe, and especially in the more enlightened parts of it: an
-evident proof, that reason is congenial with faith; and that nothing but
-ignorance, corrupted by vice, can hold out against the cross of Jesus.
-
-Yet this power of the cross must be thought prodigious; since its
-pretensions are so high, and its doctrine so pure, that, in a world
-overgrown with presumption and vice, it could never have made its way to
-so much consideration, if the hand of God had not been with it.
-
-Such is the mystery of Christ _believed on in the world_!
-
-But now the Apostle, who had digressed a little from his main subject,
-or rather had anticipated some part of it, returns, from the effects
-which Christianity was to have on the world, to the person of its divine
-Author; who, as it follows in the
-
-6. _Sixth_, and last clause of this panegyrick, WAS RECEIVED UP INTO
-GLORY.
-
-And this circumstance was proper to shut up so stupendous a scene. It
-opened with a view of _God manifest in the flesh_, degraded, eclipsed,
-obscured by this material vestment; yet emerging out of its dark shade
-through the countenance of the _spirit_, and by the ministry of _angels_;
-then shining out in the face of the _Gentiles_, and gradually ascending
-to his meridian height in the conversion of the whole _world_. Yet
-was this prize of glory to be won by a long and painful conflict with
-dangers, sufferings, and death; in regard to which last enemy (the most
-alarming of all) the Apostle affirms, that _it was not possible for so
-divine a person to be holden of it_[91]. It follows, therefore, naturally
-and properly (to vindicate the Redeemer’s honour, and to replace him in
-that celestial state, from which he had descended), that, in his own
-person, he triumphed over hell and the grave, and went up visibly into
-heaven; there to sit down at the right hand of the Father, till, his
-great mediatorial scheme being accomplished, he himself shall voluntarily
-quit the distinction of his name and place, and GOD SHALL BE ALL IN
-ALL[92].
-
-On this brief comment on the text, thus far unfolded to you, I have but
-one reflexion to make. Ye will not derive from it a clearer insight into
-the reasons of all the wonders presented to you: for I undertook only to
-lay before you those wonders themselves; not to account to you for them:
-but, if ye feel yourselves touched with a view of these things; if ye
-find your hearts impressed with an awful sense of your divine religion,
-and _nourished_[93] in the faith of it, then will ye be in a way to reap
-that fruit from this discourse, which is better than all wisdom and
-all knowledge; the fruit of HOLINESS, in this short but unspeakably
-momentous stage of your existence; and of HAPPINESS without measure, and
-without end, in the kingdom of glory.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXIV.
-
-PREACHED MAY 19, 1776.
-
-ISAIAH l. 11.
-
-_Behold, all ye that kindle a fire, that compass yourselves about with
-sparks; Walk in the light of your fire, and in the sparks which ye have
-kindled: This shall ye have of my hand, ye shall lie down in sorrow._
-
-
-The expression, we see, is figurative. By the _fire kindled_, and the
-_sparks, with which men compass themselves about_, may, indeed, be
-understood any of those worldly comforts, such as honours, riches,
-and pleasures, which the generality of men are studious to procure to
-themselves; and in the _light_ of which they love to walk, as being
-that, which, in their opinion, contributes most to warm, to chear, and
-illustrate human life.
-
-The effect, however, of these comforts, is, that they who possess the
-largest share of them, and seek for no other, _lie down in sorrow_:
-that is, their lives are without joy, and their end is without hope.
-This is the recompense, which they receive from _the hand of God_; as
-might easily be shewn, if my purpose, at this time, were to enlarge of
-that common-place in morals, _the unsatisfactory nature of all earthly
-enjoyments_.
-
-But my design is to engage your thoughts on a different argument, to
-which the letter of the text more directly leads us. For _light_, in all
-languages, is the emblem of knowledge; which is to the mind, what that
-is to the eye: And, the speaker in the text being God himself, we are
-naturally led to interpret that light, of _religious knowledge_; that
-genial fire, which, more than the Sun itself, is necessary to warm our
-spirits, and guide our steps through the cold and dark passage of this
-life.
-
-The question is, Whether we are to kindle this _fire_, for ourselves; or,
-whether we should not derive it, if we have it in our power so to do,
-immediately from heaven: Whether we shall do best to walk in the light of
-those few _sparks_, which our Reason is able to strike out for us, on the
-subject of religion; or, whether it will not be our interest, and should
-not be our choice, to take the benefit of that pure and steady flame,
-which Revelation holds out to us.
-
-The text, in a severe, indignant irony, refers us to the former of
-these expedients, the better to excite our attention to the latter.
-_Walk_, says the Almighty, addressing himself to the idolaters of human
-reason, _Walk in the light of your fire, and in the sparks which ye have
-kindled_. But to what end is this advice given? To one, they little
-dreamt of, and would surely avoid—_This ye shall have of my hand_, in
-recompense of all your speculations, _Ye shall lie down in sorrow_.
-
-It seems, then, to be the purpose of the text, to inculcate this great
-truth, _That Revelation is the only sure and comfortable guide in matters
-of religion_. And, to second this purpose, so energetically expressed
-by the prophet, I would now shew you, that all the _sparks_ of human
-knowledge, on this important subject, are but smoke; and all the _fire_,
-which human genius or industry can kindle at the altar of human reason,
-ice itself; when compared with the light and heat of divine Revelation.
-
-I SUPPOSE, that we are all convinced of what the voice of nature so
-loudly proclaims, that there is a God, a moral governor of the world; and
-that we are intimately related to him, and dependant upon him. The sum of
-our religious inquiries will then be
-
-I. _What we are to do, in order to obtain the favour of that God: And_
-
-II. _What that favour is, which, when we have done our best, we have
-reason to expect from him._
-
-Now, it will be easy to shew, that the issue of our best reason, in
-the former of these enquiries, is suspense and doubt; and despair, or
-disappointment, in the latter. It will appear, that we cannot assure
-ourselves of the means, by which the favour of Heaven is to be obtained;
-and that the highest degree of favour, we have a right to claim, is not
-that to which we aspire. So fated are we, when trusting to the faint,
-delusive light of our own minds, on this great, this only important
-subject, _to lie down in sorrow_.
-
-I. To begin with the consideration of _what we are to do, in order to
-obtain the favour of God_.
-
-That we are to _worship_ God, will be allowed by all reasonable theists.
-
-But in what way is he to be worshipped? By GIFTS AND OFFERINGS? So a
-great part of the world has believed. But, by _what_ gifts and offerings,
-_how_, and _when_, and _where_, and _by whom_ presented? Are _all_
-indifferent to him, and is no preference due to some above others? or,
-may not my offering lose its value, unless made in a certain _manner_?
-Is it of no moment with what _rites_ I tender my gifts to God? Are all
-_seasons_ equally fit; are all _places_ equally pure; are all _persons_
-equally hallowed, for the oblation of them?
-
-Or, again, are gifts and offerings, to the lord of all things,
-impertinent and vain? And is my reverence of him to be expressed by acts
-of SELF-DENIAL, PENANCE, AND MORTIFICATION? So the pious of all times
-have very generally conceived. But by _what_ penance, to what _end_
-referred, to what _degree_ carried, and how _long_ continued?
-
-We may think of these questions, and of ourselves, what we will. But
-such questions, as these, have been asked by wise men, and, when those
-wise men had only to take council of their own reason, have rarely been
-answered to their satisfaction.
-
-Or, let us advance a step further, and say that our dependance on God
-is to be signified, and his favour obtained, by PRAYER: that gifts
-are mercenary, and penance servile; both, a manifest affront to the
-all-sufficient and all-merciful Deity; and that the supplications of a
-devout mind are the only incense fit for heaven. Be it so: Good and wise
-men have at all times thought highly of prayer; and are generally agreed
-in recommending it as the most becoming expression of human piety. But
-here again, doubts and difficulties meet us. _How_ are we to pray, and
-for _what_?
-
-Are all _forms_ of address equally acceptable to him, we adore? The
-Gentile world thought not: they were solicitous to petition their Gods in
-a certain style, and to gain their ear by some favourite appellation. Let
-this, again, pass for a scruple of superstition. Still, is it indifferent
-with what sentiments we approach the throne of God, and with what ideas
-of his nature and attributes we prostrate ourselves before him? If those
-sentiments or ideas be not suited, in some degree, to the majesty of that
-great being, is there no danger that we may dishonour, may injure, may
-insult him by our addresses? May not our very prayers become affronts,
-and our praises, blasphemies?
-
-And is it so easy to think justly on this mysterious subject, as that
-reason, every man’s own reason, can instruct him? What if two or three
-divine men of the pagan world guessed right? Was their opinion any rule,
-was it even any authority, to the bulk of worshippers[94]?
-
-But say, that it was their own fault to misconceive of the Deity: still,
-for _what_ shall they pray to him? For every thing, they want or wish?
-But thus, they would most commonly pray amiss, for what they should pray
-against, for what would corrupt and hurt them.
-
-These difficulties, with regard both to the mode and matter of this duty,
-appeared so great to the old masters of wisdom, that some[95] of them
-thought it the highest effort of human wit, to form a reasonable prayer;
-and others supposed that none but God himself could instruct man how to
-do it[96].
-
-There is a way, indeed, to cut these difficulties short; which is, by
-maintaining, as some[97] have done, that prayer is no duty at all;
-but a vain superfluous observance, justly ranked with the fancies of
-superstition: that God is not honoured by any external, no, nor by any
-mental, applications to him: that a good conscience[98] is true piety,
-and a spotless life, the only religion.
-
-Admit this exalted idea of divine worship; yet, where shall we find,
-among the sons of Adam, one such worshipper? Who shall lay claim to that
-conscience, or this life? Where is the man, that passes a single day, an
-hour almost, without doing that which he ought not to do, or omitting
-somewhat he ought to have done? And what multitudes are there, who cover
-themselves with infamy, and with crimes?
-
-And what shall the trembling mind do, when it looks up, as at times it
-cannot help doing, to that God, who _is of purer eyes, than to behold
-iniquity_?
-
-_Repent_, it will be said: that species of piety is all-powerful with
-Heaven; it can efface sin, and restore tranquillity.
-
-Here, again, the general sense of mankind runs another way. For, if it
-be so clear, that repentance alone has this virtue, how came the idea of
-atonement and expiation into the world? and whence the almost universal
-practice of _propitiatory sacrifices_?
-
-It is easy, no doubt, to brand this disposition of the human mind, as so
-many others, with the opprobrious name of superstition. Let us see, then,
-what the merits and claims are, of _Repentance itself_.
-
-A man offends against God, and the sense of his own mind. On reflexion
-(what can he do less?) he repents; and (if it please God) is forgiven.
-But passion revives; he offends again, and repents again; and so goes
-on, through his whole life, in a course of alternate transgression, and
-repentance. And is this all the claim he has to be received, at length,
-into the favour of God, that he never sinned, though he did it every day,
-but he was sorry for it?
-
-Yes, you will say, _If my brother trespass against me seven times in a
-day, and seven times in a day turn again and repent_, I am bound by the
-law of Christ himself to forgive him[99]. And will God be less placable,
-than his creature man is required to be[100]?
-
-This rule of conduct is very fit to be observed by one offender towards
-another: but is it past a doubt that it will, that it must take place
-between God and man? WE are bound to this repeated, this continual
-forgiveness of others, by a sense of our common infirmities. HE has
-a government to support; of what extent, over what worlds, and how
-connected with this, no man may say: And what would become of government
-in this world, if every convict was to be pardoned on repentance?
-
-Nor is it enough to reply, that human governors cannot pronounce on the
-sincerity of such repentance. If they could, they would certainly not
-regulate their proceedings by that consideration. The law has denounced
-a penalty on such a crime: And the public interest requires that the
-penalty, for example-sake, be inflicted.
-
-Something, like this, may be true of God’s moral government. No man can
-say, it is not. And therefore repentance, as plausible as its plea may
-appear, can never free the guilty mind from all apprehension.
-
-But another dreadful circumstance attends this matter. We often satisfy
-ourselves, that we repent of a past crime: Yet we commit that crime
-again; perhaps the very next hour. Can we call that repentance sincere?
-Or, have we a right to conclude that God, who sees through all the
-prevarication and duplicity of our hearts, must accept such repentance,
-on our profession of it? Let what virtue there will be in repentance,
-when seen by the unerring eye of God to be true and unfeigned, how shall
-man reckon on the efficacy of it, when he may so easily mistake, and
-cannot certainly know the real worth and character of what he calls
-repentance?
-
-Here then, whether we consider what the moral attributes of the Deity,
-and his righteous government, may demand; or whether we regard the
-weakness and inefficacy of our best purposes; there is room enough for
-the terrors of religion to invade and possess the mind, in spite of all
-that Reason can do to repell, or dislodge them from it.
-
-After all, in contemplation of that infinite mercy which surrounds the
-throne of God, and of the infirmity incident to frail man, I am willing
-to suppose (as it is our common interest to do) that _repentance_, at
-all times, and how oft soever renewed, is a ground, on which he may
-reasonably build fair hopes and chearful expectations. To repent, is
-always the best thing we can do: It is always a conduct right in itself;
-and, as such, is intitled, we will say, on the principles of natural
-religion, to the divine acceptance.
-
-But what does that ACCEPTANCE import? _The reward of eternal life? A
-remission of all punishment? or, only an abatement of it?_ Here, again,
-fresh difficulties start up, and come to be considered,
-
-II. Under the second general head of this discourse; in which it was
-proposed to inquire, _What that favour is, which, when we have done
-our best to recommend ourselves to God, we have reason to expect at his
-hands?_
-
-1. If presumptuous man could learn to estimate himself at his true worth,
-he might perhaps see reason to conclude, that his highest moral merit
-can pretend to no more, than to some _abatement_ of present or future
-punishment.
-
-Let him calculate how oft, how knowingly, how willfully he hath offended;
-and, on the other hand, when he did his duty, how coldly, how remissly,
-how reluctantly he did it: with what a gust of passion he disobeyed; and
-with what indifference he repented: with how full a consent of his mind,
-with what deliberation, and against what conviction, he sinned; and then,
-again, with what hesitation, by what degrees, in what circumstances, and
-upon what motives, he recovered himself from any bad habit: In a word,
-how full and complete and contagious his vices have been; and how faint
-and partial and ineffective, his best virtues: Let him, I say, calculate
-all this, and then tell us where is the stock of merit, on the balance
-of the account, that should encourage him to do more than hope that some
-part of the punishment, he hath justly incurred, may by a merciful judge
-be struck off, in consideration of his virtues? If such a man recovered
-his health, when he left his intemperance; or his credit in the world,
-when he shook hands with his injustice; or, if his penitence could avail
-so far as to shorten the term, or qualify the rigour, of his sufferings
-in some other state of being, would he not have reason to think he had
-all the recompense he deserved? Could most men, at least, on a strict
-scrutiny of their hearts and lives, carry their pretensions higher? But,
-
-2. But let us be indulgent to human virtue, and suppose it pure and
-active enough to work out all the guilt, which vice had contracted, could
-it do more than cancel the punishment due to vice, and should we be
-authorized to expect more than a _full remission_ of it? Suppose, that
-after a long life, checquered with good and bad actions, but in such
-sort as that the good equalled the bad, and perfectly atoned for them
-(and which of us will say, that this is not a favourable supposition?);
-suppose, I say, that after such a life, as this, the whole man were
-suffered to fall into a state of insensibility, that all his powers and
-faculties were suspended, or the man himself utterly extinguished, could
-we complain of this allotment, or could reason pretend that it was not
-according to the rules of strict justice?
-
-3. Still I agree to make a further concession to the pride of Virtue. Let
-the moral qualities of some men be so excellent, and the tenour of their
-lives so pure, as to entitle them to a _positive reward_ from the great
-searcher of hearts and inspector of human actions: would not the daily
-blessings of this life be a suitable recompense for such desert; would
-not health, and prosperity, and reputation, and peace of mind, be an
-adequate return for their best services? Or, if all this did not satisfy
-their claims, could they require more than such a portion of happiness in
-a future state, as should correspond to their merits, and make them full
-amends for all the sacrifices they here made to Conscience and to Virtue?
-And might not a small degree of such happiness, and for a short term, be
-an equivalent for such sacrifices? Could they dream of living _for ever_,
-and of living _happily_ for ever in heaven; and call such a reward, as
-this, a debt, a claim of right, which could not justly be withheld from
-them? Could any man in his senses pretend, even to himself, that a Virtue
-of sixty or seventy years, though ever so perfect, ever so constant,
-deserved immortal life in bliss and glory? Incredible: impossible: the
-merit and the recompense are too widely disjoined, the disproportion
-between them is too vast, to give the least colour of reason to such
-expectations. A Saint, or a Martyr, has no claim of right to so immense a
-reward, so transcendant a felicity.
-
-’Tis true, Christianity gives us these hopes, which Reason forwardly
-assumes, and makes her own; forgetting at the same time, or unthankfully
-slighting, the only grounds on which they are founded. For, though
-eternal life be promised to favoured man in the Gospel, it is there
-promised to him, not as a debt, but as a free gift; and that, not in
-consideration of his good works, but of his faith in Jesus.
-
-See then, to what the hopes of nature, the conclusions of reason and
-philosophy, amount, on this interesting subject. We are in the hands of
-an all-wise and all-righteous God, and are undone without his favour. Yet
-how that favour is to be obtained, we know not; or, if we do know, we
-are unable of ourselves to obtain it in the degree, we wish, and to the
-ends, for which we aspire to it. Our best speculations on the _means_ of
-propitiating Heaven, are mixed with uncertainty; and our best _hopes_
-dashed with mistrust and suspicion. For what man is so righteous as to
-have perfect confidence in his good works; or, so sanguine, as to think
-heaven the due reward of them? And yet will any thing, short of this,
-content our impatient desires? Should our virtues merit no more than some
-abatement of future misery, so justly due to our innumerable ill deserts,
-how sad a prospect have we before us? or, if they do but free us from
-punishment, what man is so abject as not to shudder at the thought of
-extinction or insensibility? or, lastly, if they supply some faint hope
-of future reward, what generous man but wishes more to himself, than a
-slight, a precarious, and short-lived happiness; beyond which, as we have
-seen, he has no right to extend his expectations?
-
-If the Gentiles, who had only the light of Nature to conduct them, had no
-way to get quit of these doubts and fears, their condition was certainly
-unhappy, but would bespeak the mercy of God: their disadvantages and
-distresses would be allowed for, and considered by him. But for those,
-who have now the light of Heaven shining about them, and yet chuse to
-walk in the dim, disastrous twilight of their own reason, what must be
-their folly, as well as misery? I say, their _misery_. For this last
-is no secret to observing men, notwithstanding the airs of gaiety and
-satisfaction, they sometimes assume; and indeed deserves the tenderest
-pity, though their perverse _folly_ be apt to excite a different passion.
-
-But to conclude: It is enough to have shewn, in justification of the
-sacred text, that they who _walk in the light of their own fire, and
-in the sparks which they have kindled_, have this recompense of their
-choice, allotted to them by the hand of God, and the nature of things,
-_That they_ do and must _lie down in sorrow_.
-
-To you, who have determined more wisely to govern yourselves by faith,
-and not by Reason only; who rejoice to walk in the clear sunshine of
-the blessed Gospel, and not in the malignant light of philosophical
-speculation, To you, I say, the reward of your better conduct, is,
-that ye know how to recommend yourselves to the favour of God; and ye
-know what to expect from that favour: Ye understand that, by FAITH AND
-REPENTANCE, ye have peace of mind in this transitory life, and assured
-hopes of immortal unspeakable felicity, reserved for you in the heavens.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXV.
-
-PREACHED NOVEMBER 15, 1767.
-
-2 COR. iv. 3.
-
-_If our Gospel be hid, it is hid to them that are lost._
-
-
-The text implies, that the evidence, with which Christianity is attended,
-may fail of convincing the minds of some men. And indeed from the time
-that _the Sun of righteousness_ rose upon the earth, there have always
-been those, who could not, or would not, be enlightened by Him.
-
-Now it might be a question, whether this effect were owing to the nature
-of the evidence itself, or to some obscurity in the manner of proposing
-it. This, I say, might have been a question, even among Christians
-themselves, if the Apostle had not determined it to our hands. He who was
-fully instructed in the truths of the Gospel, knew the evidence, with
-which they were accompanied, was enlightened by the same spirit that had
-inspired them, and had great experience in the different tempers and
-capacities of men, roundly asserts that Infidelity has no countenance,
-either from within or without, neither from the sort or degree of
-evidence, by which the Christian Revelation is supported, nor from any
-mysterious conveyance of it; but that, universally, the fault lies in
-those, who do not receive it. _If the Gospel be hid, it is hid to them
-that are lost_: to those, who would not be convinced by any evidence
-whatsoever.
-
-What the evidences of Christianity, in fact, are, and how abundantly
-sufficient for the conviction of all reasonable men, I shall not now
-enquire. The subject is fitter for a volume, than a discourse in this
-place. Let it be supposed, on St. Paul’s authority, that those evidences
-are sufficient; still ye may be curious to know, and it may tend to the
-establishment of your faith to understand, how it has come to pass, that
-so much light could be resisted.
-
-To this question a pertinent answer has been given from the prejudices
-and passions, from the vices and corruptions of unbelievers; it being no
-new thing that men should _love darkness rather than light_, when _their
-deeds are_, and when they have resolved with themselves they shall be,
-_evil_[101]. _For_, as our Lord himself argues in this case, _Every one
-that doth evil, hateth the light, lest his deeds should be reproved:
-But he that doth the Truth, cometh to the light, that his deeds may be
-manifested, that they are wrought in God_[102].
-
-But then it has been replied, that, though Vice may be many times the
-ground of infidelity, and the condemnation of such men be just, yet
-that some, too, have disbelieved from no such motives; that the Gospel
-has been rejected by persons, who appear to have been men of large and
-liberal minds, as free, as others, from all perverse prejudices, and
-as little subject to gross vice or passion: Nay, that, in the class of
-unbelievers, there have been those who have distinguished themselves
-as much by the purity of their lives, as the brightness of their
-understandings.
-
-All this may be true; and yet our Saviour affirms, _that he, who
-believeth not, is condemned already_[103]; and St. Paul in the text, to
-the same purpose, _that if the Gospel be hid, it is hid to them that
-are lost_. There must needs, then, be some latent cause of this strange
-fact; some secret depravity lurking in the mind of those, who disbelieve
-the Gospel, thought appearances be thus fair and flattering. And, though
-Christian Charity be not forward _to think evil_ of his neighbour, yet
-in this case we have reason to suspect it: and what we suspect, we may
-perhaps find, in a VICE so secret and insinuating, that it creeps upon
-men unawares; so congenial, as it were, to our depraved nature, that
-hardly any man can be sure of his being wholly free from it; and so
-ingenious in disguising itself, as to pass upon others, nay upon the man
-possessed by it, for one of his best qualities.
-
-By these characters, ye will easily see I speak of self-love, or rather
-the vicious exertion of it in what we call, PRIDE: A vice, which may as
-fatally obstruct our pursuit of Truth, as any the most vulgar immorality;
-and the rather, because it is not easily suspected or acknowledged by us.
-
-This vice then it may be, that _hides the Gospel from those_ better sort
-of men, _to whom it is hid_. They had need examine themselves well, for
-it assumes, as I said, the most imposing forms. Who would look for it,
-in the cultivation of the mind, and the love of Virtue? Yet in either of
-these, it may lie concealed: and an inquirer into the truth of the most
-rational, and the purest of all religions, may be prejudiced against it
-by a double Pride, by the PRIDE OF REASON, and the PRIDE OF VIRTUE.
-
-I. FIRST, _Infidelity may proceed from the Pride of Reason_.
-
-When it pleased God to bestow the faculty of Reason on his creature, Man,
-he intended that this substitute of himself should be the guide of life,
-and the handmaid of Religion. And that it might serve to these purposes,
-it was made sagacious enough, if honestly exerted, to lead him to some
-competent knowledge of his Maker, and of his moral duty, and to judge
-of the pretensions of any further light from Heaven, which might be
-graciously vouchsafed to him.
-
-Man, proud of this free Gift, was in haste to make trial of its strength;
-and finding it could do something, too easily concluded it could do every
-thing. Yet its weakness soon appeared; first, in man’s transgression,
-and consequent forfeiture of another free Gift, that of immortality; and
-next, in the portentous errors he fell into, both in respect of virtue
-and religion. For God, who had graciously intended for him, in due time,
-another and safer guide, to prepare him for the reception of it, and to
-convince him, in the mean time, how much it was wanted, had suffered him
-to abuse this, to the worst purposes, of immorality, and idolatry: by
-both which the earth was generally overspread for many ages, and even in
-the most enlightened times, notwithstanding his Reason might, and should
-have taught him better.
-
-But God’s wisdom and goodness foresaw this abuse, and provided, from
-the first, for the correction of it. He had signified his purpose from
-the moment of man’s transgression, and afterwards by a gradual opening
-of his scheme, in many successive revelations; all terminating in that
-universal redemption of mankind by the sacrifice, and through the Gospel,
-of his Son. This last and greatest instance of the divine love for man,
-it might be expected, after so much experience of his own debility and
-folly, he would gladly and thankfully receive; and, that he might be
-qualified to discern the hand of God from the practices of fallible
-and designing men, was one main end, as I said, which God designed in
-lighting up the lamp of Reason in him.
-
-But now this boasted Guide, though found to be poor and weak, grew proud
-and presumptuous. It would not only judge of the credentials of divine
-Revelation (which was its proper office, and without which faculty
-of judging there could be no security from the endless impostures of
-fanaticism and superstition, but not content with this power) it would
-decide peremptorily on the nature and fitness of the Revelation itself;
-and would either admit none, or such only, as it should perfectly
-comprehend.
-
-Here, then, Reason forgot its own use, and power: its use, which was to
-bring him to the acknowledgement of a divine Religion; and its power,
-which did not enable him to judge of the infinite counsels of God, but to
-try whether any such were revealed to him. In a word, he forgot that his
-utmost capacity extended no farther than just to see whether the proposed
-Revelation were such as might come from God, as contradicting no clear
-and certain principles of reason, and whether the evidences were such as
-proved that it did so. If it contained nothing repugnant to right Reason,
-that is, to a prior light derived from the same source of Truth, it might
-come from Heaven; if the attestations of it were clear and convincing,
-it must proceed from that quarter. To try its credibility and authority,
-was then within the province of Reason: to determine of its absolute
-necessity and fitness, and to explore the depth and height of those
-counsels, on which it is framed, was above its reach and comprehension.
-
-Yet Reason assumed to herself, too generally, this latter office;
-and this I call, the PRIDE of Reason. Hence all its wanderings and
-miscarriages; from this perverse application of its powers arose all the
-heresies that have distracted the Christian Church, and all the infidel
-systems that have been invented to overthrow it. In both cases, men would
-be wise _above_, or _against, what was written_.
-
-Of the Heresies, I have nothing to say at this time. They appear at large
-in the ecclesiastical historian. Of the dreams of infidelity, as arising
-from the fumes of pride, so much is to be said, as my present subject
-requires of me, but this in as few words as possible.
-
-_The pride of Reason_ has then pronounced (as it operated at different
-times, and on different tempers), that Revelation is unnecessary,
-because Reason could see and discover by its own light all that was
-needful to our direction and happiness—that, if it were wanted by us,
-it was impossible to be given consistently with the laws of nature and
-experience—that as to that pretended scheme of Revelation, called the
-Gospel, its morality indeed was pure enough, but that it carried no other
-internal marks of its divinity: that its doctrines were such as Reason
-would not expect, and in many cases could not understand: that it talked
-of divine things in a manner that was strange and extraordinary; of a
-purpose to redeem mankind which, if it were needful at all, might have
-been effected by more rational and less operose methods; and to save and
-sanctify them by such means as seemed fanciful and delusive: that the
-divine nature was spoken of in high mysterious terms, which puzzle and
-confound our Metaphysics; and that the offices, in which the Godhead
-was employed, are either degrading, or such as imply an immoderate and
-inconceivable condescension.
-
-And what then, say others, is the basis on which this incredible
-Revelation rests? Why on _Miracles_, which we cannot admit, as being
-violations or suspensions of those laws, by which we know the Supreme
-Being governs the world; and on _Prophecies_, which may have been
-feigned, as many have been, or which imply such a prescience in the
-Deity of free contingent events, as is perhaps impossible. If the Gospel
-then is to be admitted as a truly divine Revelation, convince us, that
-its external proofs are above all doubt and suspicion; and that all its
-internal characters are such as lie open to the perfect scrutiny, and
-entire investigation of our faculties.
-
-Thus does the Pride of Reason vaunt itself, against Reason. For, if to
-any or all of these objections (on which so many infidel systems hang) we
-should only say, _that they are nothing to the purpose_, what could the
-objectors reply to us? If pressed closely, they could only take refuge
-in this principle, _that no Religion can be divine, all the reasons of
-which are not fully known to us_; a principle, for which they have surely
-no warrant from right Reason. How do they know what is necessary, or fit,
-or right, with regard to the divine dispensations, I mean (which is the
-case here) when they only silence, not contradict our Reason? Every thing
-may be fit and right, and might appear to be so, if the whole scheme of
-Providence were fully unveiled to us. It must be fit and right, whether
-we see it or no, if the Religion in question be credibly attested: And
-the credibility will depend not on our fancies or expectations of I know
-not what irresistible evidence (which it might be best and wisest not to
-give) but on the real moment of the arguments, on which it is established.
-
-So that the last effort of Infidelity is only an appeal to the ignorance
-of mankind; which proves nothing but the necessity of a long-forgotten
-virtue, Modesty, in our researches into Religion.
-
-We see then how the _Pride of Reason_ has betrayed presumptuous men into
-a disbelief of Revelation, and how true it is that, _if the Gospel be
-hid, it is hid to them that are lost_, as well by _this_ means, as by any
-other.
-
-II. But, secondly, there is A PRIDE OF VIRTUE, as well as of Reason: and
-by this Pride, too, (such is the infirmity of our common nature) _the
-Gospel may be hid from us_.
-
-On whatever foundation a man chuses to build his moral system, he easily
-convinces himself of the worth and excellence of moral action. The
-reasonableness, the utility, and the beauty of Virtue are so conspicuous,
-that even the vicious look up to her with respect, and the virtuous
-easily grow enamoured of her. Thus it came to be among the extravagances
-of the Stoics, its best friends in the pagan world, that virtue was not
-only the perfection of man’s nature, but that it raised him in some
-sense, above the Divine[104]. And to make their arrogant system all of a
-piece, they further maintained that this super-celestial virtue, in which
-they gloried, was their own proper acquisition; that they derived it
-wholly from themselves, and that God did not, and could not give it[105].
-
-This, you will say, was stoical pride; but it is, too commonly, also,
-the pride of virtue, of whatever denomination. Penetrated with a lively
-sense of its use and excellence, virtuous men, especially of a certain
-temperament, take fire from their own heated ideas, and flame out into a
-kind of moral fanaticism. They consider virtue, as the supreme and only
-good, absolute in itself, and independant of any other. They exalt and
-deify themselves in their own imaginations; and, though their language
-may be more decent, the sense of their hearts is truly stoical.
-
-See, now, whether virtue, under this intoxication, be in a condition to
-benefit by the sober truths of the Gospel. It presents to us a frightful
-picture of the moral world; much is said concerning the weakness
-and inefficacy of moral virtue. This representation, of itself, is
-disgusting. But one great design of the Gospel was to reform this state
-of things: And thus far is well: But by what means would it reform it?
-Why, among others, by Faith and Hope. Yet, in Faith, the proud moralist
-sees no virtue, at all; and Hope, in his ideas, degrades and servilizes
-his adored virtue. The Gospel proposes to save us by the sacrifice of
-Christ: But He acknowledges no need of any sacrifice; relies, with
-confidence, on his own merits; and disdains the notion of an intercessor.
-He holds, that nothing more could be intended by a Revelation, if such
-were given, than the promotion of our virtue; and that we want not its
-aid, for that purpose: that we read our duty in the sense of our own
-minds; which Reason enforces in as high terms, as the Gospel, in a more
-engaging way, and on principles more sublime and generous.
-
-Above all, the Gospel speaks much of the succours of Grace, as necessary
-to infuse and to confirm our virtue; a language, which the _Pride_ of
-virtue will not understand: And of a Heaven, and a Hell; by which if any
-thing more be meant than the proper natural effects of virtue and vice
-itself, the idea is rejected, as superfluous and even childish.
-
-To such an extreme of folly, and even impiety, may the Pride of virtue
-carry us; and so fatally may _the Gospel be hid from those_, whom this
-last infirmity of human nature blinds by its specious illusions! And that
-this is no ideal picture, but one taken from the life, will appear to
-those who know any thing of human nature; and of the perverse prejudices,
-by which some ingenious, and otherwise virtuous men, have suffered
-themselves to be misled in their religious inquiries[106].
-
-Enough has been said to shew the issue of intellectual and moral _Pride_:
-And how it comes to pass that men _lose_ themselves, who reason, on
-Religion, without modesty, or would be virtuous without Religion.
-
-The application is short, but striking. It is, That men should examine
-themselves well, before they presume to think slightly of the Gospel.
-They may learn to suspect the power and influence of their grosser
-passions, when they see that even these refined ones may corrupt their
-judgement, and betray them into Infidelity.
-
-The Apostle says expressly, that _if the Gospel be hid, it is hid to them
-that are lost_: and who, that rejects the Gospel, but must tremble for
-himself, when his REASON, nay his VIRTUE, may be the instrument of his
-ruin?
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXVI.
-
-PREACHED NOVEMBER 13, 1774.
-
-1 PETER iii. 15.
-
-_—Be ready always to give an answer to every man that asketh You a reason
-of the hope, that is in You, with meekness and fear._
-
-
-These words have been often and justly quoted to prove the rational
-genius of our religion: but they have sometimes been quoted to prove
-much more, “The obligation, that Christians are under, to justify their
-religion, in the way of argument, against all opposers, and to satisfy
-all the difficulties and objections, that can be brought against it.” A
-magnificent pretension! but surely without authority from the text, as I
-shall briefly shew, by enquiring,
-
-1. Who the persons are, to whom this direction is given:
-
-2. What that _hope_ is, _which is in them_, and concerning which they are
-supposed to be interrogated: And therefore
-
-3. Lastly, what the proper _answer_, or apology must be, of those
-persons, when required to give a reason of such hope.
-
-The resolution of these questions will afford us a clear insight into the
-meaning of the text: and then we shall be enabled to make some pertinent
-and useful reflexions upon it.
-
-1. St. Peter addresses himself to _the elect strangers scattered
-throughout Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia, Asia, and Bythinia_—i. e. most
-probably, to Jewish Christians, dispersed through these countries, in
-which they were properly _strangers_; though, in some sense, all good
-men are strangers and sojourners on earth, and therefore the use of this
-term may not necessarily exclude such Heathen converts to the faith,
-as lived in those quarters. But whatever be the precise meaning of the
-term, it is clear, that all persons of this general denomination, or all
-the _stranger_ Christians, residing in the places, here mentioned, are,
-without distinction, concerned in this catholic epistle. There is not a
-word that implies any difference of age, or sex, or education, or rank:
-not the least regard is had to the office of some, or the qualifications
-of others: all indiscriminately, of the class specified, who had
-knowledge and understanding enough to profess themselves Christians, are
-the objects of the Apostle’s address: and of these, universally, is the
-requisition made, that they be _ready always to give an answer to every
-man, that asketh a reason of the hope that is in them_. But what then
-
-2. Is that _Hope_, of which all such persons were expected and required
-to render a reason? Plainly the general hope of Christians, the hope of
-eternal life, the hope of a resurrection from the dead, the blessed hope,
-in short, of salvation through Jesus Christ.
-
-The context shews, that it was this hope, and this only, of which they
-were to give an account. For, in the preceding verse, the Apostle had
-been speaking of the trials which they should undergo for the sake of
-their religion. Possibly, they were, then, in a state of persecution;
-or, it was foreseen that they soon would be in that state. _But and if
-ye suffer, says he, for righteousness sake, happy are ye._ Why? because
-they knew the _hope_ of their calling, and the ample recompense that
-would be made them in a future life for all such sufferings. Therefore,
-he advises that they should always have this precious hope present to
-them, and well established in their minds: nay, and that, for their own
-better support in the midst of their sufferings, and for the vindication
-of themselves to others, their persecutors, perhaps, who might ask on
-what grounds they exposed themselves to such torments, they should have
-in readiness an _answer_, or apology for their own conduct, setting forth
-the reason they had to confide in that hope; from which reason it would
-appear that they acted, as became prudent men, and not as blind, frantic
-enthusiasts.
-
-It being now seen, to whom the text is directed, and what the _hope_,
-under consideration, is, we have no difficulty in answering
-
-3. The last question, “What the proper _answer_ might, or rather must be,
-of such persons, when required to give a reason of such hope?”
-
-For what other answer could they give (and this they all might give),
-than that their Lord and Master, Jesus Christ, by whom they had been
-encouraged to entertain this hope, had shewn himself well able to make
-it good by his own resurrection? They might say, in the words of the
-Apostle Paul (who apologized for himself to the Athenians, in like
-circumstances), We therefore think ourselves happy in suffering for
-righteousness sake,—_because God hath appointed a day in the which he
-will judge the world in righteousness, by that man whom he hath ordained;
-whereof he hath given assurance unto all men, in that he hath raised him
-from the dead_[107].
-
-This was an obvious reason of the _hope, that was in them_, and level
-to all capacities. It was, also, a sufficient reason, if it was any
-at all, that is, if the fact alleged be true; and, that it was so,
-they might appeal to the testimony of those, who had seen the Lord and
-conversed with him, after his resurrection; nay, whom themselves had seen
-confirming that testimony _by signs and wonders_, done in the name of
-Jesus.
-
-We see, then, what is the true and full meaning of the text. The Apostle
-exhorts those, to whom he writes, all of them, the simpler, as well as
-more informed, to bear in mind the end of their religion, EVERLASTING
-LIFE; and the grounds, on which they expected it, the WORD of their
-divine MASTER, _confirmed to them by them that heared him_[108], and by
-his rising from the dead.
-
-And now we are at liberty to make some reflexions on the text, which may
-be useful and instructive to us.
-
-And, first, I observe, as most others have done, that Christians are
-allowed and encouraged to reason on the subject of their religion, and
-to build their faith on conviction. For the Apostle’s advice is, not to
-decline the way of argument, but to use such arguments as are cogent and
-satisfactory. And in this free exercise of the understanding, which is
-permitted, or rather enjoined to all Christians, the manly genius of our
-religion is seen, and by it is distinguished from that of every blind and
-servile superstition. But then,
-
-Secondly, I observe, that this work of reason is enjoined, only, with
-regard to _the hope, that is in us_, that is, to the end and scope of
-Christianity, and to the authority on which it rests; in other words,
-with regard to the EVIDENCES of this Religion.
-
-It is true, these evidences are a different thing to different persons,
-according to their respective situations. To the primitive Christians,
-such as those to whom the exhortation of the text is addressed, it was
-evidence sufficient, “That they had the great facts of the Gospel,
-especially that decisive fact, the resurrection of Christ, reported
-to them by persons, who had been eye-witnesses of those extraordinary
-transactions, or, who had heared them, at least, from eye-witnesses, and
-were endowed, besides, with the power of working miracles in confirmation
-of their testimony.” For in those days, it is to be observed, they, who
-were commissioned to plant the Gospel in the world, _went forth, and
-preached every where, the Lord working with them, and confirming the word
-with signs following_[109].
-
-This state of things continued through what is called the Apostolic
-Age, and perhaps longer, during which time it was easy for the plainest
-Christian to give such an _answer_, to these who required a reason of
-_the hope that was in him_, as was perfectly satisfactory. But, when
-the Gospels were admitted by the faithful, as authentic accounts of
-their Master’s history and doctrine, and when the Apostles had further
-drawn out and explained the principles and proofs of Christianity in
-their several writings, that is, when the Canon of the New Testament
-was completed, and generally received (all which was done within the
-first century from the Christian æra), Then the appeal lay to these
-scriptures, and the ground of a Christian’s persuasion was, the authority
-of the inspired writers. And now, if believers were asked the reason of
-_the hope that was in them_, the answer was, “That so it was written in
-books, which were in all hands, and allowed by all to contain nothing but
-infallible truth.” Nor could the force of this answer be disputed, when
-the memory of certain facts was recent, when the places where, and the
-person to whom, or for whose use the sacred books were written, could be
-pointed out, and when the writers of them were known, by the miracles
-wrought by them, to have been under the direction of the Holy Ghost.
-
-On the conviction, which this apology carried with it, the world became
-Christian. But in process of time, and after a course of many ages,
-it might be doubted whether those books had been transmitted pure and
-uncorrupted. And under these circumstances the _answer_, being somewhat
-enlarged, stands thus: “That the hope of a Christian is founded on
-the authority of the sacred canon, composed by inspired men, as was
-universally allowed in the first ages of Christianity, and not materially
-altered, as we have reason to believe, to this day.”
-
-The answer given in these three periods, is, you see, very general,
-because the question is, on what grounds of reason a plain man could
-justify his profession of Christianity: and the answer, in each case, is
-a proper one, and of real weight. But the answer of knowing and skilful
-men is more particular, may indeed be infinitely varied and extended
-according to the abilities of the answerer; and, from such minute,
-and laboured apologies much additional light and conviction hath been
-derived. Still you see the subject of inquiry, is, the EVIDENCES of
-Christianity, how different soever in different ages, and in the view
-of different persons in the same age. All that unbelievers have a right
-to ask, is, on what grounds we affirm the truth and divinity of our
-religion: and the sole duty which the text imposes upon us, is to satisfy
-that question. Their curiosity, and our labour, should not, at least
-needs not, be extended beyond these bounds. But
-
-Thirdly, what if inquisitive men should go farther, and, when they have
-set forth the evidences of Christianity to their own satisfaction, and
-that of others, should proceed to give us a _rationale_ of its doctrines:
-Would not their pains be useful, as tending very much to promote the
-honour of our divine religion?
-
-Perhaps, they might, if _soberly_ employed and if inquirers would set out
-with a resolution of stopping in their curious researches, when they had
-no ideas, or no clear or distinct ones.
-
-But, even with this restriction, _two_ things are, further, to be
-observed. ONE is, that no Christian is bound to make this solicitous
-inquiry into the doctrinal, no, nor into the moral part of the Gospel.
-It is enough that his faith and life be regulated by its doctrines and
-precepts, whether he do, or do not, see the grounds in reason, on which
-they stand. Nay, possibly his conduct is then most acceptable, when he
-looks no farther than to the authority of the Gospel; agreeably to that
-well-known decision of our Lord himself—_blessed is he, who hath not
-seen, and yet hath believed_: not, that he expects any man to believe or
-to obey him, without reason: but he most approves the ingenuous turn of
-that man’s mind, who admits his divine mission, on a sufficient indeed,
-but not the highest, degree of evidence; and much more, therefore, who
-yields obedience to his laws, acknowledged on such evidence to be divine,
-without inquiring further into the reasons of them. Indeed, to what
-purpose do I scrupulously ask a reason of that, which I already know
-to be just and fit, because reasonably admitted to proceed from divine
-authority?
-
-The OTHER observation I would make, is, That, if after the most diligent
-inquiry, we should not, yet, be able to penetrate the reasons of many
-things, or to give ourselves entire satisfaction about them, this
-unacceptable experience should not in the least affect our belief
-and esteem of the Gospel. For all that follows from such disappointed
-curiosity is only this, That we are weak and blind; and not that the
-things themselves are either false or unreasonable. Our duty, therefore,
-is to confide in the _revealed word_; not questioning its authority,
-or torturing its language; but accepting with thankfulness, what we do
-understand, and with reverence, what we do not.
-
-When these two conditions are inviolably observed, the way of minute
-inquiry into the doctrines of Christianity, so far forth as they are the
-objects of inquiry, at all, may be usefully and commendably employed. For
-then none but men of leisure and ability will think themselves concerned
-in making such inquiry: and even these, if they should not obtain all the
-satisfaction they propose to themselves, will neither attempt to disturb
-the faith of others, nor suffer their own faith to be disturbed by their
-curious speculations. Still: when learned men are taken up in those
-profound inquiries, and seem most confident that they have penetrated
-far into the reasons of many things which are kept secret from others,
-they should especially remember (and that is the Fourth, and _last_
-observation I shall make on the text), to present their _answer_ or
-apology to mankind, _with meekness and fear_.
-
-1. With MEEKNESS, or a soft and gentle spirit, breathing in words,
-neither passionate, nor assuming; that so they may gain as many, and
-exasperate as few, as they can. This was a caution more than commonly
-necessary to the first apologists for Christianity, who had to plead
-its cause at the tribunal of Kings, at that time, their enemies and
-persecutors. But the rule is always a good one to be observed by the
-advocates of the Gospel, who never serve it better, than when its prime
-virtue, CHARITY, corrects, or rather consecrates, their zeal.
-
-2. The _reason of the hope, that is in them_, should, also, be given
-_with_ FEAR: that is, not only with a _fear_ of giving needless offence
-to those, to whom they address their apology, but chiefly with a
-_reverential awe_ of that transcendantly great Being, whose ways they
-desire to contemplate, and some part of whose councils it is their
-ambition to unfold. For, when we speak of God, farther than we are
-authorized by himself to speak, we are in constant danger of ascribing to
-him our own weaknesses, and of degrading his ineffable wisdom, when we
-think to exalt it most.
-
-Such reason there is, even when we apologize for the truth of God, to do
-it _with meekness and fear_.
-
-To conclude: Religious inquiries, when thus conducted (and only then)
-are commendable and useful. They exercise our best faculties on the
-noblest subjects: They may be the means of bringing some to the kingdom
-of God, and they can alienate none from it. Or, whatever the merit and
-the success of these inquiries may be, the authors of them will have
-the satisfaction of knowing, that they have inquired in a right manner;
-and, that, how little soever their UNDERSTANDINGS have _profited_ the
-Almighty[110], they have honoured Him with the noblest sacrifice, which a
-mortal can offer to his Maker, that of an HUMBLE AND SUBMISSIVE SPIRIT.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXVII.
-
-PREACHED FEBRUARY 4, 1770.
-
-JOHN vii. 46.
-
-_Never man spake like this man._
-
-
-If by speaking, be here meant what is called _fine_ speaking, or
-a discourse artificially composed according to the rules of human
-eloquence, the subject is unworthy of this place, and the praise,
-infinitely disproportioned to the divine character of Jesus. A pagan
-philosopher, nay, and a Christian preacher, might haply so far forget
-himself, as to affect the credit of _fine speaking_; or, his followers
-might think to honour him by applauding this talent[111]: But the Son
-of God spake with other views, and to nobler purposes; and his inspired
-historians would not have condescended to make the panegyric of their
-Master, from so trivial a distinction.
-
-Let us see, then, to what the encomium of the text amounts; and what
-those CIRCUMSTANCES are, in the discourses of Jesus, which give real
-weight and dignity to the observation—_that never man spake like this
-man_.
-
-This will be an inquiry of use, and not of curiosity only; we shall find,
-in the course of it, very much to confirm our faith, as well as to excite
-our admiration.
-
-I. The first particular, that strikes an attentive mind in considering
-the discourses of Jesus, is the MATTER of them; the most important; and,
-at the same time, the most extraordinary; of the utmost consequence to
-mankind, and the most remote from all their natural apprehensions.
-
-But, by the discourses of Jesus, so qualified, I mean chiefly those,
-which are truly his own, and properly _Christian_: such as acquaint
-us with the dignity of his person, and nature of his office; with the
-purpose of his mission, and the manner in which that purpose was to be
-effected.
-
-His moral discourses, though they be divine too, yet, being intended,
-for the most part, to deliver the religion of nature, or the religion of
-Moses, in all its purity, may be thought to contain nothing more than
-what human reason had, or might have discovered, or what the Law of God,
-at least, had already revealed. Yet it may deserve to be mentioned as an
-argument of his superiority to all other moral instructors, that HE ONLY
-has delivered a doctrine of life and manners, free from all mixture of
-error, and carried in some instances to a degree of perfection which, I
-do not say Reason, but, no Doctor of reason ever prescribed; and that he
-penetrated further into the true meaning of the Jewish Law, than any of
-its expositors had ever done.
-
-But, as I said, I confine myself to his _peculiar doctrines_, such
-as constitute the substance of that religion, which we properly call
-Christian.
-
-And here, the weight of his doctrine must be felt by those persons who
-reflect that, coming into a world overrun with vice and misery, he
-proclaimed pardon and peace in this life, and everlasting happiness and
-glory in the life to come, to all who with penitent hearts and true faith
-turned to him. What Doctor, Philosopher, or Legislator _ever spake as He
-spake_, on these important articles? What had Nature taught the Gentile
-world? Some fine lessons of morality, indeed, which might direct their
-lives for the future; but none that could set their minds at ease from
-past guilt, none that could free their consciences from instinctive
-terror, much less could erect their hopes to any assured prospect of
-immortality. What had Moses taught the Jews? A divine religion, it is
-true, but such as left them under the burthen of a painful and oppressive
-ritual, in which the neglect of any one precept, or the irregular
-performance of any, might shake their security; and of which, when
-punctually observed, the reward was only some present ease or convenience
-in this world. What was there in either institution, that could deliver
-men from all doubt and uncertainty about their future condition, or that
-could disarm and appease the universal guilt of mankind?
-
-Let this then admonish us of what, from its familiarity, we are, now,
-so prone to forget, the importance, which characterized the doctrine of
-Jesus.
-
-The _extraordinary nature_ of it equally appears; but will further
-and chiefly be seen, if we attend to the means, by which this supreme
-blessing is said to be conveyed, and effected.
-
-That a divine person, divine in the highest sense of the word, should
-descend from heaven and take our nature upon him; _the Heir of all
-things_[112] should be content to appear _in the form of a servant_[113];
-and, having _life in himself_[114], should chuse to suffer death; that,
-by this astonishing humiliation, he should propose to effect an end,
-equally astonishing, The salvation of a ruined world; that, being without
-sin himself, he should offer himself a sacrifice for sin; that in virtue
-of his all-atoning death, he should undertake to abolish death, and
-open the gates of eternal life to the whole race of mortal man; that,
-in this way, he should assume to be our _Wisdom and Righteousness_, our
-_Sanctification and Redemption_[115]; These are the great things of
-which Christ _spake_; these the amazing topics with which he filled his
-discourses. And must we not conclude, that _he spake as never man spake_?
-I do not, at present, urge the accomplishment of all these wonders. That
-is a distinct consideration. But it must be allowed, that he _spake_ in
-this tone, and to this effect. And did ever any man before him utter such
-things? Did it ever enter into the heart of man to conceive such things?
-which surely are enough to arrest our attention; to turn our thoughts on
-the evidence, with which they are accompanied; and, till we admit the
-force of that evidence, to convince us, at least, that such a speaker
-as this, is eminently distinguished from all other speakers, that ever
-addressed themselves to mankind. He discovered, on other occasions, no
-defect of mind, or temper; nothing, that should lead us to suspect him of
-weakness, or enthusiasm; And when such a person so speaks, the sublime
-and extraordinary nature of his doctrine is no small presumption of its
-truth.
-
-II. Another circumstance that distinguishes the discourses of Jesus, is
-the AUTHORITY, with which they were delivered. The people themselves
-remarked this circumstance, and were astonished at it; _for he taught
-them_, says the sacred historian, _as one who had authority, and not as
-the Scribes_[116].
-
-Interpreters differ in explaining what this _authority_ was; but it
-consisted, very clearly, in these three things. 1. He taught mankind
-without any degree of doubt and hesitation, with the air of one who knew
-the truth of what he said, and was perfectly assured of all he spake.
-_Verily, verily, I say to thee, we speak that we do know, and testify
-that we have seen[117]._ 2. He taught his great lessons of morality and
-religion, not as derived from the information of others, or from the
-dictates of his own reason, but as immediately conveyed to him from the
-source of light and truth, from God himself. _Whatsoever I speak, even
-as the Father said to me, so I_ speak[118]. 3. Lastly, He delivered his
-doctrine on very many occasions, as the proper author of it, as one
-who had a right to propose the terms of Salvation, in his own name. I
-_say unto You_—is the formulary, with which he prefaces his momentous
-instructions. _He that believeth on the Son, hath everlasting life, and_
-I _will raise him up at the last day_[119]. _Be thou faithful unto death,
-and_ I _will give thee a crown of life_[120]. Nay, he goes so far as
-to assert expressly, _that he hath life in himself, even as the Father
-hath life in himself_[121]. And though he says, at the same time, that
-he had this privilege given him by the Father, and though he declares,
-elsewhere, that as the _Father had taught him, so he spake_[122];
-yet there is no contradiction in these affirmations; for he tells us
-expressly—_All things that the Father hath, are mine_[123]; _And I and
-the Father are one_[124].
-
-These three circumstances, taken together, constitute the proper
-authority of Christ’s doctrine. It was the authority of one, who spake
-from conviction; who spake by the special appointment of God the Father,
-who even spake, by virtue of his own essential right, from himself, and
-in his own name.
-
-Compare, now, this _authoritative_ way of speaking, with that of the
-Jewish scribes; who explained their Law, as they could, by the precarious
-traditions of their forefathers, and the uncertain glosses of their
-celebrated Doctors: Compare it with that of the Gentile Philosophers; who
-quibbled, by the help of a little logick or metaphysicks, on the nature
-of God and the Soul; who advanced their doctrines of futurity, on the
-credit of an old fable, or an old song; and even delivered their moral
-lectures on the weak grounds of their fanciful or discordant systems; in
-the way of negligent speculation, or, which was worse, of altercation and
-dispute: Compare it, lastly, with that of all others, who, in antient or
-modern times, have taken upon themselves to instruct mankind; and see, if
-any of these ever assumed the exalted tone, or spake with the _authority_
-of Jesus, of _the Carpenter’s Son_, as Julian and the followers of that
-school affect to call him.
-
-But high pretensions, you will say, prove nothing. Not much, indeed,
-when destitute of their proper supports; yet so much, as to verify the
-observation of the text—_that never man spake like this man_. And if they
-prove thus much, they prove more; the necessity, or reasonableness, at
-least, of examining whether these pretensions be well founded. For claims
-of so extraordinary a nature, as they must needs awaken our curiosity,
-so they may demand our belief. When a voice speaks, as from heaven, it
-naturally turns our attention to that quarter; and, when it speaks in
-_inimitable thunder_[125], it speaks, methinks, like itself, and in
-accents that cannot well be misunderstood.
-
-But our next observation will carry us further. For I make it
-
-III. A third circumstance, in the character of Christ’s _speaking_, that
-he expressed himself with more than mortal WISDOM, on many occasions,
-when the malice and captious subtlety of his enemies put that wisdom to
-its utmost test.
-
-He gave early proofs of his wisdom, when, at the age of twelve years, he
-reasoned with the Doctors in the temple, to such effect, _that all who
-heared him, were astonished at his understanding and answers_[126].
-
-These answers, indeed, are not recorded; but many others are, in the
-course of his ministry; answers to nice, insidious, and concerted
-questions of the ablest men among the Jews, in critical circumstances,
-and on the most trying emergencies. And to these questions he always
-replied with a presence of mind so unshaken, with a judgment so
-infallible, with a dexterity and prudence so conciliating, and at the
-same time with an integrity so pure and perfect, that no advantage could
-in any degree be taken against him. His adversaries came again and again
-to the charge; whom yet he repelled with so triumphant a superiority over
-all the efforts of their wit and malice, that he forced them in the end,
-_to marvel and hold their peace_[127]. His divine responses came out so
-contrary to their hopes and their interests, that they were discouraged
-and deterred from provoking any more of them—_they durst not ask him any
-more questions_[128].
-
-The limits of this discourse will not give room for a detailed account of
-these questions and answers. But they are thick sown in the Gospels: And
-ye will understand me to point more especially at those, that respected
-his divine character, and kingly office[129]; in which conversations the
-danger was, lest he should drop something that might be made a handle
-against him before the Jewish Consistory, or the Roman Tribunals; while
-yet he was not to betray his cause, or bely his pretensions. The danger
-was instant, and, if he had fallen under it, must have been fatal. For,
-in withdrawing his claim of being the Messiah, the _King of Israel_,
-he must have owned himself an impostor; in asserting it, at this time,
-clearly and openly, he would have given his enemies a pretence for
-treating him, as a criminal of state; an imputation which could not
-consist with the truth or dignity of his mission. He came into the
-world to suffer death, indeed; but not as convicted of any crime, not
-as colourably condemned by any legal sentence. His innocence was to be
-conspicuous, and his honour unimpaired[130].
-
-In this respect, then, it seems, as if it might be truly affirmed, that
-_never man spake as this man_. And, if this much must be allowed, we are,
-methinks, but a little way from a further conclusion, _That, therefore,
-he spake by a divine spirit_.
-
-If it be said, that this conclusion does not hold, _for that the same
-faculties of the human mind, which make us capable of_ SEEING _this
-wisdom, may have_ PRODUCED _it_, the ground of the observation is neither
-likely, nor true. Not likely in the present instance, where the wisdom in
-question appears to be exquisite and constant: qualities which we are not
-accustomed to find united in the efforts of human wisdom. But neither,
-in general, is the position true: For then, the power of perception and
-invention would be the same; then, the divine intellect would be levelled
-with the human; then, the wisdom of God himself, so far as it was
-acknowledged and understood by us, would be our wisdom. Whereas, common
-sense tells us, that to discover a truth and to apprehend it, to project
-a measure, and to conceive the fitness of it, are two things[131]: And,
-though men differ widely in their capacities from each other, yet there
-is a capacity, which no man may claim, as there is a wisdom, to which
-no man pretends. The sublime views of God in the system of nature are
-comprehended, to a certain degree, and justly magnified and unfolded by
-many men, who, yet, have not the presumption to suppose that they were
-themselves capable, of planning such a system. In like manner, we may see
-and adore the wisdom, with which Christ _spake_, and yet conclude, upon
-good grounds, that as no man ever did, so no man ever could, speak with
-such wisdom.
-
-IV. A fourth circumstance (and the last I shall mention) which
-distinguished Jesus, as a Speaker, was the penetrating influence of his
-discourses, or the divine ENERGY, with which they were accompanied.
-
-Other speakers have thought it enough to convince their hearers by
-cogent arguments; to excite their passions by lively images; to touch
-the general springs of humanity, or to practise on the peculiar foibles
-and prejudices of the party addressed. But Jesus had the singular art to
-convince without reasoning, and to persuade without rhetorick. Few and
-simple words, from that mouth, attained their end with ease: they struck
-the soul with more than all the effect of that eloquence, which hath
-been compared to lightning: they needed no help from tropes and figures,
-from the acquired knowledge of human nature, or from the information
-of others, but went directly to the heart by their own proper and
-irresistible virtue. In a word, Jesus saw what no art could divine, he
-saw intuitively the naked conscience, the secret individual thoughts of
-those, with whom he had any concern; and being able, withal, to possess
-their minds with a consciousness of this intuition, his least word, his
-look, nay his silence must needs _speak_ beyond the eloquence of other
-men.
-
-There are many instances of this sort, recorded in the Gospels. He
-saw the malice of the Scribes and Pharisees[132], while it was yet
-latent in the heart, and only forming itself into secret purposes and
-mental propositions; and he surprized them by his answers, into shame
-and _madness_[133]. He saw the seeds of ambition putting forth in the
-minds of his disciples: and by a word or two, he prevented the growth of
-them[134]. By only _looking_ upon Peter[135], he struck him into remorse
-and tears. And by _answering nothing_, he _astonished_, at once, and
-convinced the Roman Governor, who sat in judgment upon him[136].
-
-This inspection of the heart, was that which confounded the officers,
-whom the chief priests had sent to apprehend him, and drew from them, on
-their return, the advantageous report of the text—_that never man spake
-like this man_. For, by what he said in their hearing, he gave them to
-understand that he knew their commission before they had opened it: and
-so disarmed their rage, by only signifying his acquaintance with their
-design.
-
-The effect of what he said and did was, in many conjunctures, wholly
-disproportioned to his words and actions: and is only to be accounted
-for, from the clear insight he had into the mind, and from the secret
-influence which he knew, by an apt sentence[137], or by an expressive
-emblem[138], to inject into the conscience of his hearers. And what
-resistance can, indeed, be made to such a _speaker_, who hath the hearts
-of men in his hands, and _turneth them whithersoever he will_[139]?
-
-In all views, then, whether we consider the _matter_, the _authority_,
-the _wisdom_, or the _effect_ of Christ’s discourses, we must needs be
-convinced that the text is amply verified, and that _never man spake like
-this man_.
-
-To conclude: I have not amused you, in this discourse, with vain
-declamation. I am not solicitous to establish the credit of Jesus, as a
-consummate orator. My views are other and far higher. I would convince
-you, by a reference to plain facts, that he was more than man; that he
-spake by the unerring spirit of God; that his word demands not your
-praise, but your adoration.
-
-If men would take their ideas of this divine teacher immediately from his
-own doctrines, and not as they are misrepresented, or at best imperfectly
-represented by the glosses of others, they would come, of themselves, to
-this important conclusion: if they would make the Gospel their serious
-study, and not their casual amusement, they would want no monitor to let
-them into the merits, or the use of it. They would more than see, they
-would feel the spirit, with which Jesus spake; and they would readily
-offer to him, not their barren applause, but their sincere obedience.
-
-Till this salutary effect be wrought in those who call themselves the
-disciples of Jesus, it may not be improper to remind them of what he
-himself said to ONE, who was affected, as we may now be, by a sense of
-his divine power in speaking. He had been delivering great truths, with
-that authority and wisdom, which ever accompanied his instructions, and
-the effect was answerable. For _it came to pass_, as he _spake these
-things, that a certain woman of the company lifted up her voice, and said
-to him_, in the customary style of approbation, _Blessed is the womb
-that bare thee, and the paps that thou hast sucked. But_ HE _said, Yea,
-rather blessed are they that_ HEAR THE WORD OF GOD, AND KEEP IT[140].
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXVIII.
-
-PREACHED NOVEMBER 20, 1774.
-
-MATTH. xiii. 10.
-
-_The Disciples came, and said unto him, Why speakest Thou to them in
-Parables?_
-
-
-Two things are very observable in our Lord’s conduct towards the Jews.
-He came to _instruct_ them in the principles of a new religion, and to
-_convince_ them of its divine authority. Yet to such of them, as were
-least enlightened by his doctrine, he generally addressed himself in
-Parables: And before such, as were backward to admit his pretensions,
-he was sparing of his Miracles. Now the contrary of this conduct, it is
-said, might be expected: That he should have explained himself in the
-clearest manner to the uninformed Jews; and should have multiplied his
-miracles, for the conviction of the unbelieving.
-
-I propose to consider both these circumstances in the history of Jesus;
-and to shew that his conduct, in either case, was suitable to his
-character and mission.
-
-I, now, confine myself to the PARABLES; and shall take another occasion
-to consider the MIRACLES.
-
-The Disciples, having observed that their Master spoke to the Jews in
-a more obscure and indirect manner, than he was wont to do in private
-to themselves, _came and said unto him, Why speakest thou to them in
-Parables?_
-
-This method of conveying instruction in Parables, that is, in some
-feigned story, where one thing is put for another, and in which the
-circumstances of the story are to be applied to something different in
-the intention of the speaker, is well known to have been of constant and
-familiar use in the old world, and especially in the Eastern nations.
-This figurative cast of language had its rise from necessity, the rude
-conceptions of men requiring general truths to be presented to them, in
-sensible images. But it soon came to be affected as an ornamental way of
-speaking or writing, the liveliness of the image awakening curiosity,
-and affording amusement to the mind. Lastly, it was sometimes employed
-as a mysterious cover of important truths, to which a more than ordinary
-attention was to be raised, and especially of such important truths as
-could not be communicated openly and directly without offence. Under
-this last idea, the Parable, properly so called, presents itself to
-us. It was contrived on purpose to throw some degree of obscurity over
-the information, it contained: And it is in reference to this use and
-character of the Parable, that the Disciples ask why Jesus thought fit to
-address the Jews in this way.
-
-To this question, why he spake to the Jews in Parables, and not to the
-Disciples, our Lord’s reply is in these words—_Because, to you it is
-given to know the mysteries of the kingdom of God, but to them it is not
-given_.
-
-By this answer we learn, _First_, that the things delivered by him in
-this obscure way were not the fundamental truths of the Gospel, but
-_the mysteries of the kingdom of God_, that is, certain secrets relating
-to the progress of the Gospel, and the event of it in the world; a
-consideration, which will be enlarged upon in its place: And, _Secondly_,
-that it was not _given_ to the Jews, at large, to be let into those
-mysteries, but to the disciples only.
-
-But why _not given to the Jews_? why was it thought less fit for
-them, to be initiated in these mysteries, than for the Disciples? Our
-Lord condescends to answer, or rather to anticipate this question,
-likewise—_For whosoever hath, to him shall be given and he shall have
-more abundance; but whosoever hath not, from him shall be taken away even
-that he hath_.
-
-The answer, we see, is formed on this general principle, “That
-information in the councils of God is not to be claimed as a debt; but
-accepted as a reward: that he, who hath acquired some knowledge and
-improved what he hath, deserves a further communication of it; but that
-he, who hath been at no pains to acquire any, or who puts his knowledge
-to as little use, as if he had acquired none, is so far from having
-a right to more, that he even deserves to have the pittance, he may
-already possess, taken from him.” And what more indisputable rule of
-reason, than this, That, in a matter of pure favour, we should deserve,
-by our good dispositions at least, this distinction before we obtain
-it. So that the answer comes out thus—“I speak to the JEWS in parables,
-because they do not deserve, by the pains they have hitherto taken to
-learn of me, and by the dispositions they have shewn to improve what
-I have taught them, to have further information plainly and openly
-conveyed to them: But to YOU, who have already profited by my doctrine,
-and are disposed still further to profit by it, to you I address myself
-in a plainer manner, because ye deserve to be more fully and abundantly
-instructed by me.” And to this answer, thus understood, what objection,
-or even what cavil, can be opposed?
-
-But, further, when Jesus said to his Disciples, that _to them it was
-given to know the mysteries of the kingdom of God, but to the Jews_,
-at large, _it was not given_, this determination must be understood as
-founded, not merely on the fitness of the thing, as here explained, but
-on the positive will and declared purpose of God. This appears from
-what follows. For _therefore_, proceeds our Lord, _speak I to them in
-Parables, because they seeing see not, and hearing they hear not,
-neither do they understand. And in them is fulfilled the prophecy of
-Isaias, which saith, by hearing Ye shall hear and shall not understand,
-and seeing Ye shall see and shall not perceive. For this people’s heart
-is waxed gross, and their ears are dull of hearing, and their eyes they
-have closed, lest at any time they should see with their eyes, and hear
-with their ears, and should understand with their hearts, and should be
-converted, and I should heal them._
-
-Hence it appears, that the way of speaking in Parables, which Jesus
-employed towards the Jews, was that which the word of prophecy had
-declared he should employ towards them. So that this was one, among
-others, of the marks, by which the Messiah should be known and
-distinguished. _To speak in Parables_, was a part of his office: It was a
-duty imposed upon him, in his very commission.
-
-But this, you will say, is only removing the difficulty one step
-backwards, and transferring it from the Gospel upon the Law; And you
-still ask, upon what reasons this strange way of proceeding with the
-Jews, thus foretold and enjoined, was founded?
-
-Now, though it becomes us with much reverence to inquire into the reasons
-of God’s dispensations, yet as we see, in fact, that it was God’s will
-to treat the Jews in this manner, we may be allowed to indulge some
-conjectures on the subject; And, as we have traced this difficulty up to
-its source, this will be the proper place to attempt a more full solution
-of it.
-
-To make way for this solution, let it be observed, that there are two
-ways in which this famous prophecy of Isaiah may be regarded by us;
-either, first, as _a mere prediction of the event_, namely, that by this
-way of speaking to them in Parables, the Jews _would_ not be converted;
-Or, secondly, _as a judicial determination of it_, namely, that this
-obscure way of teaching was therefore employed, because it was in the
-divine councils that they _should_ not be converted. In either way of
-considering the Prophecy, this mysterious conduct may, I think, be
-cleared up.
-
-If we consider the _event_ only, as pointed out by this Prophecy, then
-the reason, which Jesus himself gives of this conduct, and which has
-been before explained, namely the general fitness of such a procedure
-in itself, is a satisfactory account of it. For what more just than to
-leave men to the consequences of their own behaviour, and not to reward
-them with that which they neither desire nor deserve?
-
-But, perhaps, the event was not simply predicted of the Jews, but
-_determined_ upon them[141]. And there may be reason to take the
-prophecy, the rather, in this light, because however fit such a conduct,
-as it describes, may be in itself, yet, in fact, it was not observed
-towards the Gentiles, nor even the Jews after the descent of the holy
-Ghost; the Apostles not addressing either in the way of Parables, as our
-Lord had done the unbelieving Jews: and this agreeably to their Master’s
-express injunctions to them—_for there is nothing covered that shall not
-be revealed, and hid that shall not be known; What I tell you in darkness
-that speak ye in the light, and what ye hear in the ear that preach ye
-upon the house-tops_[142]. This different conduct may then lead us to
-suspect that there was something peculiar in the situation of those Jews,
-to whom Jesus addressed his Parables, which this prophecy respected; and
-that it was God’s purpose, in the case of such of them as should stand
-out against this so long abused mode of information, when proceeding
-from the mouth of the Messiah himself, to leave them under a judicial
-blindness. And supposing this to be the case, the conduct (as severe as
-it seems) may be justified by the following considerations.
-
-1. All the notices, which it had pleased God to give to the ancient
-Jews of the Gospel dispensation, were conveyed in this way of Parable.
-The terms, employed in the old prophecies, were all taken from the
-Law, but the true meaning lay deeper, and the right application of
-those prophecies was to the Christian Covenant, and to the character
-and dispensation of the Messiah. This method of predicting the Gospel
-under legal ideas, was employed for the wisest reasons[143]: The Jews
-had been constantly trained and brought up in it; and, notwithstanding
-the real obscurity this mode of teaching was intended to have, yet with
-fair attentive minds they might easily have apprehended the true drift
-and purpose of it. The Prophets call upon them perpetually to give this
-attention: they even drop frequent hints, that might lead them to the
-discovery: and, upon occasion, do every thing but expound in direct
-terms, their own parables.
-
-What now was the effect of all this intelligence, so gradually, so
-repeatedly, so solicitously, as it were, imparted to them? Why, they
-would not hear, nor understand: they perversely and obstinately rested in
-the cover of these predictions; would look for nothing beneath or beyond
-it, indulged their prejudices about the eternity of their law, and the
-temporal power of their expected Deliverer, so far, that, when at length
-their Deliverer came, for whom this chain of prophetic instruction was
-meant to prepare them, they did not and would not acknowledge him. For
-this gross neglect of a mode of information, so long and so mercifully
-indulged to them, God thought fit to punish them by the very instrument
-of their offence. He commissioned Jesus still to continue that way of
-Parables, which they had so outrageously abused; and so, in his justice,
-_made it the occasion of blinding their eyes and hardening their
-hearts_[144], to their final rejection and reprobation.
-
-This seems to be the true state of the case: and what has Reason to
-object to it? Can any thing be more just, than that a much abused mercy
-should end in punishment? And can any thing be more fit, than that such
-punishment should be the forfeiture of that blessing, which the mercy
-was intended to convey, and should even be inflicted by the very means
-of that mercy[145]? What is there in this œconomy of God’s religious
-dispensations, which contradicts our ideas of the divine attributes?
-Nay, what is there in it, which does not accord to the known methods of
-his ordinary and moral government of the world? Health and Prosperity,
-Parts and Learning, are the merciful gifts of God to some men. To these
-mercies, rightly improved, certain blessings are, in the order of
-his providence, annexed. Yet how often do we see men deprived of the
-blessings, for their misuse of those mercies, and deprived by means
-of the very mercies themselves! The mercies are a snare to them; and
-in the way of natural punishment inflict those evils, which they were
-intended to prevent. Thus, health and prosperity, ill employed, bring on
-a diseased old age, and an uncomfortable enjoyment of life; and parts and
-learning, so fitted to produce true knowledge, are the means by which
-many are led into presumption and mistake.
-
-And in this way, we easily conceive how justly the Jews were punished,
-in their rejection of the Messiah, for their wilful abuse and
-misinterpretation of the Scripture Prophesies concerning him; and how
-fitly the punishment was conveyed by Christ’s _speaking to them in
-Parables_, that is, by that mode of instruction by that very instrument
-of mercy, which they had so much abused.
-
-But though this perverseness of the Jews may be reasonably thought
-judicial, yet even _in his Judgments God remembers mercy_. Let it
-therefore be considered
-
-2. In the second place, that, though Christ’s speaking to the Jews in
-Parables did eventually harden their hearts, yet not more so, perhaps not
-so much as the open communication of truth would have done.
-
-I before took notice, that the subject of Christ’s parables was not the
-fundamental tenets of the Gospel, but _the mysteries of the kingdom of
-God_. This we know from the mouth of Christ himself; and it deserves to
-be considered. That Jesus was the Messiah, that all men were to believe
-in him, and to be saved by him, these great fundamental articles of
-his religion, together with his moral doctrine, were published plainly
-to all; and the evidences of his Messiahship, as resulting from his
-miracles and an appeal to their own prophecies, were in no sense
-concealed from the Jews. So that, in truth, the light afforded to them
-was by no means so penurious, or so darkly conveyed, as the objection
-supposes. What was kept back from them and thrown into the shade, was
-only or chiefly, the future fortunes of the Gospel, called _the Mysteries
-of God’s kingdom_; of which the rejection of the Jews, and the call
-of the Gentiles, were principal. These Christ delivered to the Jews
-in parables, _and without a parable spake he not_ on these subjects,
-_unto them_. Now, though it be true that, had people penetrated these
-mysteries, they might, by a right use of this knowledge, have been led
-to a just apprehension of many of their own prophecies, and, in the
-end, to an acknowledgement of the Christian faith; yet ’tis likely,
-considering their inveterate prejudices, that the clear delivery of these
-momentous truths would have had no such effect; nay, that their aversion
-to the faith of Jesus might have been increased by having this offensive
-information plainly and nakedly presented to them.
-
-And there will seem to be more weight in this conjecture, if we reflect
-that even to the Apostles themselves, till after his resurrection, our
-Lord proceeded with much caution in unfolding _the mysteries of his
-kingdom. Then_, indeed, _he opened their understandings[146]; and,
-beginning at Moses and all the prophets, he expounded unto them, in all
-the Scriptures, the things concerning himself_[147]. But before that
-event had taken place, so much light only was let in upon the minds of
-the Disciples, as they were _able to bear_[148]: the _parables_ were in
-some measure explained to them; yet a certain degree of obscurity was
-still left on the explanation itself.
-
-From which conduct of their great Master, apparently assumed by him in
-consideration of their infirmities, it seems reasonable to conclude, That
-his greater reserve towards the rest of the Jews, in speaking to them in
-_unexplained_ parables, was, among other reasons, therefore chosen by
-him, because it was best adapted to their prejudices, and even gave them
-the fairest chance for apprehending and embracing his doctrine. But
-
-3. Thirdly, and lastly, what if we suppose (as we have the highest reason
-to do, after the trials, which had been already made of them) that no
-evidence whatsoever, not the clearest possible information, would, under
-any management, have had its due effect on the unbelieving Jews? In this
-view of things, the proposing of these mysteries under the impenetrable
-cover of Parables was the greatest of all mercies to them, since a
-further degree of light would not only have indisposed them to the
-reception of it, but must have aggravated their guilt beyond measure, and
-have left them totally without excuse. To _blind their eyes and harden
-their hearts_ was then a _judgment_, if you will, but surely a judgment
-in _mercy_, if ever there was any such thing; a punishment inflicted upon
-them in the most tender and compassionate manner, which goodness itself
-could contrive, or which their deplorable circumstances could admit.
-
-These things being considered, To the question, _Why did Jesus speak
-to the unbelieving Jews in parables_, we may now reply, _first_, That
-this conduct was reasonable in itself, on that general principle of
-EQUITY, _that he only, who hath, shall receive more abundantly_: That,
-_secondly_, the JUSTICE of God was fitly exercised upon them for
-their refusing to be instructed by him in the way of Parable, and by
-the very medium of Parable, so abused: That still, _thirdly_, this
-parabolical method of instruction was, in all probability, better
-adapted to their circumstances, and more LIKELY to be effectual, than
-a plainer communication: And that, _lastly_, supposing it CERTAIN that
-no information whatever would have taken effect, this obscure and
-inefficient one of parables served, at least, as some excuse for their
-obstinacy, and was contrived, in mercy, to alleviate their guilt.
-
-The result of the whole, is, That we are hence taught to adore the awful
-ways of God’s providence, in this instance of _Christ’s speaking in
-parables_; in which both his Justice and Goodness are so equally and
-signally displayed.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XXXIX.
-
-PREACHED NOVEMBER 27, 1774.
-
-MATTHEW xiii. 58.
-
-_And he did not many mighty works there, because of their unbelief._
-
-
-There were two things, I observed, very remarkable in the conduct of our
-blessed Saviour towards the Jews. One was, that he chose to instruct the
-more ignorant and uninformed of them, in the obscure way of _parable_:
-The other, that he wrought but _few miracles_ for the conviction of such
-of them as were incredulous and unbelieving.
-
-These two circumstances may be thought strange; because the less informed
-the people were to whom he addressed himself, the more need there seems
-to have been of the _plainest instruction_; and the less disposed they
-were to believe in him, the greater necessity we may think there was for
-subduing their unbelief by _the force of miracles_. Yet the conduct of
-Jesus was not according to these expectations, in either instance; and
-has accordingly furnished the occasion of TWO corresponding objections to
-his divine character and mission.
-
-To the _former_ of these objections, that which respects his _way of
-speaking by parables_, I have already replied in a distinct discourse on
-that subject. The _latter_, which respects his _way of working miracles_,
-I now propose to consider.
-
-The text, you see, points out the subject, and confines me to it. Jesus,
-in discharge of his general office, and from a principle, as we may
-suppose, of private affection, _went into his own country_, that is, to
-Nazareth, where he had been brought up, with the intention of preaching
-the Gospel there, and of giving the people of that place the proper
-proofs of his authority and mission. Accordingly, the sacred historian
-tells us, _he taught them in their synagogue_; And we know, besides,
-that he wrought some miracles; for the people were astonished and said,
-_Whence hath this man this_ WISDOM, and these MIGHTY WORKS?
-
-They were the more astonished, because Jesus was no stranger to them; and
-the rest of his family, people of an obscure condition, then lived among
-them. They knew him only under the idea of a _Carpenter’s Son_, and they
-had observed perhaps nothing extraordinary him; or, if they had, this
-very circumstance, as is not uncommon among neighbours and countrymen,
-might have infused some jealousy and dislike of him. Be that as it will,
-their prejudices against him were extreme, and they expressed them in
-the most contemptuous manner. _Is not this_, say they, _the Carpenter’s
-Son? Is not his Mother called Mary? and his Brethren, James, and Joses,
-and Simon, and Judas? And his Sisters, are they not all with us? Whence
-then hath this man all these things? And they were offended in him._ To
-these disparaging questions, which easily overpowered the evidence of
-conviction even from their own senses, Jesus only replied, _A prophet
-is not without honour, save in his own country, and in his own house_.
-And then the text follows, which says, _And he did not many mighty works
-there, because of their unbelief_.
-
-This is the FACT: And the question upon it, is, _Why Jesus forebore to
-work miracles among these people, because they did not believe in him?_
-
-Before I reply distinctly to this question, permit me to premise _two_
-general observations; one, on the use of miracles, considered in
-themselves; and the other, on the use of miracles, as applied to the
-Christian dispensation.
-
-_First_, then, I observe, that, a miracle being, for the time, an
-alteration or suspension of the laws of nature, our best ideas of the
-divine attributes lead us to conclude, that this violence on his own
-plan of government is only exerted for some very important end, and will
-be exerted no farther, nor oftener, than is necessary to that end. It
-is true, it may be difficult for us to judge, in many cases, of that
-importance, and of that necessity; but unless both be very apparent
-to us, in no case, can we be authorized to require or even expect, a
-continuance or repetition, much less a multiplication of these miraculous
-exertions. To judge otherwise on this subject, would be to charge God
-foolishly, and, in effect, to blaspheme his wisdom.
-
-_Secondly_, I observe, that the use of miracles, as applied to the
-Christian dispensation, is to give credit to the character and
-pretensions of Jesus. It is supposed in this argument that miracles, duly
-circumstanced and fully attested, are sufficient to this purpose; but
-there is no reason to suppose that more or greater will be wrought, than
-that purpose requires.
-
-These things being premised, to the question, _Why Jesus did not many
-miracles, before the unbelieving Jews of Nazareth_, I reply directly by
-saying
-
-I. In the first place, _because such a display of his power was not
-necessary to their conviction_. I mean not to say at present, that more
-or greater miracles would not have convinced them (though it be very
-unlikely, that they would), but that they were not necessary to the
-end proposed by them, which was to afford such an attestation to the
-character of Jesus as might be a reasonable and, in itself, a sufficient
-ground of their conviction. More than this the Jews had no right to
-expect. And less than this was not offered: For when it is said, that
-Jesus did not _many_ miracles at Nazareth, it is implied that he did
-_some_; and thus much they confess themselves in asking, _whence hath
-this man these mighty works?_
-
-Now _some_ miracles, nay _one single_ miracle, seen and confessed as
-such, was a reasonable ground of conviction. More therefore could not be
-esteemed _necessary_, that is, were not required to furnish the fit and
-proper means of such conviction. Without doubt, God, if he had been so
-pleased, might have shattered and confounded all the elements, and have
-driven the men of Nazareth, and even the Jewish Sanhedrim itself, by the
-force and terror of his almighty power, into an unwilling acknowledgment
-of his Son, Jesus. But this is not the way in which he treats his
-reasonable creatures, even when he exceeds the ordinary methods of his
-providence. He does that which is simply fit and right, in respect of the
-end he has in view, and leaves the rest to ourselves. This, as far as we
-know, is the universal mode of God’s government, and as far as we can
-judge, is the most worthy of him.
-
-Still, it will be said, though Jesus was not obliged to do more for the
-conviction of these unbelievers, though more or greater miracles could
-not strictly be required of him, yet so limited a display of his power on
-such an occasion seemed penurious, and even unkind. A little more zeal,
-and some supernumerary wonders, might have better expressed his concern
-for his unhappy countrymen. I reply then,
-
-II. In the second place, that as more or greater miracles were not
-necessary to the end of giving a just proof of his mission, so they were
-most probably not expedient to any other good end, but, on the contrary,
-would have been hurtful and pernicious to his unbelieving countrymen.
-
-We have reason to conclude thus, if we consider that the same prejudices,
-which obstructed their conviction from _some_ confessed miracles, would
-not have given way to _more_. We have an example in the other unbelieving
-Jews, especially in the rulers of that people, who, the more and greater
-miracles they saw performed by Jesus, were the more hardened in their
-unbelief, and the more exasperated against him. They even give it as a
-reason for their vindictive prosecution of him, that he _did_, and _was
-doing many miracles_[149].
-
-Taking the matter then in this light, what other effect could a waste of
-miracles have had, but to heap guilt and vengeance upon their heads? By
-leaving these perverse people to themselves, perhaps their prejudices
-might subside, and they might yield in time to the evidence they already
-had, or they might submit to other evidence, which they should collect
-for themselves hereafter. To have irritated their prejudices, now, by
-further miracles, might have fixed them absolutely in unbelief.
-
-This conclusion becomes the more probable, if we admit the pretensions of
-Jesus: For then he may be supposed to have certainly foreseen the present
-impracticability of converting these men, and to have restrained his
-power before them, on that account. But I am now arguing with those, who
-make this conduct an objection to his pretensions. I offer it therefore
-as a conclusion only very probable from the nature of the thing, that
-his _not doing many miracles_ before his unbelieving countrymen, was,
-among other motives, from _a principle of mercy and kindness to them_. At
-least, the contrary, I think, cannot be affirmed with any shew or colour
-of reason.
-
-But whatever kindness our Lord might have for these men, his continuing
-to work more miracles among them, under the present circumstances, would
-have been improper, because
-
-III. In the next place (and this is my _third_ answer to the objection)
-_this conduct would have opposed, and tended directly to defeat, the
-general end and success of his ministry_.
-
-The proper END of his ministry was to preach salvation to the Jews, and
-to give them such evidence of his being the Messiah, as was sufficient
-to their conviction. When he had done this in one place, if no very
-important considerations induced his longer stay, he was to proceed to
-another. This was so essential a part of his office, that it seems not
-to have been forgotten, even when there was no peculiar complaint of
-_unbelief_, in those with whom he had resided. For when the people of
-another place, of more _faith_, as it should seem, _came to him, and_
-would have _stayed him, that he should not depart from them_, He refused
-to comply with them, and _said, I must preach the kingdom of God to other
-cities also, for_ THEREFORE AM I SENT[150].
-
-This then was the end of his ministry. He was to preach the word; but was
-not obliged to see that it took effect, or to wait the success of it.
-How repugnant then had it been to this end, to waste unnecessary time
-and power on unbelieving Nazareth, when so many other cities, and those
-better disposed, claimed their share of each!
-
-But, further, the dispositions of these people towards him were such, as
-seemed likely, not only to retard and interrupt, but totally to _prevent_
-the execution of his ministry. They would either have found means, had he
-continued longer with them, to deliver him into the hands of the Jewish
-rulers, or by some act of violence would have taken away his life. This
-appears from the rage with which they drove him out of their city, and
-from their purpose, as St. Luke relates the story, to _cast him down
-headlong from the brow of the hill, whereon their city was built_[151].
-So that his attempt to convert them by more miracles, might have put
-an untimely end to his ministry, when it was now but little more than
-begun. And, though this event might at any time have been prevented by
-an exertion of his miraculous power, and without doubt would have been
-prevented in that manner, had the conjuncture made it necessary; yet
-this was no reason for his exposing himself to that danger, since, as
-we before observed, miracles are not to be expected or employed, where
-the end in view may be accomplished by human means. Accordingly, our
-Saviour consulted his own safety on all occasions during the course of
-his ministry, by every prudential method: And when he afterwards armed
-his disciples with the power of working miracles, he prescribed the
-same conduct to them, and, when they found themselves _persecuted in
-one city_, bade them _flee to another_[152]. It is generally thought,
-indeed, that nothing but a miracle rescued him out of the hands of the
-enraged people of Nazareth. If so, his danger among them must have been
-extreme, and shews the necessity of his removing from them. However, if
-this last miracle was wrought, it was one more added to the number of
-those he had worked in that city, and, like all the rest, was lost upon
-it. On the whole, it appears certain then, that the _unbelief_ of these
-Nazarenes was a just reason for Christ’s _not doing many miracles among
-them_, since the opposite conduct would have tended _to defeat the end
-and execution of his general office_.
-
-Still, the most direct and convincing answer to the objection is behind:
-For,
-
-IV. Lastly, I observe that Jesus _did not many miracles_ before the
-unbelieving men of Nazareth, _because_ such a display of his power would
-have _been contrary to a general rule of conduct, which he prescribed to
-himself, and that, on the highest reason_.
-
-This rule was, _not to work a miracle upon them, or for them, who were
-deficient in faith_: By which term, _faith_, I do not mean a grounded
-faith in him, as the Messiah, (for that could only be produced originally
-by miracles) but such an honesty and probity of mind as might dispose
-them to believe on the evidence of miracles. It was in this case, as in
-that of _Parables, to him only who hath, more was given_. And therefore
-the first question be put to those, who repaired to him for a miraculous
-relief of their necessities, was, _Do Ye believe?_ Are ye withheld by
-no fixed and willful prejudices from supposing that one, coming to you
-under the character of the Messiah, is empowered to do this for you, or
-from yielding to its evidence, when it is done? This was so indispensable
-a rule with him, that St. Mark, in relating this adventure at Nazareth,
-goes so far as to say that he COULD NOT DO many mighty works there
-because of their unbelief[153]. The meaning of which is, that there was,
-no _natural_ indeed, but a _moral_ impossibility of his working more
-miracles there; that is, he _could not do it_, consistently with the
-general principles, on which he acted.
-
-And that these principles were founded in _the best reason_, no man
-can doubt who reflects, that the highest possible favour, which can
-be conferred on man, that is, a miracle wrought for his salvation,
-reasonably supposes some degree of desert, some prior dispositions to
-profit by it; who reflects farther, that, where such a preparation of
-mind is not, the miracle is thrown away; nay, worse than that, can only
-serve to the hurt and condemnation of that person, on whom, or for whom
-it is performed.
-
-Men have a strange notion, that when God intends to convince any one by
-the evidence of miracles, he should repeat and enforce that evidence,
-till it take effect, whether we will or not; nay, that the most obstinate
-and determined infidelity is only a stronger reason for his contending
-with it. But this is a very presumptuous, as well as injurious,
-conception of the divine nature: It is presumptuous in the highest
-degree, because it supposes that we have a right to prescribe terms
-to infinite power and wisdom: It is greatly injurious to the Supreme
-Being, because it supposes that he has no regard to the moral worth of
-his creatures, or even to any reasonable end, in the wonders he does for
-them. The Scriptures represent this matter in another light: they require
-something, where much is given; they expect from us to _have_, before we
-receive; they suppose us in short to be moral agents, and not machines.
-And our Lord himself, speaking in the proverbial language of the Jews,
-gives it as a special command to his Disciples, _Not to cast that which
-is holy unto dogs, not to cast their pearls before swine_[154]. All this
-is agreeable to our best notions of the divine wisdom and goodness,
-as well as to the usual course of God’s providence; and therefore on
-this footing only the conduct of Jesus towards the unbelieving Jews of
-Nazareth is abundantly justified.
-
-To draw to a point, then, the substance of what has been said. To the
-question, _why Jesus did not more miracles, before the unbelieving?_ We
-reply, That such conduct was not necessary to the end of miracles, which
-was to afford a reasonable conviction—that it was not likely to answer
-any good end, but, on the contrary, would have been hurtful to such
-unbelievers—that it tended to defeat the design and success of Christ’s
-ministry, by narrowing the sphere, of shortening the term of it—that,
-lastly and chiefly, it was unreasonable in itself, and contrary to the
-general scheme and order of God’s moral government.
-
-Let no man then abuse himself with foolish imaginations, as if Christ
-was wanting in that which became his office and mission; still less,
-as if he acted from any caprice, or unconcern for the souls of men, in
-not forcing their belief; but least of all, as if his pretensions had
-any thing to fear from the little faith of those to whom he addressed
-himself, and could only prevail with the weak and credulous, with those
-who were unable or indisposed to scrutinize his miracles. Even this last
-insinuation has been made, not only without grounds, but against the
-fullest evidence; the miracles of Jesus having been numerous, public,
-illustrious, and even acknowledged, at least not convicted of imposture,
-by his bitterest enemies, by those who were most active and most able to
-examine into the truth and reality of them.
-
-With regard to the miracles in question, let us be so ingenuous as to
-confess, that, if these were necessary to announce his office and
-character to the men of Nazareth, more than these were unnecessary, and
-that their unbelief affords the best grounds to conclude, that they
-were so. Consider too, that, if no reasons had occurred to us for this
-conduct, it could not certainly appear that it was unreasonable. When we
-know, in fact, what the method of God’s dealing with mankind has been, in
-any instance, we may be able perhaps to discern good reasons for it. But
-we can seldom affirm with any shew of reason, from any preconceptions or
-general speculations of our own, what it should or must be. Here we are
-manifestly out of our depth, and cannot stir a step without the hazard of
-absurdity or impiety.
-
-If we have reason to admit the divine authority of our Religion, whatever
-conduct it ascribes to Jesus, must be fit and right, however impenetrable
-to us. If we admit it not, our concern is to see that we have reason
-for not admitting it. This matter is to be tried by the evidence given
-of that authority only, I mean by the external proofs, and historic
-testimony, on which it rests. When this is done, no slight cavils of
-reason, no fanciful suspicions, no plausible objections, nor any thing
-else but the most obvious contradiction in something it asserts to the
-clearest dictates of the human understanding (which no man has ever yet
-found) can possibly shake, or so much as affect, that authority.
-
-In the present case, we have seen how entirely groundless the objection
-is to Christ’s conduct at Nazareth. But if this objection could not have
-been answered, nothing had followed but a conviction of our ignorance. It
-might still be true (as we now see it to be), that Jesus acted agreeably
-to his divine character _in not doing many miracles_ before the people of
-Nazareth, _because of their unbelief_.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XL.
-
-PREACHED MAY 23, 1773.
-
-2 COR. iv. 5.
-
-_We preach not ourselves, but Christ Jesus the Lord._
-
-
-We may consider these words, either as an _admonition_ to the ministers
-of the Gospel, _To preach not themselves, but Christ Jesus the Lord_;
-or simply as a _fact_, which St. Paul asserts of himself and the other
-Apostles, _That they preached not themselves, but Christ Jesus the Lord_.
-
-In either sense, the words are instructive; but I take them in the latter
-sense, only. I would confirm and illustrate this assumed fact: and then
-employ it as a medium to prove the divine authority of the sacred
-writings. If it be true, _that the Apostles preached not themselves,
-but Christ Jesus the Lord_, it will, perhaps, be seen to follow, _That
-therefore they preached not from their own private suggestions, but by
-the direction of the spirit of God_.
-
-The assertion of the Text is, indeed, general, and to this effect, “That
-a number of persons, who were employed to convert the world to the
-Religion of Jesus, did, in the tenour of their lives and the course of
-their ministry, pay no regard to their own interests of any kind, and
-were only intent on the due discharge of their commission.”
-
-But the subject, in that extent, is too large for a discourse of this
-nature. What I would offer to your consideration, is ONE SINGLE INSTANCE
-of that indifference which the Apostles shewed to their own interests, I
-mean, _Their total disregard of human applause in preaching the Gospel_.
-
-In this restrained sense of the words, men may be said _to preach
-themselves_, in TWO respects: When they shew a solicitude to set
-themselves forth with advantage: 1. as to their MORAL character. And 2.
-as to their INTELLECTUAL.
-
-I. When men would give an advantageous idea of their _moral character_,
-they usually express this design, either, 1. _By representing or
-insinuating their superior worth and virtue_: Or, 2. _By suppressing or
-palliating what may render it suspected_: Or, 3. lastly, _By dwelling
-on such topics, and in such a manner, as may give occasion to others to
-think well of their moral qualities_.
-
-Let us try the Apostolic writings by each of these marks.
-
-1. The first way that men take to illustrate their _moral character_,
-is, _By representing, or insinuating their worth and virtue, on all
-occasions_.
-
-Consider those apologists for themselves, who have left us memoirs of
-their own lives. You will find, in most of these, an ambitious display
-of those moral virtues, by which they desire to be distinguished. They
-lose no opportunity of setting forth the purity of their designs, and the
-integrity of their practice. The rest, may do this with less pomp and
-affectation: they may preserve a modesty in the language, and a decent
-reserve in the air and cast, of their narration. Still, the same purpose
-is discoverable in all these writers, whether they openly proclaim, or
-nicely suggest and insinuate their own importance. When men are actuated
-with a strong desire of appearing in the fairest light to others, it
-unavoidably breaks out in some shape or other, and all the indirect ways
-of address cannot conceal it from the intelligent observer.
-
-We have a great example in two, the most extraordinary persons of the
-pagan world, I mean, XENOPHON, and JULIUS CÆSAR. These admired men
-thought fit to record their own acts and atchievements; and have done it
-with that air of neglect and unpretending simplicity, which has been the
-wonder of mankind. Yet, through all this apparent indifference, every
-one sees the real drift of these elaborate volumes: every one sees, that
-they are composed in such a way as to excite the highest opinion, not of
-their ability in the art of war only, but of the justice, generosity,
-benevolence, in short, the moral qualities of their respective authors.
-It evidently appears that they designed to be their own panegyrists;
-though none but such men could have executed that design, in so
-inoffensive and successful a manner.
-
-But now, if we turn to the sacred writers, we shall find no traces of
-their _preaching themselves_, in this respect. These plain fishermen
-tell their story unambitiously, and without art; or, if we call it
-art, it is such an one as Greece and Rome had never been able to put
-in practice. No exaggerations of what may be thought praise-worthy in
-themselves: no oblique encomiums on their own best qualities or actions:
-no complacent airs in the recital of what may reflect honour on their own
-characters: no studied reserve and refinement in the turn and language of
-their history.
-
-If there be any virtue, which we may suppose them more than commonly
-anxious to arrogate to themselves, any moral quality, in which they would
-shine out to the observation of others, what more likely than an unshaken
-fidelity to their Master? that Master, whom they made it their glory,
-their sole glory, as the Text speaks, _to preach_? Yet they are so far
-from respecting their own credit in this particular, that they relate
-their own infirmities and miscarriages; they acknowledge how wavering
-and precarious their _faith_ was; nay, they tell us that, in his last
-distresses, _they all forsook him, and fled_[155].
-
-2. This last circumstance reminds us of the next artifice which men
-employ to set off their moral character, _that of suppressing or
-palliating whatever may render it suspected_.
-
-As accomplished persons, as the great men, before mentioned, were, can we
-doubt that many exceptionable steps were taken by them in the affairs,
-they managed: that, on some occasions, their prudence failed them, and
-their virtue, on others; that their counsels and measures were conducted,
-at times, with too little honesty, or too much passion? Yet, you will
-in vain look for any thing of this sort in their large and particular
-histories. All is candid and fair, judicious and well advised: every
-thing speaks the virtuous man, and able commander. The obnoxious passages
-are either suppressed, or they are turned in such a way as to do honour
-to their Relaters.
-
-Or, take another instance. When Cicero had offended against the capital
-law of his moral code, that, which enjoined the love of his country,
-first, by his backwardness to join the camp of Pompey, and, afterwards,
-by his prompt submission to the tyranny of Cæsar, What is the conduct of
-the illustrious Roman patriot, on this pressing occasion? Does he frankly
-condemn these false steps, or does he content himself with a simple
-relation of them? Neither of these things: He softens and disguises the
-truth; he employs all his wit and eloquence to palliate this inglorious
-desertion of his principles, to himself and others.
-
-I might add many other examples. But ye see, in these, a striking
-contrast to the ingenuity of the sacred writers. They study no arts of
-evasion or concealment. They proclaim their own faults, and even vices,
-to all the world. One, acknowledges himself to have been a furious bigot,
-a persecutor, and blasphemer[156]: Another, relates his own cowardice,
-ingratitude, and treachery[157]. There is nothing like a concert between
-them to cover each other’s defects: They expose the vindictive zeal of
-one[158]; the intolerant spirit of others[159]; the selfish intrigues
-of all[160]. In a word, they give up their moral character to the scorn
-and censure of their readers, and appear solicitous for nothing but the
-honour of their Master—_They preach not themselves, but the Lord Jesus
-Christ_.
-
-But ye will say, this apparent candour was the most consummate art; and
-that they confessed some obnoxious passages in their lives, to procure
-themselves credit in other instances. This, no doubt, is sometimes the
-case with artful writers and speakers: But then only, when small defects
-and miscarriages are confessed; or, when the facts are too notorious to
-be dissembled; or, if perhaps they confess such things of themselves, as
-are highly blameable, and might otherwise have been concealed, they do
-it to gain the praise of a more than ordinary frankness and ingenuity,
-they apparently make a matter of vanity, even of that confession[161].
-The case is much otherwise with the preachers of Jesus. They scruple
-not to tax themselves with the most odious vices; and these too, many
-times of such a nature as shews, they might well have been kept secret
-from all the world; while yet the discovery is made in such a way, that
-suspicion itself cannot charge them with the design of drawing any credit
-to themselves from it.
-
-Hitherto, we have considered how many men may contrive to celebrate or
-insinuate their own virtues, to suppress or disguise their own vices, in
-narratives or memorials of their lives; and how free the Apostles are
-from the suspicion of doing either. But the same design may be prosecuted
-in writings of another sort: and we have writings of another sort from
-the hands of the Apostles. I observe then
-
-3. That, when writers are studious of their own fame, they find means,
-in any moral or historic work, though themselves be not the professed
-subject of it, to do honour to their own character, _by dwelling on such
-topics, and in such a manner, as may give occasion to others to think
-well of their moral qualities_.
-
-They declaim, perhaps, with much heat against certain vices, or
-expatiate with much complacency on certain virtues; or, they labour some
-disgraceful portraits of bad men, and draw their favoured characters with
-all the heightenings of panegyrick: And who will suppose, after this
-specimen of their zeal, that they themselves are not adorned with those
-good qualities, which they so studiously recommend, or are not exempt
-from those bad ones, which they so industriously expose? The artifice is
-so common, that we have it played upon us every day; and yet so imposing,
-that it constantly succeeds with us. How many popular characters does
-every one call to mind, that have no foundation but in this favourable
-prejudice! But let me carry your thoughts back to ancient times, and
-fix them on far higher instances. Who that reads the moral prefaces and
-digressions of the historian SALLUST, but must imagine the author to have
-been a model of ancient frugality and austere manners? And who that looks
-into the philosopher SENECA, and finds him all on fire in celebrating
-some distinguished characters, and exposing some detested ones, but will
-conclude the writer to have been himself accomplished in all virtue?
-
-I make no enquiry, at present, into the real characters of these
-illustrious persons: I pass no judgment on the real merit of their books.
-Their zeal might be an honest one; and the form of their writings might
-be owing to that zeal. But this, I observe, that the form itself is well
-suited to the purpose of those who would _preach themselves_; and that
-the sacred writers have not thought fit to adopt this method.
-
-Their books indeed are full of moral sentences and moral precepts (for
-they are teachers of morality by profession); but short, and simple; and
-though earnestly enforced, not ostentatiously displayed. The historic
-part of their writings is wonderful for its calmness, I had almost said,
-insensibility. No attempt to colour their good or bad characters. Even
-the transcendant virtues of their Master are left to be collected rather
-from the simplest exposition of what he said and did, than from any
-formal representation of them: And, what is stranger still, his betrayers
-and murderers are loaded with no invective, nor set to scorn in any
-odious lights[162]. These divine men are superior to the prejudices even
-of virtue itself; and have so little thought of deriving a vanity from
-their own honest feelings, that we are almost left in doubt, whether they
-were, indeed, actuated by them.
-
-II. Thus much for the indifference of the sacred writers to their moral
-character: Let us now see whether they are more concerned for their
-INTELLECTUAL.
-
-There are two ways which men take to display their mental qualities:
-1. _By labouring to make appear an extraordinary acuteness of
-understanding_: And 2. _By aiming at the praise of extraordinary wit and
-eloquence_.
-
-It is superfluous to observe to you how these two characters predominate
-in all the writings and speeches of uninspired men. Consider, if there
-be one exception in all those whom the world most approves and admires:
-Consider, if there be not evident symptoms of this vanity in every single
-writer or speaker, that has undertaken to instruct or reform mankind.
-I deny not, that many of these have been persons of great modesty and
-distinguished virtue: Yet they never lose sight of their own mental
-accomplishments; they never forget, under some shape or other, in this
-respect, to _preach themselves_. Even He, who now so freely censures
-this infirmity in others, is, perhaps, at the instant, an example of it,
-himself.
-
-Let us see, then, if _the preachers of the Gospel_ have the singular
-prerogative to stand clear of this general imputation.
-
-1. They certainly lay no claim to any superior quickness of
-understanding. On the contrary, they relate many circumstances, which
-clearly imply their own dulness and inapprehension. They acquaint us with
-the gross mistakes, they were apt to fall into, in their conversations
-with their Master; they are at a loss to comprehend his parables, nay to
-look beyond the literal sense of the plainest figures; they even record
-the reproaches which Jesus made to them on these occasions.
-
-But this slowness of conception, it will be said, was in their early
-unenlightened state, and was, perhaps, affected by them to do honour to
-their subsequent illuminations. Be it so. But how do these illuminated
-men employ the divine light, that was imparted to them? In advancing
-curious theories in Morals, or in framing subtle Metaphysical systems?
-Do they affect a philosophic depth or accuracy in their researches
-into human nature, or a superior penetration in their reasonings about
-spiritual things? Do they shine in paradoxes? or strike with quaint
-aphorisms? Do they entertain us with exquisite positions, or remote
-conclusions? Nothing of all this. What they teach of moral and divine
-things, is with the air of men, not who make discoveries, but who deliver
-known and familiar truths. They tell us many things, which we knew not
-before: But they tell them as matters of divine commission, not of their
-own collection or investigation. And, for the rest, they presume not to
-speculate upon them, at all.
-
-Indeed, the general subject of their discourses was such, as gave no
-scope to the exercise, and afforded no gratification to the pride,
-of Reason. They publish to the world a matter of fact, of which they
-were eye-witnesses; they attest the death and resurrection of Jesus,
-and preach remission of sins in his name. These were the points _they
-witnessed both to small and great; saying none other things than those,
-which they had seen and heard, and which the Prophets and Moses did say
-come to pass_[163]. Is there any thing in such a doctrine, as this, that
-looks like _preaching themselves_? Can it be thought that such teachers
-had an eye to the credit of their own abilities, or that they meant to
-advance the reputation of their own understandings above that of other
-men?
-
-2. Still less reason is there to charge this ambition on their manner
-of preaching, or to imagine that they sought the fame of ingenuity from
-the terms in which they conveyed their instructions to mankind. If the
-substance of their doctrine was plain facts, their language was that of
-plain men. They spake not _with the enticing words of man’s wisdom_;
-scarcely with the ordinary propriety, certainly, not with what is called
-the purity and elegance, of their tongue.
-
-But the fact is not disputed, rather is objected to them by such as
-question their inspiration (with what reason, we shall presently see);
-so that I may fairly conclude, that such men could have no purpose to
-recommend themselves by the arts of speaking, or, that, with regard to
-the praise of wit and eloquence, they could not possibly mean to _preach
-themselves_.
-
-Not let it be said, that this unornamented style of preaching was the
-effect of their ignorance, and inability to reach the graces of a juster
-manner. For, besides that it is no new thing for men to affect what they
-have no talents for, it is certain that ONE at least of the Apostles, He,
-whose province it was to convert the Gentile world, long since enamoured
-of the study of eloquence, and who, of all the Apostles, wrote most, it
-is certain, I say, that this great man was not disqualified by a want of
-parts or learning, from pretending to this prize of eloquence, if his
-ambition had condescended to it.
-
-III. It appears then, with a reasonable degree of evidence, that the
-writers of the New Testament had no regard _to themselves_, that is,
-to the reputation either of their Moral or Intellectual virtues, in
-composing those books. The fact, as singular as it is, seems well
-established: And I draw this interesting conclusion from it, _That,
-therefore, they preached, not from their own private suggestions, but by
-the direction of the Holy Spirit_.
-
-This conclusion follows undeniably from that fact. For, if such a number
-of persons, of different tempers, educations, and professions, could be
-so disinterested as to overlook their own credit in a point, which all
-other men have so exceedingly at heart, and which no other men, nay which
-no other single man has ever been able to give up; and that too, when
-they were teaching a divine religion, and might therefore seem to have a
-decent pretence for assuming all sorts of merit to themselves; if this, I
-say, be a certain fact, what can we conclude, but that the Spirit of God,
-to whose enlightening influences they ascribed their doctrine, over-ruled
-their natural self-love in the manner of preaching it, and that _these
-holy men spoke, as they were moved by the Holy Ghost_?
-
-To return then to the Text, and to conclude. _We preach not
-ourselves_—said St. Paul, in his own name and that of the other
-Apostles—_We preach not ourselves, but Christ Jesus the Lord_. The
-writings of these men are still extant; and bear the fullest testimony
-to the truth of what they assert. This, then, among many others, is
-an intrinsic character, impressed on those writings, of their divine
-original. It may be regarded, as a standing miracle, which, as oft as we
-revolve and consider them, speaks aloud, as in a voice from Heaven, that
-the Scriptures, they have left us, are the _word and work of God_.
-
-If their uninspired successors in the ministry of the word be unable
-to copy so bright an example of humility and self-denial, forgive them
-this defect, or impute it, if you will, to natural vanity and unsubdued
-self-love. But, when ye chance to observe this infirmity in others,
-forget not to say to yourselves, that this high privilege of _preaching
-not themselves_ was reserved to the Evangelists and Apostles only, to
-dignify their character; and to excite, confirm, and support our faith;
-in a word, to manifest to all the world, in the very frame and texture
-of the sacred Oracles, that they were, indeed, dictated by the Spirit of
-God.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLI.
-
-PREACHED DECEMBER 15, 1771.
-
-MATTH. xi. 5.
-
-_The Poor have the Gospel preached unto them._
-
-
-Many circumstances, attending the Gospel of Jesus, are such, as we should
-not previously have expected: Yet, when duly considered, they fully
-approve themselves to our best reason.
-
-We have a memorable instance, in the Text. Among other marks, by which it
-pleased our blessed Lord to authenticate his mission, one was, _That the
-Poor had the Gospel preached unto them. Go_, (says he to the disciples
-of John the Baptist, who had sent them to know of Jesus, whether he
-were indeed the Messiah) _Go, and shew John again those things which ye
-do hear and see: The blind receive their sight, and the lame walk, the
-lepers are cleansed, and the deaf hear, the dead are raised up, and_ THE
-POOR HAVE THE GOSPEL PREACHED UNTO THEM.
-
-We are surprized, perhaps, on the first mention of these words, to find
-this last circumstance put upon a level with the rest, even with that
-greatest of all miracles, _the raising of the dead to life_. We may not
-immediately apprehend, why the _Poor_ should be thus considered by the
-Saviour of the world; or how the truth of his pretensions comes to be
-concerned in this treatment of them. But, upon inquiry, we shall find
-there were some important reasons which determined our Lord to this
-conduct, and which made that conduct, in a peculiar manner, expressive of
-his person and office.
-
-FIRST, This character was directly applied to the Messiah, in the ancient
-prophecies. Our Lord himself, in the text, quotes the very words of
-Isaiah: So that, _in preaching the Gospel to the Poor_, he fulfilled
-that prediction, and so far corresponded to the character, which the word
-of prophecy had given of the Messiah.
-
-But this circumstance, we may suppose, would have been no part of the
-Messiah’s character, but for reasons which made it fit and right, that He
-should be thus distinguished. Let us, further, inquire, then,
-
-SECONDLY, what those reasons, probably were; only premising one word, to
-ascertain the objects, both of the prophecy, and of our Lord’s charitable
-attention.
-
-There is no doubt but the word, _poor_, in the prophecies alledged, and
-in Christ’s application of them, is very capable of being understood
-in a metaphorical or spiritual sense, and was even intended to be so
-understood; I mean, in that sense, which our Lord gives to the word,
-_Poor_, when he says—_Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the
-kingdom of heaven_[164]. But this metaphorical sense does not exclude,
-it rather supposes, the literal. For, who are _the poor in spirit_,
-for the most part, but _the poor in fortune_? they, whom neither the
-pride of knowledge and education, nor the pride of wealth and place,
-has corrupted with vain ideas of their own sufficiency? But, there is
-a peculiar reason for the literal interpretation of the Text. For the
-words, _blind_, _lame_, and _deaf_, have, likewise, their metaphorical
-sense in the prophet, as well as the word, _poor_. Yet our Lord alledges
-the completion of the prophecy, in the literal meaning of those words;
-for he refers the messengers of John to what _they saw and heared_; to
-the miracles, he was then working, or had worked, on _the blind, lame,
-and deaf_, that is, in restoring their bodily senses and members[165].
-So that, when the poor are spoken of by Jesus, at the same time, we must
-needs understand him as speaking of the _poor_, properly so called, that
-is, of the lower ranks of people, whom he was even then instructing, as
-well as healing.
-
-We see, then, That Christ _preached the Gospel to the poor_, in the
-literal, as well as spiritual sense of that word: And, in so doing,
-he both fulfilled the whole extent of the prophecy; and, as we shall
-now find, gave an eminent proof of the GOODNESS and WISDOM of his own
-character.
-
-For, consider the state of the _poor_, how much they wanted, and how much
-better, than the rich, they deserved, instruction, when our Lord, in
-mercy, came _to preach the Gospel to them_.
-
-I. The condition of the _poor_, that is, of the people at large, was
-truly deplorable, at that time. They were every where treated by their
-superiors with the utmost contempt, and left to struggle with an almost
-invincible ignorance and corruption.
-
-The Jews, indeed, had the benefit of a divine law: but their Scribes
-and Doctors _had made it of none effect, by their traditions_[166].
-They had corrupted the word of God, by their fanciful cabbalistical
-glosses; and had debased their holy ritual, into a frivolous and sordid
-superstition. They had _the key of knowledge_ in their hands; but they
-neither employed it to the purpose of opening the true meaning of the
-Scriptures, themselves, nor would suffer the people to make this use of
-it. In the mean time, their pride increased with their other vices: they
-thought themselves _wise and prudent[167], and righteous_[168]; and, in
-sovereign admiration of their own worth and knowledge, _they despised
-others_. Their insolence to the _poor_ was so transcendant, that they
-reproached them for that ignorance, which themselves had occasioned;
-and even checked their endeavours to understand the true meaning of
-their law, in terms of the bitterest scorn and execration. _Have any
-of the Rulers or Pharisees_, said they, _believed in Jesus? But this
-people[169], that knoweth not the law, are accursed._
-
-Such was the state of the _poor_, among the Jews: and that of the Gentile
-poor was no better. As the former were only insulted, and not instructed,
-by their RABBIS; So the _latter_ were just as ill treated by their
-PHILOSOPHERS.
-
-These men, indeed, _professed themselves wise_; and had, in some
-respects, a juster claim, than the Jewish doctors, to that proud,
-distinctive appellation. Though their reasoning, on many subjects (on
-which, however, they valued themselves most) was little better than that
-of the Cabbalists; yet, in moral matters, which are of the highest
-concern to mankind, they had been able to trace out some plausible and
-ingenious theories, and had even penetrated so far as to apprehend some
-general and fundamental principles of natural religion. Yet all this
-was matter of vanity among them, rather than of public use. Their most
-interesting speculations were either confined to their schools, or
-secreted from the common eye, in their mysteries. Their moral systems
-were calculated to amuse, to polish, and, we will say, to instruct the
-higher ranks of men; but they were composed in such a way, and proceeded
-on such principles, that the vulgar could be little benefited by them.
-And, for what they knew of religious truth, they studiously kept it
-from the _poor_, and left them to the tyranny of their senseless, their
-impure, their abominable superstitions. Even Socrates himself, though he
-laboured very commendably to reform the lives of his fellow-citizens,
-yet laboured to little effect, as he would not, or durst not, disgrace
-their idolatries, the source of all their corruption and misery. The
-rest of these wise men were well contented, at most, with being _wise to
-themselves_; they stood aloof from the prophane vulgar; and contemplated,
-with much complacency, or with much disdain, the popular errors.
-
-Such, and so wretched were the _poor_, when our blessed Lord came to
-announce the good tidings of salvation to them! Incapable of themselves
-to find out or to understand their duty, and misled, neglected, or
-contemned by those who should have been their instructors; lost in error
-and in vice, with no prospect of recovering themselves out of either;
-without guides, and without friends; in a word, _without hope, and
-without God in the world_[170]; What could equal their wants and their
-distresses? And how loudly did they cry to Heaven for some friendly hand
-to be stretched out, some celestial light to be dispensed, to them?
-
-But, perhaps, these unhappy men deserved not the care of Heaven. And,
-without doubt, if we put their claim on that footing, it will be
-difficult to make out their title to such distinction. Yet they had
-something, too, to plead for themselves, something to engage the regards
-of their merciful Creator, if it be true, as I observed,
-
-II. In the next place, that their hearts, depraved as they were, were yet
-not so utterly perverse, as those of the _rich and great and wise_, who
-poured such contempt upon them.
-
-And, for our satisfaction in this point, we need but look into the
-Gospel-history; where we find, from many facts and testimonies, that the
-poorer sort among the Jews were they who gave the best proofs of their
-disposition to embrace the doctrine, and acknowledge the pretensions, of
-Jesus.
-
-When he _preached_ to the Jews, the Scribes and Pharisees, that is, the
-_rich and wise_, almost universally and without exception, cavilled at
-his doctrine, perverted his words, and sought occasion only _how they
-might entangle him in his talk_[171]. But the people, giving way to the
-ingenuous sense of their own minds, _heared him gladly_[172]: They were
-even _very attentive to hear him_[173]. Nor let it be thought, that the
-love of novelty, or some worse motive, which oft seduces the populace
-in such cases, was the cause of this attention. They give another, and
-better reason of it—_Never man_, say they, _spake like this man_[174]:
-Again, _they were astonished at his doctrine, for he taught them as one
-having authority, and not as the Scribes_[175]; That is, they had the
-sense to perceive there was a weight and force and importance in his
-doctrines, which they had never found in any other, and, least of all, in
-the light, frothy, and frivolous doctrines of their Scribes; and they had
-the honesty to acknowledge and proclaim their own feelings.
-
-Again; When Jesus wrought his miracles before the Jews, while their
-superiors were unconvinced, or blasphemed against conviction,
-the multitudes cried out in admiration, _Is not this the Son of
-David[176]?_—_It was never_, they say, _so seen in Israel_[177]—With a
-becoming candour and piety, _they marvelled, and glorified God, who had
-given such power unto men_[178].
-
-Thus much for the Jews. And the same difference, between the _rich and
-poor_, afterwards appeared, when the Apostles turned themselves to the
-Gentiles. So that St. James reasons upon it, as a certain fact. _Do not
-rich men oppress you, and draw you before the Judgment seats? Do they not
-blaspheme that worthy name by which ye are called[179]?_ And St. Paul to
-the same purpose, when appeals to the Gentile Christians themselves—_Ye
-see your calling, my brethren, how that not many wise men after the
-flesh, not many mighty, not many noble, are called_[180].
-
-And, if we extend our inquiries beyond the Apostolic age, we still find,
-that, while councils and synagogues, priests and philosophers, governors
-and kings, were confederated against the rising church, the _poor_,
-the _weak_, the _ignorant_, the _ignoble_, very readily, and in great
-numbers, pressed into it.
-
-Considering then this fairness of mind, which distinguished the _poor_,
-together with their multiplied necessities, we shall cease to think it
-strange that our blessed Lord should first and principally _preach the
-Gospel to them_; and that this circumstance should be predicted of him,
-and urged by himself, as characteristic of his person and office. For
-what could distinguish the divine Messiah more, than this condescension
-to those who most needed, and best deserved, his instruction? Who can
-wonder that, _when he saw the multitudes_, thus circumstanced, _he was
-moved with compassion on them, because they fainted_[181], under the
-merciless vexations of their superiors, _and were scattered abroad_[182],
-and left exposed to every injury, _as sheep having no shepherd_[183]?
-Could any splendor of miracles more illustrate his character, than
-that affectionate address to the poor people, groaning under all their
-burthens, of which the pride of wealth and wisdom was not the least,
-_Come unto me, ye that labour and are heavy laden, and I will give you
-rest. Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me, for I am meek and lonely in
-heart, and ye shall find rest to your souls_[184]?
-
-Our Lord’s whole ministry seems uniformly directed to this end of beating
-down the insolence of all worldly distinctions, which had too much
-vilified and degraded human nature. For this purpose, he condescended,
-himself, to be born in the lowest rank of life, to be brought up in what
-the world calls a mean and mechanic profession, to converse chiefly with
-the poor and indigent, to take for his companions and disciples the most
-sordid of the people, and to propagate his religion by the weakest and
-most unpromising instruments: _Chusing_, as St. Paul divinely expresses
-it, _the foolish things of the world, to confound the wise; the weak
-things of the world, to confound the things that are mighty; And the base
-things of the world, and things which are despised, yea, and things which
-are not, to bring to nought things that are: That no flesh should glory
-in his presence_[185].
-
-In a word, he seems studiously to have bent his whole endeavours, to
-vindicate the honour of depressed humanity; to support its weakness, to
-countenance its wants, to ennoble its misery, and to dignify its disgrace.
-
-Nor let any one presume to insinuate, that this conduct of our blessed
-Saviour was directed to other ends; As if he sought, by this application
-to the people, to engage _them_ in the support of his new kingdom,
-and then, by their noise and numbers, to force the rest into it. The
-suspicion is utterly without grounds. Jesus made no factious use of the
-popularity he acquired by his condescension; he discountenanced and
-repressed every effort of that nature; and, though his care was chiefly
-employed about the _poor_, it was not confined to them: He _preached_
-indiscriminately to all, he did his miracles before all, in public, in
-open day-light, in the presence of the greatest persons, and in places
-of the greatest resort; in short, his doctrines and his credentials
-were equally offered to the examination of men of all ranks and all
-denominations, of the doctors and rulers of the Jewish people, as well as
-of the people themselves. This, an impostor most assuredly would not have
-done.
-
-We have now, then, a reasonable account given us, why it pleased God that
-the Saviour of the world should be known by this mark, among others, of
-_his preaching the Gospel to the poor_. The GOODNESS of his character was
-signally illustrated, by this gracious conduct. I have only to observe,
-further, that his WISDOM was equally displayed by it: And both together
-must needs furnish a presumptive argument of his divine mission.
-
-Had the ablest speculative philosopher been consulted about the proper
-method of reforming the world, though with the attending evidence and
-authority of miracles, I suppose his plan for effecting this design would
-have been wholly different from that, which was taken. He would have
-counselled an application, not to the _poor_ chiefly, if to them at all,
-but to the _rich_, the _great_, and the _wise_. The minister of this
-important charge would have been directed to shew himself in the most
-conspicuous scene, to make the capital of the world, imperial Rome, the
-head-quarters of his mission, to perform his miracles before the Roman
-senate, and to proselyte, first of all, the wise and learned of that
-empire; As conceiving this to be the readiest way to the establishment of
-his new Religion, and trusting to the power of these great instruments,
-as to some irresistible vortex, to draw the people with them, into the
-general profession of it.
-
-This, or something like this, we may imagine, would have been the
-language of human wisdom. But what would have been the event of these
-profound and politic counsels? Most probably, the design would not have
-taken effect. The interests, the prejudices, the pride, and the very
-philosophy of the world would have revolted against it. The plainest
-miracles would have been shuffled over, as the sleights of magick: and
-the divinest truths, been derided as unlearned and ignorant conceits.
-
-But what if the event had been otherwise? What, if the new religion
-had prospered and acquired an establishment by these mighty means?
-Posterity would then have turned the argument in another manner. They
-would have accounted, and with some reason, for this revolution in the
-sentiments of mankind, not from the will of Heaven, but the power and
-policy of men. They would have sought the origin of this triumphant
-religion in the operation of human causes, and not in the controlling
-influence of divine. The new system might be preferred to many others
-that have prevailed in the world, but would be thought to have made its
-way by the same means. It would still be considered, as a mere human
-engine, calculated to serve the ends of society, and not to interest the
-conscience, as proceeding from the sole authority of God. And what could
-have been opposed to these suggestions? The cause is plainly adequate to
-the effect: And, thus, the glory of God would have been obscured; and the
-dispensation itself, exposed to contempt.
-
-See then _the riches both of the goodness and wisdom of God_: Of his
-GOODNESS, in caring for the poor; and of his WISDOM, in providing by his
-use of so unlikely means, _that our faith should not stand in the wisdom
-of man, but in the power of God_.
-
-To conclude; _the ways of God are_, very frequently, _not our ways_[186];
-Yet, when the difference is most striking, a diligent inquiry will
-sometimes convince us (as in the case before us) that they may be
-justified even to our apprehensions: The use of which conviction should
-be, to satisfy us, in other cases, that his ways are always adorable,
-even when to US, in this state of weakness and blindness, they are _past
-finding out_.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLII.
-
-PREACHED JANUARY 24, 1773.
-
-JOHN xiv. 2.
-
-_In my Father’s house are many mansions_: IF IT WERE NOT SO, I WOULD HAVE
-TOLD YOU.
-
-
-These words are not a little remarkable; and, if carefully considered,
-will be found to make very much for the honour of the Christian religion,
-and its divine author.
-
-Our blessed Lord was now upon the point of leaving the world. He foresaw,
-distinctly, his own approaching death, and the discouragements of all
-sorts, which, of course, would oppress his disciples, when he should be
-taken from them. He therefore applies himself, in this farewell address,
-to animate their courage by the assurance of future glory. “_Let not
-your heart be troubled_, says he, at the worst that may befall you: _Ye
-believe in_ the general providence of _God_: _believe also in me_, in the
-care which I shall especially take to see an ample recompence made you
-for all your sufferings on my account. _For in my Father’s house are many
-mansions_; wherein each of you, according to his deserts, shall for ever
-enjoy an inviolable repose and felicity. And on this promise ye may rely
-with the most entire confidence: for know this, That, _if it were not
-so_, no consideration should have induced me to fill your minds with vain
-hopes; on the other hand, _I would have told you_ the plain truth, how
-unwelcome soever it might be to you.”
-
-We have here, then, from the mouth of Christ himself, an express
-disavowal of RELIGIOUS FRAUD OR IMPOSTURE; and that, in a point where
-wise men have sometimes thought themselves at liberty, nay under an
-obligation, to _lye_ for the public service, and in a conjuncture, too,
-when, if ever, it might seem allowable for a good man to deceive his
-friends on a mere principle of compassion.
-
-For what so beneficial, it may be said, to mankind, at large, as
-the persuasion of a future state, in which their happiness shall be
-proportioned to their virtue? And who, that has any bowels, would carry
-his attachment to strict truth so far, as not to suffer an unhappy friend
-to _die_, at least, in this persuasion, when the hopes of life, or the
-comforts of it, had entirely forsaken him?
-
-These questions are plausible: but our Lord, who was _the Truth_, as well
-as _the Life_, governed himself by other maxims. He knew that the real
-interests of mankind are only, or are best promoted by veracity; that
-every degree of fraud, though it may have some immediate, or temporary
-good effects, is, in the order of things, productive of much mischief; is
-injurious to our moral and reasonable nature, which was made for truth,
-and finds its proper satisfaction in it; is liable to detection, to
-suspicion, at least; and if it be but the latter (entertained on probable
-grounds, and become, as it soon will be, universal), not only the chief
-benefits of the imposture are, thenceforth, lost, but truth itself,
-in other cases, is taken for imposture: of which there is not a more
-deplorable instance, than in the subject we are now considering: for,
-it being well known that men have been forward to deceive each other
-in matters of religion, and particularly in what concerns the hope or
-fear of a future state, hence, an incurable suspicion has sunk deep into
-the minds of too many, concerning Christianity itself; as if, in this
-momentous doctrine of life and immortality, it amused us only, as many
-other schemes of religion have done, with a plausible and politic fiction.
-
-But our blessed Lord, as I said, had other views of this matter, and
-governed himself by other principles. He knew, who it was that had been
-_a liar_, and therefore _a man-slayer from the beginning_[187]; and
-left it to him, the adversary of God and man, to signalize himself by
-_murderous_ deceit and imposture. For himself, he tells his disciples,
-whom of all men, it concerned him most to possess with this salutary
-belief of a future state; He tells them, I say, that, instead of deluding
-them with a groundless hope, he would certainly, and even at this season,
-which made that hope so infinitely precious, declare to them the simple
-truth, and on no account permit them to continue under a false (if it had
-been false), though flattering persuasion.
-
-Shall we believe this great teacher, on his own word? Or, will you
-suspect, that even this uncommon declaration, uncommon in the founder of
-a new religion, was only a refinement of art and policy; and that Jesus
-hoped, by this shew of frankness, to propagate his favourite imposture
-the more successfully in the world?
-
-I know, and have just now observed, to what lengths our ingenious
-suspicions on this subject are apt to run. But consider the
-circumstances; and then judge for yourselves, whether the suspicion, in
-this case, be well founded.
-
-_In my Father’s house_, says he, _are many mansions: if it were not so, I
-would have told you_. And can we doubt his sincerity in this declaration,
-when he was now to make an experiment of its truth; and the deception, if
-it were one, was first to operate on himself, before it affected others?
-A speculative reasoner, or a politic legislator, when planning his system
-at his ease, and in no danger of being called upon to make trial of
-his own principles, might discourse with much complacency, though with
-little inward belief, of a happy futurity. But for one, who was just
-stepping into that world, of which he announced such wonders, who was
-going, by one confident venture, to put his doctrine to the proof, and
-to expire in torments from a view to his own promises; for one, I say,
-thus circumstanced, knowingly to delude himself and others, is not in
-human nature, unless perverted by such a degree of weakness or vanity,
-as no man will think chargeable on the character of Jesus. Socrates, the
-ablest and the honestest of the ancient sages, had, on moral principles,
-reasoned himself into a favourable opinion of the soul’s immortality.
-He had often expressed this opinion to his friends, in terms of some
-force; and there were times in which he seemed very little, if at all,
-to question the truth of it. Yet, when he came to die, and had taken the
-fatal cup into his hand, his resolution gives way, he hesitates, and
-leaves his followers, after first of all confessing himself to be left,
-in the utmost uncertainty on this momentous topic: a conduct surely very
-natural, and becoming a wise man, who had not, and who knew he had not,
-the most convincing evidence of its reality!
-
-But there are further reasons to think that Jesus was sincere in making
-this declaration to his disciples, suggested to us by _the terms of his
-religion_, and by _his own personal character_.
-
-Those _terms_ were, that whoever believed in the name of Christ, that
-is, became a convert to his religion, was thenceforth to encounter all
-sorts of difficulties, and dangers, and distresses, nay, death itself,
-and that, in every dreadful shape, which the malice of the world could
-invent, rather than to retract or forego his open profession of it. This,
-the disciples had been often told by their Master: who, whether as a
-prophet, or a wise man (it matters not which, to our present purpose) had
-distinctly foreseen, and had set before them in all its force, what they
-were to expect and to suffer for his sake, and the sake of the Gospel.
-Other teachers of religion and philosophy required no such terms of their
-followers, or had reason to apprehend no such consequences from the
-propagation of their opinions. They might therefore keep their doubts to
-themselves, if they had any, of a future state: In Jesus, such reserve,
-or dissimulation, would have been the most unfeeling cruelty.
-
-And against whom is this suspicion indulged? Why against HIM (and that
-was the other consideration I mentioned) whose personal character was
-that of goodness and philanthropy itself. This character shines out
-in every page of the Gospel. We see it in all he said and did to his
-disciples, whom he calls his _friends_, and treats as such on all
-occasions: witness his condescension to their infirmities, his concern
-for their safety (while it might consist with their duty), his compassion
-for their sufferings, his friendliness of temper, we may even say, his
-affection for their persons and virtues. In short, the sympathetic
-tenderness of his nature was evidenced in all ways, in which it could
-possibly shew itself, even by that of tears.
-
-Now, put these two things together, his _deep concern for the interests
-of his disciples_, on the one hand, and _the severe injunctions he gave
-them_, on the other, and see if there be any possibility of mistrusting
-our Lord’s good faith in that memorable declaration—_In my Father’s house
-there are many mansions_: IF IT WERE NOT SO, I WOULD HAVE TOLD YOU.
-
-His language on the subject, so interesting to them, had, indeed,
-been always the same. _Blessed are ye, when men shall revile you, and
-persecute you, and shall say all manner of evil against you falsely,
-for my sake. Rejoyce, and be exceeding glad: for great is your reward
-in heaven[188]._ This he said in the beginning of his ministry: This he
-now repeats in the close of it; but with that remarkable assurance (now
-for the first time given, and, from the _time_ of giving it, not more
-important, than it is credible) _if it were not so_, if your _reward in
-heaven_ were not such, and so great, as I have ever affirmed it to be, in
-recompence of all your sufferings, past and to come, for my sake, I would
-not have left you under an error in what so infinitely concerns You—_I
-would_ expressly _have told you of it_.
-
-THE USE we have to make of these reflections is, to see what our _Lord’s
-character_ truly was; and what our reasonable _hopes and expectations_
-from him are.
-
-I. But for this declaration, it might be thought, that Jesus, pushed
-on by an eager ambition of being the founder of a sect, had, for his
-_own_ ends, preached up this alluring doctrine of a future state; or,
-that, heated by a moral enthusiasm, he had overlooked the mischiefs of
-his scheme, in contemplation of the _public_ ends, it might serve, as
-applied to the important interests of virtue and religion. Surmises
-of this sort might have sprung up in the minds of men, not prejudiced
-against the author of our faith; and would certainly have been cherished
-and malignantly insisted upon by his enemies. But it now appears, that
-he disclaimed all such views and purposes: that he was cool enough
-to see the iniquity of all religious deception; and just enough to
-acknowledge the cruelty of it, in the present instance. If he had not
-certainly known the truth of his doctrine, he would have recalled and
-disowned it. He felt, in his own case, what it was to encounter death
-for conscience-sake: and he knew what deaths others were to encounter
-on the like grounds of persuasion. But _for the joy that was set before
-him_, how could the shame and agony of that cross be endured? And, if
-there be no recompence of reward, should he expose to such, or to equal
-sufferings, his honest, unsuspecting, affectionate followers? The instant
-moment[189], the imposed duty[190], the foreseen event[191], the upright
-mind[192], the feeling heart[193], all conspire to satisfy us, that Jesus
-was not, could not, be the fraudulent, that is, the insensible, the
-unrelenting, the merciless inventor or publisher of a politic fable, but
-a teacher of truth and righteousness sent from God.
-
-Thus much for our Lord’s _general character_; which we shall do well to
-keep in mind, when we meditate on any part of his instructions to us;
-but more especially, when, for our singular comfort, we attend to his
-great doctrine of a BLESSED IMMORTALITY. Our divine Master has in the
-clearest and fullest terms, announced this doctrine to us; and, what is
-more, he has anxiously removed the only possible doubt, which we could
-have of its truth, by disclaiming the politic use, which too many others
-had presumed to make of it.
-
-II. It follows, that we may rely, with confidence, on this invaluable
-promise of a future life; the only source of peace and comfort to the
-mind, without which the disordered scene of this life is inexplicable to
-the wisest men, and scarce supportable by the happiest; we may, I say,
-rely with safety on this _glorious hope_[194] of immortality, unless
-we will suppose that Jesus meant to deceive us even then, when he most
-deliberately and solemnly pledged himself to us for his veracity: a
-supposition, which is, in truth, as foolish as it is indecent.
-
-Assured therefore, as we are, that our Saviour both taught this doctrine,
-and taught it without the least mixture of guile or dissimulation, let us
-hold fast our expectation of it to the end; and in all the troubles of
-this life, whether endured for conscience-sake or not, provided only they
-be such as consist _with_ a good conscience, let us reckon with certainty
-on our title to one of those eternal _mansions_, of which there are so
-_many in the house of our heavenly Father_; and that, for the sake and
-through the merits of our LORD JESUS CHRIST; the author of our salvation,
-as well as the proclaimer of it: our merciful Redeemer, at once, and
-infallible Instructor; to whom be all honour, praise, and thanksgiving,
-now and for ever. Amen.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLIII.
-
-PREACHED MAY 5, 1776.
-
-JOHN xvi. 12, 13.
-
-_I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye cannot bear them now.
-Howbeit, when he, the Spirit of truth, shall come, he will guide you
-into_ ALL TRUTH: _for he shall not speak of himself; but whatsoever he
-shall hear, that shall he speak: and_ HE WILL SHEW YOU THINGS TO COME.
-
-
-There is scarce a page in the Gospels, which to an attentive reader may
-not afford a striking proof of their divine original.
-
-We have an instance in the words before us: in which, Jesus, now about to
-leave the world, tells the disciples, that he had _many things to say
-unto them_, which were not proper for their ear at this time, but that
-these, and all other necessary truths should hereafter be imparted to
-them by a _divine spirit_, to be sent from heaven to be their guide and
-instructor: that, from _him_, they should learn what, for the present,
-he forbore to communicate to them, of his views and purposes in the
-religion, they were to teach mankind; nay, and that this divine _Spirit
-of truth would shew them things to come_.
-
-Now Jesus, I suppose, whatever else may be thought of him, will be
-readily acknowledged to have been, at least, a discreet and wise man:
-for without a very high degree of discretion and wisdom, it was plainly
-impossible for him to do the great things, he did; I mean, to be so
-successful, as he was, in imposing a new faith and religion on mankind.
-They, who take Christianity for an imposture, must confess, at least,
-that it was an imposture, artfully contrived, and ably conducted:
-otherwise, the effects of it could never have been, what we see they are.
-
-But would any man, acting on the principles of human wisdom, only, have
-given an assurance of this kind (an assurance, too, that seemed not
-_necessary_) to those whom he thought fit to entrust with the care of
-his imposture, when yet he must certainly know that he could not make
-good to them what he had promised; and when they, to whom such assurance
-was given, might easily, and, as he must foresee from his knowledge of
-human nature, would certainly abuse it, to selfish ends of their own, not
-consistent with his, and to the hurt of that very cause, which he wanted
-to promote?
-
-Say, that he had, only, told them—_this divine spirit shall instruct you
-in many things concerning my religion, which I have not, myself, thought
-fit to reveal to you_—would not this general promise have opened a door
-to all sorts of fraud, or extravagance? And could he reasonably expect
-that any well-concerted scheme of religion, such as was likely to make
-its fortune in the world, would be delivered and established by men,
-who were commissioned to enlarge his system, at pleasure, and as their
-various passions, or fancies, might suggest? And all this, on the same
-authority with that which he had claimed to himself?
-
-Suppose, they were _honest_, or, _faithful to him_, that is, disposed to
-teach nothing but what should agree to their Master’s doctrine, yet who
-could answer for their skill or judgment? And, if they were _dishonest_,
-or _unfaithful_, what ruin must not this license of building on his
-doctrine, have brought on the structure, he had already raised?
-
-When Mark Antony was allowed to _forge_ a will for Cæsar, we know the use
-he made of that liberty. But had he been a better man, than he was, and
-inclined to give out that only for Cæsar’s will, which might probably
-seem to be so, yet his capacity to make a will for Cæsar, in all respects
-uniform, and consistent with that great man’s known views and character,
-might well be called in question, notwithstanding the whole contrivance
-depended on himself; much more, if the arduous task had been entrusted to
-_eleven_ persons, besides, of different abilities and dispositions.
-
-Still, the case is more desperate, than we have hitherto supposed.
-Besides a liberty of adding what new consistent doctrines, they pleased,
-to the doctrine of Jesus, the disciples have a greater and more dangerous
-power committed to them, a power of _prophesying_, or foretelling _things
-to come_.
-
-To see how the case stands on this last supposition, consider, 1. _What
-is implied in this_ PROPHETIC _power_. 2. _What abuses are likely to
-be made of such an assumed power by_ ANY _men whatsoever_. And, 3.
-_What peculiar abuses of it were to be expected from_ SUCH _men, as the
-disciples_. Consider, I say, these three particulars, and then, upon the
-whole, determine for yourselves, whether any man of ordinary prudence
-would have commissioned his followers to exercise such a power; or, if he
-had done so, and had been an impostor, whether the event could possibly
-have been what it clearly was.
-
-1. The _prophetic power_, implies an ability of looking into the future
-history of mankind; of foreseeing what revolutions shall happen in states
-and kingdoms; what shall be the issue of depending wars, or counsels:
-what the prosperous, or adverse fortune shall be of public, or private
-persons; of those, who have any authority over us, or connexion with us;
-of individuals, or collective bodies of men; of friends, or enemies.
-Whoever has this extraordinary power committed to him, or who thinks he
-has, has the characters of all men at his mercy; can blast the reputation
-of, the wisest and best men, by a charge of follies and crimes, _not
-yet committed_; or can raise the credit of the worst and weakest, by
-covering their _future_ life with wisdom and honour. He can intimidate
-the greatest men by announcing their disgrace and ruin; or exalt the
-meanest by bringing out to view their successes and triumphs. In a word,
-he can speak peace or war, fame or infamy, life or death, to any state
-or person, against whom he thinks fit to level this powerful engine of
-inspiration.
-
-And as all men, so all _times_, are equally within his reach. He can
-pursue the objects of his love or hate through ages to come; and can
-excite hopes and fears in the breasts of those, who are not to appear on
-the stage of the world, till many centuries after he has left it, and
-when himself has nothing to apprehend, let his predictions take what turn
-they will, from the shame of detection.
-
-Such then being the nature of this mighty privilege to foretell _things
-to come_, you cannot but see
-
-2. In the next place, _how liable this power is to be abused by_ ANY _men
-whatsoever, who have a pretence to assume it_.
-
-Make, if you will, the most favourable supposition, that these pretended
-prophets are _able and learned_: But then, what endless schemes of fraud,
-of policy, of imposture, may ye not expect from the dextrous management
-of this faculty! Revolve with yourselves the history of ancient
-divination, or modern prophecy, when lodged in the hands of artful and
-designing men; and see, what portentous abuses must needs arise from this
-commission, and yet what certain disgrace and confusion to the memory of
-those, to whom it is given.
-
-What blessings will not men, entrusted with this convenient foresight
-of futurity, lavish on their own friends, or party! And what curses,
-what terrors, equally belied in the event, will they not scatter over
-the persons or affairs of rivals and enemies, for the gratification of a
-present passion or interest!
-
-Suppose them cool enough to distrust the reality of their inspiration,
-yet the temptation, to make the pretence of it subservient to their
-own views, would be almost irresistible: Or suppose them, on the other
-hand, to prophesy with good faith, this genuine enthusiasm might enable
-them to act their part more naturally indeed, but, in the end, not more
-successfully.
-
-Had then the Apostles been, each of them, as provident and wise, as
-their Master himself, and as much persuaded of their own inspiration, as
-he could desire them to be, they would not, we may be sure, have been
-encouraged by him, if an impostor only, to think themselves possessed of
-a prophetic power, when it must have turned to the ruin of his cause,
-on every supposition; I mean, equally on the supposition of its being
-regarded as a real or pretended, power; that is, whether the Apostles
-were guided by the views of a dishonest policy themselves, or were the
-honest dupes of their Master’s policy. But there is
-
-3. Still more to be said on the improbability of a wise man’s giving such
-an assurance to men _qualified and circumstanced_, as the Apostles were,
-in other words, _to men of their_ PECULIAR _character and situation_.
-
-1. The _character_ of the Apostles, was that of plain, uneducated,
-illiterate men; men, totally unacquainted with the world, and with
-those arts, which are necessary to conduct a great design with ability
-and success; men, of good sense, indeed, and of honest minds, but,
-from their singular simplicity, only qualified to report what they had
-seen or heared, and by no means provident or skillful enough to round
-and complete a scheme, but half-disclosed by its author, and that half
-delivered incidentally and by parcels to them, and ill understood.
-
-Yet to these men, Jesus declares, that much was wanting to the integrity
-of that religious system, which they were appointed to teach: and that
-all defects in it were to be supplied not by himself, but by a _divine
-spirit_, who should hereafter descend upon them, and LEAD THEM INTO ALL
-THE TRUTH[195]; nay, who should not only instruct them in such parts of
-his religion, as he had imperfectly, not at all, explained, but should,
-further, open to their view I know not what scenes of futurity, and SHEW
-THEM THINGS TO COME.
-
-These magnificent promises, you see, were likely to make a deep
-impression on the rude minds of the disciples; half-astonished, we
-may suppose, at the idea of such superior privileges, and more than
-half-intoxicated with the conceit of that pre-eminence, which those
-privileges were to bestow.
-
-Their implicit faith, too in a beloved and revered Master, would incline
-them to expect, with assurance, the completion of these promises: And
-thus, every principle, whether of simplicity, vanity, or credulity, would
-make their presumption violent, and leave it without controul.
-
-2. If we turn, next, to the _situation_ of these men, buoyed up with
-such exalted hopes and expectations, we shall find it apt to create a
-fanaticism, which, of itself, might drive them, in the absence of their
-politic Master, into any excess. These simple, over-weening men were, at
-the same time, poor, friendless, despised, insulted, persecuted; exposed
-to every injury from the number, power, and malice of their enemies, as
-Jesus indeed, had honestly forewarned them; yet stung with the desire of
-founding a temporal kingdom (contrary, it must be owned, to his express
-declaration) and of rising themselves to the first honours of it. Could
-any thing flatter their ambition more, than to be told that they had the
-modelling of their own scheme left to themselves, under the cover of a
-supernatural direction? Or, could any thing gratify their resentments,
-all on fire from ill usage, more effectually, than to be assured that
-the fates of their adversaries, all the secrets of futurity, lay open
-to their view? How oft has oppression turned faith into fanaticism,
-and made prophets of those, whom it only found zealots! And do we think
-that secular ambition, concurring with religious zeal, in the like
-circumstances, could have any other issue; especially, when the prophetic
-impulse was looked for by such zealots, and, on the highest authority,
-actually engaged to them? Or can we, who see the probability, the
-certainty, of this consequence, conceive so meanly of Jesus, considered
-in the view of a wise man only, as to imagine that He should not be aware
-of it?
-
-As then it is very unlikely that any politic impostor should make such
-a promise, as the text contains, a promise liable to be abused by _any_
-sort of men, and most of all by _those_, to whom it was made; so neither
-is it conceivable that, if a rash enthusiast had authorized his followers
-to rely on such a promise, the issue of it could have been that, which we
-certainly know it to have been.
-
-For consider, what were the additions, made to the scheme of Jesus by his
-enlightened followers, and what the prophecies delivered by them? Only,
-such additions, as served to open and display the scheme of the Gospel,
-in a manner that perfectly corresponded with the declared views of its
-author, or at least no way contradicted them: And only, such prophecies,
-as have either been clearly fulfilled, or not convicted of imposture, to
-this day.
-
-Then, again, those additions, were directly contrary to the preconceived
-notions and expectations, of those who made them; such, for instance, as
-the doctrines concerning _the rejection of the Jews_, _the call of the
-Gentiles_, _the abolition of the Mosaic ritual_, and _the spirituality of
-Christ’s kingdom_; doctrines, which, in the life-time of their Master,
-and till enlightened by the promised Spirit of truth, they had either not
-understood, or had rejected as false and incredible; yet doctrines, which
-made the principal part of those _truths_, into which they were _led by
-the Spirit_.
-
-And as to the prophecies, delivered by them, what less could one expect
-from so general, and so flattering a promise, than that they should
-be _numerous_, and, at the same time, replete with _presages of good
-fortune_ to themselves and their party, and with _terrible denunciations
-of wrath_ against their opposers? Yet nothing of all this followed. The
-predictions, they gave out, were indeed so many as to shew that the
-promise was performed to them; yet, on the whole, but _few_; in truth,
-much fewer than can be imagined without a particular inquiry into the
-number of them: And of these few, the greater part were employed in
-declaring the corruptions, that should hereafter be made of the new
-religion, they were teaching, and the disasters that should befall the
-teachers of it; and scarce _one_, directed against their present and
-personal enemies.
-
-All this is astonishing, and unaccountable an the common principles of
-human nature, if left to itself in the management of such a faculty as
-that of prophetic inspiration. And, though, on these principles, it was
-to be supposed, nay, might certainly have been concluded, that a set of
-the craftiest impostors, or of the honestest fanatics, that ever lived,
-must, in the end, dishonour themselves by the exercise of such a power,
-and defeat their own purpose; yet, to the surprize of all reflecting men,
-they have maintained, to this day, their character of veracity, not one
-of their prophecies having fallen to the ground; and, what is more, with
-so many chances against the success of their cause, they have triumphed
-over all opposition, and have established in the world a new religion
-with that force of evidence, which, as their Master divinely foretold,
-_all their adversaries have not been able to gainsay_.
-
-In a word, the EVENT has been, and is such, as might be expected, if
-the divine assistance promised, was actually imparted to them; but
-improbable in the highest degree, or rather impossible to have taken
-place, if fraud, or enthusiasm, had been concerned, either in giving, or
-fulfilling, this promise.
-
-It would be equally an abuse of your patience, and an affront to your
-good sense, to enlarge farther on so plain a point. From recollecting,
-and laying together, the circumstances, which have been now briefly
-touched, and pointed out to you, ye will conclude, That, when Jesus gave
-this extraordinary _promise_ of the Spirit to his followers, he certainly
-knew, that he should be able to make good his engagements to them: And
-that this _spirit_, being of God, would not be at the command of his
-followers, to be employed by them, as their passions, or short-sighted
-policies, might direct; but would operate in them, according to the good
-pleasure and unerring wisdom of HIM, who sent this celestial guide; or,
-in the words of the text, _that he should not speak of himself, but
-whatsoever he should hear, that_, only, _he should speak_.
-
-No ill effects would, then, proceed from the privilege of being let
-into _new truths_, or, of being entrusted with the power of foretelling
-_things to come_. And, from the very consideration, that Jesus had
-_engaged_ to confer such privileges upon his disciples, who, if not
-over-ruled in the use of them, that is, if not truly and immediately
-inspired, would, or rather must, have employed them to the discredit and
-subversion of his own design; from this single consideration, I say, it
-may fairly be concluded, especially when we can now compare the assurance
-with the event, That He himself was the person, he assumed to be, that
-is, A DIVINE PERSON; and his religion, what we believe it to be, THE WORD
-AND WILL OF GOD.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLIV.
-
-PREACHED MAY 29, 1774. T. S.
-
-ACTS i. 11.
-
-_Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up into heaven? This same Jesus,
-which is taken up from you, shall so come, in like manner as ye have seen
-him go into heaven._
-
-
-As the entrance of Jesus into the world, so his departure out of it,
-was graced, by the ministry of angels. Events, so important as these,
-deserved, and, it seems, required, to be so dignified. His birth was,
-indeed, obscure and mean; and therefore the attendance of those _flaming
-ministers_ might be thought necessary to illustrate and adorn it. But
-his ascension into heaven was an event so full of glory, that it needed
-not, we may think, any additional lustre to be thrown upon it by this
-celestial appearance. For what so likely to raise the ideas and excite
-the admiration of those, who were witnesses of this event, as the
-fact itself, so sublimely and yet so simply related in these words of
-the sacred historian—_while they beheld, he was taken up, and a cloud
-received him out of their sight_?
-
-We may presume, then, that the heavenly host were not sent merely to
-dignify this transaction, in its own nature so transcendently awful;
-but for some further purpose of divine Providence. And we find that
-purpose expressed very plainly in the words of the text; which contain an
-admonition of great importance, and direct the attention of the disciples
-to the true end, for which this scene of wonder was displayed before
-them. For _while they looked stedfastly toward heaven, as he went up, two
-men stood by them in white apparel; which, also, said, Ye men of Galilee,
-why stand ye gazing up into heaven? This same Jesus which is taken up
-from you into heaven, shall so come, in like manner as ye have seen him
-go into heaven._
-
-The Apostles, we may suppose, were only occupied with the splendor
-of the shew; or they were wholly absorbed in the contemplation of
-its miraculous nature; or they were speculating, perhaps, on the
-circumstances of it. They were asking themselves, as they gazed (at
-least, if they had possessed the philosophic spirit of our days, they
-might be tempted to ask), how the natural gravity of a human body could
-permit its ascent in so light a medium—how a cloud, which is but a sheet
-of air, impregnated with vapours, and made visible by reflected light,
-could be a fit vehicle of a gross and ponderous substance, and serve
-for the conveyance of it into the purer regions of æther, which we call
-_heaven_—or, what need indeed there was, that Jesus should be carried up
-thither; as if the God, to whom he ascended, were not in every place,
-alike; as if there were any such distinction, as high and low, with
-regard to him; as if all space were not equally inhabited by an infinite
-spirit; and as if his throne were not in the depths beneath, as well
-as the heights above, every where, in short, without respect to our
-descriptions of place, where himself existed.
-
-From such a state of mind, or from such meditations as these, the Angels
-divert the Apostles, and call off they attention to a point, which
-deserved it better, and concerned them more nearly. ’Tis, as if they
-had said, “Suspend your admiration of this glorious spectacle; suppress
-all your fond and useless speculations about the causes of this event,
-and learn from us the proper uses of it. Ye have seen your Master thus
-visibly carried up from you into heaven; by what means, ye need not know,
-and may well forbear to inquire. But this intelligence receive from us
-(and it much imports you to be made acquainted with it); this same Jesus,
-who is thus gone up from you for a time into heaven, will come again with
-the same, or even additional glory, to judge the world in righteousness;
-to see what improvements ye have made of all he has done and suffered for
-you; and to fix your final doom according to your respective deserts, or
-miscarriages. Think well of this instruction, which so naturally results
-from all he said while he was with you on earth, and from what has now
-passed before your eyes; drop all your other inquiries, and resolve them
-into this, above all, deserving your best attention, how ye may prepare
-yourselves for that day, when _he shall so come, in like manner as ye
-have seen him go into heaven_.”
-
-The weight of this angelic admonition was enough to put all curious
-imaginations to flight, and to convince the Apostles then, and all
-believers at this day, “That their true wisdom consists in adverting to
-the moral and practical uses of their religion, instead of indulging
-subtle, anxious, and unprofitable speculations concerning the articles
-of it; such especially as are too high, or too arduous for them; such,
-as they have no real interest in considering, and have no faculties to
-comprehend.”
-
-Permit me then to enforce this conclusion, by applying it to the case of
-such persons, and especially of such Christians, as have been, at all
-times, but too ready to sacrifice conduct to speculation; to neglect
-the ends of religious doctrines, while they busy themselves in nice and
-fruitless and (therefore, if for no other reason) pernicious inquiries
-into the grounds and reasons of them.
-
-1. In the days of ancient paganism, two points in which religion was
-concerned, chiefly engaged the attention of their wise men; “GOD,” and
-the “HUMAN SOUL:” interesting topics both; and the more necessary to be
-well considered, because those wise men had little or no light on these
-subjects, but what their own reason might be able to strike out for them.
-And, had they been contented to derive, from the study of God’s works,
-_all that may be known of him_, by natural reason, _his eternal power
-and Godhead_, and had then glorified him with such a worship, as that
-knowledge obviously suggested; or, had they, by adverting to their own
-internal constitution, deduced the spirituality of the soul, together
-with its free, moral, and accountable nature, and then had built on
-these principles, the expectation of a future life, and a conduct in
-this, suitable to such expectation; had they proceeded thus far in their
-inquiries, and stopped here, who could have blamed, or, rather, who
-would not have been ready to applaud, their interesting speculations.
-But, when, instead of this reasonable use of their understandings in
-religious matters, they were more curious to investigate the essence
-of the infinite mind, than to establish just notions of his moral
-attributes; and to define the nature of the human soul, than to study its
-moral faculties; their metaphysicks became presumptuous and abominable:
-they reasoned themselves out of a superintending providence, in this
-world, and out of all hope, in a future; they resolved God into fate, or
-excluded him from the care of his own creation, and so made the worship
-of him, a matter of policy, and not of conscience; while, at the same
-time, they dismissed the Soul into air, or into the spirit of the
-world, either extinguishing its substance, or stripping it of individual
-consciousness; and so, in either way, set aside the concern, which it
-might be supposed to have in a future state, to the subversion of all
-morality, as well as of religion.
-
-Such was the fruit of pagan ingenuity! The philosophers kept _gazing_
-upon God, and the Soul, till they lost all just and useful conceptions
-of either: And thus, as St. Paul says, _they became vain in their
-imaginations; and their foolish heart was darkened_[196].
-
-If from the Grecian, we turn to the oriental, and what is called,
-barbaric philosophy, what portentous dreams do we find about angels and
-spirits, or of two opposite principles, contending for mastery in this
-sublunary world; ingeniously spun out into I know not what fantastic
-conclusions, which annihilate all sober piety, or subvert the plainest
-dictates of moral duty? So true is it of all presumptuous inquirers into
-the invisible things of God, that, _professing themselves wise, they
-become fools_!
-
-But these extravagancies of the heathen world deserve our pity, and may
-admit of some excuse. The worst is, that, when Heaven had revealed of
-itself what it saw fit, this irreverent humour of searching into the
-deep things of God, was not cured, but indeed carried to a greater, if
-possible, at least to a more criminal excess; as I shall now shew in a
-slight sketch of the mischiefs, which have arisen, from this audacious
-treatment even of the divine word.
-
-2. Of the _Jewish_ corruptions I shall say nothing, because they did not
-so directly spring from a licence of speculation in the Rabbins: though
-their readiness in admitting unauthorized traditions, and in giving way
-to evasive glosses on the Law, had something of the same character in it,
-and led to the same ill effects.
-
-But when the _Gospel_, that last and best revelation of the divine will,
-was vouchsafed to mankind, it might be expected, that the most curious
-would keep themselves within the bounds of modesty and respect: that they
-would thankfully receive the information imparted to them, would improve
-it to its right use, and acquiesce in the want of that light, which it
-was not thought proper to give.
-
-But, no; the same ungoverned curiosity, that had wantoned so long in
-the schools of pagan philosophy, rioted, with a still more luxuriant
-extravagance, in the Christian church: as if that unholy flame had
-catched new strength from the fires of the altar; and the revealed
-articles of our creed had been only so much fresh fuel to feed and
-augment it.
-
-Hence, in the days of the Apostles themselves, we hear much of men that,
-_strove about words, to no profit_—of _profane and vain babblings_, that
-tended to nothing but _ungodliness_[197], of arrogant reasoners, who
-_intruded into those things, which they had not seen, vainly puft up by
-their fleshly minds[198], of_ extravagant speculatists, who allegorized
-and explained away the fundamental articles of the faith, even the
-_resurrection_ itself[199]: which, in the literal sense, was rejected as
-a gross doctrine, not suited to the apprehensions of wise men.
-
-Thus the seeds of this evil were early sown, and began to shoot up in
-those rank heresies, of which a full harvest presently appeared.
-
-The Gnostic and Manichæan impieties led the way. Others, of as ill
-name, followed from all quarters; especially from the sects of pagan
-philosophy; which now pressed into the church, and, in their haste,
-forgot to leave their quibbles and their metaphysicks behind them. The
-evidences of the Gospel had, indeed, extorted their assent: but how ill
-prepared they were for the practice of the new religion, sufficiently
-appeared, when, instead of submitting themselves to the word of God, they
-would needs torture it into a compliance with their own fancies. Every
-convert found his own tenets in the doctrine of Jesus: and would be a
-Christian only, on the principles of his pagan theology.
-
-Thus the pure and simple faith of the Gospel was adulterated by every
-folly, which delirious reason could invent and propagate; till, instead
-of _joy and peace in believing_, the destined fruits of Christianity
-_through the power of the holy Ghost_[200], all was dissonance and
-distraction: contentious pride, and fierce inexorable debate.
-
-These mischiefs continued very long; when Plato, at one time, and
-Aristotle, at another, gave the law to the Christian world; and decided
-in all questions, or rather confounded all, which the subtlety of human
-wit could extract from the plainest articles of the Christian faith.
-
-Even the barbarous ages could not suppress this fatal ingenuity. The
-wits of the school-men teemed with fresh chimæras, in the shade of their
-cloysters; as the minds of disturbed visionaries are observed to be more
-than commonly active and prolific in the dark.
-
-At length Reason grew ashamed of these more than fruitless altercations:
-and a few divine men, at the Reformation, seemed resolved to take the
-scriptures for their guide, and to shut up all their inquiries in a frank
-and full submission to the written word. Still their former bad habits,
-imperceptibly almost, stuck close to them; for which they had only
-this excuse to make, that the zeal of their opponents forced them into
-dispute. Necessity, sharpened their invention; their successes, begot
-pride; and persecution, engendered hate. In this way, and by these steps,
-it was, that the Protestants grew ingenious and dogmatical. In opposition
-to the church of Rome, they would explain doctrines, of which they
-had no just ideas; founded on texts of Scripture, which they did not
-understand. Presently, as was natural for men in their blind situation,
-they quarrelled among themselves; and their presumption, we may be sure,
-was not lessened, but increased, by this misadventure. The issue of all
-these conflicts was, an inundation of dark and dangerous writings, on
-subjects[201], which confound human reason, and in which religion has no
-concern.
-
-In process of time, however, these evils were, in part, removed.
-Philosophers[202] examined the scriptures with care, and explained them
-with reverence: and, what is more, Divines[203] became, in the best sense
-of the word, philosophers. Between them, much light was thrown on the
-general scheme of revelation. Its utility, its necessity, was shewn: its
-sublime views were opened: its evidences were cleared: its doctrines,
-vindicated: and its authority, maintained. Reason saw to distinguish
-between its own province, and that of faith: It grew severe in exacting
-its own rights: and modest in prescribing to those of the revelation
-itself.
-
-But while men of superior sense were thus intent on reforming the bad
-theology of former times, the rest were too generally involved in it.
-They were unwilling to give up their darling habit _of gazing up into
-heaven_: that is, of framing, or adopting theories, which had neither
-solidity, nor use; and of explaining mysteries, which they could not
-understand[204].
-
-Nor was the effect of this folly, merely to disgrace themselves.
-Christianity was too frequently seen in the false light, in which
-these rash adventurers had placed it: And men of shallow minds, and
-libertine principles, were ready enough to take advantage of all
-their indiscretions. For on this ground only, or chiefly, the various
-structures of modern infidelity stand. The presumptuous positions
-of particular men, or churches, are forwardly taken for the genuine
-doctrines of Christianity: And those positions, being not unfrequently
-either wholly unintelligible, or even contrary to the plainest reason,
-the charge of nonsense, or of falshood, is, thus, dexterously transferred
-on the Gospel itself. And, though the abuse be gross and palpable, yet,
-when dressed out with a shew of argument, or varnished over with a little
-popular eloquence, it shall easily pass on ill-inclined, or unwary men.
-
-It is surely time for us to benefit by this sad experience. We, the
-teachers of religion, should learn, not to be _wise above what is
-written_: And you, who would profit in this school, should not think much
-to restrain your curiosity within these bounds, which, not the Scriptures
-only, but, right reason prescribes.
-
-For let it not be surmized, that, in deducing this account of the
-mischiefs, which have sprung from ill-directed inquiries into religion,
-my purpose is in any degree to discountenance the use of reason in such
-matters. Christianity, if it be indeed divine, will bear the strictest
-examination; and it is the prerogative of our protestant profession to
-support itself on the footing of free inquiry. The way of argument is so
-far from being hurtful to the cause of revelation, that it is, in truth,
-the basis and foundation of it. We dishonour, we affront our holy faith,
-if we believe it hath, or can have any other. Only let us take heed,
-that Reason do her proper work; and that we do not dream, or fancy, or
-presume, when we think we reason.
-
-In the instances, before given, the fault was in concluding without
-premises, and in arguing without ideas. When men call this _reasoning_,
-they forget the meaning of the term, as well as mistake the extent of
-their own faculties. We cannot reason on all subjects, because there are
-many subjects which we cannot understand: And by the term, _reasoning_,
-is only meant an act of the mind, which draws right conclusions from
-intelligible propositions. The nature of the infinite Being, the mode of
-his existence, the œconomy of his providence, are inscrutable to us, and
-probably to the highest angels. Why then intrude into such things, as no
-man hath seen, or can see? All that remains is, to admit no proposition,
-which is not clearly revealed; and, for the rest, to admit, on the
-authority of the revealer, what must be true, though we cannot, in the
-way of reason, perceive that it is so.
-
-The inutility of all researches into divine things, without a strict
-adherence to this well-grounded principle, is apparent; the presumption
-of them, is ridiculous; but, above all, the mischiefs of them, are
-deplorable.
-
-Men bewilder themselves, in inextricable difficulties: they disbelieve,
-on incompetent grounds: they give up the Gospel, and, with it, their best
-hopes, for the gratification of the idlest vanity: or they mis-spend
-their time in exploring articles of faith, instead of attending, to the
-obvious end and use of them.
-
-To return to the text, which led us into these reflexions. The disciples
-were _looking up into heaven_, when they should have been considering how
-to follow him thither. Is not our folly the same, or rather is it not
-more inexcusable, when gazing, with our weak reason, on celestial things,
-we neglect the ends, for which a glympse of them is afforded to us? For
-there is not an article of our creed, which may not make us better, if
-not wiser: And obedience, that is, _faith working by love_, whatever some
-may think, is of another value in the sight of God, and of higher concern
-to man, than all knowledge.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLV.
-
-PREACHED JUNE 23, 1776.
-
-St. MATTH. xiii. 55, 56.
-
-_Is not this the carpenter’s son? Is not his mother called Mary? And his
-brethren, James and Joses and Simon and Judas? And his sisters, are not
-they all with us? Whence then hath this man all these things? And they
-were offended in him._
-
-
-We have, in these words, a striking picture of ENVY; which makes us
-unwilling to see, or to acknowledge, any pre-eminence in those, whom we
-have familiarly known and conversed with, and whom we have been long used
-to regard as our inferiors, or, at most, but on a level with ourselves.
-Our Lord’s neighbours and countrymen, who had been acquainted with him
-from his youth, could repeat the names of his whole family, and knew the
-ordinary condition, in which they lived, were out of patience to think
-that, so descended and so circumstanced, he should be grown at once into
-distinction among them, and should be taken notice of for abilities and
-powers, which they, none of them, possessed.
-
-This temper of mind, I say, is here very graphically expressed; and it
-operated among the Jews with a more than common malignity, shedding its
-venom on those, whom not their own industry, but the special favour of
-Heaven had raised above their fellows, and had commissioned to go forth
-with extraordinary powers (of which they had frequent instances in their
-history) for the common benefit of themselves and of mankind. Whence it
-acquired even the authority of a proverbial sentence,—that _a prophet
-hath no honour in his own country, and in his own house_[205].
-
-But, I mean not to enlarge, at present, on this moral topick. There is
-_another_, and very important use to be made of these words, which is,
-to let us see, “how very small a matter will serve to overpower the
-strongest evidence of our religion, though proposed with all imaginable
-advantage to us, when we _hate to be reformed_, or, for any other reason,
-have no mind to be convinced of its truth.”
-
-This strange power of _prejudice_ is exemplified in the text, and will
-deserve our serious consideration.
-
-Our blessed Lord had now given many proofs of the divine virtue, that
-was lodged in him; and was, therefore, moved, not only by the duty of
-his office, but, as we may suppose, by that regard which every good man
-hears to his country, to make a tender of his mercies to those persons,
-especially, among whom he had been brought up. Accordingly, we are
-told, that he came to his own city of Nazareth, and _preached in their
-Synagogue, insomuch that_ the people of that place _were astonished, and
-said, whence hath this man this wisdom_, which appears in his doctrine,
-_and these mighty works_, which we have seen him perform? And then,
-calling to mind the mean circumstances of his birth and family, before
-repeated, they expressed their dissatisfaction, or, as the text says,
-_were offended in him_.
-
-But, were those circumstances a reason for rejecting a _doctrine_, which
-astonished them with its wisdom; and _works_, which they owned to be
-_mighty_, and above the common power of man? Rather, sure, the opposite
-conduct was to be expected; and, because they knew certainly, from the
-mean extraction and education of him who taught and did these things,
-that he had no means of _acquiring_ his abilities (if they were at all to
-be acquired) in an ordinary way, they ought, methinks, to have had their
-minds impressed with a full assurance, that they were owing, as they were
-by himself ascribed, to the power of God.
-
-But, no: rather than admit a conclusion, which hurt their pride, and
-crossed their foolish prejudices, they stifle the strongest conviction
-of their own minds; and resolve not to receive a prophet, whom they had
-long desired and expected, who came to them with all the credentials of
-a prophet, and with the offer of what they most wanted, the remission
-of their sins, and the inestimable gift of eternal life. And all this,
-because the prophet was _the son of a carpenter_, in their own town, and
-because his _brethren and sisters_, persons of a mean condition, _were
-all with them_.
-
-When we contemplate such a conduct, as this, we are ready to say, that
-it sprung from a more than common perverseness of character, and that
-the people of Nazareth were more unreasonable and sottish, as the common
-proverb made them to be, than the rest of _Israel_[206].
-
-Yet, if we turn our thoughts on the other tribes and cities of that
-nation, on the inhabitants of Judæa, and even of Jerusalem, we shall
-find, that they reasoned no better than the men of Nazareth had done; and
-discovered equal, indeed, much the same prejudices as those, by which our
-Lord’s own countrymen had been misled.
-
-For, what else was it to say, as they commonly did, that _no prophet
-could come out of Galilee_[207]; that he could not be the Messiah,
-because his disciples were illiterate fishermen[208], and not Scribes and
-Pharisees; because none of their rulers believed on him[209]; because he
-conversed, sometimes, with publicans and sinners[210]; because he did not
-observe their minute ceremonies or traditions[211]; because he manifested
-his divine power in healing the sick, and casting out devils, and not in
-breaking to pieces the Roman empire and restoring the temporal kingdom
-of Israel[212]; because—but I need not instance in more particulars:
-Universally, the Jews, of all places and denominations, rejected their
-Lord and Saviour for reasons, the most absurd and trivial; for reasons,
-that came from the heart, and not the head, which shewed they were under
-the power of some contemptible prejudice, and would yield to no evidence,
-unless that was complied with.
-
-Still, “the Jews, in general, you will say, were unlike other people.
-Tell us how the polished Heathens reasoned on the subject of Christ’s
-mission; and whether, when the Gospel was addressed to them, they opposed
-it on the footing of those senseless prejudices, which you have enough
-disgraced.”
-
-Luckily, I have it in my power to accept this challenge; and to shew you,
-on the best authority, that those men of enlightened minds and renowned
-wisdom were as weak in their sophisms, and as childish in their cavils
-against the new religion, as the Jews themselves.
-
-We read in the Acts of the Apostles[213], that St. Paul came to Ephesus,
-a rich, learned, idolatrous city of Asia; that he applied himself more
-especially to the instruction of its Gentile inhabitants; _disputing
-daily, for two years together, in the school of one Tyrannus_, a teacher
-of rhetorick, or philosophy, as we may suppose, and a convert to the
-faith of Jesus. That his success was great, we may conclude, both from
-his long residence, and from _the special miracles_, which he wrought,
-among them. Yet, when _the word of God had grown mightily and prevailed,
-a certain silver-smith, who made silver shrines_ for the Goddess of the
-place, had credit enough with this well instructed city, because its
-trade was likely to suffer by the downfall of idolatry, to raise such
-an uproar among the people, that the Apostle’s labours were, at once,
-overturned by this powerful argument, and he, himself, compelled to leave
-them to their old infatuations: which was much such treatment, as Jesus
-himself had received from the Gadarenes; who, because he had permitted
-the devils, ejected out of one of their people, to enter into a herd
-of swine, and to destroy them, would not be saved at this expence, and
-required him, but civilly indeed, _to depart out of their coasts_. Now,
-was that _craft_, or this _husbandry_, a matter to be put in competition
-with the saving of their souls, which they had reason to expect from the
-preaching of Paul and Jesus? Or, is it not clear, that a petty interest,
-that is, a sordid _prejudice_, prevailed against the most precious hopes,
-supported by the fullest evidence?
-
-But these were _prejudices_ of the ignorant vulgar. Let us see, then,
-what success St. Paul had in a nobler scene, among wits and sages, men
-of refined sense and reason, in the head-quarters of politeness and
-civility, in the eye of Greece itself, in one word, Athens[214]. Here,
-the great Apostle, who had the charity, and the ability, to _make himself
-all things to all men_, encountered their ablest philosophers; reasoning
-with them, even before their revered court of Areopagus, on their own
-favourite topics of _God, and the Soul_, in a strain of argument, which
-was clearly unanswerable; and concluding his weighty apology with _Jesus
-and the Resurrection_. But what was the effect of all this truth on the
-minds of these liberal heathens? Why the text says—_when they heared of
-the resurrection of the dead, some_ (that is, the Epicureans) _mocked_;
-and why? because their philosophy admitted no future state: while
-_others_ (the Stoics) _said, We will hear thee again of this matter_;
-but, for as poor reason, as the other, because their philosophy taught I
-know not what of a certain renovation of the world, which, for the credit
-of their sect, they were half inclined to confound with the Christian
-resurrection. You see, in both parties, the power of prejudice; where
-yet the occasion was the most interesting, the hearers the most capable,
-the ability or the speaker, independently of his assumed inspiration,
-unquestionably great, and where the conclusion, (so carelessly dismissed)
-was, after all, a question of FACT, which had no dependance on the
-fanciful tenets of either party.
-
-I should weary you and myself, should I carry on this deduction through
-the following ages of the Christian church; and shew, as I might easily
-do, that the ablest men of science, who opposed Christianity, did it on
-grounds no better than those of these Athenian sophists. We see what
-these grounds were, in the fragments, that remain to us, of many ancient
-unbelievers[215], men, the most acute and learned of their times; while
-yet every man of sense, that now reads and considers their objections,
-will own, whether he be himself a Christian or not, that they are
-altogether weak and frivolous, and have the face not so much of sound,
-or even colourable arguments, as of faint and powerless prepossessions
-against unwelcome truth.
-
-I shall only instance in _one_ of these prepossessions, which you think
-prodigious. The Roman empire, labouring under its own vices, and many
-_physical_ evils, which then lay heavy upon it, experienced, in the
-fourth century, that reverse of fortune, which, in its turn, the greatest
-nations must expect. But by this time Christianity had spread itself
-through all the provinces, and was become the religion of the state. In
-these circumstances, the Heathens, very generally, not the rabble only,
-but the gravest and wisest of the Heathens; ascribed these disasters
-to the abolition of idolatry; and thought it an unanswerable argument
-against the faith of Jesus, that it did not maintain their empire in
-that degree of splendour and prosperity, to which, in the days of pagan
-worship, it had happily been raised. And this miserable superstition,
-which we now only pity, or, perhaps, smile at, made so deep an impression
-on the minds of men, that the greatest of the ancient fathers, and
-particularly St. Austin[216], were scarce able, with all their learning
-and authority, to bring it into contempt.
-
-Such was the power of _ancient_ prejudice against the Christian religion.
-But I hasten to set before you, in few words, what its tyranny has been
-in _later_ times.
-
-The accidental and temporary commotions, which reformed religion
-produced in our western world, furnished in the minds of many, a notable
-_argument_ against the cause of Protestantism, which, when taken up and
-improved, as it soon was, by state-policy, had, indeed, a fatal influence
-on its success. But, even as to Christianity itself, that day-spring of
-knowledge, which broke upon us at the Reformation, and, as they say,
-has been brightening from that time to this, could not disperse those
-phantoms of prejudice, which are forever haunting the human mind.
-
-Men, who piqued themselves on their sagacity, presently started up,
-and said, that, because popery had been found to be an imposture,
-Christianity was so too; and because the legendary tales of the
-cloysters had been convicted of falshood, that the Scriptures themselves
-deserved but little regard. And when afterwards these suspicions gave
-way to sober criticism and learned inquiry, _prejudices_ still arose,
-in various shapes, against the EVIDENCES, and the DOCTRINES of the
-Gospel-Revelation. We were told, that the _prophecies_ proved nothing,
-because some of them were too obscure, and others too plain. Could both
-these objections come from the oracle, Reason? Or, is it so much as
-likely, that either of them did so? when, for any thing it could tell,
-both the clearness, and the obscurity might be suitable to the occasion,
-and each, be fit, in its place. Then again, there were others bold enough
-to deny the existence of _miracles_, not, because many have been forged,
-but because none can be true. Was this, too, the voice of Reason? or, is
-not St. Paul’s appeal to common sense enough to disgrace this fancy to
-the end of the world—_Why should it be thought a thing incredible with
-you that_ GOD _should raise the dead_?[217] God, who surely has _power_
-to do this, or other miracles, when his _wisdom_ sees fit.
-
-The _contents_ of the Gospel have also been treated, I do not say with as
-little respect, but with as little shew of reason and argument, as the
-evidences of it.
-
-For instance, it was current, not long ago, that “Christianity was as old
-as the Creation;” the meaning of which wise saying was, that Christianity
-could not be true, because the _moral_ part of it was such, as nature
-taught, and had at all times been able to discover by its own light.
-Admit the fact: what follows? That therefore a divine revelation needs
-not repeat and could not occasionally enforce the laws of nature. Is
-reason, pure unmixed reason, accustomed to trifle at this rate?
-
-But the complaint now is, that nature does not teach the _doctrinal_ part
-of the Gospel. And what then? Was it not equally to be expected that what
-concerns the essence and counsels and dispensations of God should be a
-secret to nature, unassisted by revelation, as that our practical moral
-duties should lie open to its view? And, if the force of this question
-be not generally felt, there is no doubt, I think, but it will, in a
-short time. For, it is to be observed of all these idle cavils, that they
-presently vanish one after another; and, when each has had its day, is,
-thenceforth, exploded even by unbelievers themselves.
-
-But, ’tis time to come to a conclusion of this matter. The purpose of all
-I have said is, only, this, to shew, what weak and idiot prejudices have,
-at all times, been taken up against Christianity, and how generally they
-have been mistaken by the acutest of its enemies, for reasons of much
-weight.
-
-And, if all, who hear me, be led by this experience, to suspect the
-infirmity of their own minds; if, having seen the disgraceful issue of so
-many fancies, which for a time have passed for shrewd _arguments_, but
-have, afterwards, appeared to be nothing more than childish _prejudices_,
-they can be brought to mistrust those, that occur to themselves; if, in
-a word, they can be induced to question the pertinence and force of what
-they too easily consider in the light of objections to Christianity, and
-to argue soberly and cautiously at least, if they will needs try their
-skill in arguing against it; the end, I have in view, will be answered,
-and neither my pains, nor your attention, will be thrown away on this
-discourse.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLVI.
-
-PREACHED FEBRUARY 4, 1776.
-
-JAMES iv. 7.
-
-—_Resist the Devil, and he will flee from you._
-
-
-That there are Angels and Spirits, good and bad; that, at the head, of
-these last, there is ONE, more considerable and malignant, than the rest,
-who in the form, or under the name, of a _Serpent_, was deeply concerned
-in the fall of man, and whose _head_, as the prophetic language is, the
-Son of man was, one day, to _bruise_; that this evil spirit, though that
-prophecy be, in part, completed, has not yet received his death’s wound,
-but is still permitted, for ends unsearchable to us, and in ways which
-we cannot particularly explain, to have a certain degree of power in this
-world, hostile to its virtue and happiness, and sometimes exerted with
-too much success; all this is so clear from Scripture, that no believer,
-unless he be, first of all, _spoiled by philosophy and vain deceit_, can
-possibly entertain a doubt of it.
-
-The subject, indeed, in its full extent, cannot be discussed at this
-time, nor conveniently, perhaps, in this place. But it may not be
-improper to make some general reflexions upon it; such as may serve to
-rectify your APPREHENSIONS of the doctrine itself, which, as I said,
-is truly scriptural, and to suggest, at the same time, the MORAL AND
-RELIGIOUS USES, we ought to make of it.
-
-1. An opinion prevailed in the East very early, and was probably derived
-from some still more ancient tradition of the fall, corrupted, and
-misunderstood, that two, equally great and independent beings, a good
-and a bad, shared the government of the world between them; that these
-beings, of directly opposite characters, carried on a perpetual war with
-each other, crossed each other’s designs and operations, and, as either
-prevailed, produced the good or evil, the happiness or misery, of this
-life.
-
-This opinion was, afterwards, taken up by some, who called themselves
-Christians; and was especially applied by those, who loved to
-philosophize (as too many did, and, at all times, have been prone to
-do) on the secrets of divine Providence, to the solution of that great
-question, concerning the _origin of natural and moral evil_.
-
-Now, to this notion some countenance, it is thought, has been given by
-the scriptural doctrine of the Devil, who is spoken of, as _the Prince of
-this world_[218], as the _Prince of the power of the air_[219], as _the
-God of this world_[220], and in other terms of the like sort, denoting as
-well the _power_, as malignity, of this evil Being.
-
-But, though these terms are, some of them, very strong, and certainly
-imply, not the existence only, but the extensive agency and influence,
-of this wicked Spirit, yet there is no pretence or colour for supposing
-that any thing like an equality to the God of heaven and earth, or an
-independency upon him, was intended to be expressed by them. For it is
-manifest, that no writings in the world exalt our ideas of that God so
-high, or set forth his supreme irresistible and sovereign dominion in
-so strong and decisive terms, as the Jewish and Christian scriptures.
-And with regard to the particular evil being under consideration, he
-is represented as _trembling_[221] at the very apprehension of the
-omnipotent Creator, as sentenced by his justice[222], and reserved
-for the execution of it[223]; as exercising a partial, a precarious,
-a limited power in this world, working only in the _children of
-disobedience_[224], and in them, consequently, no longer than they
-continue to deserve that character; and baffled in his attempts, not only
-by the Son of God, but by the _resistance_[225], by the _prayers_[226],
-by the _faith_[227], of Christians; as a rebel indeed, yet a rebel cast
-out[228] and disabled[229], and compelled to be an instrument, like all
-other things, in the hands of the Almighty[230].
-
-But nothing shews more clearly, how abhorrent the spirit of Christianity
-is from the Manichæan doctrine, than the care that is taken throughout
-the Gospel-history to set forth the triumphs of Christ over the kingdom
-of Satan, in _casting out devils_; of which the instances are so many,
-and so circumstantially described, as if our Lord’s main or sole purpose
-had been to expose and explode that great impiety. He not only, himself,
-commanded, by a word, the devils to go out of the possessed, who
-accordingly obeyed him, and, in departing, deprecated that power[231],
-which they knew he had over them; but he, likewise, gave the same
-authority to his disciples, who went forth with his commission, and
-_returned again with joy, saying, Lord, even the devils are subject unto
-us, through thy name_[232]. On which occasion, _he said unto them_, as
-exulting in his dominion over the enemy, and in the rapid, instantaneous,
-irresistible effect of it, _I beheld Satan, as lightning, fall from
-heaven_[233].
-
-Thus much may suffice to shew, that, though the Gospel affirms the
-existence of evil spirits, and of one eminently so, yet that it gives
-no countenance to the doctrine of the two principles; as if the evil
-one were independent of the good, or that Satan could have the madness
-to think of rivalling the power of God, and of entering into a direct
-formal contest, as it were, with the Almighty. Whatever of this sort has
-been said, or insinuated, contradicts the express testimony, indeed,
-the whole tenour, of holy scripture, and is nothing but poetry, or
-misrepresentation.
-
-2. Still, on the face of that account, which Scripture itself gives, it
-must be owned, that the power of Satan is great and even dreadful.
-
-That he was permitted, in our Saviour’s time, to vex, and, in
-various ways, torment the BODIES of men, is clear from the number of
-_possessions_, we read of in the Gospel; which though some have laboured
-to explain away (as they have, indeed, the personality of the Devil
-himself) by reducing what is said of his agency to a mere figure of
-speech, yet I do not find that their attempts have, hitherto, been, or
-are likely to be, successful.
-
-That he was, also, permitted to lay such trains, and contrive such
-measures, as had a fatal effect, sometimes, on the FORTUNES of men, not
-of those only, who were the immediate instruments of his malice, but of
-good and innocent men, who stood at a distance from him, we see by the
-sad catastrophe of that council, which _he put into the heart of Judas
-to betray his master_[234]; first, in the untimely death of the traitor
-himself, and then, by a series of connected events, in the crucifixion
-of the holy Jesus; and by several other instances. And, that he still
-retains this last power, as formidable as it truly is, must be concluded,
-if it be true, as we shall presently see it is, that he insinuates
-himself into the minds of bad men, and is concerned in exciting and
-promoting their wicked purposes. But, whether he be allowed to tyrannize
-over the bodies of men, is more problematical. That, for any thing we
-know, he may operate in the way of _possession_, I do not see on what
-certain grounds any man can deny: that he does so, I would not affirm,
-because the Scripture, our only guide as to what respects the agency
-of spirits, is silent in that matter. But the inquiry is of the less
-moment, because, since the gift of _discerning_ spirits hath ceased in
-the church, we have no means of distinguishing between _possessions_ and
-_natural disorders_; and, because, if we had, there is no known cure, or
-antidote, for them.
-
-Had this been considered, all the mischiefs which have arisen from
-the trade of witchcraft and diabolism, would have been prevented. For
-they have proceeded, not from the supposed possibility of possessions,
-but from a fraudulent pretence of knowing when they take place, and
-from a superstitious belief of certain charms or spells, which may be
-applied, with effect, to the removal of them. Whereas, the fact is
-not cognizable by us, the symptoms, whether of the natural disorder,
-or of the pretærnatural infliction, being equivocal; and Christianity
-acknowledges no power in words, or ceremonies, to exorcise evil spirits.
-The only exorcism, which is now permitted to Christians, is that of
-faith and repentance, that is, of a good life; which every man may, and
-should apply, when it is needful, to his own case, and which, in that
-application, can surely do no hurt to himself, or others.
-
-And, with this explanation, I leave the matter of _possessions_. As I
-have no authority to affirm, that there _are_, now, any such, so neither
-may I presume to say, with confidence, that there are _not_ any.
-
-But, then, with regard to the influence of evil spirits at this day upon
-the SOULS of men, I shall take leave to be a great deal more peremptory.
-For this influence is so constantly supposed in the Gospel; there are
-so many admonitions, cautions, advices, relating to it; there are so
-many warnings given us by Christ and his Apostles against the snares,
-the wiles, the devices, the depths, of Satan, and these, conveyed in the
-form of general precepts, plainly calculated for the use of Christians
-in all ages; it is so expressly said, in Christ’s own parable of the
-sower, that the _tares_, that is, bad men, _are sown by the devil_, and
-that this husbandry will be carried on by him to the end of the world;
-it is so apparent, that his empire over bad men is exercised in the way
-of temptation and seduction, by putting bad purposes into their minds,
-and filling their hearts with corrupt imaginations and intentions;
-it is, besides, so evident that we are continually in danger of this
-temptation, by that clause in the Lord’s prayer, the daily prayer of all
-Christians—_deliver us from the evil one_[235]—for such is the proper
-sense of these words, which we translate, _deliver us from evil_—All
-this, I say, is so manifest to every one who reads the scriptures, that,
-if we respect their authority, the question, concerning the reality of
-demonic influence upon the minds of men, is clearly determined.
-
-Nay, there are many instances, in history, and common life, of
-prodigious, almost unimaginable wickedness, strangely conceived and
-executed, which, if they do not prove this doctrine, in the way of
-sensible experience, perfectly fall in, and harmonize with it. It seems,
-as if the soul of some men were demoniacal, as the bodies of others
-have been. Let me appeal to yourselves. Suppose that a person, duly
-commissioned for that purpose, had dislodged as many devils from Nero or
-Cæsar Borgia, as our Saviour did from the poor unhappy man of Gadara,
-would this exorcism have surprized you more in the former case, than
-the latter? or would not this miracle have furnished us with a better
-account, than we can now give, of the transcendant wickedness, which
-_possessed_ the hearts of those monsters?
-
-Indeed, in the simpler ages, our forefathers, who read the scriptures,
-and believed what they read, constantly ascribed any crime, with which
-they charged another, to _the instigation of the devil_; as you may
-see from the language of those forms, which are used, in criminal
-prosecutions to this day: and, if those charges be vow considered as
-_mere forms_, it was not always so; and a better reason will be required,
-than can be presently given, why any Christian should so conceive of
-them.
-
-3. But to all this it be said, “that the doctrine, here laid down, as
-scriptural, is strange and incredible; that it makes the virtue and
-happiness of men depend on others, and not themselves; that it supposes
-a power, adverse to the great Creator and Governor, and able, on many
-occasions, to prevail against him, which, degrades both his _sovereignty_
-and his _wisdom_; and that, above all, it represents weak simple men as
-exposed to the practices of great and subtle tempters, which overturn all
-our ideas of the divine _justice_ and _goodness_.”
-
-The objection might be expressed in more words, but you see the drift and
-force of it. Now, in answer, it would be enough to say, that, let the
-difficulties be what they will, the doctrine is scriptural. But then, as
-to those difficulties themselves, I must further say, that they are not
-peculiar to this doctrine, as revealed in scripture, but bear equally
-against the natural doctrine of God’s moral government.
-
-For do we not see that we all of us depend in a great measure, for
-the virtue and happiness we possess, on the conduct of others? Can we
-look about us, and not perceive an order of beings, I mean, _wicked
-men_, opposing themselves to the will of God, traversing his righteous
-purposes, and prevailing, for a time at least, against his primary
-intentions? Do they not pervert, corrupt, destroy multitudes every day;
-and are not the weak and simple permitted to fall into the snares of the
-wise and crafty? Do not these things evidently take place in our world,
-and is it thought any derogation from the attributes of God that they
-should be allowed to do so? Are not men, too oft, a sort of devils to
-each other, and can we wonder that vice and misery are much in the power
-of such agents? Yes, but _spiritual unseen_ agents!—Does that make any
-mighty difference? Is it necessary to suppose that _spirits_, of whatever
-rank, are privileged from abusing their free-will, and from being
-perverse and wicked, as we see men are? And, what if they are _unseen_?
-Have we reason to expect, from the present constitution of things, that
-we should suffer only from the practices of known and visible tempters?
-As if much of the vice and wretchedness of this life did not come upon
-us by surprize, as we may say, and when we think little of the cause, or
-the agent! A lye, flies in the dark, and misleads many into errors, and
-even crimes. A libel, gets abroad, nobody knows from whom, and yet shall
-tempt, perhaps drive, unwary multitudes, into rebellion. How many plots
-of wickedness are laid and succeed, when the plotter is out of sight and
-not so much as suspected! Nay, a certain cast of mind, or temperament of
-body, things, wholly unknown and unthought of by most men, shall, without
-great care and circumspection, be fatal to our virtue. Even the air, we
-breathe, (which, like the _prince of the power of the air_, is to us
-invisible) has a secret, and yet, sometimes, powerful influence on our
-passions. And shall we still disbelieve the seduction of an evil spirit,
-because he steals insensibly upon us?
-
-But the true answer to all objections of this sort, whether men or devils
-be the tempters, is, that neither shall prevail, but by our own fault,
-by some carelessness, or wilful corruption of our own hearts, which are
-always sufficiently admonished, that the enemy is at hand, when evil
-thoughts, however produced, begin to stir in them. Then is the time to
-watch, and _resist_: and our resistance, the text tells us, will not
-be in vain. And what though legions of spirits lay siege to us! We may
-call _more than twelve legions of angels_, even the holy Spirit of God
-himself, to our assistance, if we please; for _greater is_ HE THAT IS IN
-US, _than he that is in the world_[236]. So _faithful is God_, after all
-our impious surmises and distrust of his gracious providence, _who will
-not suffer us to be tempted above that we are able_, though Satan himself
-be the tempter, _but will with the temptation also_, if we be careful to
-do our part, _make a way for us to escape_[237].
-
-4. And this being the case, all objections to the doctrine here
-inculcated, fall to the ground; so that I have only to remind you, in two
-words, (for the time will not allow many) of the _moral and religious
-uses_, we ought to make of it.
-
-I shall but mention ONE, of each sort.
-
-1. In a RELIGIOUS view, the belief of this doctrine is of the utmost
-importance: for the whole scheme of Redemption is founded upon it. For
-_therefore_ Christ came into the world, and suffered upon the cross,
-_that, through death_, as St. Paul says, _he might destroy him, that had
-the power of death, that is, the_ DEVIL[238]. And, universally, _for this
-purpose_ (I quote the words of St. John) _the Son of God was manifested,
-that he might destroy the works of the_ DEVIL[239]. It concerns us,
-then, infinitely, to take heed lest, by denying, or questioning, or
-explaining away, the existence and agency of the evil spirit, we subvert
-the foundation of our faith, detract from the glory of our Saviour’s
-passion, and unthankfully _despise the riches of his goodness_ in dying
-for us: nay, and lest we blaspheme the Holy Ghost; who was given to
-_help our infirmities_[240], to _strengthen us with might in the inner
-man_[241], and therefore to save us, from the power of _that spirit,
-which worketh in the children of disobedience_[242].
-
-2. In a MORAL view it is, also, of great importance, that we entertain
-right notions on this subject.
-
-I know that the _world_ and the _flesh_ are powerful enemies enough, and
-that we need not wish to signalize our courage by a contest with any
-_other_.
-
-But if there _be_ another, we are concerned to know what our danger is,
-and to provide against it. Security is generally fatal; especially when
-the strength of the enemy is greater than we take it to be. Therefore,
-let us learn from scripture, what that strength is; and let us use all
-diligence in _resisting_ (as we have long since engaged to do) not the
-_world_ and the _flesh_ only, but also, the DEVIL. This is the advice of
-the text—_Resist the_ DEVIL. And then, too, is the advice of the Apostle
-Peter—_Be sober, be vigilant; become your adversary, the_ DEVIL, _as a
-roaring lion, walketh about, seeking whom he may devour_[243] (words, by
-the way, which put the _personality_ of the tempter out of all question);
-_Whom resist_, says he, _stedfast in the_ FAITH; under the protection of
-which shield, _we shall be able to quench all the fiery darts of_ THE
-WICKED[244].
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLVII.
-
-PREACHED MARCH 29, 1772.
-
-PROV. xvi. 6.
-
-_By the fear of the Lord, men depart from evil._
-
-
-All the authority of Solomon’s name and wisdom will, I doubt, be no more
-than sufficient to procure respect to this observation; which some may
-consider as a _trite and vulgar truth_, scarce deserving their regard;
-while others, perhaps, will not so much as allow it to be a truth at
-all, but indeed a _vulgar mistake_, arising out of the narrow views of
-ignorant or superficial declaimers. It may be slighted by one set of men,
-as conveying _no_ information, and by another, as conveying a _wrong_
-one.
-
-Let me attempt then to rescue the sacred text from both these
-imputations. Permit me to shew you, that the observation, it contains, is
-neither so generally received, as to make all further discourse about it
-frivolous and unnecessary; nor yet, on the other hand, of so questionable
-a nature, as to justify the scorn with which it is sometimes rejected.
-
-I. To those, who are such fastidious hearers of the word, as to disregard
-an important truth, because repeatedly inforced upon them, I might reply
-that such truths can never be insisted upon too much, that our duty is to
-inculcate them, _in season, and out of season_.
-
-But the fact is mistaken. We are so far from nauseating our hearers, with
-a too common and superfluous truth, when we remind them perpetually,
-that, _by the fear of God, men depart from evil_, that, on the contrary,
-very many want to be informed, or at least convinced, of it.
-
-What the text affirms, is, that the _fear of God_, or the RELIGIOUS
-PRINCIPLE, is the proper guide of life. But look now into the _world_,
-at large: there the acknowledged rule of life, is FASHION. Look into the
-_civil or political_ world: there the boasted rule of life, is THE LAW
-OF THE MAGISTRATE. Look into the _learned_ world: there too commonly the
-only rule of life is each man’s own reason, or what he proudly calls
-PHILOSOPHY.
-
-And will it now be said that _the fear of God_, is a principle too stale
-and too unquestioned to be discoursed upon and recommended to you from
-this place, when we see so large and so considerable a part of the world
-actuated by one or other of these different and discordant principles?
-But neither
-
-II. Is the truth, though far enough from being generally received, so
-slightly grounded as to justify any man in the contempt of it.
-
-It is a truth, taught of God, and revered by all wise men. It has nature,
-and reason, and experience on its side; and is only combated by the
-folly, the short-sighted policy, or lastly, the pride, of half-thinking
-and presumptuous men.
-
-For to give, now, the godless principles, I before mentioned, a short and
-separate examination.
-
-1. Tell _the man of the world_, that the religious principle is that by
-which alone he ought to govern himself, and you are presently told of the
-power and prerogatives of FASHION.
-
-“_The fear of God_, he will say, may be the proper rule of monks and
-hermits; but must be qualified, at least, in many respects, by such
-as live in the world and mix in the society of it. They who have to
-converse with mankind, are to accommodate themselves to their notions
-and practices: they are to think with the rest of the world, or at least
-they are to act with them: they are to found their moral systems on the
-liberal and enlarged basis of approved use or custom. Their observation
-of human life must inform them of the ways that men take to conciliate
-the good will of their fellows, to prosecute their own advantages in
-the world, and to acquire the confidence and esteem of that society, in
-which they are stationed. What they find to be the rule of others, must
-be a rule to themselves. To do otherwise is not weakness, only: It is,
-besides, arrogance, incivility, inhumanity.”
-
-All this is thought plausible by some men; and taken together, it must
-be owned, forms a very easy and commodious system: but how consistent
-with conscience, with duty, and with common sense, they will do well
-to consider. For if _fashion_ only be to regulate our conduct in all
-cases, I ask not what becomes of piety, but of humanity itself, I mean of
-those offices which we owe to others and to ourselves, and which reason
-dictates to us in every situation. Custom, you will say, is practical
-reason. But what! To be led blind-fold by the prevailing practice,
-whatever it be, what is it but to renounce our intelligent nature, and to
-live at hazard, and without reason? Further still: If it be sufficient to
-do as we see others _creditably_ do, without examining any farther, we
-shall often find ourselves involved, I do not say in the most irrational,
-the most inconsistent, but the most horrid practices. Then, killing with
-malice and with forethought, if the point of honour prevail, will be no
-_murder_: And, adultery, if the law of politeness so ordain, shall hide
-its atrocious nature under the mask of _gallantry_: Then shall society
-at large become a scene of fraud and rapine; good faith, shall be termed
-_simplicity_, and fair dealing, _folly_.
-
-Go now, and say that _the fear of God_ is a needless restraint on free
-spirits; and count the advantages which ye have reason to promise to
-yourselves, from acknowledging no other guide of life, but _imperious
-fashion_!
-
-2. A graver set of men come next, and tell us, “That _fashion_ is indeed
-a very uncertain guide of life: But that LAW, the result of the public
-wisdom, armed with the public force, is an adequate rule of human action;
-that the legislator’s province is to enact such salutary laws, and the
-magistrate’s duty, to carry them into execution, as shall be sufficient
-to secure the peace and order of society; And that every other rule of
-life is at once unnecessary and ineffectual: _unnecessary_, because the
-interests of virtue are amply provided for by the wisdom of law; and
-_ineffectual_, because no other principle has force enough to exact
-obedience: That, in particular, _the fear of God_ is too remote a
-consideration to restrain the tumultuous passions of men, which are held
-in subjection by nothing but the instant terrors of civil justice; in a
-word, that where the law of the state is duly enforced, there is no need
-of other restraints; and that, lastly, to lay a stress on _the religious
-principle_ is to weaken the operation of law, as it opens a door to
-fanaticism and superstition.”
-
-This plea of the politician receives an apparent force from this certain
-truth, That law is indeed of indispensable necessity, and that the
-general virtue and happiness of a people cannot be maintained without it.
-We join him therefore very cordially in this encomium on civil justice;
-but must remind him, withal, that neither is the religious principle
-superseded by it, nor can civil justice itself maintain its due course,
-without the support of the religious principle: That, when the authority
-of law has done its best, there will be much for religion to controul
-and regulate; _much_, that is not within the reach of law, and without
-its jurisdiction: That _the fear of the Lord_ penetrates deeper and
-farther, than the sword of the magistrate; and that, even within his own
-province, all his policy and all his power will take a very imperfect
-effect, without the concurrence of a higher principle; as he himself
-is abundantly convinced from the necessity of fortifying his own most
-important constitutions, by the religion of an oath; which is nothing
-else but an appeal to the fear of God, under a sense of its being a
-needful supplement to the fear of the magistrate.
-
-Yet society, they say, is entirely upheld by the authority of law; at
-least, the world may go on very well, by virtue of that only. Yes; It
-may go on, as we see it does, full of open violence, which all its
-terrors cannot restrain; and of secret frauds, for which it cannot so
-much as project a remedy: It may go on, indeed, but polluted by vices of
-all sorts, which are not the objects of law, and even by crimes, which
-are often too strong for it: It may go on indeed, till the religious
-principle be quite effaced from the minds of men (if we may have leave
-for a moment, to put so desperate, and, thank God, so impossible a case);
-but, when that dreadful time comes, society itself, with all its bulwark
-of laws, must inevitably be swept away with it.
-
-Universal history bears testimony to this awful truth; there being no
-account of any state on the face of the earth, which could ever support
-itself in general virtue, or general happiness, by the mere force of its
-civil institutions. And how should it be otherwise, when the fear of God
-is requisite to enforce the law, as well as to observe it; to supply the
-state with faithful magistrates, as well as with obedient subjects?
-
-If then this vital principle of religion, so necessary to the
-conservation of all states, cannot be kept free from some mixture of
-fanaticism or superstition, we are surely to endure the inconvenience,
-as we can, rather than put the interests of society to hazard by
-suspending them all on the weak and false supports of an irreligious
-policy.
-
-3. Lastly, the PHILOSOPHER’S plea, though specious at first sight, is of
-all others the weakest. For _fashion_, if it chance to be on the side of
-virtue, will be punctually followed: And the sword of the _magistrate_
-can, in part, at least, enforce obedience. But what coercive power is
-there in _philosophy_? It may see and determine right: but who, or
-what shall compell this supreme directress of life to observe its own
-determinations? “The fitness, it may be said, of those determinations
-themselves; the very reason of the thing being the proper restraint of
-reasonable natures.” Still the question returns, What if I am disposed
-to throw off this restraint? I act against conviction, indeed, and am
-self-condemned, which to a liberal mind is no small punishment. But
-look into the world, and see if that punishment be sufficient to induce
-the bulk of mankind, nay the gross body of philosophers themselves, _to
-depart from evil_.
-
-And what, after all, is this magnified reason? One man admits no other
-rule of life but _abstract truth_, or what he calls _the differences of
-things_: Another, will hear of none, but an instinctive _moral sense_:
-And a third, entrenches himself within the narrow circle of _private
-happiness_. These several systems have been laid down, each in its turn,
-as the only proper basis of moral action: But could the patrons of them
-be made to agree in any one; or could their several schemes be made, as
-perhaps they might, to consist together: still, they could only serve to
-acquaint us what the nature of virtue is; they do but slenderly provide
-for the practice of it.
-
-Let the philosophers, then, debate this matter among themselves. It is
-enough for _us_ to learn of Solomon, _to fear God_: To fear HIM, who is
-everywhere and essentially present; who is conscious to all our actions
-and all our thoughts; from whose knowledge there is no escape, from whose
-justice there is no appeal, and to whose power there is no hope, or
-possibility of resistance.
-
-With this principle, an unquestioned principle of reason, if there be
-any, deeply rooted in the mind, we have indeed an adequate rule of life;
-or, what is better, a controuling motive to put in practice whatever rule
-of life we chuse to follow. Moral systems, taken by themselves, are poor
-ineffective things; even virtue’s self is but a name, till the religious
-principle be infused into her. Then it is, that she lives and acts, and
-by her powerful influence inclines the hearts of men _to depart from
-evil_.
-
-Nor let any man apprehend that this religious fear will degrade, or
-servilize his virtue. To be free from sin, and only the servants of God,
-is the truest and noblest liberty.
-
-Dismissing, then, all other rules of life, let us adhere to that, which
-Solomon prescribes to us. It had been venerable from any hands, but
-comes with an extraordinary grace and propriety from HIM, who delivers
-it. So that none of the parties, concerned in this discourse, can excuse
-themselves from paying a peculiar deference to his judgment.
-
-1. The MEN OF THE WORLD can have no pretence for declining this
-determination. The author of it is no obscure sordid moralist, whose
-views of life are confined to a cloyster or a cottage. He addresses them
-from the throne of Israel, when it was the pride of the East; and from
-the center of a court, which he had made the envy of the surrounding
-nations. The followers of fashion will then act but agreeably to their
-own principles, if they respect the example of such a court, and the
-authority of its sovereign.
-
-2. The POLITICIANS will reflect, that their instructor is himself a great
-magistrate, consummate in the arts of government; who yet could find no
-secret, but that of _the fear of God_, by which he could reign securely
-himself, or promote the real welfare and prosperity of his people. With
-what complacency do they sometimes urge a political aphorism, taken from
-Aristotle! _But a greater than_ Aristotle _is here_.
-
-3. Lastly, to you, the sages of the world, who are, or account yourselves
-PHILOSOPHERS, nothing can be so respectable to you, as the authority of
-ONE, whose name is the name itself of wisdom; of ONE, who, like you,
-_had given his heart to know wisdom_[245]; who had an understanding, at
-least, equal to yours, and an experience of life, far greater. Yet even
-HE delivers it, as the result of all his knowledge, _That by the fear of
-the Lord men depart from evil_.
-
-It is indeed this principle only, which gives its proper direction and
-integrity to every other. It controuls Fashion; supplies the defects
-of Law; and enforces the conclusions of Reason. It rectifies all our
-systems, and gives sense and solidity to all our speculations.
-
-To conclude, Let us all be wise enough to reverence the plain doctrine of
-the text, and to act upon it: The rather, as that doctrine is not only
-just and reasonable in itself, but proceeds from one, whom the Spirit of
-God had been pleased to inform with celestial wisdom.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLVIII.
-
-PREACHED MAY 31, 1772.
-
-1 COR. vi. 12.
-
-_All things are lawful unto me; but all things are not expedient: All
-things are lawful for me; but I will not be brought under the power of
-any._
-
-
-It would be taking up too much of your time, and of this discourse,
-to explain minutely the occasion of these words, and the connexion
-they have with the general argument of this chapter. Let it suffice
-to say, that they are introduced as an answer to something which the
-Corinthian Christians did, or might alledge for their neglect of the
-instructions, given them by the Apostle. We may conceive them to speak
-to this effect—“What you enjoin us so strictly to avoid, is not one of
-those practices which can be deemed unlawful: it is not, as we conceive,
-condemned by the law of nature, certainly, not by the law of that society
-to which we belong. Now in matters of this kind, there is no need of
-advice or direction: the things being indifferent in themselves, we may
-do as we please, and we are disposed, in the present case, to make use of
-our Christian liberty.”
-
-To this plea, or suggestion, the Apostle replies in the text: “Admitting,
-says he, the truth of what ye alledge for yourselves, it does not follow
-that I may not properly and usefully direct your conduct, in the present
-case. For suppose that _all things are lawful to me, all things are not
-expedient_: And, again, _though all things are lawful to me, I will not
-be brought under the power of any_.”
-
-St. Paul, you see, does not stay to consider whether the things forbidden
-to the Corinthians, were _lawful_ or not (though possibly they might
-mistake in that assumption, as licentious or thoughtless people, we know,
-every day do) but, be this as it may, he insists that he had reason
-to lay them under some restraint even in _lawful_ things, because the
-practice of such things was inexpedient, in many respects; And because,
-if all other considerations might be overlooked, it is enough that an
-unrestrained indulgence in them begets slavish habits, and would, in the
-end, destroy, or very much impair, their moral freedom.
-
-Of the words, thus far opened, I propose to make this use; to dissuade
-you from giving a full scope to the pursuit even of innocent pleasures;
-and that, from the two considerations, expressed in the text:
-
-I. That such devotion of ourselves to them is, on many other accounts,
-hurtful and improper—_all things are not expedient_: And
-
-II. That, in particular, it violates the dignity of human nature, by
-taking from us, or weakening to a great degree, that manly authority of
-reason, that virtuous self-command, which we should always retain, and
-be in a condition to exert, even in indifferent matters—_I will not be
-brought under the power of any_.
-
-1. Wealth and prosperity have a natural tendency to alter, that is, in
-the language of moralists, to _corrupt_, the public manners. Hence it
-is that the old English habits of plainness, industry, and frugality,
-are, now, exchanged for those of indulgence, dissipation, and expence.
-All the elegant accommodations of life have an unusual stress laid upon
-them; and there seems to be a general effort to advance them all to the
-last degree of refinement. The superfluous, which we call the fine arts,
-excite an universal admiration, and administer, in ten thousand ways,
-to a luxurious, which, again, takes the name of a polite, indulgence.
-Hence, society, which used to fill only the vacant intervals of business,
-is now become the _business_ of life; and yet is found insipid (so
-insatiable is the love of dissipation) if it be not, further, quickened
-by amusements. These have multiplied upon us so prodigiously, that they
-meet us at every turn, and in every shape; nay, are grown so common, that
-they would almost lose the name of amusements, if every possible art were
-not employed to give a poignancy to them, and if fashion, after all,
-more than the pleasure they afford, did not support the credit of them.
-As the last resource of the weary disappointed mind, we have found means
-to interest our keenest passions in one species of amusement, which is
-therefore called _play_, by way of eminence; and is become the favourite
-one, because the most violent: just as the hottest cordials succeed to
-the free use of strong liquors.
-
-In this state of things (a very alarming one, in all views) nothing
-threatens the utter ruin of the little virtue, that is left among us, so
-much, as the general persuasion, that such pursuits may be indulged to
-any degree, because they are commonly acknowledged to be _lawful_. Here,
-then, the distinction of the Apostle comes in very seasonably, and may,
-one would hope, be pressed on the lovers of pleasure, with some effect.
-We may question, it seems, the _expediency_ of these pursuits, how
-indifferent soever they be in their own nature; and a little reflexion
-will shew that they are, indeed, _inexpedient_, that is, unprofitable,
-unadvisable, improper, in a great variety of respects.
-
-I do not suppose, at present, that the expence of them is ruinous to
-those, who devote themselves to these pleasures (for then they would
-plainly not be _lawful_ to such persons); but consider, if you can afford
-to pay the price of them ever so well, they take up too much of your
-time: abundantly too much, if you have any profession to follow, or to
-prepare yourselves for, as most men have; but too much, if you have not,
-because it might, and should be employed on better things.
-
-Then, of the little time, they leave to yourselves, they disable you, in
-some degree, for making the proper use. For they dissipate the attention;
-they relax the nerves of industry and application; they spread a languor
-over all the faculties, and make the exertion of them, to any valuable
-purpose, painful at least, if not impossible. We hear it generally
-observed, that there is a scarcity of able men in all the departments
-of life. Can it be otherwise, when the vigour of the mind, which should
-nourish all great and laudable efforts, which is so requisite to push the
-active powers of invention, or recollection, to their full extent, is
-wasted on trifles, is checked by frivolous habits, and left to languish
-under them?
-
-Or say, that you have force of mind enough to elude this so natural
-effect of dissipation, is it nothing that, by giving your countenance
-to it, you draw in weaker spirits to make the dangerous experiment?
-that you help to propagate the enfeebling passion through all quarters,
-till, from this authorized scene of vanity, the Capital, the contagion
-spreads (as we see it now does) to the smaller towns, and even to
-private houses, in the remotest provinces? that you contribute to make
-respectable I know not what frivolous and worthless arts, and, of course,
-to multiply the professors of them, to the great discouragement and decay
-of useful industry? that you hurt the interests of society, by giving an
-air of importance to the veriest trifles, and by diverting on these the
-attention, and the passion, that should regularly, and would otherwise,
-exert themselves on nobler objects?
-
-I might push these questions still further. For I remember what history
-attests, and what wise men have said, on the chapter of _polite arts and
-elegant amusements_.
-
-“They tell us, how sad a sign[246] of the times it is, when they grow
-into general repute among us; that from incessantly indulged appetites
-(let the object of them be what it will) such an impotence of mind may
-follow, such a lust of gratification, such an impatience of controuling
-a predominant fancy, as shall overleap all the fences of discretion and
-virtue. The dæmon of taste, say they, shall be obeyed, in defiance of
-every private and public duty, till distress, disgrace, and infamy break
-in upon us; till we seek the relief of our wants in fraud and rapine,
-involve the public ruin in our own, and, in the end, rush blindfold,
-through an extreme of profligacy, to desperation.”
-
-To this effect, and in this tone, have some inveighed against our more
-refined and elegant _amusements_. But I return to what are commonly
-known by that name: and with respect to these, allow me to say that the
-life of man is a serious thing[247]: so serious, that dissolute, I mean,
-untempered, continued mirth, or pleasure, is not of a piece with it[248].
-Our virtue, our hopes, nay, our present happiness depends on keeping the
-mind in a firm and steady frame. Whatever encroaches on this manliness of
-temper, is pernicious, and unchristian.
-
-I will indulge the extreme candour to suppose, that, in a constant round
-of _lawful_ amusements, you do not forget, or intermit your moral and
-religious duties. But with what spirit are they performed? With disgust,
-I doubt; but certainly, with indifference. Nor is this the worst.
-Temptations are to be expected in this life: and in what condition are
-we to meet them? Nay, we expose ourselves to needless temptation, even
-in the midst of these _lawful_ pleasures; and we bring no power with us,
-hardly the inclination, to withstand it. The present scene distracts
-the mind, and fascinates the senses. And, in this delirium of the whole
-man, without God in his thought, or heaven in his eye, what wonder if he
-become the sport, and, almost before he is aware, the victim of every
-passion!
-
-Still he is not happy in this feverish state: at most, he but forgets
-himself, for a moment: and the intervals of his amusement, which, in the
-nature of things, must be many and long, are filled with disgust and
-languor. Nay, the very amusement wears out by frequent repetition. And
-then such a sickliness of mind succeeds, and such a weariness of living
-on in a too much used and exhausted world, as is insupportable and fatal
-to him[249].
-
-You see then there are many good reasons, which shew the inexpediency of
-prosecuting even _lawful_ pleasures with an unrestrained passion. But,
-if all others were away, there is ONE consideration still behind, and of
-so much weight, that St. Paul scruples not to make a distinct argument
-of it, and to press it on the Corinthian Christians, as fully decisive
-of the point in question—_All things are lawful for me; but_ I WILL NOT
-BE BROUGHT UNDER THE POWER OF ANY—And to unfold this argument is what I
-proposed to myself
-
-2. _Under the second head of this discourse._
-
-It should be the ambition of every man to preserve the independency of
-his own mind on all his natural or acquired inclinations. The dignity
-of his character depends on this supremacy: and his virtue is no longer
-secure, than while he retains the power, on all occasions, to exert it.
-
-1. The stoical wise man was exposed to much ridicule by taking to himself
-the name and office of a king. The pretensions were high, no doubt, and
-the language, something arrogant and ostentatious. But, let the terms, we
-employ, be what they will, all philosophy, that deserves the name, must
-agree in this, That to have the command of himself, is the duty, and
-chief distinction of a wise man[250]. There is, then, a consistency and
-harmony in his whole conduct. We naturally respect those who give this
-proof of respecting themselves; and we place an entire confidence in the
-vigour and uniformity of their character.
-
-Again: though the virtue of self-denial shine out to most advantage in
-the conquest of ardent passions and violent temptations, its use is
-not inconsiderable in curbing all the lighter fancies. The reason is,
-that custom prevails insensibly, and reaches farther than we, at first,
-intended. By humouring the mind in trifles, we teach it to presume on its
-own importunity, in greater matters: and it will be found a convenient
-rule in the management of our passions, as of our children, to refuse a
-compliance with them, not merely when they ask improper things, but when
-they ask any thing with impatience.
-
-Even our curiosity, an innocent and useful passion, should be kept
-within bounds, and not indulged, as we see it is, on every occasion that
-presents itself to us.
-
-The continence of Scipio has been much and justly applauded. But he
-went a step too far, in seeing his captive. He triumphed, indeed, over
-the stronger temptation, but he was not enough on his guard against the
-weaker: by complying too easily with a frivolous curiosity, he risked the
-honour of that virtue, which a pagan historian finds so divine in ONE,
-who was _et juvenis, et cœlebs, et victor_[251].
-
-To apply these reflexions to the case before us. It may seem to be
-a matter of great indifference, whether we indulge an inclination
-for _lawful_ amusements, or not. But the dignity of our character is
-concerned in keeping a strict hand over our inclinations of every sort:
-and, if it were only for an exercise of self-government, it would be
-worth the while to moderate, that is, frequently to suspend, the use of
-a favourite, though innocent gratification. To be enslaved by vicious
-habits, is the ignominy of a little mind: to be superior to all, is the
-glory of a great one.
-
-2. But, in truth, there is no security in any case, if we let go this
-_habit_ of self-government. One compliance inevitably brings on another;
-and, though we set out with the design of stopping at a certain point, we
-shall almost fatally be carried much farther. We meant to acquiesce in
-this, confessedly harmless, indulgence: constant use makes it insipid;
-and then we venture on one of a suspicious character. Being now on the
-confines of vice, we are easily pushed into that quarter; with some
-doubt and hesitation, at first; but scruples give way, as the habit
-strengthens, and all vices being connected with each other, especially
-all of one sort, we, by degrees, make the trial of all: and thus, from
-an innocent fancy, or inclination, indulged too freely, at setting out,
-we slip insensibly, and beside our purpose, into manifest, perhaps
-universal, dissolution.
-
-So salutary, so divine is the resolution of the Apostle! _All things are
-lawful for me: but I will not be brought under the power of any._
-
-To interdict amusements, altogether, to the vivacity of youth, would be
-severe and cynical. They are abundantly too numerous, at present, and too
-much frequented: but many of them are supposed to be, and some, without
-doubt, are, in themselves, _lawful_. Of these, only, I am now speaking:
-and even of these it must be affirmed, that the unrestrained use of them
-is _not expedient_; as, for the other reasons suggested to you in this
-discourse, so chiefly, because it degrades the man, and enslaves him.
-
-To conclude; the safe and manly part is, _to be temperate in all
-things_[252]: to make our pleasures, the occasional relaxation[253] of
-the mind, and by no means the employment of it: not, perhaps, to affect a
-total abstinence from them, which the world would account an incivility;
-but resolutely to forbear all vicious, or but suspected pleasures: and,
-for the rest, to keep a great deal on this side of what is thought
-allowable in the use of them.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON XLIX.
-
-PREACHED JULY 5, 1772.
-
-MATTH. v. 38, 39, 40, 41.
-
-_Ye have heared that it hath been said, an eye for an eye, and a tooth
-for a tooth. But I say unto you, that ye resist not evil_: but _whosoever
-shall smite thee on thy right cheek, turn to him the other also_: And,
-_if any man will sue thee at the law, and take away thy coat, let him
-have thy cloke also_: And _whosoever shall compel thee to go a mile, go
-with him twain_.
-
-
-I suppose, if these words had been found in any book whatsoever, except
-the Bible, no man of sense could have entertained the least doubt of
-their meaning. But, while one sort of readers think they do honour to
-God’s word by taking every precept in the most strict and rigid sense,
-and another, by the same mode of interpretation, hope to dishonour it, we
-may expect that, between them, the usual rules of criticism will be very
-little regarded.
-
-The text refers us to a law of Moses, which established the _jus
-talionis_, or _right of retaliation_[254]. This law, in the main, is
-consonant to natural equity; was of general use and authority in ancient
-times; has, with some modification, been adopted by legislators of
-all times; and was peculiarly fit, or rather necessary, in the Mosaic
-institute, composed in a very remote age of the world, and addressed to a
-fierce and barbarous people.
-
-But this, so reasonable law, had undergone a double abuse in our
-Saviour’s time. What was designed, in the hands of the magistrate, to
-prevent future injury, was construed into an allowance of private and
-personal revenge: And, again, what was calculated to prevent great and
-outrageous injuries, was pleaded in excuse for avenging every injury. The
-Jews retaliated, at pleasure, on those that offended them, and for the
-slightest offence.
-
-Our divine Master, then, without derogating from the law, when
-administered in due form, and on a suitable occasion, applies himself to
-correct these so gross perversions of it—I _say unto you, that ye resist
-not evil_—that is, that ye do not retaliate on the person, that does you
-an injury, in the way of private revenge; or even of a public suit, for
-small and trivial injuries.
-
-You see, our Lord’s purpose was, to oppose the mild spirit of the Gospel
-to the rigid letter of the law, or rather to an abusive interpretation
-of it: And this purpose is declared in three familiar and proverbial
-sayings, which, together, amount to thus much; “That, when a small or
-tolerable injury is sustained by any one, either in his person, or
-property, or liberty, it is far better (and was, thenceforward, to be
-the law of Christians) to endure patiently that injury, or even to risk
-a repetition of it, than, by retaliating on the aggressor, to perpetuate
-feuds and quarrels in the world.”
-
-That such is the meaning of the text, would appear more evidently, if
-the injuries specified were, further, considered with an eye to the
-sentiments and circumstances of the Jewish people. _A blow on the cheek_
-was, always, an indignity, no doubt; but the sense of it was not inflamed
-in a Jew by our Gothic notions of honour; though, if it had, the divine
-Saviour[255] would scarce have advised his followers to extinguish it
-in the blood of a fellow-citizen: the loss of a _vest_[256], or under
-garment, was easily repaired, or not much felt, in the cheap and warm
-country of Judæa: and the _compulsion to attend another_[257], on his
-occasions, was not much resented by a people, that had been familiarised
-to this usage by their foreign masters.
-
-But, without scrutinizing the expression farther (which, as I said, is
-of the proverbial cast, and, therefore, not to be taken strictly) it
-appears certainly, that the rule enjoined is no more than this, “That we
-are not to act on the old rigid principle of _retaliation_, but rather to
-exercise a mutual patience and forbearance, in our intercourse with each
-other, for the sake of charity and peace.”
-
-Still, it has been asked, whether this rule be a reasonable one, and
-whether the conduct, it prescribes, be not likely to do more hurt, than
-good to mankind?
-
-The ground of this question is laid in following considerations:
-
-First, that resentment, being a natural passion, was, without doubt,
-implanted in us for valuable purposes, and that its proper and immediate
-use is seen in repelling injuries:
-
-Secondly, That to eradicate, or to suppress this movement of nature, is
-to dispirit mankind, and to effeminate their character; in other words,
-to make them unfit for the discharge of those offices, which the good of
-society requires:
-
-Lastly, That this softness of temper is injurious to the individuals, in
-whom it is found, as it exposes them to many insults, and much ill usage,
-which the exertion of a quick and spirited resentment would enable them
-to avoid:
-
-From all which, conclusions are drawn very unfavourable to the doctrine
-of the text, and to the honour of our divine Master. It will, then, be
-proper to give the premises a distinct and careful examination. And,
-
-I. _The use of the natural passion of resentment is not superseded by the
-law of Jesus._ For the legitimate use of this passion is to quicken us
-in repelling such injuries as would render human life wholly burthensome
-and uneasy to us, not of those petty affronts and discourtesies which
-afflict us much less by being dissembled and forgiven, than by being
-resented and returned. Now Christianity does not require us to renounce
-the right of nature in repelling injuries of the former class. The law
-in question, as explained by our Lord himself, does not, we have seen,
-import thus much: and for the rest, the appeal is open to the principles
-of nature and common sense—_Why even of yourselves judge ye not what is
-right[258]?_ The practice of the Apostles (the best comment on the law)
-shews, too, that, on certain critical and urgent occasions[259], they
-scrupled not to take advantage of those principles. So that universally,
-as it would seem, where the ends of self-preservation, or of prepollent
-public utility, require and justify resistance in other men, there it
-is left free for Christians, likewise, to _resist evil_; the purpose of
-their divine legislator being, in this instance, to explain the law of
-nature, and to guard it from the abuse of our hasty passions, not to
-abrogate, or suspend it.
-
-If any case be excepted from the general permission, it is that of
-_persecution for the sake of his religion_. And possibly this exception
-was made in the early days of Christianity, to afford a striking proof to
-the world that this religion owed its success to the divine protection
-only, and not to the power of men. Accordingly, the command given in
-that case has an extraordinary, that is, a suitable, promise[260],
-annexed to it. But the end of God’s special providence having been
-answered, and the prophecies accomplished[261], by the patience of the
-saints under the fiery trial of persecution in those days (whence the
-miraculous establishment of our religion is evinced) it seems allowable
-to suppose that the Christian world was, thenceforth, in this, as in
-other instances, to conduct itself by the ordinary rules and principles
-of human wisdom; provided that the object of that wisdom be necessary
-_self-defence_, and not dominion, or revenge, which, in all the forms of
-either, Christianity forbids and reprobates.
-
-But be this as it may, in cases where religion is not concerned, it
-seems clear that Christians are left at liberty to repell intolerable
-oppressions by all those means, which human wisdom dictates. And there
-is no need of drawing the line very exactly between _tolerable_ and
-_intolerable_ injuries, because the aggressor, knowing the force of
-instinctive passion, has reason, always, to fear, that it will begin to
-operate too soon, rather, than too late.
-
-The apprehension, then, that the proper use of the natural passion,
-“_resentment of injuries_”, is likely to be defeated by the patient
-genius of the Gospel, is weakly entertained: While, on the other hand,
-every one must see the convenience of putting this fiery sentiment of
-indignation under some restraint, and of interdicting the exertion of it
-in cases, to which so violent a remedy is ill and hurtfully applied.
-
-But
-
-II. It is said, that this doctrine of the Gospel tends to _dispirit and
-effeminate mankind_, and to _render Christians unfit for many offices,
-which society requires of them_.
-
-What these offices are, one does not readily conceive, since it is
-allowed that _evil may be resisted_, when it becomes excessive, that is,
-when it is worth resisting. But, I suppose, the objectors mean, this
-patient spirit of Christianity damps the vigour with which it is for the
-interest of men in society that their civil rights should be asserted, or
-a foreign enemy repelled: they think, in short, it makes _bad citizens_,
-and _worse soldiers_.
-
-Now to the FORMER charge I reply, that it only tends to check, or
-prevent, the turbulent, the factious, the seditious spirit of any
-community (which is surely doing it no hurt) while, at the same time, it
-allows men to assert their essential civil interests by every reasonable
-exertion of firmness and courage; nay, inculcates those principles of
-a disinterested love for mankind, and what is properly called a public
-spirit, which make it their duty to do so. And they will not do it with
-the less effect, for waiting till the provocation given appear to
-all men to be without excuse. _The fury of a patient man_, is almost
-proverbial: and particularly, in this case, it is to be expected that,
-when the natural incitement to resistance, long repressed and moderated,
-comes at length to be authorised by necessity, and quickened by sense of
-duty, it will act with a force and constancy, not a little formidable to
-those against whom it is directed. There is no danger, then, that _true
-patriotism_ should suffer by the meek principles of the Gospel of peace.
-
-As to the OTHER charge of their weakening the _military spirit_, it
-must be owned again, they would render wars less frequent than they now
-are, and less destructive—forgive Christianity this wrong—but, when the
-necessity of self-defence (the only justifiable ground of war) is real
-and instant, I know not, why the Christian prince, or Christian soldier,
-should want courage, because he had given proof of this equitable
-forbearance; or, that either will be likely to do his duty the worse, for
-knowing that what he does, _is_ his duty.
-
-And, if we appeal to fact, it is enough known, that the Christian
-soldiery have been no disgrace to their profession; no, not even then,
-when the unresisting spirit was at its height, I mean, in the early
-days of our religion. Christians had many good reasons for not being
-forward to serve in the Roman armies; but some of them did serve there;
-without doubt, when they were released from such military obligations
-and observances, as they esteemed idolatrous: Nay, it appears, that the
-number of Christian soldiers was, on some occasions, considerable: Yet we
-no where find, that these patient men misbehaved themselves in a day of
-action; or, that they threw away their swords, when they had said their
-prayer.
-
-And I give this instance of bravery in the primitive Christians, the
-rather, because it cannot be imputed to a _fanatic spirit_, which is
-able, we know, to controul any principles: It cannot, I say, be imputed
-to a fanatic spirit, because religion was not the object of those wars,
-in which they were engaged: They were left, then, to the proper influence
-of their own principles; which at that time had their full effect upon
-them, and yet did not prevent them from acting with the true spirit of
-their profession, that is, with a full sense of the duty imposed upon
-them by their engagements to the state.
-
-With regard to the _publick_, then, there is no reason to think that our
-Lord’s injunction will disserve it, in any respect.
-
-III. The last, and most plausible objection to the conduct prescribed
-in the text, is, “That the tame spirit, it discovers, is injurious to
-_individuals_, and only serves to provoke much insult and ill usage,
-which a quick resentment and return of injuries would prevent.”
-
-This is the common plea, and passes with many for a full justification,
-of that false honour, which predominates in the world, but is equally
-frivolous with the other pretences, already confuted.
-
-For,
-
-1. It is taken up on a groundless and mistaken notion, that the
-unfriendly and malevolent passions are the most natural to mankind. On
-the contrary, man is by nature, kind and generous; proud and vindictive,
-indeed, if stimulated by ill treatment, but prompted, again, by that
-very pride, to relent at the appearance of gentleness and submission in
-the party offending; and easily disposed to lay aside the thoughts of
-revenge, when no obstinate resistance seems to make it necessary. There
-are, certainly, few persons, at least in civilized life, of so base a
-temper, as to insult others, and much less to insult them the more,
-for their gentle inoffensive manners. Or, if such monsters there be,
-they will soon become detestable in society; while the objects of their
-unprovoked fury find an asylum in the general good-will and favour of
-mankind.
-
-They, therefore, who pretend that the world cannot be kept in order, but
-by resentment and revenge, will do well to make trial of the opposite
-conduct, before they have recourse to so boisterous a remedy. They will
-probably find, that _only by_ PRIDE _cometh contention_[262], and that
-they have injured their species, in thinking otherwise.
-
-2. Let it be remembered, that the Gospel neither forbids us to take the
-benefit of the laws in cases, where the injury is considerable, nor to
-resist, without law, in extreme cases; besides, that our corrupt nature
-will often get the better of _principle_, I mean, when the provocation is
-not of that size, as to justify either remedy. Whence it follows, that
-brutal force and malignity will lie under many restraints, and will
-rarely be encouraged by the passive temper of a conscientious Christian,
-to proceed to such lengths, as the objection supposes. But,
-
-3. Lastly, and principally, we should call to mind, that, though some
-ungenerous dispositions should take advantage of our dissembling smaller
-injuries, to repeat, or even increase them, till they come at length
-to the utmost verge of what we call _tolerable_ injuries, yet it does
-not follow, from such inconvenience, that the law is to be accounted
-inexpedient. For the law has a general end in view, the good of society
-at large, or of the individual: And the law is a proper one, if the end
-be commonly and for the most part attained by the conduct prescribed,
-though with some exceptions.
-
-That the lawgiver foresaw the possibility of such exceptions, is clear
-from the language, employed by him. If a blow _on one cheek_ be patiently
-received, it may be succeeded by a blow _on the other_: if we suffer our
-_coat_ to be taken away, our _cloke_ may follow it: and if we make no
-resistance to the requisition of going _one mile_, we may be compelled to
-go _two_. The inconvenience, then, is supposed and admitted in the law
-itself; but it was seen not to be of moment enough to evacuate the law.
-Generally speaking, it will be better to bear the inconvenience, than
-to violate the law; better for the injured party himself, but certainly
-better for society, at large.
-
-We are certain, that the law will operate this effect, because the
-lawgiver is, by supposition, divine. He, who knew _what was in man_, what
-his nature, and true interest, is, could not mistake in adapting the law
-to the subject of it. And then, for the _exceptions_, he has it in his
-power to make amends for those, and to recompense fully, as he engages
-to do, any sacrifice we make to conscience, acting within the scope and
-purpose of the law.
-
-So that, on the whole, it is but a just deference to the law, and to the
-authority of the lawgiver, to abstain from _resisting evil_, according to
-the true sense and spirit of the command, though, by so doing, we subject
-ourselves to some, nay to much inconvenience. For he must be slenderly
-instructed in the school of Christ, who is yet to learn, that greater
-sacrifices, than these, must be made, if need be, for the sake of _him
-who died for us_.
-
-Enough, I hope, has been now said, not only to vindicate the sacred
-text, but to let you see how repugnant the doctrine of it is to that
-contentious, vindictive, and even sanguinary spirit, which prevails so
-much among those, who, by a strange abuse of language, call themselves
-Christians.
-
-The root of this mischief, is, a pride of heart, nourished in us by
-an ill-directed education, and fostered, through life, by the corrupt
-customs and maxims of the world. To counteract this inveterate evil, we
-shall do well to consider who and what we are; weak, infirm, and sinful
-creatures, who are provoking Heaven every day, and should not therefore
-resent it much, if we receive but little respect from men. We should
-consider, too, that we are the followers of HIM, who suffered every
-indignity without deserving any, and yet requires no more from us, than
-he practised himself, and for our sakes.
-
-Such considerations will make us humble and meek and placable; ready
-to forgive, as we hope to be forgiven; and disposed to make allowance
-for those defects in others, which we have so much reason to lament in
-ourselves.
-
-Still, if we find the duty, of _not resisting evil_, painful and uneasy
-to us, let us be careful to avoid the occasions, which require the
-exercise of it. A prudent Christian (and Christianity excludes not,
-nay enjoins, prudence) will rarely be put to this trial of his virtue.
-We bring an insult on ourselves by indiscreet liberties, by offensive
-actions or rash expressions; and then, rather than retract a folly, we
-commit a crime.
-
-After all, the most cautious, inoffensive conduct may not exempt us, in
-every instance, from discourtesies and affronts, from the petulance or
-injustice of unreasonable men. In this case the authority of our divine
-Master must controul the movements of nature. We must resolve to endure
-what we dare not resist; and, for the rest, may assure ourselves, that,
-in giving this proof of our Christian temper and principles, we do what
-is perfectly fit and right in itself, is singularly conducive to the
-good of society, and, whatever our impatient passions may suggest, will
-contribute more than any resistance, to our own true enjoyment, even in
-this world.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON L.
-
-PREACHED MAY 14, 1775.
-
-LUKE ix. 26.
-
-_Whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my words, of him shall the
-Son of man be ashamed, when he shall come in his own glory and in his
-Father’s, and of the holy Angels._
-
-
-If we compare this text with the parallel one of St. Mark[263], it will
-seem probable that it more immediately concerned the Jews; who, in
-consequence of their being _ashamed_ of Christ, and rejecting him, as
-their Messiah, should themselves be covered with shame, and be rejected
-by him from being his people, when he came to take vengeance of their
-crimes in the destruction of Jerusalem. In this view, the words are
-prophetical of what should, and, in fact, did, befall the _unbelieving
-Jews_ of that age, in which Christ lived; for _before that age was
-passed, all these things were fulfilled on_ that _adulterous and sinful
-generation_: were so remarkably fulfilled, that the unbelieving Jews,
-only, were involved in that calamity, while the Christians, even to a
-man, as we are told, providentially made their escape from it.
-
-But, though this be the primary sense of the text, we have reason to
-believe that something further, and still more terrible, was intended
-by it. For the destruction of Jerusalem was emblematical of that final
-destruction, which should await all the enemies of Christ in the day of
-judgment; as we may probably gather from the exaggerated terms in which
-the prophecy concerning Christ’s coming to judge Jerusalem is delivered,
-and as we certainly conclude from those passages of scripture, which
-professedly describe the final day of judgment, when _all that believe
-not shall be condemned_[264], and concerning which our Lord himself
-says—_He that rejecteth me, and receiveth not my words, hath one that
-judgeth him: the_ WORD _which I have spoken_, THE SAME _shall judge him
-in the last day_[265].
-
-Whence, you see, we are authorized to take the words of the text in their
-full force, and to understand them as a general declaration to ALL, who
-shall be _ashamed of Christ and of his words_, that _of them_ shall
-Christ, also, _be ashamed_, in the great day of retribution, sublimely
-expressed by the circumstance of his _coming in his own glory, and in his
-Father’s, and of the holy Angels_.
-
-To be _ashamed of_ CHRIST, is very intelligible language, and means to
-disown him for what he claims to be, The Messiah; and to take it for a
-degradation to us, a reflexion on our own sufficiency and importance,
-to regard him as our Lord and Saviour. In like manner, to be _ashamed
-of his_ WORDS, is, to think it beneath us to receive his doctrine, and
-to observe it: It is to say, or to behave ourselves as if we said, with
-neglect and scorn, that we will not condescend to be influenced and
-directed by it.
-
-But how, and in what respects, may we be said to incur the guilt of this
-charge? in what ways, may we testify to the world that the shame of
-CHRIST and of his WORDS is predominant in us?
-
-The inquiry, you see, is of the last importance; for this _shame_ of
-Christ, in whomsoever it prevails, and so far as it prevails, will be
-repaid in kind, in that day, when he shall _come in glory_, in that day
-when it so much concerns us to _have boldness_ before him, _in the day of
-judgment_[266].
-
-To assist you, then, in making this momentous inquiry, permit me to lay
-before you, gradually and distinctly, the CHIEF of those cases, which
-appear to me to express, or imply, the existence of this _false shame_;
-and may therefore let us see whether we are, or not, involved in the
-guilt of it.
-
-I. They (if any such there be) who reject Christianity on the grounds of
-a fair impartial inquiry, cannot so properly be said to be _ashamed_ of
-Christ, as to be _convinced_ that he has no claim to their respect and
-veneration. For they deny him, they will say, not from a principle of
-_shame_, or disrespect, but of what they take to be _right reason_.
-
-But then, if any oblique views have influenced their disbelief; if
-conceit, or vanity, or presumption, has any share in forming their
-conclusions; if a careless or fastidious neglect of the means, by which
-they might be better informed, has mixed itself with their inquiries;
-if they have felt the smallest disposition in themselves to struggle
-with evidence, or to be concluded by any thing but evidence; if any, or
-all, of these motives can be imputed to them, they will find themselves
-liable, more or less, to the charge of the text; and it surely concerns
-them to see that they stand clear of all such imputations: It concerns
-them the more, because, if the revelation be divine, the revealer knew
-what evidence was fit to be given of it, and that the evidence given
-was sufficient to the conviction of a reasonable inquirer. To the
-severe scrutiny of their own hearts, the disbelievers on principle are,
-therefore, referred: and, _if their heart condemn them_ in any degree,
-let them reflect with awe, that _God is greater than their heart, and
-knoweth all things_[267].
-
-But, whatever these immaculate unbelievers may have to say for
-themselves, there are others who have the spots of _shame_ indelibly
-impressed upon them.
-
-Such were the Jews of old, who rejected Christ, not because they wanted
-evidence of his mission (for they could not deny, nay they frankly
-owned, that _he did many miracles_[268]), but because he was the _Son
-of a Carpenter_[269]; because he was of _Galilee_[270], and dwelt _at
-Nazareth_; because their _rulers did not believe in him_[271]; because
-they were afraid of being _put out of their synagogue_[272]; because
-_they loved the praise of men more than the praise of God_[273]; in plain
-words, because on one account or other, they were ASHAMED OF HIM.
-
-SUCH, too, in succeeding times, were many of the pagan wise men, who
-disbelieved, because the doctrine of the cross was _foolishness_ to
-them[274]; because the Jews, who were the first converts to the faith and
-the first preachers of it, were, in their eyes, a contemptible people;
-because the vulgar were generally inclined to believe in him; because his
-doctrine contradicted and degraded their philosophy; because their pride
-of reason would not submit to be tutored by the Galilæan; in a word, for
-a hundred frivolous reasons, which only shewed, that they were ASHAMED OF
-HIM.
-
-Such, too, in later times (may we affirm without a breach of charity)
-have been, and are, many of those over-modest men, who know not how to
-withstand the raillery of prophane scoffers; who think the credit of
-their parts concerned in rejecting their creed, and applaud themselves
-for sitting loose to the principles, which they call the prejudices,
-of their Christian education; who affect to have a religion of their
-own making, if they have any at all, or, rather, disclaim all regard
-to religion, on the authority of this or that renowned patriarch of
-infidelity; to say all, in a word, who have the infirmity, and yet make
-it a matter of vanity, to be ASHAMED OF JESUS.
-
-Now, of such unbelievers it must be said, that they clearly come within
-the description of the text; they are _ashamed_ of the Son of man, and
-yet, perhaps, _glory in their shame_: to what end, let them reflect,
-when they read on, and find, that of such _shall the Son of man_, in
-his turn, _be ashamed, when he shall came in his own glory, and in his
-Father’s, and of the holy Angels_.
-
-II. [1.] Of men _professing_ Christianity, they are most exposed to the
-censure of the text, who, under a full conviction that Jesus is the
-Christ, yet, in WORDS, formally disown and reject him. Such was the
-Apostle Peter, who _thrice denied_ his Lord, though he had not the least
-doubt of his divine pretensions. And why did he deny him? Because, it
-lessened him in the eyes of a stranger or two, to have it believed by
-them, that he was connected with a supposed criminal; because he had not
-the confidence to bear up against the reproach of a _maid-servant_, who
-_looked earnestly upon him, and said, This man was, also, with him_. Such
-was the power, which a false shame had upon this great, and otherwise
-fervent, disciple of Christ! A memorable instance of human frailty, which
-should admonish believers to be on their guard against all approaches
-towards a crime, the less pardonable, because committed against the clear
-sense of the mind, and almost without temptation.
-
-St. Peter, it is true, might alledge the passion of _fear_, as well as
-_shame_: he probably thought his life in some danger, and had an eye
-to his personal safety, as well as credit, when he denied his Master.
-Yet when he reflected on his unworthy conduct, though under these
-circumstances of alleviation, he _wept bitterly_, as he had reason
-to do. What then should they feel, who have not this cloke for their
-shame? who deny their Lord without any inducement to do so, but the weak
-apprehension of disgusting some persons, whose sentiments, after all,
-they do not really adopt, themselves. Yet is this no uncommon case. Men
-are ashamed to confess with their mouths, what they believe in their
-hearts; and give themselves airs of a frank libertinism, when they
-tremble at their own impiety: And all this to be well with a frivolous
-circle, which they frequent, or to merit the good word of certain
-fashionable blasphemers.
-
-[2]. Another sort of men seem to come within the description of the text,
-who, though neither prompted by a sense of danger to their persons, nor
-of disgrace to their reputation, are yet induced by a regard to their
-_interest_, when it presses upon them with a certain force, to dissemble
-their conviction, or rather openly to avow their shame of Jesus. Such
-are they, of whom our Lord himself speaks, _who for a while believe, and
-in time of temptation fall away_[275]: And such, in particular, was the
-young man in the Gospel, who had no vice to keep him from believing, nay
-who would gladly, perhaps have sacrificed any thing, but his fortune,
-to the Christian faith. It seems, as if he had been upon the point of
-entering, without reserve, into the service of his new master, when,
-being told, that he must part with _all he had_, and then _follow him,
-he grew sad at that saying, and went away grieved: for he had great
-possessions_[276]. Poverty was a _cross_, which this amiable young man
-was not prepared to _take up_. His faith, which, before, gave a promise
-of life and vigour, died away at the proposal. He now found, doubtless
-with some surprize to himself, that he had the seeds of infidelity
-lurking in him. He could not resolve to give this last proof of his
-sincerity: he, therefore, withdrew himself from Christ; in other words,
-he was _ashamed_ of him. Let us pity the weakness of this unhappy
-young man; and only ask ourselves, if, in his circumstances, or in any
-approaching to them, we should not have hesitated, as he did, about
-_believing in the name_ of the Lord Jesus. If we should, let us implore
-the divine grace to strengthen our faith, and frankly confess, that a
-secret principle of _shame_, though skulking behind some other and more
-venial infirmity, has taken hold of us.
-
-[3]. Still we may not have gone these lengths of infidelity. We assure
-ourselves, perhaps, that no consideration would induce us, simply and
-wholly, to renounce the faith, and that, if the hard alternative was
-proposed to us, we should rather give up wealth, fame, and life itself,
-than formally deny our Lord, and disclaim all hopes of interest in him.
-But let us explore our hearts a little, those _hearts_, which, as we are
-told and have reason to know, are _deceitful above all things_[277]. Have
-we never in lesser instances detected ourselves approaching somewhat
-towards this ignominious crime of apostacy?
-
-Have we not contented ourselves with being the disciples of Christ
-in private, and with _going to him_, as the Ruler of the Jews did,
-_by night_, in secrecy, and, as it were, by stealth, not to draw the
-observation of men upon us? Have we been willing and ready to serve
-him in the congregation, to attend his ordinances, and to revere his
-sacraments? Have we dared to let the world see that we are not ashamed
-of the cross of Christ[278]? and that we glory in _remembering him_, as
-we are admonished to do, at his holy table[279]? Have we no reluctance
-to let our friends, nay our servants, know[280] that we live in a daily
-sense of our duty to him, and that we hope for all the blessings of
-this life and the next, only through his merits and intercession? Have
-we never heared his pretensions slighted, and his holy name blasphemed,
-without expressing a becoming zeal for the honour of our Redeemer?
-Have we testified out displeasure at freedoms of this sort by an open
-reprehension of them on all fit occasions; at least by a look and manner,
-which shewed how offensive they were to us? On the other hand, have we
-never, in such circumstances, by an assumed air of complacency, seemed
-to authorize what we secretly disapproved, and to yield our assent to
-propositions which we inwardly detested? In a word, have we none of us,
-at any time, given occasion to unbelievers to say or think of us, that
-we were _almost_ inclined to be of their party; or at least that we had
-not the zeal, and firmness and resolution, which men ought to have, who
-profess themselves believers in Jesus?
-
-To these, and other questions of the like sort, it concerns us to think
-what answers we could honestly make. But of this be we assured: If we
-have not constantly and uniformly signified, declared, proclaimed our
-attachment to Christ; if we have not taken care to avoid all irreverence
-toward our Lord and Master; nay, if we have not been enough upon our
-guard to let no man suspect us of _indifference_ towards him—we certainly
-have not done our duty; we have virtually denied _the Son of Man_; we
-have, in effect, been _ashamed_ of him.
-
-And THUS MUCH may suffice for a commentary on that part of the text,
-which more immediately respects the PERSON of Jesus Christ—_Whosoever
-shall be ashamed of_ ME—but our Lord goes farther, and says—_Whosoever
-shall be ashamed of me, and of_ MY WORDS—_of him shall the Son of Man be
-ashamed_, in the day of judgment.
-
-Here, then, is a new subject of discourse. I call it a new one; because,
-though the two topics run into one, and he that is ashamed of Christ’s
-_words_, may not improperly be said to be ashamed of _Christ himself_,
-yet, for the sake of method, it may be convenient to keep these two
-points distinct, and to give to each a separate consideration.
-
-It remains, then, to set before you the principal of those ways, in
-which we may incur the guilt, especially, of being ashamed of our Lord’s
-_words_, that is, his DOCTRINES, and LAWS: a copious and important
-subject! on which I shall reserve what I have to say to another
-occasion. In the mean time, let us lay to heart what we have now heard
-concerning the honour due to the PERSON of our great Redeemer. _Be we
-not, therefore, ashamed of our Lord_[281]—but _let us_ resolutely _abide
-in him, that when he shall appear, we may have confidence, and not be
-ashamed before him at his coming_[282].
-
-
-
-
-SERMON LI.
-
-PREACHED MAY 21, 1775.
-
-LUKE ix. 26.
-
-_Whosoever shall be ashamed of me, and of_ MY WORDS, _of him shall the
-Son of man be ashamed, when he shall come in his own glory, and in his
-Father’s, and of the holy Angels_.
-
-
-The text distinguishes between _being ashamed of_ CHRIST, and being
-_ashamed of his_ WORDS. And, though the two charges, in effect, run into
-one, yet I have found it convenient, in point of method, to observe that
-distinction. Considering the subject, in this double view, we shall see
-more clearly, _what_ the crime is, which we are here cautioned to avoid,
-and _when_ we are guilty of it.
-
-I have already gone through the first division of the text, and shall now
-enter on the second. If we have not formally disowned, or, in effect,
-at least, been _ashamed_ of CHRIST, that is, of his name, dignity,
-and person, and of the relation, which we bear to him, as our SAVIOUR
-and REDEEMER, yet have we not felt in ourselves, and evidenced to
-others, something of that disposition in regard to his WORDS, that is,
-considering him in the light of our LORD and MASTER?
-
-Now, to do justice to this part of our subject, we must consider the
-_words_ of Christ, first, in THEMSELVES, or as composing that form and
-manner of address, in which he thought fit to deliver himself to us:
-and, secondly, in the SUBJECT MATTER of them, that is, as comprehending
-both his _doctrines_ and _precepts_, _articles of faith_, and _rules of
-life_, all that, as our heavenly _Instructor_, he requires us to believe,
-and, as our _lawgiver_, to put in practice. In both respects, I doubt,
-we shall, many of us, find that we have too much, and too often, been
-ashamed of Christ’s _words_.
-
-I. Under the first consideration of the words themselves, that is, of
-his _manner_ in addressing himself to us, let it be observed, that,
-though it be true, in several respects, that _never man spake as this
-man_, yet this commendation must not be extended to the _language_ of
-his discourses, in which no peculiar art or elegance is affected. He
-condescended to speak, as any other Jew might have done, and as his
-Apostle afterwards did, plainly and clearly enough to convey his meaning,
-but not with _the enticing words of man’s wisdom_, that is, of men
-cultivated and polished in the school of Greek or Roman learning. Hence,
-both in ancient and modern times, such as were, or pretended to be, so
-accomplished, have not unfrequently objected to the style of the Gospel,
-as rude and barbarous, and not composed with that beauty, which they
-have been taught to admire in the masters of fine writing. Now, though
-this pedantry might, perhaps, be excused in an old Pagan sophist, and
-is naturally enough assumed by a modern classical unbeliever, one is
-shocked to find it in professed Christians. And yet, I doubt, there are
-not a few of those, who are _half ashamed_ of the Gospel, because not
-written in the best Greek, or according to the rules of the most approved
-rhetorick: I doubt, there are even those who might tell us, if they would
-(as a polite Italian philologist has done) that they read their bible but
-seldom, lest a familiarity with it should hurt their style; or perhaps
-abstain from reading it, altogether, because not fashioned according to
-their ideas of elegant composition.
-
-It would be paying too much respect to this frivolous delicacy, to enter
-into a formal confutation of it. What I shall say to it is, briefly,
-this; first, that the style of scripture, though not classical, is by no
-means destitute of life and beauty: secondly, that, although it were,
-where the matter of it concerns us so much, it is childish to lay any
-great stress on the manner: that, _further_, the very objection turns
-to the honour of the Gospel, which was purposely so composed that the
-effect of it, in the conversion of the world, might be seen to flow from
-supernatural causes, and _that our faith should not stand in the wisdom
-of men, but in the power of God_.
-
-To all which I might add, what perhaps is a secret to our polite
-objectors, that the rules of writing and speaking are more arbitrary than
-they are taken to be: that they refer to our customs and manners, and
-derive their merit from that reference, only; that, in different times
-and places and under different circumstances, the same manner may be good
-and bad; and that there is no universal archetype of perfect speech,
-existing in nature[283].
-
-But these minute inquiries are not for this time and place. On whatever
-principles the style of scripture may be vindicated, or if it cannot be
-vindicated at all to a fastidious reader, still I affirm, that the taking
-offence at it is a species of that false shame, which the text condemns,
-and which deserves condemnation. When the _word of God_ is held up to us
-in the great day, and the inquiry is, what attention we have paid to it,
-think how poor a subterfuge it will be from the _shame_, that will then
-overtake us, to reply, in the face of men and angels, that it was not the
-_word_ of Cicero or Plato.
-
-Having dismissed this trifling cavil, let us now see,
-
-II. In the next place, in what respects it may be charged upon us that
-we have been ashamed of Christ’s _words_; that is, of their SUBJECT
-MATTER; considered in the double view of the _doctrines_, and _precepts_,
-contained in them.
-
-1. As to the DOCTRINES of Christ, that is, the peculiar articles of
-Christian faith, one would think that to reject, or question, or explain
-away these, was inconsistent with the very profession of Christianity.
-Yet this conduct in some shape or other, presents itself to us every day,
-in those who are, or who desire to be thought, Christians; and one cannot
-but wonder at the pains they take to draw upon themselves this charge of
-inconsistency.
-
-Some, bolder than the rest, would expunge whole chapters, nay books,
-from the sacred canon, when the narrative rises above their faith, or
-the doctrine will not sink to a level with their wisdom; others content
-themselves with nibbling at single sentences, or, perhaps, words; and, if
-no obscure manuscript be at hand to favour the system they adopt, take
-refuge in a forced, unnatural punctuation. How many ancient and modern
-heresies have we seen supported by that presumptuous, or this minute
-strain of criticism!
-
-Some, again, when the text is not called in question, turn their
-ingenuity another way, and strike out new modes of interpretation. They
-mangle and disfigure plain facts, or resolve them into allegories:
-of this class were those primitive heresiarchs, who maintained that
-_Christ was not come in the flesh_[284], and that _the Resurrection was
-past already_[285]; and of the same family, too, are those presumptuous
-moderns, of whatever name, who stumble at the cross of Christ, and sink
-the doctrine of Redemption in a metaphor.
-
-A third sort excell in puzzling a clear text, in putting a violent
-construction on artless words, in explaining mysteries by metaphysics,
-or, to get rid of them at once, in making the plain fishermen of Galilee
-speak the language of Platonism, or of the Jewish cabbala.
-
-In a word, it would be endless to specify all those, who by studied
-devices, of various kinds, mutilate, prevert, misinterpret, confound the
-word of God, obtruding their own sense upon it, and finding any thing
-there rather than the plain obvious mind of the Revealer.
-
-And why is all this industry employed, these daring liberties taken?
-Why to make _Christianity not mysterious_, to shew how reasonable its
-doctrines are, and to remove all objections against them. The pretence is
-fair. But shall we then admit nothing in scripture, in that scripture
-which we call divine, but what we perfectly understand, and can make
-appear, in all its parts, to harmonize with our systems? Alas, what is
-this, but to prescribe to the Spirit of God; to substitute our wisdom
-in the place of his; in a word, to be ashamed of Christ’s words, and to
-idolize our own reason.
-
-To give one remarkable instance, out of many, of this false shame. If
-there be any thing clearly revealed in holy scripture, it is, that there
-is a world of spirits, good and bad: and of the last, that there is ONE,
-placed at the head of them, who sets himself in opposition (as indeed all
-bad men do) to the will of God; who had a share in seducing our first
-parents, and still works in the children of disobedience; who was even
-permitted to tempt Christ, and to possess Judas; in a word, who is styled
-the _Prince of this world_, and, for the overthrow of whose empire,
-principally, the Son of God came down from heaven: If I say, there be any
-clear undisputed point of doctrine in the Gospel, it is this: the whole
-scheme of Christianity depends upon it: and yet what pains have not been
-taken to exterminate evil spirits, and disenchant the world of them;
-although by such methods, as would render language itself of no use, and
-confound all the rules of just criticism and sober interpretation?
-
-These interpreters, I know, pretend (and many of them, I dare say, with
-good faith) a zeal for the honour of God, in their attempts of this
-nature. But let them look deep into themselves. They will, perhaps,
-find, that they are paying, at the same time, a secret homage to their
-own understandings, as if the whole of God’s moral government lay open
-to their view, and they were able to pervade every part of it; that they
-hold a revelation in no esteem, which puzzles their philosophy; and that,
-therefore, they force a meaning of their own on the words of Christ,
-because they are inwardly _ashamed_ of that, in which his words are most
-naturally to be taken.
-
-Leaving, then, these rationalists to the scrutiny of their own inmost
-thoughts, let us inquire,
-
-2. What regard is due to the _words_ of Christ, considered not as
-articles of belief, but _rules of practice_.
-
-And here, I doubt, it must be acknowledged that we have, all of us, more
-or less, been _ashamed_ of our divine Master. For we are convicted of
-this shame, whenever we disobey his commands, seen and admitted to be
-_his_, on account of any repugnancy they have to the fashion of the
-world, and to the consideration we affect to have in it. And who is
-there, that, in this respect, can hope to stand clear of all blame, _when
-he is judged_?
-
-_Be meek and lowly of heart_, says our Lord. On the contrary, we are
-proud and arrogant, that we may not be thought to want spirit. _Take no
-thought for to-morrow_, are the words of Christ: but the world says, be
-rich and great; and we think of nothing else but _to-morrow_. _Blessed
-are the pure in heart_, says our spotless Preceptor: Are we not _ashamed_
-of these words, when we had rather run the risk of any defilement, than
-appear unfashionable? And so in a multitude of other instances.
-
-Still, perhaps, we respect the rule, in some sort, and blame ourselves
-for the breach of it.
-
-But what shall we say of those, who reject the _word spoken_ with a high
-hand, and offend against it on principle, as we may say, and by system?
-
-_Go and sin no more_, says our Lord to an adulteress convict; and his
-words imply a severe censure of having sinned at all, in that instance.
-But are there none who think this a hard saying, who regard it as a
-narrow prejudice; who treat the observance of it as a needless scruple;
-nay, who pique themselves on the violation of it? Are there not some,
-who delight in this sin by way of preference? who lay it down for a
-maxim, that this commerce, under certain circumstances, and covered with
-a certain veil of manners, is allowable, is reputable, is meritorious?
-Nay, are there not those who would take it ill to be thought incapable of
-aspiring to that distinction, which, in certain quarters, this commerce
-supposes?
-
-But let me not enlarge farther on this horrid subject. Consider only,
-whether the parties concerned must not deride a precept, which they are
-proud to transgress, and whether in the saddest sense of the word, they
-may not be said to be _ashamed_ of it.
-
-ANOTHER instance occurs, the mention of which, I am sensible, can be
-of no farther use than to illustrate my subject. A placability of
-temper, the forgiveness of injuries, the love of our enemies, nothing
-is more insisted upon in the Gospel, than these virtues, which make
-the very essence of a Christian’s temper. The precepts to this purpose
-are numberless and express, and enforced with all possible authority.
-Yet, to persons, in certain conjunctures, and of a certain rank in the
-world, it would be an affront, but to remind them of their duty. We
-know, who it was, that, _when he was reviled, reviled not again, when
-he suffered, threatened not, but committed himself to him who judgeth
-righteously_[286]. But what then? Neither precept, nor example, moves
-him, who calls himself a man of honour, and is the slave of fashion. He
-has command enough of himself to assume an air of tranquillity, and to
-observe all the forms of good-breeding. But his hate is rancorous, his
-resentment hot as hell, his revenge, immortal. Let his pretences be what
-they will, his conduct cries aloud to all the world, “I renounce the
-Gospel, I am _ashamed_ of the meek and merciful religion of Jesus.”
-
-To conclude: We now understand in what ways, and in how many respects,
-we may be _ashamed of Christ and his words_. In recounting those several
-ways, whether respecting the name and dignity of our Lord, or the
-rule of faith and practice, which he has given us, we have seen, at
-the same time, how little, how base, how ungrateful, how impious, how
-inexcusable, in all views, this _shame_ is: especially in all those,
-who wear the name, and do not wholly disclaim the faith, of a Christian.
-More words would be thrown away on those, who are insensible to such
-considerations. Or, if any further remonstrance can be of use, if there
-be a motive left that can reach their case, it must be one, that alarms
-their fears, and shews the danger, the unspeakable hazard, to which they
-expose themselves by this miserable conduct. And, in the whole extent of
-God’s word, there is not, in the nature of things there cannot be, a more
-awakening, a more terrible denunciation, than that of the text, which
-therefore I cannot do better than leave with you in its own proper form,
-as pronounced by our Lord himself—_Whoever shall be ashamed of me and of
-my words, of him shall the Son of man be ashamed, when he shall come in
-his own glory, and in his Father’s, and of the holy Angels_.
-
-
-
-
-SERMON LII.
-
-PREACHED JANUARY 29, 1775.
-
-St. MATTH. xvi. 18.
-
-_I say also unto thee, that thou art_ PETER, _and upon this rock I will
-build my church; and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it_.
-
-
-The way of giving a new name to an eminent person, more immediately
-concerned in any great transaction; a name, expressive of that
-transaction, and therefore proper to fix and perpetuate the memory of
-it; this custom, I say, was of known use in the ancient world. Thus,
-when God renewed his covenant with _Abram_, and engaged to _multiply
-him exceedingly_, the name of this patriarch was changed to _Abraham_;
-which name, in the Hebrew language, signifies _the father of a great
-multitude_[287]: and, for a like reason, the patriarch _Jacob_ took the
-name of _Israel_[288]; to omit many other instances of this usage, which
-occur in the sacred scriptures.
-
-Just so, when one of the Apostles, known before by the name of _Simon_,
-had made a memorable confession of his Master’s being _the Christ, the
-son of the living God_, i. e. the redeemer, the prince of Israel, the
-Messiah foretold, our blessed Lord, to give weight and emphasis to this
-confession, confers a new name upon him. For he _answered and said unto
-him, Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-Jona; for flesh and blood hath not
-revealed it unto thee, but my Father which is in heaven_: That is, no
-man hath revealed this great truth to thee, nor has any interest of man,
-any thing, indeed, but the spirit of God, influencing thy impartial and
-well-disposed mind, prompted thee to entertain and avow it thus heartily
-and publicly (the proofs of it not being, at present, so strong, as they
-hereafter shall be): Therefore, to express my approbation of this great
-testimony to a truth, which is the fundamental article of my religion,
-and, at the same time, to signify to thee the honour, with which I mean
-to reward thee for it, _I further say unto thee, Thou art Peter, and upon
-this rock will I build my Church; and the gates of hell shall not prevail
-against it_.
-
-The name, _Peter_, signifying a _rock_ in the Greek language, implies,
-we see, the immoveable truth of the confession, here made, on which the
-Christian religion was to be built; and the immoveable firmness, too,
-of the Confessor, who should have a share, with the other Apostles, in
-supporting the whole fabric, and be himself, in point of time, the first
-stone, on which the glorious superstructure was to be made.
-
-It follows—_and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it_—that is,
-_Death_, or _Destruction_ (for that, only, the oriental phrase—_the gates
-of hell_—here signifies[289]) shall never prevail against this church,
-being founded on thee, and the testimony, made by thee, as on a rock of
-ages, which shall never give way, or be removed.
-
-We see, then, the full meaning of this famous text, which contains, in
-effect, TWO prophecies: ONE, respecting the foundation of the Christian
-church, and (so far as the Apostle Peter was personally concerned in
-the prediction) then verified, when Peter laid the first stone of this
-august building in the converts made by him both among the Jews[290] and
-Gentiles[291]: the OTHER prophecy, respecting the perpetuity of this
-church; which the divine Providence would, in no future age of the world,
-permit to be destroyed.
-
-So that, not the supremacy of Peter over the rest of the Apostles (as the
-church of Rome vainly pretends), but the priority of his claim, in point
-of time, to signal services in the conversion of mankind, is expressed
-in this memorable promise made to Peter—_on this rock will I build my
-church_: and, for the second assurance, here given, and which, to so
-zealous a master-builder, as our Apostle, must have been singularly
-welcome—_that the gates of hell shall never prevail against it_—we may,
-now, by the experience of more than seventeen hundred years, understand,
-how far it has been, and how likely it is, in the full extent of the
-words, to be fulfilled.
-
-But, to see little more distinctly what this experience is, and what
-presumption arises out of it for the truth of our holy religion, let us
-call to mind, if you please, the more remarkable of those attacks, which
-have been made, at different times, on the church of Christ, and yet how
-constantly and successfully they have been repelled.
-
-I. No sooner had the foundations of the church been laid on the _rock_
-of this testimony—that _Jesus was the Christ, the Son of God_—than the
-storms of persecution arose, and beat violently upon it. Nor was it,
-indeed, strange, that this new doctrine, published every where, with
-great boldness, by men who had been eye-witnesses of what they affirmed,
-and calculated to overturn all the favourite maxims and usages of the
-world, should meet with the fiercest opposition. And how easy did it seem
-for that world to crush the infant society, now struggling for life in
-the hands of twelve poor, illiterate, and friendless men, if the decree
-of Heaven had not gone forth—_that the gates of hell should not prevail
-against it_!
-
-I know, indeed, that this violence of persecution was, in the end, of
-advantage to the Christian cause; and, from the nature of the human mind,
-when once persuaded of any thing, true or false, might be expected to be
-so. For cruelty, in such cases, only excites an unconquerable firmness
-and perseverance. But what was persuasion in succeeding converts to the
-gospel of Christ, was knowledge, or rather the infallible evidence of
-sense, in the first publishers of it. The Apostles witnessed a matter of
-fact, when they made known the resurrection of Christ, on which their
-whole doctrine rested. And it is not in nature for any single man, much
-less for twelve men, to suffer, and to die, for a false fact, not taken
-upon trust from others, but asserted on their own proper and personal
-experience. If Jesus did not rise from the dead, they neither saw, nor
-felt, nor conversed with him after his resurrection, that is, they had
-no persuasion for force to harden into obstinacy, but a consciousness of
-falshood in their attestation, which could not have held out against the
-rage of their persecutors[292].
-
-If it be said, that criminals are often supposed, and not without reason,
-to die with a falshood in their mouths, I answer, it is very possible:
-but, besides that the Apostles gave no signs, in the rest of their
-conduct, of a want of principle, by declaring the truth, in this case,
-they might have saved their lives, whereas a criminal, for the most part,
-is but the more likely to lose his, by a true confession.
-
-Or, if, lastly (for suspicion, I am aware, is not easily satisfied,
-if) the perseverance of the martyred apostles be accounted for from a
-false point of honour, I admit, that this strange principle sometimes
-overpowers conviction; but rarely, in any number of men confederated in
-the same cause, and, least of all, in a number of men of so plain and
-artless characters, as the Apostles.
-
-On the whole, we have reason to conclude, that, if Christianity had not
-been true, it must have perished with its first preachers: at least,
-it cannot be denied, that in outliving the violence, with which it was
-assaulted, both by Jew and Gentile, on its appearance in the world, this
-religion has thus far verified the remarkable prediction of its author.
-
-II. The external peace of the church was scarce settled under
-Constantine, when internal commotions shook its frame, and with a
-violence, which was likely to bring on, and that in no long time, its
-entire dissolution. By these commotions, I mean the heresies, that
-sprung up in abundance, and distracted the Christian world for several
-centuries. The zeal, or rather fury, with which these disputes were
-carried on, was unappeasable; and, if it be true, that _a house divided
-against itself cannot stand_, there was reason to expect that the
-houshold of Christ would exemplify this maxim: While, at the same time,
-the Christian name was so dishonoured by these contentions, and the
-lives, as well as the faith, of Christians, so polluted by them, that
-believers themselves were almost tempted to renounce a profession, which
-laboured under so much infamy; and the rest of the world could scarce
-fail to contract an incurable aversion to it.
-
-This, indeed, was so much the case, and the advantage, given to the
-enemies of our faith, by these scandalous abuses of it, so great, that
-one is not surprised to find
-
-III. A _third_, and still more alarming danger of the Christian church,
-in the sudden rise and propagation of the Mahometan religion.
-
-For it was the corruption of Christianity, that gave occasion, or
-success, at least, to this daring imposture. And now it might seem, that
-_the gates of hell_ were set wide open, and destruction ready to rush
-upon, and seize, its defenceless prey, the Christian church, disheartened
-and disabled by its own vices. The uncontroulable spirit of this ruthless
-sect was, indeed, alarming to the last degree; when a secret providence,
-first, softened its ferocity, and, then, put a stop to its successes.
-
-I ascribe these effects to the _good providence of God_, watching
-over the preservation of our holy faith; for what else could make the
-disciples of Mahomet tolerant in spite of their ignorance and bigotry;
-and pacific, when their law breathed nothing but war and universal
-dominion?
-
-Still the church had other trials to undergo; and _hell_ had yet in
-reserve some further engines of its wrath to employ against her. For
-
-IV. While the African and Asiatic Christians were in danger of a total
-suppression by the rage of their Ottoman masters, the European had almost
-as much to apprehend from exhaustless swarms of Northern barbarians.
-And, what darkened the prospect still more, all knowledge and learning
-had disappeared, during these turbulent ages. Hence, to the destructive
-fanaticism of the East, was added the grossest _superstition_ of the
-West; which, growing up in a long night of ignorance, and yet directed by
-policy towards the establishment of a vast and gloomy empire, involved
-all Christendom in its pestilential shade, and threatened the very
-extinction of all true religion.
-
-Yet it pleased God, in this distressful state of his church, to provide
-for its continuance, and even integrity, in due time, by making the
-cloystered ignorance of the Monks serve to the preservation of the sacred
-canon; and the enslaving projects of a tyrannical hierarchy, to the
-restoration of religious and civil liberty.
-
-And thus, though the powers of _hell_ had been successively let loose
-against the church of Christ in the terrible shapes, first, of Jewish
-and Gentile persecution; then, of heresy, in the church itself; next,
-of Mahometan enthusiasm; and, lastly, of Antichristian superstition;
-yet have they not prevailed against this sacred structure, founded on a
-_rock_, guarded, as we believe, by heaven itself, and therefore destined
-to be eternal.
-
-I have touched these several particulars slightly and rapidly, just to
-put you in mind of what the Christian religion has endured, since its
-appearance in the world; and to let you see how unlikely it is that this
-religion should have kept its ground against these various and multiplied
-attacks, if it had not been divinely protected.
-
-But of all the trials, to which it has been exposed, the greatest by far,
-if this religion had been an imposture, is ONE, which I have not yet
-mentioned; and that is, _the examination of severe, enlightened Reason_.
-
-And this trial, to complete its honour, our divine faith hath TWICE
-undergone: _once_, in the very season of its birth; and now, _again_,
-for two or three centuries, since the revival of letters, in our Western
-world: periods, both of them, distinguished, in the annals of mankind,
-by a more than common degree of light and knowledge; which must, in the
-nature of things, have been fatal to any scheme of religion, pretending
-only to a divine original, and not really so descended.
-
-But this part of the argument is too large, as well as too important, for
-me to enter upon at present. Let me therefore conclude with a short and
-interesting reflexion on so much of it, as we have been considering.
-
-It was natural, no doubt, for the author of a new religion, full of his
-scheme, and impressed with the importance of it, to promise to himself
-the perpetuity of his work. But a wise man might easily conjecture that
-a religion, like the Christian, would meet with the fiercest opposition:
-and, though this be not a proper time to shew it, it might be shewn, that
-_the spirit of Christ_[293] distinctly foresaw the several species of
-opposition, which his religion had to encounter[294].
-
-Yet, in the face of all these perils, our Lord predicts, in the most
-direct and positive terms, that his church should brave them all, and
-subsist for ever. It has subsisted to this day, after encountering such
-storms of persecution and distress, as must, in all likelihood, have
-overturned any human fabrick. Is not the true solution of the fact, this,
-that it was founded on _the word of God, which endureth for ever_[295]?
-The rest, then, follows of course. The wise master-builder (to use his
-own words on another occasion, near akin to this) _had built his house
-upon a_ ROCK: _and the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds
-blew and beat upon that house: and it_ FELL NOT, _for it was founded upon
-a_ ROCK[296].
-
-
-
-
-SERMON LIII.
-
-PREACHED FEBRUARY 5, 1775.
-
-St. MATTH. xvi. 18.
-
-_And I say also unto thee, that thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will
-build my church; and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it._
-
-
-The religion of Jesus hath descended to us, through TWO, the most
-enlightened ages of the world. It was, first, published in the reign of
-Tiberius: It was re-published, as we may say, at the Reformation: and is
-it likely, that an imposture should have made its way in the _former_
-of these periods? Or, is it possible, it should still keep its ground
-against the influence of all that light and knowledge, by which the
-_latter_ has been distinguished?
-
-To see what force there is in these questions, permit me to lay before
-you a slight sketch of the trials, to which Christianity has been exposed
-from the improved reason of ancient and modern times, and of the effect,
-which those trials appear to have had on the credit and reception of that
-Religion.
-
-I. Jesus preached the Gospel in the reign of Tiberius: that is, in a time
-of profound peace, when arts and letters were generally diffused through
-the Roman empire; and in Judea, at that time a Roman province. So far was
-this thing from being _done in a corner_[297]!
-
-This religion, on its first appearance in the world, had therefore to
-encounter two sorts of men, well qualified, and not less disposed, to
-give it a severe examination; I mean, the learned JEWS, on the one hand,
-and the reasoning GENTILES, on the other. Yet it prevailed against all
-the efforts of both.
-
-It was, first, proposed to the JEWS, and its pretensions were to be tried
-by the correspondence of its principles and history to the doctrine and
-predictions of their sacred books. That vastly the greater part of the
-Jewish nation resisted the evidence of that appeal, is well known: but
-that great numbers did not, and, of these, that some, at least, were
-of principal note for their rank, and knowledge in the scriptures, is
-equally certain and allowed; with this further concession, that the
-evidence, whatever it was, prevailed over the most inveterate prejudices,
-that ever possessed any people, and the most alarming difficulties and
-discouragements, to which human nature can be exposed. Let the fact,
-then, be considered, with all its circumstances, on both sides. And as to
-the merit of the argument, we are well able to judge of it. The sacred
-writings of the Jews, to which the appeal lay, are in all hands: and with
-what triumphant superiority the followers of Jesus reasoned from them, we
-see, in their numerous works, still extant, and especially in those of
-the great Apostle, St. Paul. So that, if all the scriptural learning, and
-all the bigotry of Judaism, could not stop the progress of Christianity,
-as we know it did not, it may fairly be presumed, that the way of inquiry
-was not unfavourable to the new religion, and that truth and reason were
-on that side. But
-
-2. From the Jews, let us turn to the GENTILES, at that time flourishing
-in arts and letters. To them was the Gospel preached by the Apostles,
-and especially by their Apostle, St. Paul, through the whole extent
-of the Roman empire; and not without success in the head quarters of
-Gentilism, in the chief towns of Asia, in Greece, at Athens, and even at
-Rome itself.
-
-The pride of Gentile wisdom, indeed, kept its professors, for some time,
-from taking more than a superficial notice of the new religion. But
-its rapid progress among the people, joined to its declared purpose of
-prescribing to the general faith of mankind, broke through this real or
-affected indifference, rouzed, at length, the attention of the great
-and wise, and provoked the zeal of both to shew itself in every mode of
-opposition. The great persecuted, and the wise reasoned: and this latter
-species of hostility (the more alarming of the two, if Christianity had
-been an imposture) was carried on with vigour, and without intermission
-(whatever intervals there might be of the _former_) through several
-successive ages. The four Gospels, and the other authentic documents of
-our religion, were now in all hands, when this lettered war commenced
-against Christianity, and continued, till Paganism was utterly overthrown
-and subdued. Many adversaries of the Christian name engaged in this
-unequal contest: but the most distinguished are, CELSUS, in the second
-century; PORPHYRY, in the third; and JULIAN, in the fourth: all of them,
-eminent philosophers; and the last of this great triumvirate, an imperial
-one. The two first wrote with all freedom, because against a persecuted,
-and on the side of the predominant, religion; and the third had the whole
-power of the state in his own hands.
-
-The works of these great chieftains of infidelity, it must be owned, are
-not extant in their proper form. But Celsus is almost entire in Origen; a
-great part of Julian may be seen in Cyril; and considerable fragments of
-Porphyry’s work have been preserved in Jerom and other old writers.
-
-Ye do not expect me to produce, on this occasion, the substance of what
-these three philosophers have said against the Christian cause. Any that
-will, may see it in the original authors, just mentioned, or in many
-modern collections, that have been made out of them. It may be enough to
-say, that those, who give themselves this trouble, will find much abuse
-and misrepresentation, and some argument: but the last so weak, and
-inconclusive, that one cannot wonder much at what Chrysostom tells us,
-“That the early books, written against Christianity, soon fell into a
-general contempt; that they perished almost as fast as they appeared; and
-that, if they still subsisted any where, it was, because they had been
-preserved by the Christians themselves[298].”
-
-But, setting aside, for the present, the merits of the question,
-the fact[299], we know, is, that all the efforts of Greek and Roman
-philosophy were not successful: that the church was soon filled with
-its professors, even before the empire became Christian: and that this
-great event itself happened within little more than three centuries from
-the birth of Christ. _So mightily grew the word of God, and prevailed_,
-notwithstanding the severity, with which its pretensions were tried.
-
-It will be said, however, “that the argument, drawn from the success of
-Christianity, is not altogether so convincing, as we pretend: that, for
-a time, the learned heathens paid but little attention to the new sect;
-that, when it had taken such root among the people as to become the
-general subject of inquiry, learning was now very much on the decline;
-that barbarism had prevailed to a great degree before the days of
-Constantine, and then increased so fast, especially after the irruption
-of the Northern nations, as to leave no traces, almost, of light and
-knowledge; and that to this sottish state of ignorance, and, its usual
-attendant, credulity, which continued through many ages, the widely
-extended and permanent establishments of Christianity are, therefore,
-most probably to be ascribed.”
-
-Now, though I cannot assent to what is here alledged, or insinuated, that
-the adversaries of Christianity wanted either time, or light, or zeal
-enough to discredit its pretensions, if the way of reason and disputation
-could have done it, before that long night of ignorance came on which
-is supposed to be so favourable to religious imposture; yet I will not
-deny that taste and literature were degenerating in the Roman empire,
-from the time that learned pagans began to interest themselves in the
-controversy with the Christians; and that, therefore, had the last only
-prevailed through this period of declining letters, something would have
-been wanting to the force and integrity of that argument, which infers
-the truth of their cause, from its success. But the fact is, that the
-event has been the same, in opposite circumstances; as I shall now shew,
-
-II. Under the SECOND head of this discourse; in which I proposed to point
-out to you, very briefly, the influence of REVIVING, AND REVIVED letters
-on the credit and reception of the Christian faith.
-
-From the middle of the 14th century, and even earlier, there were some
-efforts made to break through that gloom of ignorance and superstition,
-which had so long overspread the Christian world; and, before the end
-of it, it was visible enough that these efforts would, in no long time,
-be attended with success. Accordingly, a zeal for true and ancient
-literature made its way through most parts of Europe, and with so rapid
-a progress, that multitudes of able men arose within the compass of the
-next century, and were enough instructed to assist in the reformation
-of religion, which followed in the commencement of the 16th. From that
-time to the present, arts and letters have been studied with unceasing
-application; and all the powers of reason put forth in the cultivation
-of knowledge, in the discovery of error, and the search of truth. It is
-pretended, that we are now enlightened beyond the example of all former
-ages: it is credible, that, in some places, where liberty has attended
-the pursuits of learning, the utmost ability of the human mind, on the
-most important objects of science, has been exerted and displayed.
-
-Now, amidst this blaze of light, gradually ascending from the dawn
-of science to its meridian lustre, what has been the fortune of the
-divine religion, we profess? It has been the first, and last object of
-attention. It has been examined with the most suspicious and sceptical
-curiosity. It has stood the attacks of wit, of learning, of philosophy;
-and, sometimes, of all these acting in concert, without any restraint or
-reserve whatsoever. Yet it keeps its ground; or rather the belief of it
-is entertained, not only by the multitude, but, more firmly than ever, by
-the ablest and wisest men.
-
-For the truth of this assertion, I can only refer you to your own fair
-and candid observation; the proof of it being much too long to be given,
-at this time. For it would require me to set before you the several
-topics of argument, which have been employed against Christianity, and
-the futility of them. It would, further, oblige me to make appear, that
-the number of those, who still embrace Christianity, is not only vastly
-greater, but their names, too, beyond comparison, more respectable, than
-of those who reject it: all which it would be tedious, indeed, but not
-difficult to shew.
-
-However, till some such proof be produced, ye will be apt, I know, to
-remind me of many eminent persons, who have been the declared enemies of
-our religion: ye will object to me the complaints, which even divines
-make, of an overflowing infidelity in the present times.
-
-In abatement of this prejudice, I could say with much truth, that the
-character of those eminent persons has been raised too high; and that
-these complaints, though not without foundation, have been carried too
-far. But I have other, and more momentous considerations to suggest to
-you, on this subject.
-
-At the revival of letters, when the manifold corruptions of Christianity
-had been discovered, it was too natural for the disabused mind to
-entertain some suspicions of the revelation itself; and when reason, now
-emancipated from authority, had tried its strength, and found itself able
-to detect innumerable errors in religion and science, it too hastily
-concluded that there was no subject too vast for its comprehension,
-and that its power and right to decide on all questions whatsoever was
-evident and beyond dispute. From that suspicious, and this delirious
-state of the human mind, infidelity sprung up, and on either stock it
-still grows. “We have been deceived in many things, with regard to this
-religion; therefore in every thing.” “We know much; therefore we are
-capable of knowing all things.”—These, as extravagant as they appear, are
-the two sophisms, into which all modern free-thinking is to be resolved.
-
-But now it is so evident to men of sense, that “a revelation may be
-true, though much imposture has been grafted upon it, and that its
-doctrines may challenge our belief, though they be not within the reach
-of our knowledge.” This, I say, is now so uncontroverted among men of
-sense, that, if the list of those, who, in the course of two or three
-centuries, have supported the infidel cause on those grounds, were
-ever so great or so conspicuous, it could furnish no argument, or even
-presumption, in favour of that cause itself.
-
-But the truth is, that list is neither formidable for its numbers, nor
-for the capacity of those, of whom it consists. It shrinks into nothing,
-when we oppose to it the multitudes of able men, who have been, during
-this period, and are, the advocates of Christianity; and, among these,
-when we recollect the names of Grotius, Pascal, Bacon, Locke, Boyle,
-Newton, and many others (not of the sacred order, though I know not why
-the authority of these should be left out of the account); when, I say,
-we look up to these great lights and ornaments of the Christian world.
-
-Nor let it be surmized, that the reasonings of infidel writers have been
-better, or other, than they are here represented to be, or that they have
-not been enforced with full liberty, and in all their strength. What
-the liberty, or rather licence, of these enlightened times has been, we
-all know: And of their arguments, ye may all judge: though this labour
-be the less necessary, as most of them have not only been triumphantly
-confuted by believers, but successively exploded by unbelievers
-themselves; and the rest of them, have not prevented men of thought and
-ability from being generally on the side of the Christian religion, even
-to this day.
-
-Ye see, I am as concise as possible, and omit very much of what might
-be said on this subject, not to exceed the limits usually prescribed to
-a discourse in this place. But when ye contemplate the present state
-of Christianity, in an age of the greatest light and freedom, and the
-respect that is still paid to it, I must just desire you to call to
-mind the state of pagan religion under the like circumstances; and to
-reflect that, when men of sense examined its pretensions in the Augustan
-age, there was not a single person, in the priesthood or out of it, of
-ability and learning, who did not see and know that the whole was a
-manifest imposture, and destitute of all evidence, that could induce a
-well-grounded and rational assent[300]. Can any thing like this be said,
-or even suspected, of the Christian faith?
-
-I know, that fraud and falsehood, by being mixed with a great deal of
-acknowledged evident truth, may obtain respect even with some acute and
-inquisitive men; as, without doubt, has been the case of Popery, since
-the Reformation: I know, too, that a false religion, unsupported by any
-truth, may even keep its ground in a learned age, when restraint or other
-causes have prevented a free inquiry into that religion; as may have been
-the case of Mahometanism, in one stage of the Saracen empire: but that
-a religion, like the Christian, as delivered in the Scriptures, which
-must either be wholly false, or wholly true, and has been scrutinized
-with the utmost freedom and severity, should yet, if the arguments for it
-were weak and fallacious, maintain its credit, and subsist in the belief
-of the most capable and accomplished reasoners, is, I think, a prodigy,
-which never has appeared, or can appear among men.
-
-I suppose, enough has been, now, said to shew, that, in fact, the
-knowledge of past or present times has not discredited the cause of
-Christianity; and that what there is of infidelity may be well accounted
-for from certain prevailing prejudices, which unhappily sprung up with
-returning Letters, at the Reformation. I might go on to shew, that the
-evidences of the Christian religion, as drawn out, and set before us, by
-its modern apologists, are now stronger, and more convincing, than they
-ever were in any former period; and that, on the whole, this religion has
-not lost, but gained infinitely, by all the inquiries, which improved
-science has enabled men of leisure and curiosity to make into it. But it
-is time to return to the TEXT, and to conclude this commentary upon it,
-with one or two short reflexions.
-
-FIRST, if it be true, that after so many trials of every kind, those
-especially of reason, and philosophy, to which the religion of the Gospel
-has been exposed, the belief of it remains unshaken in the minds of men,
-Then is the prophecy of the text thus far signally verified; and it is
-indisputable, that _the gates of hell have not_, hitherto, _prevailed
-against it_.
-
-SECONDLY, if it be scarce imaginable that any future trials, from
-without, should be more severe, than those which Christianity has already
-suffered; or that those, from within, I mean the trials of severe
-rational inquiry, should be more formidable, than what it has undergone
-in two periods, the most distinguished for the free exertion of the
-human faculties, of any that have occurred in the history of the world;
-then may it seem credible, or rather then is the presumption strong and
-cogent, that neither, hereafter, will the prophecy be confuted, and that
-the _gates of hell shall not_, at any time, or at all, _prevail against
-it_.
-
-THIRDLY, and lastly, We may learn, from both these conclusions, to put
-our trust in this impregnable fortress of our Religion; to embrace with
-stedfastness, and to observe with the utmost reverence, a RULE OF FAITH
-AND LIFE, which bears the signatures of immortality upon it, and appears
-to be under the special protection, as it proceeded originally from the
-special favour and authority, of God himself.
-
-
-
-
- A
-
- LARGER DISCOURSE,
-
- BY WAY OF
-
- COMMENTARY,
-
- ON
-
- THAT REMARKABLE PART
-
- OF
-
- THE GOSPEL-HISTORY,
-
- IN WHICH
-
- JESUS IS REPRESENTED,
-
- AS DRIVING THE BUYERS AND SELLERS
- OUT OF THE TEMPLE.
-
-
-
-
-A
-
-DISCOURSE[301]
-
-ON
-
-CHRIST’S DRIVING THE BUYERS AND SELLERS OUT OF THE TEMPLE.
-
-
-I propose, in this discourse, to take into consideration a very
-remarkable part of the Gospel-history; in which Jesus is supposed to have
-exercised an act of authority on some persons, whom the Jews permitted to
-carry on a certain traffic within the walls of the Temple.
-
-I shall, FIRST, recite the several accounts, which the sacred historians
-have given of this transaction; and shall, THEN, hazard some
-observations, which will, perhaps, be found to lessen, or to remove, the
-objections commonly made to it.
-
-I begin with St. John’s account of it, which is delivered in these words:
-
- Ch. ii. 13-17.
-
- “And the Jews passover was at hand, and Jesus went up to
- Jerusalem, and found in the temple those that sold oxen, and
- sheep, and doves, and the changers of money, sitting: And when
- he had made a scourge of small cords, he drove them all out
- of the temple, and the sheep and the oxen; and poured out the
- changers money, and overthrew the tables; and said unto them
- that sold doves, Take these things hence; make not my Father’s
- house an house of merchandize. And his disciples remembered
- that it was written, The zeal of thine house hath eaten me up.”
-
-Thus far the Evangelist, St. John: And the order of the history shews,
-that this was done at the _first_ Passover which Jesus attended, after
-he had taken upon himself his prophetic office.
-
-The other Evangelists relate a similar transaction, which had happened at
-the Passover, immediately preceding his crucifixion. Some have imagined
-that, on this last occasion, the same act was repeated by him, on two
-several days; but I see no sufficient ground for that supposition.
-St. Mark is easily reconciled with St. Matthew and St. Luke by only
-admitting, what is very usual in the sacred writers, some little neglect
-of method in the narration of one or other of those historians.
-
- Mat. xxi. 12, 13.
-
- “And Jesus went into the temple of God, and cast out all them
- that sold and bought in the temple, and overthrew the tables
- of the money-changers, and the seats of them that sold doves,
- and said unto them, it is written, My house shall be called the
- house of prayer, but ye have made it a den of thieves.”
-
- Mark xi. 15-17.
-
- “And they come to Jerusalem: And Jesus went into the temple,
- and began to cast out them that sold and bought in the temple,
- and overthrew the tables of the money-changers, and the seats
- of them that sold doves; And would not suffer that any man
- should carry any vessel through the temple. And he taught,
- saying unto them, Is it not written, My house shall be called
- of all nations the house of prayer? But ye have made it a den
- of thieves.”
-
- Luke xix. 45, 46.
-
- “And he went into the temple, and began to cast out them that
- sold therein, and them that bought, saying unto them, It is
- written, My house is the house of prayer: but ye have made it a
- den of thieves.”
-
-In reading these passages, one is led to conclude, that the ACT itself,
-here ascribed to our Lord, was of no small importance; for it is related,
-we see, by every one of the four Evangelists. The substance of what we
-learn from all of them, compared together, is this: “That Jesus, at two
-several times, _once_, before the first Passover which he attended
-after the entrance on his ministry, and _again_, before the Passover
-which preceded his passion, went up to Jerusalem, and entered into the
-_temple_; that is (as all interpreters agree, and as the nature of the
-thing speaks) into the _first_, or outermost court of the temple, or
-that which was called _the court of the Gentiles_; because the Gentiles,
-who acknowledged the one true God, were permitted to come and worship
-him there; that in this court (which was separated from the next or
-second court by a sept or low wall, and deemed by the Jews _prophane_,
-in contempt of the Gentiles, to whose use it was dedicated) _he found
-those that sold oxen and sheep and doves, and the changers of money_;
-that is, persons who attended there to furnish what was necessary for the
-service of the temple, and so made a kind of market, of this first court
-or division of it: that, upon observing this prophanation, _he made a
-scourge of small cords_, or, as the word in the original strictly means,
-of _rushes_, such as he may be supposed to have found upon the spot, and
-with this scourge drove these traffickers from their station; signifying,
-by this and such like actions, his displeasure at this pollution of a
-part of the temple; and saying to them, withall, _It is written, My house
-shall be called the house of prayer of all nations: But ye have made it
-an house of merchandize_, or, as the equivalent expression is, _a den of
-thieves_.”
-
-Thus stands the history itself: And the light in which it is commonly
-understood, is this; “That Jesus, in virtue of his prophetic, or, if you
-will, _regal_ character, did this act of authority, to testify his zeal
-for the honour of God’s house, thus polluted and desecrated, contrary to
-its original purpose and design, by the base and commercial uses, that
-were now made of it;” and it is probable, that the Disciples themselves,
-_at the time_, considered it in this light, only, _for they remembered_,
-St. John says, _that it was written, The zeal of thine house hath eaten
-me up_—applying a passage out of the Psalms, to this act of zeal in their
-master.
-
-It is true, this circumstance is only related by St. John, who records
-the _former_ transaction, and omits the _latter_: the reason of this
-difference will, perhaps, be seen, as we proceed in our inquiry.
-
-But to this solution of the case some objections have been made.
-
-Besides the strangeness and indecency, as many apprehend, of the
-proceeding itself, and the improbability that the persons concerned
-in this chastisement, who had public allowance for what they did,
-should patiently submit to it (for we hear of no resistance, nor of any
-complaint, made by them)—Besides, I say, these obvious considerations,
-the act itself was an act of CIVIL POWER, which Jesus always disclaimed,
-and for which, it will be said, he had no warrant, either from the
-ruling Jews, themselves, or from his regal, or prophetic character: not,
-from _the ruling Jews_, who, we know, were offended at his behaviour;
-not, from his _regal_ character, which was not of this world; nor yet,
-lastly, from his _prophetic_ office: for, though that might authorize
-him to declare his sense of this prophanation, it may be thought not to
-extend so far as to justify him in disturbing the civil rights of men,
-and doing a direct violence to their property and persons. Jesus himself,
-we understand, was so tender of _both_, that, upon another occasion,
-when it was proposed to him to divide a contested inheritance between
-two claimants, he said to the proposer, _Man, who made me a judge, or a
-divider over you_[302]? Whence it may seem reasonable to infer, that he
-would not have interposed, by an overt act of authority or jurisdiction,
-in _this_ case; notwithstanding the reference it had to the honour of
-religion, or the right he might have to condemn an abusive practice,
-from his spiritual character.
-
-These difficulties seem to shew, that there is something more in the
-case, than a mere expression of zeal against the prophaners of the
-temple: not but this might be one end, but it could not be the sole or
-even principal end, of so extraordinary a transaction.
-
-I do not indeed find, that the ancient commentators on the Gospels have
-said any thing to the difficulties, I have mentioned. They seem to have
-looked no further than to the obvious sense of this transaction, and to
-have acquiesced in the opinion of its being intended to evidence our
-Lord’s zeal for the honour of God’s house, without any further view or
-purpose whatsoever. They found it related as a matter of fact; and they
-piously admitted the authority of Jesus to controul the civil usages
-and rights of the Jews, by virtue of his transcendant power and divine
-character.
-
-But the moderns have been aware of the objections, which lie against this
-interpretation. Our learned Selden, in particular, has an entire chapter,
-in his book _De jure naturali et gentium juxta disciplinam Hebræorum_, on
-this subject[303]. His notion is, That Jesus exerted this act of power,
-in virtue of what the Jews called THE RIGHT OR PRIVILEGE OF ZEALOTS[304];
-by which they meant, not a general zeal or indignation (such as is before
-spoken of) against what they conceived to be derogatory to the honour
-of their religion; but a _right_, strictly so called, derived to them
-from the civil institutions and approved usages of their country, of
-interfering, in some extraordinary cases, to repel a manifest insult on
-their law, by private force, without waiting for the slow process of a
-judicial determination.
-
-The principal, or rather sole foundation, on which this notion is
-erected, is the case of _Phinehas_, related in the book of NUMBERS[305]:
-which the Jews afterwards construed into a _law_, or embraced at least
-as a _traditionary_ rule of conduct, derived to them, as they supposed,
-from the times of Moses. But this case will by no means bear the
-construction, which has been made of it. For,
-
-1. It was a single and very _particular_ case, without any intimation
-from the historian, that it was afterwards to be drawn into precedent.
-
-2. It may seem to have been, if not commanded, yet in some measure
-authorized, or it was at least, by an express revelation, afterwards
-justified. For the matter is thus related. Upon the defection of the
-Israelites at Shittim into idolatry, in consequence of their prophane, as
-well as impure commerce with _the daughters of Moab_, God sent a plague
-among them, and besides commanded Moses to put to death all those who had
-been guilty of such abominations. Moses obeyed, and _said unto the judges
-of Israel, slay ye every one his men, that were joined unto Baal-Peor_.
-
-This command was issued very properly to the _Judges_: but a _private_
-man, _Phinehas, the son of Eleazer, the son of Aaron the priest_,
-instigated by his zeal, and presuming perhaps on his relationship to the
-high priest (from whose family, a more than ordinary zeal in such a case
-might be expected) did, under these circumstances, take upon himself to
-execute that command on two persons, surprized in the very act, for which
-the penalty had been denounced, in the presence of all the people. Now,
-though this proceeding was irregular in itself, yet the notoriety of the
-fact, the most atrocious that could be, and the most daring insult on the
-divine authority, seemed almost to supersede the necessity of a legal
-process. The consequence was, that God himself was pleased to accept and
-reward the deed, because the author of it, on such a provocation, and at
-such a time, _was zealous for his God, and had made an atonement for the
-children of Israel_.
-
-But to argue from a single instance, so circumstanced, that the same
-zeal was allowable in other cases, in which no such countenance had
-been given, and no such necessity or provocation could be pretended,
-is evidently so unreasonable, that no stress ought to be laid on this
-argument. The Jews, indeed, in succeeding times, might fancy a general
-rule to have been implied in this single instance; and we know from their
-history, to what enormous excesses this their easy belief, concurring
-with a natural violence of temper, afterwards transported them, during
-the last calamities of this devoted people[306]: but our Lord was
-very unlikely to give a countenance to their traditions, or to add the
-sanction of his authority to a principle, so weakly founded, and so
-liable to the worst abuse.
-
-3. This _traffic of the merchants_, in the court of the Gentiles, how
-unfit soever it might be, depended on the same authority, as this
-pretended _right itself of the zealots_; that is, on the allowed usage
-and constant discipline of their country. No express precept of the law
-could be alledged for either. So that this _right_ could not be exerted
-but at the expence of _another_, equally well founded.
-
-4. Mr. Selden himself appears to have had some distrust of his own
-hypothesis, by the care he takes to interweave, in his discourse, a
-charge of _fraud_ on the merchants, together with their _prophanation_
-of the temple. But the learned writer forgets, that ZELOTISM (if I
-may have leave to use a new term) respected _religion_ only, and not
-private morals. For even _the act of zeal_, performed by Phinehas (from
-which, only, the very idea of this _Jewish right_, if it were one, was
-derived) had, for its object, not the _fornication_ simply, but the
-_idolatry_, of the criminals: it was a sacrifice, not to the honour of
-_virtue_, as such, but to the _honour of God_. And, indeed, nothing but
-the singular structure of the Jewish polity, in which the honour of God
-was so extraordinarily considered, could give any the least colour to the
-_fiction_ of such a right.
-
-5. _Lastly_, whatever degree of credit this principle of _zelotism_ might
-have acquired among the Jews, it was very unlikely, perhaps we may say,
-impossible, that Jesus should act upon it. When the Disciples, _James_
-and _John_, on a certain occasion, were instigated by this _zeal_ to
-call for fire from Heaven on the heads of some persons, who had offered
-an insult to their master, Jesus himself rebuked them in these terms—_Ye
-know not what spirit ye are of: For the Son of man is not come to destroy
-men’s lives, but to save them_ [Luke ix. 55.]—To _burn with fire_, is
-indeed something more than, _to scourge_: but, though the vengeance be
-not equal, in these two instances, the _spirit_ is the same from which
-it is derived, and by which it is justified: and this _spirit_, we are
-expressly told, is not that by which Jesus chose to conduct himself. It
-was to no purpose to alledge the case of a Phinehas, or even an Elias:
-these were no precedents for HIM, who _came not to destroy men’s lives,
-but to save them_.
-
-I conclude then, upon the whole, that Jesus did not perform this act
-of driving the merchants out of the temple, in the Jewish character of
-ZEALOT; in what _other_ character he might possibly perform it, I shall
-now inquire.
-
-The ingenious conjecture of Mr. Selden, already considered, was
-apparently taken up by him to avoid the difficulties which he found
-in accounting for this act of zeal in our Lord, from his _prophetic_
-character only. These difficulties, he saw very distinctly, and has
-explained with much force.
-
-“Though the Saviour of the world, says he, was undoubtedly both God
-and King, and, by his absolute dominion, not over the Jews only, but
-the whole race of mankind, must be supposed to have had a right of
-doing whatever he saw fit to do; yet since we know, that he constantly
-submitted himself in all things to the established forms of civil
-justice, whether of Jewish, or Roman institution; and, as being desirous
-to exhibit in his own person a most absolute example of obedience to
-the course of human authority, was careful always to abstain from every
-thing, that might be thought a violation of it in any private man; since,
-besides, we know, that, considering the peculiar envy, to which his life
-was exposed, he could not possibly have gratified his enemies more, than
-by putting it in their power to bring a criminal charge against him:
-it must, on all these accounts, be thought reasonable to suppose, that
-our Lord would not have ventured on so extraordinary an act, as that of
-driving the merchants out of the temple, unless it had been such, as,
-even in the opinion of those who were most prejudiced against him, he
-might lawfully and regularly perform[307].”
-
-All this, the reader sees, is prudently, piously, and ably said, by
-this very learned writer; and I readily subscribe to every word of it.
-We only differ in our conclusion from these premises. Mr. Selden holds,
-that what Jesus did on this occasion, _cannot_ be reconciled to the idea
-of his PROPHETIC CHARACTER, as sustained by him in the course of his
-ministry: I, on the contrary, conceive, that it very well _may_. But then
-I consider that _character_, as exercised by our Lord, at this time, in
-_another manner_, and to _other ends_, than the learned writer supposed.
-
-In a word, I see Jesus in the light, not of a ZEALOT, but of a PROPHET
-only, in this whole transaction. I see him acting, not on precarious
-principles and rabbinical traditions, but on the sure basis of scripture;
-and regulating his conduct by the known ideas of his office, such as had
-at all times been entertained of it, and were even now familiar to the
-Jews in the times in which he lived.
-
-To make way for what I have further to advance on this subject, it will,
-then, be necessary to consider, _first_, the PRACTICES AND USAGES of
-the Jewish prophets, I mean the _manner_, in which that high office was
-sometimes discharged and exercised by them, even to the very times in
-question: and, _secondly_, to consider, the true scope and meaning of the
-PROPHECY itself, to which Jesus appeals, and on which he justifies this
-obnoxious part of his conduct.
-
-1. It is impossible for those, who have read the scriptures of the Old
-Testament, not to observe, how much they abound in figures and material
-images. Nay, the prophets are frequently represented as instructing
-those, to whom they are sent, not in figurative expression only, but in
-the way of action and by sensible signs. And this mode of information has
-been shewn by learned men[308] to arise from the very nature of language,
-in its rude and imperfect state; being indeed an apt and necessary
-expedient to supply the defects of speech, under that circumstance. It
-has further been made appear, from the history of mankind, that this
-practice universally prevailed in all barbarous nations, as well as in
-Judæa; nay, that it every where _continued_ to prevail, as an ornamental
-method of communication, long after the necessity was over, which had
-given birth to it; especially among the inhabitants of the East, to whose
-natural vivacity it was so well suited. Hence, the Jewish prophets, it
-is said, but conformed to the established practice of their own times,
-when they adopted this use of representative action: as, when one Prophet
-_pushed with horns of iron_, to denote the overthrow of the Syrians[309];
-and another, _broke a potter’s vessel to pieces_, to express the
-shattered fortune of the Jews[310]; with innumerable other instances of
-the like nature.
-
-This the prophet Hosea calls, using _similitudes by the_ HAND _of the
-prophets_[311]; and the effect of it was, to impress the proposed
-information on the minds of men with more force (being addressed to their
-eyes and senses) than could have been done by a mere verbal explication.
-
-This mode of teaching by signs, then, let it be remembered, was familiar
-to the Jewish nation, and prevailed even in the days of Jesus; as is
-clear from John the Baptist’s _wearing a garment of camel’s hair, and
-eating locusts and wild honey_[312]; to signify the mortification and
-repentance, which he was commissioned to preach—from Christ’s _riding
-into Jerusalem_[313]; to signify the assumption of his regal office—and
-from his directing his disciples to _shake of the dust of their
-feet[314], as a testimony against them_, who would not receive his Gospel.
-
-And we find that, sometimes, even a miracle was wrought to furnish a
-convenient _sign_—As when Simon’s _draught of fishes_[315], was made
-to denote the success he should have in his ministry; according to the
-interpretation of Christ himself, who said to him, _Henceforth thou shalt
-catch men_—As, again, when Jesus _curst the barren fig-tree_[316], to
-signify the unfruitfulness and rejection of the Jewish nation—And, as
-when he permitted _the unclean spirits to enter into a herd of swine_,
-which, thereupon, _ran violently down a steep place and perished in the
-waters_[317]: an exertion of his miraculous power, which, among other
-purposes, might be intended to express, in the way of _representation_,
-the tyranny of evil spirits, and their attendants, evil habits, over
-sensual and voluptuous men (of whom _swine_ are the acknowledged
-emblems), and the consequent _perdition in which they drown them_. Nay,
-the very parables of our Lord, are but this mode of information, by
-material signs, once removed.
-
-It may, further, be observed, that the two Christian Sacraments
-themselves are founded on this principle: and so prevalent was the use of
-conveying information in this form, that even the Roman Governor, when
-he condemned Jesus, _took water and washed his hands[318] before the
-multitude_, to signify to them, that he was innocent of that horrid crime.
-
-From all this we may certainly conclude, that it was very customary
-in our Saviour’s time for men to express themselves by outward and
-visible signs: that this mode of expression was especially of ancient
-and approved use among the Prophets, when they would inforce some high
-and important topic of instruction: and that, not impossibly therefore,
-the famous transaction in the temple may be only an information of this
-nature.
-
-If then we would know, what that _information_ was, or, in other words,
-what was the peculiar _object_ of it, it will be proper, in the next
-place,
-
-2. To turn to the PROPHECY, to which Jesus appeals, and to consider the
-true scope and purpose of it.
-
-The prophecies of Isaiah, it is well known, are chiefly taken up in
-predicting the future glories of Christ’s kingdom, of which _the call
-of the Gentiles_ makes a conspicuous and shining part. This great event
-is foretold in a vast variety of places; and in different forms of
-expression, one while, plain and direct, at other times, figurative
-and obscure. The Messiah is spoken of as _bringing forth judgement to
-the Gentiles_; and more clearly still, as _being given for a light to
-the Gentiles_[319]. In other places, the expression is ænigmatical;
-as where the Heathen are mentioned as _prisoners_, who shall be set
-at liberty[320]—as _strangers_, who should build up the walls of
-Jerusalem[321]—_as blind people that have eyes, and deaf that have
-ears_[322]—and under a multitude of other images.
-
-Full of these ideas, the Prophet begins the fifty-sixth chapter with the
-following triumphant exhortation—_Thus saith the Lord, Keep ye judgment,
-and do justice, for my salvation is near to come, and my righteousness to
-be revealed_; the very language, almost, in which the Baptist afterwards
-announced our Saviour to the Jews: whence it may appear, of _what_
-salvation the Prophet is here speaking. But to _whom_ is this salvation
-promised? Why, in general, to those _who keep the Sabbath from polluting
-it_, ver. 2; that is, in the prophetic style, to those who should embrace
-the Christian faith: for the _Sabbath_ being the sign or token of God’s
-covenant with the Jews, hence the prophets transfer this idea to the
-Christian Covenant; and, by _keeping the Sabbath_, they express the
-observance of that future covenant, to which mankind should be admitted
-under the ministry of Jesus.
-
-But, perhaps, the Jews _only_ were to be admitted to this new covenant
-of salvation. The prophet expressly asserts the contrary: for not only
-the Jews of the captivity (to whom we are to suppose the course of the
-prophecy to be immediately directed) are concerned in this salvation,
-but THE SONS OF THE STRANGER, that is, the Gentiles (whom the Jews
-always considered under the idea of _Strangers_, just as the Greeks did
-the rest of the world, under that of _Barbarians_)—_Even them_ (says
-the Prophet, speaking in the person of God) _will I bring to my holy
-mountain_, ver. 7, and make them joyful _in my house of prayer: their
-burnt-offerings and their sacrifices shall be accepted on my altar_.
-The language is still _Jewish_, according to the prophetic style, which
-describes the Christian dispensation under Jewish ideas: but by _holy
-mountain_ is meant the Church of Christ; and by _Sacrifices_, the
-spiritual services of that new œconomy. And, to make this purpose of
-his prophecy the clearer, he even departs, in one instance, from his
-_legal_ manner of expression, in saying, _I will make them joyful in my_
-HOUSE OF PRAYER; which is a spiritual and Christian idea; the Jewish
-temple being properly a _house of sacrifice_, and not of _prayer_; for
-which last service there is no express precept in the law. And then
-follows the prophecy, quoted by Jesus, as explanatory of what he was then
-doing—_for mine house shall be called an house of prayer for all people_.
-The prophet, as solicitous to be understood, repeats and marks out this
-distinction: I spoke of it, says he, as my house of prayer, _For my house
-shall_ [in those latter days] _be called_ [that is, shall _be_] a _house
-of prayer_, and that too, _for all people_; that is, not for the Jews
-only, but for _all the Gentiles_. And, as if all this were not still
-clear enough, he adds—_The Lord God, which gathereth the outcasts of
-Israel_, the Jews dispersed in the captivity, _saith, Yet I will gather_
-OTHERS _to him, besides those that are gathered him_, ver. 8. that is,
-the Gentiles.
-
-This famous text, then, is clearly a prediction of the call of the
-Gentiles into the Church of Christ, a prediction of that great event
-which should take place under the new dispensation, when the Jewish
-enclosure was to be laid open, and all men indifferently, the Gentiles,
-as well as the Jews, were to be admitted into the Christian covenant.
-
-It is true, our English version of this text, quoted by our Lord, very
-much obscures, or rather perverts, its sense. It stands thus in the
-Gospel of St. Mark—_My house shall be called of all nations the house of
-prayer_, xi. 17. Whence it appears, that our translators considered this
-text, as describing only the _destination_ of the Jewish temple, and not
-as predicting the _genius_ of the Christian religion. But the scope of
-the prophecy, as above explained, and the Greek text itself, clearly
-shews that it ought to have been rendered thus—_My house shall be called
-a house of prayer for all the Gentiles_: ὁ οἶκός μου, οἶκος προσευχῆς
-κληθήσεται πᾶσι τοῖς ἔθνεσιν.
-
-Thus much being premised, both _of the prophetic manner of teaching by
-signs_, and _of the true meaning of this prophecy_, let us see now what
-light these considerations afford to our present subject.
-
-Jesus enters into that court of the temple, which was called _the court
-of the Gentiles_; who had leave to worship the God of Israel there, but
-were permitted to advance no further. This _court_, he finds polluted
-by the sale of beasts, and the traffic of merchants; the Jews, in their
-sovereign contempt of these poor heathen, not only excluding them from
-their own place of worship, but debasing them still farther by the
-allowance of this sordid society to mix with them. What is the conduct of
-our Lord, on this occasion! Why, agreeably to his prophetic character, he
-declares himself sent to break through all these exclusive privileges and
-distinctions; to accomplish that great mystery, which the old prophets
-had so much and so triumphantly spoken of, as reserved to be revealed
-by him; and to admit the Heathen to an equal participation of the
-blessings, which the Gospel-covenant was to dispense, with the Jewish
-people.
-
-But, in what manner does he declare this purpose? Why, he _makes a
-scourge of small cords_, and, by the representative action of driving
-this prophane company out of the temple, shews that he is come to break
-down that partition-wall, which separated the Gentile and the Jewish
-worshippers, to vindicate the despised Heathen from the insults offered
-to them, and to lay open the means of salvation to all people. _He began
-to cast out them that sold therein and them that bought, saying to them,
-It is written, My house shall be called a house of prayer for all the
-Gentiles._ The action, we see, is used as _expressive_ of his design; and
-his _design_ is clearly ascertained, by applying to himself the express
-words of Isaiah. The whole is, then, _a prophetic information, by way of
-action_, of the genius of Christianity, which was to extend its benefits
-even to the Gentiles.
-
-I have before acknowledged, that a _secondary_ purpose of this
-transaction might be, to give the Jews to understand, how culpable they
-had been in permitting even a lawful traffic to be carried on in any
-part of their temple. For it was usual with Jesus to accomplish several
-ends by the same act, and even to lay the greatest apparent stress on
-that end, which was not first in his intention: of which some examples
-may hereafter be given. But the primary design of _this_ act (and but for
-the sake of which it would not have been undertaken) I suppose, was, to
-point out the diffusive nature and influence of his spiritual kingdom.
-
-It may be said, perhaps, that, if such was the intention of Jesus, it
-had been more properly and significantly expressed by a different act, I
-mean, by that _of bringing the Heathen into the temple_, rather than _of
-driving the merchants out of it_. But we are to reflect, that, as the
-Heathen were already permitted to come into this part of the temple (and
-it would have given, at this time, too great a shock to the prejudices
-of the Jews, to have carried them into any other), that act would have
-conveyed no new information; it being on all hands agreed that the
-devout Heathen might worship there. The business was, to shew that their
-religious privileges were, hereafter, to be the same with those of the
-Jews; and that no more contempt was to be countenanced, towards the one,
-than the other. All distinctions were to cease; and this information
-was, therefore, most fitly conveyed by an act, which expressed the same
-regard for the court of the Gentiles, as for the court of the Jews: that
-is, the honour of each is equally asserted, and no prophanation allowed
-of either.
-
-In further confirmation of the sense, here given to this transaction, it
-may be observed, that the relation of it is joined, or rather interwoven
-with that other of his _cursing the barren fig-tree_: which was plainly
-an emblem, and so is _confessed_ to be, of _the rejection of the Jews_;
-just as that we have been considering is _presumed_ to be, of _the
-call of the Gentiles_: these two things being closely connected in the
-order of God’s dispensations. Whence St. Paul speaks of the one, as the
-consequence of the other; of _the fall of the Jews_, as _the riches
-of the world_; and of _the loss of the Jews_, as _the riches of the
-Gentiles_[323]. Now, if we turn to St. Mark, we there find[324], that the
-_fig-tree is cursed_, as Jesus is coming from Bethany to Jerusalem—that,
-when he came to Jerusalem, he went into the temple, and _drove out
-the money-changers_, &c.—and that the next morning, when he and his
-disciples were returning the same way, _as they passed by, they saw the
-fig tree dried up from the roots_[325].
-
-If then it be allowed, that Christ meant, by the _sign_ of the blasted
-_fig-tree_ (the story of which is so remarkably incorporated with that
-other of purging the temple), to express and predict _the rejection of
-the Jews_, how natural is it to suppose that, in purging the temple,
-he meant to express and predict, by another sign, _the vocation of the
-Gentiles_! Or, if there be still any doubt in the case, Christ’s own
-parable of the _Vineyard_ (which follows close in the history[326]) will
-effectually remove it. For the application of this parable is made by
-Christ himself to BOTH these subjects[327]—_What shall the Lord of the
-Vineyard do?—He shall come and destroy_ THOSE _husbandmen, and shall give
-the Vineyard to_ OTHERS—That is, He shall REJECT THE JEWS, and ADMIT
-THE GENTILES: an interpretation, so clear and certain that the Jews
-themselves could not avoid seeing it; _for they perceived that he had
-spoken this parable against them_.
-
-But I think it appears, from the conduct of the ruling Jews, on occasion
-of what had passed in the temple, that it was well understood for _what
-general purpose_, and under _what character_, Jesus had exhibited
-that extraordinary scene. For they presently come to him, and say,
-_By what authority doest thou these things, and who gave thee this
-authority[328]?_ That this question relates to _what things_ he had done
-in the temple, when he applied the scourge to the merchants, the context
-clearly shews; and is indeed beyond all doubt, since we find the same
-question put to him, and almost in the same words, when he had performed
-this act before, at the first Passover: _Then answered the Jews, and
-said unto him, What sign shewest thou unto us, seeing thou doest these
-things[329]?_
-
-Now, if the Jews had seen this transaction in the light of an _act
-of authority_ or of _violence_ against the persons of the merchants,
-it neither agreed with their _character_, nor indeed with their
-_principles_, to put this question. _The chief priests and elders of
-the people_ are the persons who interrogate Jesus in this manner[330]:
-and would they, who constantly _laid wait for him, that they might
-accuse him_[331], let slip so fair an opportunity of citing him before
-the magistrate, as a disturber of the public peace, and a violater of
-their civil rights and customs? Instead of taking this obvious advantage
-against him, they at once drop all the malice of their character, and
-only ask him, in the way of civil and almost friendly expostulation, _By
-what authority he did these things_. It is certain, they never had so
-specious a pretence, as this affair administered to them, of bringing a
-public accusation against him. Yet it seems never once to have entered
-into their thoughts. Nor can it be said, that they stood in awe of the
-_people_ (as they sometimes did, when they were enough disposed to lay
-hands on him); for the people, in this case, when so free an attack was
-made on their privileges, as well as prejudices, would naturally be on
-their side.
-
-But neither would their _Principles_ suffer them to put this question.
-Jesus had, as they conceived, committed a flagrant act of injustice,
-in assaulting the persons of men, who were under the protection of the
-state: and they call upon him only for _a sign, since he did these
-things_. Is it credible that men, so attached, as they were, to their own
-laws and customs, should demand, or accept a _sign_, in such a juncture?
-Could all Paul’s miracles justify him, in their opinion, for _not walking
-after their customs_[332]? Or, would a _sign_ from heaven, of how
-transcendant a nature soever, have absolved Jesus in their apprehension,
-from a crime, so palpably proved upon him? They would certainly have
-said, as they did say on another occasion, _We have a Law_, which forbids
-all offences of this sort; and _by that Law_, he ought to be tried and
-judged.
-
-Thus, I think, the matter stands, if the Jews had regarded Jesus, in the
-light of a CRIMINAL. On the other hand, if they saw him only in the light
-of a PROPHET, of one who _assumed_ that character, and had now, in the
-way of his office, employed this act to convey some important information
-to them, their conduct was very natural in demanding some proof of his
-being what he pretended to be: and that proof, could be no other than a
-_sign_, or miracle; which was the proper evidence of his being a person
-sent from God. This evidence, indeed, of his prophetic mission had
-already been given to the Jews, in the _signs_, or miracles, which he had
-wrought among them. But they wanted more than a general conviction of his
-being invested with the prophetic character. They were anxious to know by
-what _authority_ he did THESE THINGS; in other words, what _Commission_
-he had, and how it came to be in his commission, to put the Jews and
-Gentiles on a level. A prophet he might be; but not a prophet, authorized
-to declare himself so roundly, as by this expressive act he had done,
-against the peculiar people of God, and in favour of the despised
-heathen. Of his commission to publish such a doctrine, as this, it was no
-ordinary _sign_ that would satisfy them. They pressed him, therefore, for
-some _sign_, purposely and expressly wrought for this end; some _sign_,
-so extraordinary in itself, and so peculiarly adapted to the nature of
-the case, as to furnish an immediate and decisive answer to their demand,
-_Who gave thee_ THIS _authority_?
-
-This question our blessed Lord thought fit to elude (for reasons, which
-will, in part, appear in the progress of this discourse) at both the
-times, when it was proposed to him: once, by referring them to the
-authority of John the Baptist: and, again, by referring them (but
-in ænigmatic terms) to his own resurrection. Yet even _the Baptist_
-would have let them into some part of the secret, which they desired
-to penetrate; for, knowing the master-prejudice of his countrymen,
-he addressed them in these remarkable words—_Think not to say within
-yourselves, We have Abraham for our Father: for I say unto you, God is
-able even of_ THESE STONES[333] _to raise up children unto Abraham_[334].
-And then, for the miracle of his own _resurrection_, that would not only
-be the fullest proof of his prophetic mission, but would, at the same
-time, be the completion of what he was now signifying to them, by this
-prophetic act: for the spiritual kingdom of the Messiah, into which all
-the nations were to be admitted, was to take place from that event.
-_Destroy_, says he, _this temple_, [meaning, as we are told, _the temple
-of his body_] _and in three days I will build it up_[335]. So that,
-although Jesus refused to gratify his questioners by working instantly
-before them the _sign_, which they demanded: yet he refers them to _such_
-a sign, which would be wrought in due time, and to the very purpose
-of their inquiry; that is, it would be a sign, which should, _both_,
-demonstrate his prophetic commission to declare, by this _significant
-act_, the favour which God intended to confer on the Gentiles, and
-should, _also_, realize his declaration, or set before them _the thing
-signified_. Such is the force of that divine answer—_Destroy this temple,
-and in three days I will build it up_.
-
-Where, by the way, we may, further, observe, that the _symbolic
-language_, in which he here predicts his resurrection, not being at all
-apprehended by the Jews, was afterwards made the foundation of a charge
-against him, as if he had entertained the criminal _design_ of destroying
-the temple of Jerusalem[336]. How much more would his enemies have laid
-hold on this symbolic _act_, which he performed in the temple, in order
-to found a charge of sedition against him, if they had not conceived of
-him as acting in the character of a _prophet_ only, and so had clearly
-comprehended, at least, the _general_ scope and meaning of that act!
-
-That it was taken in this light, I mean, of a _prophetic action_, by
-the very persons on whom this seeming outrage was committed, may be
-reasonably presumed, since they make no resistance to it, nor complain
-of any injury, done them by it: a conduct, very strange and unlikely, if
-the parties concerned had received any considerable damage: or if they
-conceived that any _intended_ violence had been offered to them. It is
-plain, they considered the whole transaction, as a piece of _scenery_, or
-representation only; under the cover of which, Christ proposed, in the
-manner of the Eastern sages, and especially of the Jewish prophets, to
-convey some momentous information to them, and to impress it with much
-force and energy on their minds.
-
-Nor can it be concluded from the narration of the Evangelists, that any
-thing more was intended by their master. They relate this adventure,
-simply as _a matter of fact_; and it could not well be related otherwise,
-for the _information_ was given in the _fact_. They intermix, indeed, no
-explanation; because they probably saw not, any more than the generality
-of the by-standers, the _specific_ information, it was meant to convey.
-They only saw, in general, that _some_ information was the end and
-purpose of the act. The ruling Jews, who interrogated Jesus concerning
-this act, I have no doubt, saw or suspected, at least, the real drift
-of it. But, as Jesus could not be brought to explain himself by any
-direct answer, they were left to their own conclusions about it: and were
-content, we may suppose, to keep these conclusions to themselves: the
-rather, as the turn, which our Lord thought fit to give to this act, as
-if it respected only the honour of God’s house, put it out of their power
-to charge that other meaning, decisively, upon him.
-
-We may further observe, that the _history_ of this fact is not to be
-construed with the utmost rigour. Some of the evangelists express
-themselves in such terms, as, in the strict sense of them, imply, that
-Jesus actually drove all the beasts and traffickers out of the temple.
-But we need only suppose that he applied himself to this action, _as
-if_ his purpose had been actually to drive them all out: and that he
-continued to employ himself in it in such sort, and for so long a time,
-as that the persons present might take notice of what he did, and so be
-able (I do not say immediately, but in due season) to interpret this
-_sign_, together with Isaiah’s _prophecy_, in the manner he intended. I
-say, _we need only suppose this_: because if no more was done by Jesus,
-the Evangelists, in their concise and simple way of narration would
-naturally express themselves, as they have done, their accounts of this
-fact; and I believe, if we consider the accounts we have of many other
-informations _by action_, recorded in the old Scriptures, we shall
-find it necessary to understand them with some such restrictions and
-qualifications.
-
-If, after all, it be thought, that some _violence_ was offered to the
-merchants, and that some _inconvenience_ was suffered by them, in
-consequence of it; I suppose they deserved this punishment for their
-pollution of the temple; and I admit that the prophetic character of
-Jesus authorized him, in the course of his ministry, to inflict it; just
-as, without doubt, it authorized him to destroy the barren _fig-tree_,
-when it served his purpose to discharge a part of his office by making
-use of that _emblem_, though it might be with some loss to the proprietor
-of it. The case was the same here, when he drove the traffickers from
-their station. But there is a wide difference between supposing the
-_violence_, offered to them, to be the _direct and proper purpose_ of the
-act, and the _incidental effect_ of it. And the silence of the merchants
-themselves, under this violence, sufficiently shews, as I observed, that
-they _felt_ this difference.
-
-But the main difficulty, perhaps, is still behind. For, it will be asked,
-Why was this _mysterious_ method used by our Saviour at all, in conveying
-the supposed momentous information, when he might have expressed his
-meaning _directly_, in plain words?
-
-1. One reason, I suppose, might be, the inveterate and insurmountable
-prejudices of the Jewish converts to this part of the Messiah’s
-character. For, though the prophets had given frequent, and sometimes
-the most clear, descriptions of it: yet, so possessed were they with the
-notion of their _being_, and of their _continuing_ to be, even under the
-dispensation of their Messiah, a chosen and peculiar people, that they
-never could hear (no, not the Apostles themselves, till enlightened by
-the holy Spirit, and by a special revelation for that purpose; they could
-never hear, I say) without the utmost indignation, _That God had opened
-the door of faith to the Gentiles_[337]. This indirect information was
-then in condescension to the weakness of his own disciples and followers.
-
-And of this tenderness to their infirmities we have a remarkable instance
-in the case of the _fig-tree_, so often mentioned; the drift of which
-was unquestionably to denote the approaching _rejection of the Jews_, for
-their unfruitfulness under the means of grace, and their rejection of
-the Messiah. But, the minds of the disciples being too infirm, at this
-time, to bear the open communication of so mortifying a truth, Jesus
-purposely diverts them from the main purpose of that miracle (though
-it was wrought, and the _sign_ given, for their future information and
-recollection) and turns their attention on another and very remote
-circumstance, _the efficacy of faith_ to enable them to work this and
-greater miracles[338]. But it was a _general_ rule with our Lord to
-consult the infirmities of his disciples, and to communicate to them only
-so much of his purposes and councils, as they could bear; leaving the
-rest to be collected by them, in due time, from casual hints and obscure
-passages, when they should afterwards call them to mind, and be in a
-condition, under the influence of the holy Spirit, to profit by them.
-Thus, in John xvi. 12. _I have yet many things to say to you, but_ YE
-CANNOT BEAR THEM NOW: and then refers them to the spirit of truth, for
-further information.
-
-Connected with this tenderness for his disciples,
-
-2. A _further_ reason, without doubt, was a prudential regard to the
-general _success_ of his ministry, with the rest of the Jews.
-
-For that great event, the call of the Gentiles, was not to take place
-during the life of Jesus; _who was sent only to the lost sheep of the
-house of Israel_[339]; that is, he was _personally_ to address himself
-only to THEM; the conversion of the Heathen being to be effected, after
-his ascension, by the ministry of his Apostles and followers. Hence, had
-our Saviour plainly unfolded this secret to the Jews, he would certainly
-have indisposed them for paying any regard to his mission. And yet, so
-important a part of his character was not to be wholly concealed. It was
-therefore signified in this covert way; and (being itself a prophecy of
-something yet to be deferred) in the mode, and with the usual obscurity,
-of a prophetic information.
-
-What I have just now observed of the caution with which our Lord revealed
-his purpose of calling the Gentiles, explains the reason why St. John’s
-account of the _first_ transaction in the temple, differs so much from
-that which the other Evangelists give of the _second_. Jesus had just
-entered on his prophetic office, when he used the _sign_ of purging
-the temple, of which St. John speaks: he therefore leaves the Jews to
-their own interpretation of that sign, saying only, _Take these things
-hence; make not my Father’s house an house of merchandize_; as though
-a zeal for that house had been his sole inducement to make use of it:
-and accordingly the disciples, as I before observed, so understood
-him. But, when he thought fit to employ this _significative action_ a
-second time, of which the other Evangelists only speak, his ministry
-was then drawing to a conclusion. So that he is now less scrupulous of
-giving offence, and does all but directly interpret the sign himself, by
-referring his hearers to the prophecy of Isaiah, which was the proper
-key to it—_He taught them, saying, Is it not written, My house shall be
-called the house of prayer for all the nations_[340]? Still, there was
-some obscurity, which he did not think fit altogether to remove: but he
-had said enough to correct their former hasty conclusion. For we are
-not told by those other Evangelists, as we are by St. John, that the
-disciples considered what they had seen their Master do, as a pure act
-of _zeal_ for the honour of the temple: the prophecy, without doubt,
-suggested something to their minds, which led them to apprehend a farther
-and higher purpose in that transaction.
-
-3. Lastly, we may suppose, that the information was given in this
-_symbolic way_, that, when men saw the event, they might be the more
-strongly convinced of its being Christ’s intention it should come to
-pass, by calling to mind the sensible and striking manner, in which it
-had been predicted by him.
-
-For these, or other reasons, the method here employed by Christ to
-signify his intended favour to the Gentiles, might be most proper. In the
-mean time, as I said, this intention was not wholly to be concealed: for
-then the call of the Gentiles might be deemed an afterthought, and not to
-have been originally in his commission. Accordingly, it is intimated very
-frequently in our Lord’s discourses to the Jews, and opened more clearly
-on many occasions to his Apostles; and was, in truth, so much in his
-view, and so constantly present to him, that, as we now find, it was one
-of the _first_, and _last_ things he did, to go into the temple, and, by
-an expressive sign, to declare his gracious purpose towards the Heathen.
-
-We may, further, observe (so intent was The Divine Providence on
-gradually unveiling _the glory of this mystery_[341], as St. Paul terms
-it) that the moment our blessed Lord expired on the cross, _the veil of
-the temple was rent in twain from the top to the bottom_: a _sign_, to
-some purpose, of that great event which Jesus had foretold, and which God
-himself held forth to the astonished Jews, as the clearest emblem of his
-purposed favour to the Gentiles; when the Sanctuary itself, as well as
-the outermost court of their temple, was thus laid open to the access,
-and vindicated to the use, of all nations.
-
-_Finally_, in due time, this purpose was clearly and explicitly made
-known to Peter, in his famous vision: and thus it pleased God to
-reveal this adorable mystery, “The salvation of the Gentile world,”
-(which, though not the _immediate_, was the most important end of
-Christ’s commission) by every mode of communication, which he had ever
-employed in his intercourse with mankind; by the _word of prophecy_—by
-_similitudes_, _by the hand of Jesus_—by an _extraordinary sign from
-heaven_—and by _Vision_.
-
-After so minute a commentary on this famous act of _Christ’s driving the
-buyers and sellers out of the temple_, may I be permitted to conclude,
-that it, now, stands clear of those difficulties, which have been usually
-found it?—It was no indecent start of zeal in our Lord: it was no violent
-invasion of the rights of any: it was no act of civil authority, usurped
-by him: but a _prophetic information_, conveyed in a _prophetic form_,
-of an event, the most important to mankind, and to the accomplishment of
-his own office and ministry. It was a calm, rational, inoffensive act;
-not unworthy the person of our blessed Lord; or, rather, full of that
-wisdom, which adorned his character, and shone out in all his conduct and
-conversation.
-
-
-THE END OF THE SEVENTH VOLUME.
-
-Printed by J. Nichols and Son, Red Lion Passage, Fleet Street, London.
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-
-[1] The substance of this Discourse was delivered in a Sermon at
-Lincoln’s-Inn, May 15, 1768.
-
-[2] Annal. xii. c. 54. Hist. v. c. 9.
-
-[3] Antiq. Jud. L. xx. c. 5.
-
-[4] Acts xvi. 30.
-
-[5] Heb. iii. 13.
-
-[6] Gen. ii. 17.
-
-[7] Ephes. iii. 11.
-
-[8] 1 Pet. i. 3.
-
-[9] Matth. xx. 28.
-
-[10] 1 Cor. vi. 20.
-
-[11] Heb. ix. 26.
-
-[12] 1 John ii. 2.
-
-[13] 1 Thess. v. 10.
-
-[14] 1 Pet. ii. 24.
-
-[15] 1 Pet. iii. 18.
-
-[16] Heb. ii. 9.
-
-[17] Eph. v. 2.
-
-[18] Rom. v. 9.
-
-[19] 1 Pet. i. 18, 19. 1 Cor. vi. 20.
-
-[20] 1 Cor. xv. 22.
-
-[21] Rev. xiii. 8.
-
-[22] 1 Tim. iv. 10.
-
-[23] 1 Cor. xv. 41.
-
-[24] Matth. xxv. 46.
-
-[25] Phil. ii. 11.
-
-[26] John xv. 15.
-
-[27] John xv. 13.
-
-[28] Matth. xxiii. 8.
-
-[29] Rev. v. 9. 1 Tim. ii. 5.
-
-[30] Acts x. 42.
-
-[31] John iii. 18.
-
-[32] John xx. 28.
-
-[33] John v. 23.
-
-[34] Rom. vi. 22, 23.
-
-[35] 2 Tim. i. 9.
-
-[36] 1 Cor. xv. 22.
-
-[37] Gal. ii. 21.
-
-[38] Heb. xii. 14.
-
-[39] Heb. v. 9.
-
-[40] Eph. iv. 22.
-
-[41] Tit. iii. 5.
-
-[42] Tit. iii. 7.
-
-[43] Eph. iv. 24.
-
-[44] John xvi. 13.
-
-[45] John xvi. 13.
-
-[46] Thess. ii. 13.
-
-[47] Acts ix. 31.
-
-[48] Matth. x. 20.
-
-[49] Gal. iv. 6.
-
-[50] 2 Cor. iii. 17.
-
-[51] Eph. i. 14.
-
-[52] Ps. lxxxiv. 7.
-
-[53] Gen. vi. 3. Rom. viii. 16.
-
-[54] Phil. ii. 13.
-
-[55] 1 Cor. ii. 14.
-
-[56] Athanasian creed.
-
-[57] So the word πρόγνωσιν means in this place; as it likewise does in
-Acts ii. 23. where the sense of it is clearly explained and defined
-by the words, τῇ ὡρισμένῃ βουλῇ, which introduce it. The participle
-προεγνωσμένου has the same sense in 1 Pet. i. 20.
-
-[58] Ch. v. 1. v. 18. And vi. 16, 18.
-
-[59] Heb. v. 9.
-
-[60] See Sermon XXVI. in the preceding volume, p. 378.
-
-[61] 2 Cor. vi. 16. 1 Cor. iii. 16.
-
-[62] ἡ δὲ ἐλπὶς οὐ καταισχύνει. Rom. v. 5.
-
-[63] For which reason it is not necessary for me to enter into the
-controversy, that divides the critics, concerning the authentic reading
-of this part of the text.
-
-[64] 2 Pet. i. 21.
-
-[65] Matth. i. 18.
-
-[66] Matth. iii. 16.
-
-[67] Matth. iv. i.
-
-[68] Matth. xii. 28.
-
-[69] Rom. i. 4. 1 Pet. iii. 18.
-
-[70] Acts ii. 4.
-
-[71] 1 Cor. xii. 11.
-
-[72] 1 Cor. vi. 11. John xv. 26.
-
-[73] Heb. xii. 22.
-
-[74] 1 Pet. i. 10, 11, 12.
-
-[75] Heb. i. 6.
-
-[76] Luke ii. 13.
-
-[77] Matth. iv. 11.
-
-[78] Luke xxii. 43.
-
-[79] Matth. xxviii, 3. Luke xxiv. 4. ἐν ἐσθήσεσιν ἀστραπτούσαις.
-
-[80] Acts i. 10.
-
-[81] Heb. i. 3.
-
-[82] Milton.
-
-[83] Rom. xvi. 25.
-
-[84] 1 Tim. iv. 10.
-
-[85] Acts xi. 18. ἡσύχασαν.
-
-[86] Acts v. 14.
-
-[87] Luke xvi. 16.
-
-[88] Matth. xi. 12.
-
-[89] Ps. xix. 4. Matth. xxiv. 14.
-
-[90] Acts xix. 20.
-
-[91] Acts ii. 24.
-
-[92] 1 Cor. xv. 28.
-
-[93] 1 Tim. iv. 6. ἐντρεφόμενος τοῖς λόγοις τῆς πίστεως, καὶ τῆς καλῆς
-διδασκαλίας.
-
-[94] “What this or that philosopher delivered, was but a saying of his.
-Mankind might hearken to it, or reject it, as they pleased; or, as it
-suited their interest, passions, principles, or humours. They were under
-no obligation; the opinion of this, or that philosopher, was of no
-authority.” LOCKE, V. II. p. 578. fol. Lond. 1759.
-
-[95] The Stoics. Ὁ σοφὸς—μόνος εἰδὼς εὔξασθαι. See Casaub. ad Sat. 11.
-Persii.
-
-[96] Plato. Alcib. 11.
-
-[97] The Epicureans of old and modern times.
-
-[98]
-
- —incoctum generoso pectus honesto.
- PERSIUS.
-
-[99] Luke xvii. 4.
-
-[100] See this argument urged by Mr. Locke, V. II. p. 574. fol. Lond.
-1759.
-
-[101] John iii. 19.
-
-[102] Ibid. 20, 21.
-
-[103] John iii. 18.
-
-[104] Ferte fortiter: hoc est, _quo Deum antecedatis_: Ille extra
-patientiam malorum est, vos supra patientiam. _Sen. de Prov._ c. vi.
-
-[105] _Cic. Nat. Deor._ iii. 36.
-
-[106] Lord Shaftesbury, and others.
-
-[107] Acts xvii. 31.
-
-[108] Heb. ii. 3.
-
-[109] Mark xvi. 20.
-
-[110] Job xxii. 2.
-
-[111] Hence the name of Theophrastus, or _the divine speaker_, given to
-the favourite scholar and successor of Aristotle; And hence the stories
-told of Plato, whose eloquence Quintilian so much admired, that he
-thought it more than human—_Ut mihi, non hominis ingenio, sed quodam
-Delphico videatur oraculo instinctus_. Quintil. l. x. c. 1.—Hence too,
-the name of _Chrysostom_, given to the famous Greek Father.
-
-[112] Heb. i. 2.
-
-[113] Phil. ii. 7.
-
-[114] John v. 26.
-
-[115] 1 Cor. i. 30.
-
-[116] Mark i. 22.
-
-[117] John iii. 11.
-
-[118] John xii. 50.
-
-[119] John vi. 40.
-
-[120] Rev. ii. 10.
-
-[121] John v. 26.
-
-[122] John viii. 28.
-
-[123] John xvi. 15.
-
-[124] John x. 30.
-
-[125] _Non imitabile fulmen._ Virg.
-
-[126] Luke ii. 47.
-
-[127] Luke xx. 26.
-
-[128] Luke xx. 40.
-
-[129] See LOCKE’S _Works_, vol. II. fol. p. 545-7. Lond. 1759.
-
-[130] LOCKE’S _Works_, vol. II. fol. p. 543. Lond. 1759.
-
-[131] Every one may observe a good many truths, which he receives at
-first from others, and readily assents to, as consonant to Reason, which
-he would have found it hard, and perhaps beyond his strength, to have
-discovered himself. Native and original truth is not so easily wrought
-out of the mine, as we, who have it delivered, ready dug and fashioned
-into our hands, are apt to imagine. And how often, &c. LOCKE’S _Works_,
-Vol. II. fol. p. 577 and 579. _Lond._ 1759.
-
-[132] Luke v. 22. vi. 8. xi. 17.
-
-[133] Luke vi. 11.
-
-[134] Luke ix. 47.
-
-[135] Luke xxii. 61.
-
-[136] Matthew xxvii. xiv. and xxiv.
-
-[137] John xviii. 4-6.
-
-[138] Luke vii. 40. ix. 47.
-
-[139] Prov. xxi. 1.
-
-[140] Luke xi. 27, 28.
-
-[141] See John ix. 39.
-
-[142] Matth. x. 26, 27.
-
-[143] See D. L. Vol. V. p. 339, &c. Lond. 1765.
-
-[144] D. L. Vol. V. p. 341. n.
-
-[145] See more on this subject in Dr. Warburton’s Sermons, Vol. I. p. 325.
-
-[146] Luke xxiv. 45.
-
-[147] Luke xxiv. 27.
-
-[148] John xvi. 12. Mark iv. 33, 34.
-
-[149] John xi. 47.
-
-[150] Luke iv. 43.
-
-[151] Luke iv. 29.
-
-[152] Matt. x. 23.
-
-[153] Mark vi. 5.
-
-[154] Matth. vii. 6.
-
-[155] Matth. xxvi. 56.
-
-[156] St. Paul. 1 Cor. xv. 9.
-
-[157] St. Peter. Mark xiv. 71.
-
-[158] Luke xxii. 51.
-
-[159] Luke ix. 54.
-
-[160] Luke ix. 46.
-
-[161] See the Essais of _Montaigne_.
-
-[162] Pensées de M. Pascal, c. xvi. § 3.
-
-[163] Acts xxii. 15. and xxvi. 22.
-
-[164] Matthew v. 3.
-
-[165] Compare, _Luke_ vii. 21, 22.
-
-[166] Matthew xv. 6.
-
-[167] Matt. xi. 25.
-
-[168] Luke xviii. 9.
-
-[169] ὄχλος, _the mob_. John vii. 49.
-
-[170] Eph. ii. 12.
-
-[171] Matth. xxii. 15.
-
-[172] Matth. xii. 37.
-
-[173] Luke xix. 48.
-
-[174] John vii. 46.
-
-[175] Matth. vii. 28.
-
-[176] Matth. xii. 23.
-
-[177] Matth. ix. 33.
-
-[178] Matth. ix. 8.
-
-[179] St. James ii. 6, 7.
-
-[180] 1 Cor. i. 26.
-
-[181] ἐσκυλμένοι—_vexati_.
-
-[182] ἐῤῥιμένοι—_projecti_.
-
-[183] Matth. ix. 36.
-
-[184] Matth. xi. 28, 29.
-
-[185] 1 Cor. i. 27-9.
-
-[186] Isaiah lix. 8.
-
-[187] ψεύστης—ἀνθρωποκτόνος—John viii. 44.
-
-[188] Matth. v. 11, 12.
-
-[189] John xiii. 1.
-
-[190] Matth. x. 32, 3. and 38, 9. Luke xiv. 26. 1 John iii. 16.
-
-[191] John xvi. 2, 33.
-
-[192] Matth. vii. 12.
-
-[193] Luke xix. 41. John xi. 35.
-
-[194] ἡ ἐλπὶς τῆς δόξης·—Col. i. 27.
-
-[195] εἰς πᾶσαν τὴν ἀληθείαν.
-
-[196] Rom. i. 21.
-
-[197] Tim. ii. 14 and 16.
-
-[198] Coloss. ii. 18.
-
-[199] 2 Tim. ii. 18.
-
-[200] Rom. xv. 13.
-
-[201] _Divine prescience_, _absolute decrees_, &c.
-
-[202] Bacon, Boyle, Locke, Newton.
-
-[203] Barrow, Clarke, Butler, Warburton, &c.
-
-[204] “It hath been the common disease of Christians from the beginning,
-not to content themselves with that measure of faith, which God and the
-Scriptures have expressly afforded us: but out of a vain desire to know
-more than is revealed, they have attempted to discuss things, of which we
-can have no light, neither from reason nor revelation.” J. HALES _Works_,
-Vol. I. p. 125. _Glasg._ 1765.
-
-[205] Matth. xiii. 57.
-
-[206] John i. 46.
-
-[207] John vii. 52.
-
-[208] Acts iv. 13. See Whitby on the place.
-
-[209] John vii. 48.
-
-[210] Matth. ix. 11.
-
-[211] Matth. xv. 2.
-
-[212] Luke xxiv. 21.
-
-[213] Acts XIX.
-
-[214] Acts xvii.
-
-[215] Celsus, Porphyry, Julian.
-
-[216] In his famous book, _De Civitate Dei_.
-
-[217] Acts vi. 8.
-
-[218] John xii. 31.
-
-[219] Ephes. ii. 2.
-
-[220] 2 Cor. iv. 4.
-
-[221] James ii. 19.
-
-[222] Gen. iii. 14, 15.
-
-[223] Matth. xxv. 41.
-
-[224] Eph. ii. 2.
-
-[225] James iv. 7.
-
-[226] Matth. xvii. 21.
-
-[227] 1 Pet. v. 9.
-
-[228] John xii. 31.
-
-[229] Luke x. 18.
-
-[230] Job i. 12.
-
-[231] Matth. viii. 21.
-
-[232] Luke ix. 1. and x. 17.
-
-[233] Luke x. 18.
-
-[234] John xiii. 2.
-
-[235] ἀπὸ τοῦ πονηροῦ· Matth. vi. 13.
-
-[236] 1 John iv. 4.
-
-[237] 1 Cor. x. 13.
-
-[238] Heb. ii. 14.
-
-[239] St. John iii. 8.
-
-[240] Rom. viii. 26.
-
-[241] Eph. xiv. 16.
-
-[242] Eph. xi. 2.
-
-[243] 1 Peter v. 8.
-
-[244] τοῦ πονηροῦ· Eph. vi. 16.
-
-[245] Eccles. i. 17. and vii. 25.
-
-[246] SIGNA, TABULAS PICTAS, VASA CÆLATA MIRARI—reckoned, by the
-philosophical historian, among the prognosticks of falling Rome.
-
-[247] Homo, res sacra. Seneca.
-
-[248] Neque enim ita generati à naturâ sumus, ut ad ludum et jocum facti
-esse videamur; sed ad severitatem potiùs, et ad quædam studia graviora
-atque majora.
- Cic. Off. L. i. 29.
-
-[249] Fastidio illis esse cœpit vita, et ipse mundus; et subit illud
-rabidarum deliciarum, QUOUSQUE EADEM? Seneca, de tranq. anim. c. xi.
-
-[250] SAPIENS, SIBIQUE IMPERIOSUS—are convertible terms in the moral poet.
-
-[251] Val. Max. IV. 3.
-
-[252] 1 Cor. ix. 25.
-
-[253] Ludo—uti quidem licet; sed, sicut somno et quietibus cæteris, tùm
-cùm gravibus seriisque rebus satisfecerimus.
- Cic. Off. L. i. 29.
-
-[254] Exod. xxi. 24.
-
-[255] John xviii. 22, 23.
-
-[256] χιτῶνα.
-
-[257] ἀγγαρεύσει. See Grotius on the place.
-
-[258] Luke xii. 57.
-
-[259] Acts xvi. 37. xxv. 11.
-
-[260] Matth, v. 11. x. 23. xxvi. 52. From the two last passages we learn,
-that the Jewish persecutors of Christ and his disciples were reserved for
-a _special_ vengeance of Heaven; to be inflicted upon them in no long
-time, and here predicted, as it seems, to let the disciples know why, in
-this case, _resistance_ was forbidden, God having taken the matter into
-his own hands.
-
-[261] The accomplishment of prophecy is given by Jesus himself as
-one reason, why he forbad resistance to the Jews—_how then shall the
-Scriptures be fulfilled, that thus it must be_, i. e. that the violence
-of the Jews should prevail? Matth. xxvi. 54.
-
-[262] Prov. xiii. 10.
-
-[263] Ch. viii. 38.
-
-[264] Mark xvi. 16.
-
-[265] St. John xii. 48.
-
-[266] John iv. 17.
-
-[267] John iii. 20.
-
-[268] John xi. 47. Acts iv. 16.
-
-[269] Mark vi. 3.
-
-[270] John vii. 41. i. 46.
-
-[271] John vii. 48.
-
-[272] John xii. 42.
-
-[273] John xii. 43.
-
-[274] 1 Cor. i. 23.
-
-[275] Luke viii. 13.
-
-[276] Mark x. 17, 23.
-
-[277] Jer. xvii. 9.
-
-[278] Public Baptism, disused.
-
-[279] The Lord’s Supper, neglected.
-
-[280] Family Prayer, omitted.
-
-[281] 2 Tim. i. 8.
-
-[282] 1 John ii. 28.
-
-[283] See Bp. Warburton’s DOCTRINE OF GRACE, Ch. ix.
-
-[284] 1 John iv. 2.
-
-[285] 2 Tim. ii. 18.
-
-[286] 1 Peter ii. 23.
-
-[287] Gen. xvii. 5.
-
-[288] Gen. xxxii. 28.
-
-[289] Ἅδης, or _death_ [see Grotius in loc.] is here personized: and,
-the gates of cities, being anciently the places of counsel and judgment,
-as well as their chief defence and strength, hence the _gates of death_
-are the power and policy, which this person should employ to accomplish
-his ends: which is, in other words, to say, that those ends, or
-_destruction_, should by no means be effected.
-
-[290] Acts ii. 14.
-
-[291] Acts x. and xv. 7.
-
-[292] An ancient apologist for Christianity seems to think, that, if
-a sect of philosophy had been persecuted, as Christianity was, it
-would presently have vanished out of the world. His words are—τὴν μὲν
-φιλοσοφίαν τὴν Ἑλληνικὴν ἐὰν ὁ τυχὼν ἄρχων κωλύσῃ, οἴχεται παραχρῆμα·
-[Clemens Alexandr. Strom. L. vi. p. 827. Oxon. 1715.] Perhaps, the
-learned father was mistaken. But a religion, founded on facts, not on
-opinions, and persecuted from the beginning, could not have supported
-itself, if those facts had been false. This is the case of Christianity.
-The subsequent persecutions, when the truth of Christianity was admitted
-on the credit of the first martyrs, might tend to advance this religion,
-even though it had been originally an imposture. The difference of the
-two cases is palpable. The Apostles shewed, by their sufferings, that
-they _knew_ what they attested to be a true fact: Succeeding sufferers
-shewed, that they _believed_ it to be so.
-
-[293] 1 Peter i. 11.
-
-[294] Of Persecution. John xvi. 2.
-
-Of Heresies. Acts xx. 30. 1 Cor. x. 19.
-
-Of Mahomet’s impiety, ix. 1-12. See Mede.
-
-Of the great Apostasy. 2 Thess. ii. &c.
-
-Of these, and other woes still to come. The Revelation, _passim_.
-
-[295] 1 Peter i. 25.
-
-[296] Matth. vii. 24, 25.
-
-[297] Acts xxvi. 26.
-
-[298] Τοσοῦτός ἐστι τῶν ὑπ’ αὐτῶν γεγραμμένων ὁ γέλως, ὥστε ἀφανισθῆναι
-καὶ τὰ βιβλία πάλαι, καὶ ἅμα τῷ δειχθῆναι, καὶ ἀπολέσθαι τὰ πολλά. Εἰ δέ
-που τὶ καὶ εὑρεθείη διασωθὲν, παρὰ Χριστιανοῖς τοῦτο σωζόμενον εὕροι τις
-ἄν. Tom. II. p. 539. Ed. Bened.
-
-[299] “The Christian religion,” says the finest of our English writers,
-whom I need not therefore stay to name, “made its way through paganism
-with an amazing progress and activity. Its victories were the victories
-of reason, unassisted by the force of human power, and as gentle as the
-triumphs of light over darkness.”
-
-[300] This effect of inquiry upon the Gentile religions was foreseen
-by men of sense—_Non sunt ista_ [the traditionary tales of the heathen
-Gods] _vulgo disputanda, ne susceptas publicè religiones disputatio talis
-extinguat_. Cic. Frag. Olivet. T. III. p. 586.
-
-[301] The substance of this Discourse was delivered in a Sermon at
-Lincoln’s-Inn, May 15, 1768.
-
-[302] Luke xii. 14.
-
-[303] L. iv. c. 5.
-
-[304] And to the same purpose, our excellent Archbishop Tillotson—“His
-[Christ’s] whipping of the buyers and sellers out of the temple, the only
-action of his life in which there appears any transport of anger, was no
-other than a BECOMING ZEAL for the honour of God’s house, which he saw
-so notoriously prophaned; which zeal was WARRANTED, after the example of
-Phinehas, by the extraordinary occasion of it.” Works, vol. iii. § 136.
-p. 222.
-
-[305] _Numbers_, ch. xxv.
-
-[306] JOSEPHUS, _De Bello Judaico_, l. iv. c. 12.
-
-[307] Certè, quamquam Servator humani generis et Deus et Rex erat,
-adeoque ita universi, nedum Judæorum, dominus, ut quicquid ei placeret
-illud non licitum fuisse nefas sit putare; attamen, cum cæteras res
-omnes etiam et seipsum receptis atque stabilitis reipublicæ formulis
-judiciariis, qua Ebraicæ eæ essent, qua Romanæ, permiserit, atque
-absolutissimum justitiæ exemplar ab omni vi illicitâ, veluti privatus,
-abstinere voluerit; quin et tanta ei imminuerit invidia, ut nihil magis
-incidentium in votis esset, quam ut cujuscunque delicti reum eum peragere
-potuissent; haud rationi sane ita consonum videtur existimare ejectionem
-illam factam seu vim illatam ab eo fuisse sine agnitâ, etiam ab ipsis qui
-tam malignè ei invidebant, lege seu more, quo in id genus homines templi
-sanctitatem ita polluentes incurrere licuerit, atque vi ejicere. L. iv.
-c. 5. p. 464.
-
-[308] Mr. Smith’s Discourses, _Disc._ vi. ch. vi. Bishop Chandler,
-_Def. of Christianity_, ch. iii. § 1. and, very lately, the Bishop of
-Gloucester, _Div. Leg._ b. iv. § 4.
-
-[309] 1 Kings xxii. 11.
-
-[310] Jeremiah xix.
-
-[311] Hosea xii. 10.
-
-[312] Matth. iii. 4.
-
-[313] Mark xi. 7.
-
-[314] Matth. x. 14.
-
-[315] Luke v. 6.
-
-[316] Mark xi. 14
-
-[317] Matthew viii. 32.
-
-[318] Matthew xxvii. 24.
-
-[319] Isaiah xlii. 1, 6.
-
-[320] Ibid. ver. 7.
-
-[321] Isaiah lx. 10.
-
-[322] Chap. xliii. 8.
-
-[323] Rom. xi. 12.
-
-[324] Mark xi. 14.
-
-[325] Mark xi. 15-20.
-
-[326] Mark xii. Luke xx. Matth. xxi.
-
-[327] Luke xx. 16-19.
-
-[328] Matthew xxi. 23.
-
-[329] John ii. 18.
-
-[330] Matthew xxi. 23.
-
-[331] Luke xi. 54.
-
-[332] Acts xxi. 21.
-
-[333] By _these stones_, the ancient interpreters universally understood
-_the Gentiles_. See Whitby _in loc._
-
-[334] Matt. iii. 9.
-
-[335] St. John, ch. ii. 19.
-
-[336] Matthew xxvi. 61.
-
-[337] Acts xiv. 27.
-
-[338] Mark xi. 21, 24.
-
-[339] Matthew xv. 24.
-
-[340] Mark xi. 17.
-
-[341] 1 Coloss. i. 27.
-
-
-[Transcriber’s Note:
-
-Inconsistent spelling and hyphenation are as in the original.
-
-Greek words beginning with ϖ have had the character replaced with π.]
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WORKS OF RICHARD HURD,
-VOLUME 7 (OF 8) ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
-Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
-on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
-phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg™ License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
-other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
-Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-provided that:
-
-• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.”
-
-• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
- works.
-
-• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
-of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you “AS-IS”, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™
-
-Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™'s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/69816-0.zip b/old/69816-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 5e49b3d..0000000
--- a/old/69816-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69816-h.zip b/old/69816-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 29b8f88..0000000
--- a/old/69816-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69816-h/69816-h.htm b/old/69816-h/69816-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 684bc64..0000000
--- a/old/69816-h/69816-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,14945 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.1//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml11/DTD/xhtml11.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The works of Richard Hurd, Volume 7 (of 8), by Richard Hurd.
- </title>
- <style type="text/css">
-
-a {
- text-decoration: none}
-
-small {
- font-style: normal;
- font-size: small}
-
-body {
- padding: 4px;
- margin: auto 10%}
-
-p {
- text-align: justify}
-
-.medium {
- font-size: medium}
-
-.large {
- font-size: large}
-
-.xx-large {
- font-size: xx-large}
-
-h1, h2 {
- page-break-before: always}
-
-h1, h2, h3 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- font-weight: normal;
- clear: both;
- margin: 2em auto 1em auto}
-
-.author {
- display: block;
- text-align: right;
- margin: auto 10px}
-
-p.drop:first-letter {
- float: left;
- clear: left;
- font-family: serif;
- font-size: 300%;
- line-height: 70%;
- padding: 2px 6px 0 6px}
-
-p.drop {
- text-indent: -6px}
-
-.uppercase {
- text-transform: uppercase}
-
-.hang {
- text-indent: -2em;
- padding-left: 2em}
-
-/* Tables */
-.table {
- display: table;
- margin: auto}
-
-table {
- margin: 2em auto}
-
-th {
- padding-top: 20px}
-
-td {
- text-indent: -1em;
- padding-left: 1em}
-
-.tdrb {
- vertical-align: bottom;
- text-align: right}
-
-/* End Tables */
-
-.copy {
- font-size: small;
- text-align: center}
-
-.smcap {
- font-style: normal;
- font-variant: small-caps}
-
-/* Images */
-img {
- border: none;
- max-width: 100%}
-
-.figcenter {
- clear: both;
- margin: 2em auto;
- text-align: center;
- max-width: 600px}
-
-/* Footnotes */
-.footnotes {
- margin: 2em auto;
- border: 4px double #004200}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size: x-small;
- line-height: .1em;
- text-decoration: none;
- white-space: nowrap /* keeps footnote on same line as referenced text */}
-
-.footnote p:first-child {
- text-indent: -2.5em}
-
-.footnote p {
- margin: 1em;
- padding-left: 2.5em}
-
-.label {
- width: 2em;
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: right;
- text-decoration: none}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- color: #004200;
- position: absolute;
- right: 5px;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size: small;
- text-align: right;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {
- background-color: #E6E6FA;
- border: #004200 double 4px;
- color: black;
- margin: 2em auto;
- padding: 1em}
-
-/* Poetry */
-
-.poetry {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center}
-
-.poem {
- margin: auto;
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left}
-
-.poem .stanza {
- margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em}
- .poem span.i0 {display: block; margin-left: 0em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The works of Richard Hurd, volume 7 (of 8), by Richard Hurd</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The works of Richard Hurd, volume 7 (of 8)</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Richard Hurd</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: January 16, 2023 [eBook #69816]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Charlene Taylor, Bryan Ness and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WORKS OF RICHARD HURD, VOLUME 7 (OF 8) ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="transnote">
-<h3>Transcriber’s Note:</h3>
-
-<p>This project uses utf-8 encoded characters. If some characters are
-not readable, check your settings of your browser to ensure you have a
-default font installed that can display utf-8 characters.</p></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_i">i</span></p>
-
-<h1><small>THE</small><br />
-WORKS<br />
-<small>OF</small><br />
-RICHARD HURD, D.D.<br />
-<span class="large">LORD BISHOP OF WORCESTER.</span><br />
-<span class="medium">VOL. VII.</span><br /></h1>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_ii">ii</span></p>
-
-<p class="copy">
-Printed by J. Nichols and Son,<br />
-Red Lion Passage, Fleet Street, London.<br /></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_iii">iii</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="xx-large"><small>THE</small><br />
-WORKS<br />
-<small>OF</small><br />
-RICHARD HURD, D.D.<br />
-<span class="large">LORD BISHOP OF WORCESTER.<br />
-IN EIGHT VOLUMES.<br />
-VOL. VII.</span><br />
-<img src="images/titlepage.png" alt="" /><br />
-<span class="large">LONDON:</span><br />
-<span class="medium">PRINTED FOR T. CADELL AND W. DAVIES, STRAND.<br />
-1811.</span>
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_iv">iv</span><br />
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_v">v</span></h2>
-
-<h2 class="xx-large">
-THEOLOGICAL WORKS.<br />
-<span class="large">VOL. III.</span>
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_vi">vi</span><br />
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_vii">vii</span></h2>
-
-<h2 class="xx-large">
-SERMONS<br />
-<small>PREACHED AT</small><br />
-LINCOLN’S-INN,<br />
-<span class="large">BETWEEN THE YEARS 1765 AND 1776:</span><br />
-<small>WITH</small><br />
-<span class="large">A LARGER DISCOURSE,</span><br />
-<small>ON</small><br />
-<span class="large">CHRIST’S DRIVING THE MERCHANTS<br />
-OUT OF THE TEMPLE;</span><br />
-<small>IN WHICH THE NATURE AND END OF THAT FAMOUS<br />
-TRANSACTION IS EXPLAINED.</small></h2>
-
-<p class="hang">
-SATIS ME VIXISSE ARBITRABOR, ET OFFICIUM
-HOMINIS IMPLESSE, SI LABOR MEUS ALIQUOS
-HOMINES, AB ERRORIBUS LIBERATOS, AD ITER
-CŒLESTE DIREXERIT.
-<span class="author smcap">Lactantius.</span><br />
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_viii">viii</span><br />
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_ix">ix</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="CONTENTS">CONTENTS<br />
-<small>OF</small><br />
-THE SEVENTH VOLUME.</h2>
-
-<table summary="Contents">
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXIX"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXIX.</span> Preached March 21, 1773.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Acts</span> xxiv. 24, 25.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>After certain days, when Felix came with his
- wife Drusilla, which was a Jew, he sent
- for Paul, and heard him concerning the
- faith of Christ. And, as he reasoned of
- righteousness, temperance, and judgment to
- come, Felix trembled, and answered</i>, <span class="smcap">Go
- thy way for this time, when I have a
- convenient season, I will call for
- thee</span>.</td>
- <td class="tdrb">1<span class="pagenum" id="Page_x">x</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXX"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXX.</span> Preached Dec. 19, 1773.<br />
-<span class="smcap">1 John</span> v. 11.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>And this is the record, that God hath given to
- us eternal life; and</i> <span class="smcap">THIS LIFE IS IN HIS
- SON</span>.</td>
- <td class="tdrb">18</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXI"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXI.</span> Preached June 12, 1774.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Gal.</span> vi. 8.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>He that soweth to the Spirit, shall</i> <span class="smcap">OF THE
- SPIRIT REAP LIFE EVERLASTING</span>.</td>
- <td class="tdrb">32</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXII"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXII.</span> Preached June 19, 1774.<br />
-<span class="smcap">2 Cor.</span> vii. 1.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Having therefore these promises (dearly beloved)
- let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness
- of flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness
- in the fear of God.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">46</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXIII"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXIII.</span> Preached April 28, 1776.<br />
-<span class="smcap">1 Tim.</span> iii. 16.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Without controversy great is the mystery of
- godliness: God was manifest in the flesh;
- justified in the spirit; seen of Angels;
- preached to the Gentiles; believed on in the
- world; received up into glory.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">62<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xi">xi</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXIV"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXIV.</span> Preached May 19, 1776.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Isaiah</span> l. 11.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Behold, all ye that kindle a fire, that compass
- yourselves about with sparks; Walk in the
- light of your fire, and in the sparks which
- ye have kindled: This shall ye have of my
- hand, ye shall lie down in sorrow.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">77</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXV"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXV.</span> Preached Nov. 15, 1767.<br />
-<span class="smcap">2 Cor.</span> iv. 3.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>If our Gospel be hid, it is hid to them that
- are lost.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">95</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXVI"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXVI.</span> Preached Nov. 13, 1774.<br />
-<span class="smcap">1 Peter</span> iii. 15.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>—Be ready always to give an answer to every
- man that asketh you a reason of the hope
- that is in you, with meekness and fear.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">110</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXVII"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXVII.</span> Preached Feb. 4, 1770.<br />
-<span class="smcap">John</span> vii. 46.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Never man spake like this man.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">124</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXVIII"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXVIII.</span> Preached Nov. 20, 1774.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xiii. 10.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>The Disciples came, and said unto him, Why
- speakest Thou to them in Parables?</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">143<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xii">xii</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XXXIX"><span class="smcap">Sermon XXXIX.</span> Preached Nov. 27, 1774.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xiii. 58.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>And he did not many mighty works there, because
- of their unbelief.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">159</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XL"><span class="smcap">Sermon XL.</span> Preached May 23, 1773.<br />
-<span class="smcap">2 Cor.</span> iv. 5.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>We preach not ourselves, but Christ Jesus the
- Lord.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">176</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLI"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLI.</span> Preached. Dec. 15, 1771.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xi. 5.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>The Poor have the Gospel preached unto
- them.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">193</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLII"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLII.</span> Preached Jan. 24, 1773.<br />
-<span class="smcap">John</span> xiv. 2.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>In my Father’s house are many mansions: if
- it were not so, I would have told you.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">210</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLIII"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLIII.</span> Preached May 5, 1776.<br />
-<span class="smcap">John</span> xvi. 12, 13.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye
- cannot bear them now. Howbeit, when he,
- the Spirit of truth, shall come, he will guide
- you into all truth: for he shall not speak
- of himself; but whatsoever he shall hear,
- that shall he speak: and he will shew you
- things to come.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">222<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiii">xiii</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLIV"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLIV.</span> Preached May 29, 1774. T.S.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Acts</span> i. 11.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up
- into heaven? This same Jesus, which is taken
- up from you, shall so come, in like manner
- as ye have seen him go into heaven.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">237</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLV"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLV.</span> Preached June 23, 1776.<br />
-St. <span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xiii. 55, 56.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Is not this the carpenter’s son? Is not his
- mother called Mary? And his brethren,
- James and Joses and Simon and Judas?
- And his sisters, are not they all with us?
- Whence then hath this man all these things?
- And they were offended in him.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">253</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLVI"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLVI.</span> Preached Feb. 4, 1776.<br />
-<span class="smcap">James</span> iv. 7.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Resist the Devil, and he will flee from you.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">267</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLVII"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLVII.</span> Preached March 29, 1772.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Prov.</span> xvi. 6.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>By the fear of the Lord men depart from
- evil.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">283<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiv">xiv</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLVIII"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLVIII.</span> Preached May 31, 1772.<br />
-<span class="smcap">1 Cor.</span> vi. 12.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>All things are lawful unto, me; but all things
- are not expedient: All things are lawful for
- me; but I will not be brought under the
- power of any.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">296</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_XLIX"><span class="smcap">Sermon XLIX.</span> Preached July 5, 1772.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Matth.</span> v. 38, 39, 40, 41.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Ye have heared that it hath been said, an eye
- for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth. But I
- say unto you, that ye resist not evil: but
- whosoever shall smite thee on thy right cheek,
- turn to him the other also: And, if any
- man will sue thee at the law, and take away
- thy coat, let him have thy cloak also: And
- whosoever shall compel thee to go a mile,
- go with him twain.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">310</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_L"><span class="smcap">Sermon L.</span> Preached May 14, 1775.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Luke</span> ix. 26.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my
- words, of him shall the Son of man be
- ashamed, when he shall come in his own
- glory and in his Father’s, and of the holy
- Angels.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">327<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xv">xv</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_LI"><span class="smcap">Sermon LI.</span> Preached May 21, 1775.<br />
-<span class="smcap">Luke</span> ix. 26.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>Whosoever shall be ashamed of me, and of my
- words, of him shall the Son of man be
- ashamed, when he shall come in his own
- glory, and in his Father’s, and of the holy
- Angels.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">341</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_LII"><span class="smcap">Sermon LII.</span> Preached Jan. 29, 1775.<br />
-St. <span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xvi. 18.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>I say also unto thee, that thou art Peter, and upon
- this rock I will build my Church; and the
- gates of Hell shall not prevail against it.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">354</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th colspan="2"><a href="#SERMON_LIII"><span class="smcap">Sermon LIII.</span> Preached Feb. 5, 1775.<br />
-St. <span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xvi. 18.</a></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><i>And I say also unto thee, that thou art Peter,
- and upon this rock will I build my Church,
- and the gates of Hell shall not prevail
- against it.</i></td>
- <td class="tdrb">367</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td style="padding-top: 20px;"><a href="#A_DISCOURSE"><span class="smcap">A Larger Discourse</span></a>, <i>by way of Commentary,
- on that remarkable Part of the Gospel-history,
- in which Jesus is represented, as
- driving the Buyers and Sellers out of the
- Temple</i><a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>.</td>
- <td style="padding-top: 20px;" class="tdrb">383</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_1">1</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXIX">SERMON XXIX.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MARCH 21, 1773.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Acts</span> xxiv. 24, 25.</h3>
-
-<p><i>After certain days, when Felix came with his
-wife Drusilla, which was a Jewess, he sent
-for Paul, and heard him concerning the
-faith of Christ. And, as he reasoned of
-righteousness, temperance, and judgment to
-come, Felix trembled, and answered</i>, <span class="smcap">Go
-thy way for this time; when I have a
-convenient season, I will call for thee</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">This</span> Felix, whose name is become so memorable
-in the Christian church, had been
-made Procurator of Judæa by the Emperor
-Claudius, and continued in that government<span class="pagenum" id="Page_2">2</span>
-during the six or seven first years of Nero:
-when he was recalled to answer for his oppressive
-administration before the emperor; who,
-we are told, would have punished him, according
-to his deserts, but for the interposition of
-Pallas, at that time Nero’s chief minister.</p>
-
-<p>He was, indeed, in all respects a very corrupt
-and profligate man, as appears from the testimony
-of Tacitus<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> and Josephus<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>; from whom
-we learn, that he was more especially addicted
-to the vices of <i>lust and cruelty</i>; both which
-he exercised in the most audacious manner;
-vexing the people with all sorts of oppression,
-and rioting in his excesses, without restraint.
-Drusilla, too, is represented to us in a light,
-not much more favourable. For, though a
-Jewess, and the wife of another man, she had
-contracted a marriage, or rather lived in adultery
-with this pagan governor of Judæa; transgressing
-at once both a moral and positive law
-of her religion, for the sake of ascending to
-that honour.</p>
-
-<p>One would wonder how persons of this character
-should have any curiosity to <i>hear Paul<span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">3</span>
-concerning the faith of Christ</i>. And, without
-doubt, they had no serious desire of information.
-It is likely they proposed to themselves
-some entertainment from questioning the prisoner;
-and the presence of Drusilla makes it
-credible that the entertainment was chiefly
-designed for <i>her</i>; who might be a bigot to her
-religion, though she scorned to live up to it;
-and therefore wanted, we may suppose, to insult
-Jesus in the person of his disciple.</p>
-
-<p>However, let their purpose be what it would,
-such were <span class="smcap">Felix</span> and <span class="smcap">Drusilla</span>, before whom
-Paul <i>reasoned of righteousness, temperance,
-and a judgment to come</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Paul was not in the number of those complaisant
-preachers, who take a text, in which
-their hearers have no concern. He had to do
-with persons, who bade defiance to religion in
-all its forms; and his subject was well suited
-to the occasion. They expected an amusing
-tale of Jesus Christ: but the Apostle, who
-knew how unworthy they were of being instructed
-in the faith, as not yet possessing the
-fist principles of morals, took up the matter a
-great deal higher; and, discoursing to them
-on the natural duties of justice and temperance,
-which they had grossly violated, and on the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">4</span>
-natural doctrine of a judgment to come, which
-they had never believed or respected, gave
-them to understand, that they had much to
-learn, or practise at least, before they were fit
-hearers of what he had further to say concerning
-the Christian revelation.</p>
-
-<p>Being taken at this advantage, we may easily
-conceive their surprise and disappointment:
-and, as the speaker knew how to give an
-energy to his discourse on these interesting
-topics, we cannot wonder, that one or both of
-them should be much discomposed by it. Of
-Drusilla the sacred text says nothing: she was,
-perhaps, the more skilful dissembler of the
-two; or her rage and indignation might, for
-the moment, get the better of her fears: but
-Felix had not the address, or the fortune, to
-disguise his feelings; he <i>trembled</i> before this
-plain, intrepid speaker.</p>
-
-<p>This event is instructive, indeed, as it sets
-before us the power of conscience over the
-worst of men; and, at the same time, the
-meanness of guilt, which, in such place and
-dignity, could not help shrinking at the voice
-of truth, though speaking by the mouth of a
-poor dependant prisoner. But when we have
-made the proper use of these reflexions, on the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">5</span>
-case of Felix, we shall find a still more instructive
-lesson in <i>the subsequent conduct of
-this affrighted sinner</i>.</p>
-
-<p>When the fit of trembling came upon him,
-he said hastily to the preacher: <i>Go thy way
-for this time; when I have a convenient season,
-I will call for thee.</i></p>
-
-<p>How striking a picture of that fatal disposition
-which men have to put off repentance,
-even under the fullest conviction of guilt; and
-that too, on the most frivolous pretences!
-What Felix should have done instantly, when
-his conscience was so much alarmed, he omits
-to do: <i>Go thy way for this time</i>: and yet, to
-quiet that conscience, he would not be thought
-to lay aside all purpose of reformation: <i>When
-I have a convenient season, I will call for thee.</i></p>
-
-<p>With this famous example in my eye, I shall
-attempt to shew in the following discourse: 1.
-<i>That</i> <small>PROCRASTINATION</small> <i>is the usual support of
-vice</i>: 2. <i>That false reasoning</i>, or, what we
-may call, <i>the</i> <small>SOPHISTRY OF VICE</small>, <i>is the great
-support of procrastination</i>: 3. That a <small>FINAL
-IMPENITENCE</small> is the too common effect of this
-pernicious confederacy. And</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">6</span></p>
-
-<p>I. <span class="smcap">Procrastination</span> is the main support of
-vice; the favourite stratagem, by which the
-grand deceiver himself ensnares the souls of
-men, and maintains his empire over them.</p>
-
-<p>There are few persons so desperately wicked
-but they resolve, secretly at least, and in their
-own minds, to amend their bad lives, at some
-time or other. But that time is rarely the
-present. They have other business in hand:
-some scheme of interest to manage, some project
-of ambition to pursue, some intrigue of
-pleasure to accomplish; in short, some darling
-sin or other to gratify, before they can be at
-leisure to execute this intended work of reformation.</p>
-
-<p>Nay, there are seasons of recollection, in
-which the memory of their past lives afflicts
-and torments them; there are hours of melancholy,
-or ill health, in which the necessity of
-repentance seems pressing and instant; there
-are certain moments of terror, in which the
-final resolution is on the point of being taken:
-yet still, this delusive idea of <i>to-morrow</i> steps
-in: the memory, the necessity, the terror, are
-over-ruled: the ungrateful task is, for the present,
-deferred; to-morrow laid aside, and the
-next day forgotten.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">7</span></p>
-
-<p>This was the case of Felix in the text.
-When bad men are clothed with power, it is
-not easy for truth of any kind, especially for
-moral truth, to gain access to them. Yet it
-made its way to this potent governor, and with
-a force which nothing could resist. It borrowed
-the thunder of Paul’s rhetoric to speak
-home and loudly to his affrighted conscience.
-It shook his guilty mind with the sense of his
-crimes, his incontinence and injustice, his riot
-and rapine, his lust and cruelty; and still more,
-with the apprehension of <i>a judgment to come</i>,
-armed with terror, and ready to take vengeance
-of his multiplied iniquities.</p>
-
-<p>You expect now, that, in this agony, he
-should take the part, which duty and prudence,
-his conviction and his fears, equally
-recommended to him. You expect, that he
-should apply to his instructor, who had raised
-this storm, to compose it; and that, leaving
-his chair of state, he should spring forth and
-accost his prisoner, as the honest jaylor at Philippi
-had done, on a similar occasion: <i>What
-must I do to be saved<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>?</i> But, no; it was not
-yet convenient to put that question. His
-pleasures, his fortune, his ambition, might be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">8</span>
-endangered by it. It was not the moment to
-take this decisive step. Better to think twice
-of it, and dismiss the preacher <i>for this time</i>.</p>
-
-<p>And is there nothing in this case which we
-may apply to ourselves? Is there none here,
-whom the free remonstrance of a friend, an unexpected
-sentence in a moral writer, the admonition
-of a preacher, and, above all, the <i>word
-of God</i>, hath, at any time, awakened to a
-lively sense of his condition? A reproof from
-one or other of these sometimes falls in so exactly
-with a man’s own case, and goes so directly
-to the heart, that he is more than commonly
-disturbed and confounded by it. It
-flashes such conviction on the mind, and shews
-the sinner to himself in so just a light, that he
-stands aghast at the deformity of his conduct,
-and at the peril of it. In the agitation of this
-distress, he half resolves to repent: nay, he
-strives for a moment to enforce this good resolution:
-when, let but that dæmon, which
-every sinner carries about with him, whisper
-the word, <i>to-morrow</i>, and his conscience revives,
-his fears disperse, and this precious opportunity
-is lost, though at the hazard of never
-returning any more.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">9</span></p>
-
-<p>Not that he permits this idle insinuation to
-banish all thoughts of future repentance, or to
-prevail with him, for the present, in its true
-and proper form: No: to be thus far the dupe
-of his own folly, would disgrace him too much,
-and expose his prevarication too plainly: if it
-pass upon him, it shall be under the mask of
-wisdom. He turns sophister then in his own
-defence, and is easily convinced, “That his
-conduct is not altogether absurd or unreasonable.”</p>
-
-<p>And thus, as I proposed to shew,</p>
-
-<p>II. In the next place, this fatal procrastination,
-which supports vice, is itself supported
-by a <small>READY AND CONVENIENT SOPHISTRY</small>.</p>
-
-<p>The case of Felix will again illustrate this
-second observation; and shew us the whole
-process of that preverted ingenuity, by which
-the credulous mind is made easy under its delusion.</p>
-
-<p>He thought it not sufficient to say to Paul;
-<i>Go thy way for this time</i>. This abrupt dismission
-of the preacher was to be justified, in
-some sort, to himself, and to those who were
-witnesses of his consternation. He covers it,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">10</span>
-then, with this pretence; <i>When I have a convenient
-season, I will call for thee</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The <small>TIME</small>, it seems, was not proper for his
-immediate conversion. To become a penitent
-just then; on the instant; to be surprised into
-a good life, had the appearance of too much
-facility and inconsideration. He must take a
-space to reflect on the grounds and reasons of
-what had been offered to him. He had, besides,
-other affairs, which pressed upon him at this
-moment: or, if not, to deliberate on the matter,
-would render his conversion more solemn
-and effectual.</p>
-
-<p>The <small>PLACE</small>, too, we may believe, was as little
-suited, as the time, to this business. “What!
-in a public apartment of his palace! in the
-presence of Drusilla, whose tenderest interests
-were concerned in the case, and whose delicacy
-required managing! before his pagan courtiers,
-and many, we may suppose, of his Jewish
-subjects, who would be equally scandalized at
-this precipitate conversion of their master and
-governor!” These, and other pretences of the
-like sort, without doubt, occurred to him: and
-on the strength of these he concludes his procrastination
-to be fit, and decent, and justifiable,
-in a good degree, on the principles of virtue
-and prudence.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">11</span></p>
-
-<p>“But why, unhappy man (if one may presume
-to expostulate the case with thee) why
-this hasty and unweighed conclusion? Could
-there be any time more convenient for thy conversion,
-or any place more suitable, if thou
-wert in earnest to be converted?</p>
-
-<p>Wast thou ever so prepared for this change
-as now? Was thy mind ever so convinced, or thy
-heart so affected? Didst thou ever hear and
-<i>tremble</i> till this day, and wilt thou expect such
-a miracle a second time? Can thy bad life be
-reformed too soon, or can it need an afterthought
-to justify such reformation? Can any
-other business come in competition with this?
-and can it deserve the name of weakness and
-surprise to give way to the powerful workings of
-thy own conscience? In a doubtful case, it may
-be well to deliberate: but can it be a secret even
-to thyself, that nothing is questionable here,
-but thy sincerity?</p>
-
-<p>For what, let me ask, is that <i>convenient
-season</i>, which flatters thy present irresolution?
-Wilt thou find such a monitor, as Paul, in thy
-dependants? Will thy tax-gatherers preach
-<i>righteousness</i> to thee, and thy centurions,
-<i>temperance</i>? or, thy philosophers (if, perhaps,
-thou hast of these about thee, to grace thy provincial<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">12</span>
-pomp) will they reason with thee, on a
-<i>judgment to come</i>?</p>
-
-<p>But the <small>PLACE</small> is unfit; and thou wilt send
-for Paul to confer in private with thee.</p>
-
-<p>Wast thou then afraid to expose thy honour
-by this step? And did it seem too much to give
-to God and truth, the glory of thy conversion?
-True penitence knows nothing of these punctilios.
-The example had edified thy unbelieving
-court; and might have had its effect on the
-insensible Drusilla. Thy injustice and incontinence
-had been open to all men. Was it not fit
-thou shouldst atone for this scandal by as public a
-reformation? Yet still thy pretence is, <i>a convenient
-season</i>! As if the first season, that offers
-for renouncing a bad life, were not always the
-most convenient.”</p>
-
-<p>But I continue this address to the Roman
-governor too long, if you consider me as directing
-it to him only. Let me profess, then, that
-by Felix I mean every sinner at this day, who
-procrastinates in the affair of his salvation, and
-would colour that procrastination by a still
-more contemptible sophistry. For, let us be
-ingenuous. This miserable Pagan, after all,
-had something to say for himself. This was,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">13</span>
-probably, the only time that repentance had
-ever been preached to him. He still, perhaps,
-was acquainted with little more than the name
-of Jesus: for his teacher, as we have seen, insisted
-chiefly on the great truths of natural religion.
-If he then scrupled to take the benefit of
-this first and imperfect lecture, there is some
-allowance to be made for his folly. But what
-shall we say of those who possess every possible
-advantage of light and knowledge, who have
-grown up in the profession of Christianity, and
-are not now to learn either its duties or terrors?
-If such as these have sinned themselves into the
-condition of Felix, and yet resist the calls of
-grace, the commands of the Gospel, the exhortations
-of its ministers, the admonitions of
-their own conscience, all of them concurring to
-press upon them an immediate repentance; if
-there be among us such procrastinators as these,
-what topics of defence are there by which they
-can hope to excuse, or so much as palliate,
-their prodigious infatuation?</p>
-
-<p>“Shall we say for them, or will they say for
-themselves, that they are young and healthy?
-that they have time enough before them, in
-which to grow wise at their leisure? that they
-wait till the boisterous passions have been
-calmed by reason and experience? that they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">14</span>
-expect <i>a convenient season</i> for repentance, in
-declining life, and the languor of old age? or
-that they shall find it, as others have done, on
-the bed of sickness, or on the bed of death?”</p>
-
-<p>I have never heard that Christians have any
-better reasons than these for delaying repentance:
-and, if they have not, though the
-sophistry of Felix deserved to be laid open, the
-respect I owe to those who now hear me, will
-not permit me to imagine that such sophistry
-as this, can want to be exposed.</p>
-
-<p>It will be to better purpose to set before
-you,</p>
-
-<p>III. In the last place, the issue of this too
-natural alliance between procrastination and
-vice, in a <small>FINAL IMPENITENCE</small>; of which the
-case of Felix, again, affords us a striking
-example.</p>
-
-<p><i>When I have a convenient season</i>, says he
-to Paul, <i>I will call for thee</i>. This season
-came, and Paul attended; to what effect, we
-shall now understand.</p>
-
-<p>When Felix dismissed him from his presence,
-he insinuated, nay perhaps thought,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">15</span>
-that he should have a disposition hereafter to
-profit by his religious instructions. But time
-and bad company quieted his fears: and a
-favourite vice inspired other motives for the interview,
-than those of religion. <i>For he hoped</i>,
-says the historian, <i>that money should have
-been given him of Paul, that he might loose
-him: wherefore he sent for him the oftener,
-and communed with him</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The case, we see, is well altered. He
-<i>trembled</i> before at Paul’s charge against him of
-rapine and extortion: he would now exercise
-these very vices on Paul himself. Such was
-the fruit of that <i>convenient season</i>, which was
-to have teemed with better things!</p>
-
-<p>But this is not all: <i>For, after two years
-Portius Festus came into Felix’s room; and
-Felix, willing to shew the Jews a pleasure,
-left Paul bound</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Felix then had his preacher within call for
-<i>two whole years</i>: time sufficient, one would
-think, to afford the opportunity of many a
-lecture <i>concerning the faith of Christ</i>. Yet,
-though he communed with Paul oft, it does
-not appear that his conferences with him
-turned on this subject. What he wanted to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">16</span>
-draw from him was, not truth, but money;
-and, when this hope failed, he was little concerned
-about the rest. Nay, the impression
-which Paul had made upon him was so entirely
-effaced, that he left an innocent man <i>in bonds</i>,
-for the sake of <i>doing a pleasure to the Jews</i>.
-But he had his reason still for this unwonted
-courtesy. For their complaints were ready to
-follow him (as indeed they did) to the throne
-of Cæsar; whither he went, at last, unrepentant
-and unreformed, to encounter, as he could,
-the rigors of imperial justice; just as so many
-others, by the like misuse of time and opportunity,
-expose themselves to all the terrors of
-divine.</p>
-
-<p>Not but there is yet this advantage in the
-parallel on the side of <i>Felix</i>. He neglected to
-use the space of <i>two years</i>, which was mercifully
-allowed him for the season of reformation:
-but how many Christians omit this work, not
-for <i>two</i> only, but for twenty, forty years; nay,
-for the whole extent of a long life; and never
-find a <i>convenient season</i> for doing the only
-thing, which it greatly concerns them to do,
-although with the astonishing delusion of
-always intending it.</p>
-
-<p>To conclude: We have seen that procrastination
-serves the ends of vice; and that vice,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">17</span>
-in return, is but too successful in pleading the
-cause of procrastination: leaving between them
-this salutary lesson to mankind, “That he who
-seriously intends to repent to-morrow, should
-in all reason begin to-day; <i>to-day</i>, as the
-Apostle admonishes, <i>while it is called to-day,
-lest the heart</i>, in the mean time, <i>be hardened
-through the deceitfulness of sin</i><a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a>.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">18</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXX">SERMON XXX.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED DECEMBER 19, 1773.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">1 John</span> v. 11.</h3>
-
-<p><i>And this is the record that God hath given to
-us, eternal life; and</i> <small>THIS LIFE IS IN HIS SON</small>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">We</span> are indebted to the Gospel for the knowledge
-and hope we have of eternal life; this
-important doctrine having, <i>first</i>, been delivered
-by Jesus Christ, and <i>only</i> by him, on any
-proper grounds of authority. This then is the
-<i>record</i>, or the substance of what the Gospel
-<i>testifies</i> and affirms, <i>That God hath given to
-us eternal life: and this life</i>, adds the Apostle,
-<small>IS IN HIS SON</small>: that is, he <i>procured</i> this
-blessing for us; he is not only the teacher, but
-the <i>author</i> of eternal life.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">19</span></p>
-
-<p>This last is a distinct and very momentous
-consideration. Reason might seem to have
-some part in discovering, or at least in confirming,
-the doctrine itself: but the <i>manner</i>
-of conveying the inestimable gift of eternal life,
-whether <i>immediately</i> from the giver of it, or
-by the <i>mediation</i> of some other, this is a matter
-of pure revelation; and reason hath nothing
-more to do in the case, than to see that the
-revelation is, indeed, made, and then with all
-humility to acquiesce in it.</p>
-
-<p>Being, then, to treat this sublime subject,
-<i>the redemption of mankind through Christ</i>, I
-shall do it simply in the <i>terms</i> of scripture, or
-at least with a scrupulous regard to the plain
-and obvious <i>sense</i> of them. The text says,
-<i>eternal life is in the Son of God</i>; and my discourse
-must be merely a <i>scriptural comment</i> on
-this declaration.</p>
-
-<p>Now, the scripture teaches, that immortality
-was originally, and from the beginning,
-the free gift of God to man, on the condition
-of his obeying a certain law, or command,
-prescribed to him: whether that command be
-interpreted <i>literally</i>, of not eating the fruit of
-the forbidden tree in paradise, as we read in
-the second and third chapters of Genesis; or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">20</span>
-<i>allegorically</i>, of some other prohibition, expressed
-agreeably to the oriental genius, in
-these terms. This diversity of interpretation
-makes no difference in the case: whatever the
-test of man’s disobedience was, the will of the
-law-giver is clearly announced: If thou art
-guilty of disobedience, <i>thou shalt surely die</i><a id="FNanchor_6" href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Obedience, then, had the promise of <i>continued</i>
-life; the penalty threatened to disobedience,
-was <i>death</i>: which was only saying,
-that the gift freely bestowed on a certain
-condition (and surely what man had no right
-to demand, might be offered on what terms
-the giver pleased) should be withdrawn on the
-breach of it. The loss, indeed, was immense;
-but to the loser no wrong was done: and of him
-who recalled the free gift, conditionally bestowed,
-and justly forfeited, no complaint, in
-reason, can be made.</p>
-
-<p>But to what purpose, some will ask, to give
-that with one hand, which was presently to be
-withdrawn by the other? for the best reason,
-no doubt, whether conceivable by us, or not.
-However, the sad event was certainly foreseen:
-and, what is more, such provision was made<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">21</span>
-against it, as to infinite wisdom and goodness
-seemed meet.</p>
-
-<p>By contemplating the gradual steps of Providence,
-as we are able to trace them in the
-revelation itself, we understand, that it was in
-the eternal purpose of the divine Governor to
-restore life to fallen and mortal man, as <i>freely</i>
-as it had been at first bestowed, and on <i>terms</i>
-still more advantageous him. But <i>the ways
-of heaven are not as our ways</i>, nor to be regulated
-by our impatient wishes, or expectations.
-What man, in a moment, had wantonly thrown
-away, he was to recover once more; but in
-God’s good time; not instantly, but after a
-long succession of ages, and such a state of
-intermediate discipline and preparation, as
-might best serve to introduce the intended
-blessing with effect.</p>
-
-<p>Man, then was to be reinstated in his forfeited
-inheritance: and the <i>promise</i> was made,
-though purposely in obscure terms, from the
-moment the forfeiture was incurred. In process
-of time, it was less, and still less obscurely
-signified; yet so as that the full discovery of
-what was intended, and, still more, the execution
-of it, was long deferred.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">22</span></p>
-
-<p>At length, Jesus Christ came into the world
-to fulfill and to declare the whole will of God
-on this interesting subject: and from him, and
-from those commissioned by him, we learn
-what the wisest men, and even <i>angels</i>, <i>had desired
-to look into</i>, and could at most discern
-but imperfectly through the types and shadows
-of the patriarchal and Mosaic dispensations.</p>
-
-<p>The great mystery, now unveiled, was
-briefly this: that God of his infinite goodness
-had, indeed, from the foundation of the world,
-purposed the restoration of eternal life to his
-unworthy creature, man; but that in his wisdom
-he saw fit to confer this unmerited blessing
-in a way, that should at once secure the
-honour of his government; and, if any thing
-could secure it, the future obedience and happiness
-of his creature: that he would only confer
-this mighty privilege at the instance, as it
-were, and for the sake of a transcendantly divine
-person, his only begotten Son, the second
-person in the glorious Trinity, as we now style
-him: that this divine person; of his own free
-will co-operating with the <i>eternal purpose</i><a id="FNanchor_7" href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> of
-the all-gracious Father, should descend from
-Heaven; should become incarnate; should as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">23</span>
-man, converge with men, and instruct them by
-his heavenly doctrine; should taste deeply of
-all their sorrows and infirmities (<i>sin only excepted</i>);
-should even pour out his blood unto
-death, and by that blood should wash away
-the stain of guilt; and, on the condition of
-<i>faith</i> in his name, operating, as of course it
-must do, by a sincere obedience to his authority,
-should admit us, once more, to the possession
-of eternal happiness; of which, finally,
-we have a <i>lively</i> and certain hope, in that he
-who had laid down his life, had power to take
-it again, as was declared to all the world by
-his resurrection from the dead<a id="FNanchor_8" href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>In this awfully stupendous manner (at which
-reason stands aghast, and faith herself is half
-confounded) was the Grace of God to man, at
-length, manifested: and thus it is, when we
-come a little to unfold the <i>record</i>, or testimony
-of the Gospel, that <i>God hath given to as eternal
-life</i>; and that <i>this life is in his Son</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Curious men have perplexed themselves and
-others by inquiring into the nature of this
-astonishing scheme, and have seemed half inclined
-not to accept so <i>great salvation</i>, till
-they could reconcile it to their ideas of philosophy.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">24</span>
-Hence those endless altercations concerning
-<i>merit, satisfaction, imputed sin, and
-vicarious punishment</i>; in which it is hard to
-say, whether more subtlety has been shewn, or
-more perverseness; more ingenuity, or presumption.
-If most of these questions were
-well examined, it would appear, perhaps, that
-they are mere verbal disputes, and as frivolous
-as they are contentious. But, be the difference
-between the parties nominal or real, this
-we are sure of, without taking part in the controversy,
-that the scriptures speak of the <i>death</i>
-of Christ, as a <i>ransom for many</i><a id="FNanchor_9" href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a>; <i>the price
-of our redemption</i><a id="FNanchor_10" href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a>; <i>a sacrifice for us</i><a id="FNanchor_11" href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a>; <i>a
-propitiation for the sins of the whole world</i><a id="FNanchor_12" href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a>:
-that they speak of Christ himself, <i>as dying for
-us</i><a id="FNanchor_13" href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a>, <i>as bearing our sins in his own body on
-the tree</i><a id="FNanchor_14" href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a>; as <i>suffering for sins, the just for
-the unjust</i><a id="FNanchor_15" href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a>; as <i>tasting death for every man</i><a id="FNanchor_16" href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a>;
-<i>as giving himself for us, an offering and sacrifice
-to God</i><a id="FNanchor_17" href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a>; as <i>justifying us by his blood</i><a id="FNanchor_18" href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a>;
-and <i>redeeming us by the price of it</i><a id="FNanchor_19" href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a>: with a
-multitude of other passages to the same purpose.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">25</span>
-Now let men use what art they will in
-torturing such expressions as these; they will
-hardly prevent our seeing what the plain doctrine
-of scripture is, “That it pleased God to
-give us eternal life only <i>in his Son</i>; and in his
-Son <i>only</i> as suffering and dying for us.”</p>
-
-<p>But in this consideration the whole mystery
-consists; how to be fully cleared up
-to our reason, men may dispute if they will,
-and they will dispute the rather, because
-the subject is out of their sphere, and beyond
-their comprehension. Whether God <i>could</i>
-accept such a sacrifice for sin as the death of
-his own Son, many have presumptuously asked.
-Whether he <i>could not</i> have given life to man,
-in another way, some have more modestly
-doubted: but the issue of all this arrogant or
-needless curiosity, is but the discovery of their
-own weakness, on the one hand, and the confession
-of this stupendous truth, on the other;
-That God did not see fit to bestow eternal salvation
-on mankind, but in his own appointed
-way, through Christ Jesus.</p>
-
-<p>In this momentous truth, then, enough for
-us to know, let us humbly acquiesce, and leave
-to others the vanity of disputing the grounds
-of it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">26</span></p>
-
-<p>But, though the reasons of this dispensation
-be inscrutable to us, the measure of its <i>influence</i>,
-some think, they have the means to
-discover. For it seems to follow from St.
-Paul’s assertion, that, <i>as in Adam all died, so
-in Christ shall all be made alive</i><a id="FNanchor_20" href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a>; and from
-the idea given us of the Redeemer, as of <i>the
-lamb slain from the foundation of the world</i><a id="FNanchor_21" href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a>;
-that the benefits of Christ’s death extend to all
-men, of all times, and are, in the proper sense
-of the word, <i>universal</i>. Only it is to be remembered,
-that, if all men have an interest in
-Christ, whether they know it or not, <i>we</i> who
-do know what our interest in him is, have infinitely
-the advantage of them, and are inexcusable,
-if we reject it.</p>
-
-<p>Thus far then we go upon safe grounds, and
-affirm without hesitation, that <i>God</i>, through
-his mercies in Christ Jesus, <i>is the Saviour of
-all men</i>, but <i>especially of them that believe</i><a id="FNanchor_22" href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Another consideration, and of the utmost
-moment, is yet behind. Though eternal life
-be now again bestowed on mankind, this gift
-is not one and the same thing to all, but is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">27</span>
-differently modified according to the different
-conduct of those to whom it is given. All shall
-<i>live</i>; but whether to happiness, or misery,
-and to what degree of <i>either</i>, will depend on
-the use of those advantages, whether of nature
-or grace, which every one enjoys. Not, that
-any degree of eternal happiness is, or can be
-strictly due to any man, but that the several
-degrees of it will be <i>proportioned</i> to our respective
-moral and religious qualifications. To
-have done otherwise, would have been to confound
-the order of things, and to appoint a
-scheme of salvation, which must utterly extinguish
-all virtuous industry among men. Hence,
-we are told, that the righteous shall shine out
-in different degrees of happiness, <i>as one star
-differeth from another star in glory</i><a id="FNanchor_23" href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>In like manner, they who shall be found
-worthy, not of happiness, but misery, will be
-sentenced to several allotments of it, by the
-same equal rule.</p>
-
-<p>It may seem, perhaps, that, as our best
-works could not <i>merit</i> eternal life in happiness,
-so our worst cannot <i>deserve</i> eternal life in
-misery. But let us take care how we push our<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">28</span>
-inquiries into this aweful subject. In rewarding
-obedience, the <i>divine goodness</i> is chiefly
-displayed; and who shall presume to set bounds
-to it? But, in punishing disobedience, the
-<i>divine Wisdom</i>, of which we conceive much
-more imperfectly, is mainly concerned: and
-what examples of severity in the punishment
-of incorrigibly impenitent offenders, after such
-means as have been devised to reclaim them,
-and for the support of his moral government
-over more worlds than we have any idea of, this
-attribute may demand, we shall do well, with all
-submission and modesty, to leave unexplored.</p>
-
-<p>Still, what is just, that is, what is right and
-fit, on the whole, undoubtedly take place:
-but we <i>are</i> not, we <i>cannot</i>, be competent
-judges of what is fit and right in this instance.
-It will be safest to rely, without further inquiry,
-on the general declaration of him, who
-was not only our Redeemer, but shall one day
-be our merciful judge: <i>These</i>, says he, [that is,
-the wicked] <i>shall go away into everlasting punishment:
-but the righteous into life eternal</i><a id="FNanchor_24" href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>What remains on this subject, is only to admonish
-you of those <i>relations</i>, in which we<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">29</span>
-stand towards the Author of our salvation, and
-the correspondent <i>duties</i> they impose upon us.
-I can but just point out these <i>relations</i> and
-<i>duties</i>: though they deserve to be inculcated
-(as, in fact, they have been, by the sacred
-writers) with all the force of eloquent persuasion,
-that words can give.</p>
-
-<p>With regard, to the supreme cause of all
-things, who is of himself only the source, and
-principle of deity, and the original author of
-our salvation, God, thus understood, is graciously
-pleased to present himself to us in the
-Gospel, under the idea of <span class="smcap">the Father</span>, and to
-consider us in the tender relation of <i>sons</i>. We
-owe him, therefore, all possible filial love and
-reverence, and must so conceive of his part in
-the mystery of our redemption, as to refer all
-the fruits of it, ultimately, <i>to the glory of God
-the Father</i><a id="FNanchor_25" href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>In subordination to the <i>Father</i>, <small>HE</small> in whom
-we have eternal life, is our <i>friend</i><a id="FNanchor_26" href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a>, and therefore
-entitled to our warmest love: he is our
-greatest <i>benefactor</i><a id="FNanchor_27" href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a>, and therefore claims our
-utmost gratitude: he is our only <i>master</i><a id="FNanchor_28" href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a>, and
-of course, must be followed with all observance:<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">30</span>
-he is our <i>redeemer</i>, and <i>sole mediator between
-God and man</i><a id="FNanchor_29" href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a>; therefore he challenges an
-implicit, an exclusive trust and confidence
-from us: he is the appointed <i>judge</i> of the
-world<a id="FNanchor_30" href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a>; therefore to be regarded with the
-humblest fear and veneration: lastly, he is <i>the
-only begotten Son of God</i><a id="FNanchor_31" href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a>, nay <i>our Lord and
-our God</i><a id="FNanchor_32" href="#Footnote_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a>; to whom therefore we are to pay
-transcendant honour, so as <i>to honour, the Son
-even as we honour the Father</i><a id="FNanchor_33" href="#Footnote_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>These are some, the chief of those duties,
-which, as Christians, we are bound to perform
-towards the Author of our salvation. The <i>relations</i>
-from which they spring, could not be
-discovered by the light of nature; but, when
-made known to us by revelation, they require
-as certainly, and as reasonably, the several
-<i>duties</i> which correspond to them, as the <i>relations</i>
-in which we stand to God and man, as
-discoverable by nature only, require their
-respective <i>duties</i>.</p>
-
-<p>You see, then, the sphere of a Christian’s
-duty is much enlarged beyond that of the natural
-man: and not in these instances only, for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">31</span>
-the gospel has made known another divine
-<i>person</i>, (so we are obliged to speak) <i>the holy
-Spirit of God</i>, who stands in a distinct relation
-to us; and to whom, therefore, his proper and
-peculiar honour is due. But of this divine
-person in the glorious Trinity, I shall find
-another occasion to lay before you, at large,
-what the scriptures have brought to light.</p>
-
-<p>For the present, it may suffice to have put
-you in mind of what we are taught concerning
-<i>the grace of God in his Son Jesus Christ</i>; to
-the end that, religiously observing all the duties
-which this revealed doctrine requires of us,
-we may fully correspond to the gracious intentions
-of the revealer, by having <i>our fruit unto
-holiness</i>; and <i>the end, everlasting life. For
-the wages of sin</i> (be it ever remembered) <i>is
-death: but eternal life is the gift of God
-through Jesus Christ our Lord<a id="FNanchor_34" href="#Footnote_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a>: To whom
-be all praise, thanksgiving, and honour, now
-and for evermore. Amen.</i></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">32</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXI">SERMON XXXI.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED JUNE 12, 1774.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Gal.</span> vi. 8.</h3>
-
-<p><i>He that soweth to the spirit, shall</i> <small>OF THE
-SPIRIT REAP LIFE EVERLASTING</small>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">Without</span> staying to point out the immediate
-occasion of these words, or to enumerate
-and define the several senses of the word
-<i>spirit</i>, in sacred scripture, it is sufficient to
-my present purpose to observe, that the text
-affirms <i>a general and fundamental truth of
-the Gospel</i>, more clearly and particularly explained
-elsewhere. It is this: That he who
-in this life conducts himself according to the
-rules and admonitions of God’s holy spirit,
-which the Apostle calls, <i>sowing to the spirit</i>,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">33</span>
-shall, through the influence of the same spirit,
-obtain, that is, in the Apostle’s figurative style,
-<i>shall reap, life everlasting</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But, what! you will say, everlasting life
-is the <i>gift of God through Christ</i>: how is it
-then that we receive this gift at the hands of
-another, of <i>God’s holy spirit</i>?</p>
-
-<p>To resolve this difficulty, and to open to you
-at the same time the Christian doctrine of grace,
-together with the concern which we have in it,
-I shall consider,</p>
-
-<p>I. In what <i>sense</i> we are to understand the
-assertion, <i>That everlasting life is of the spirit</i>.</p>
-
-<p>II. In what <i>way</i> this blessing is conferred
-upon us; under which head I shall have occasion
-to set forth the several <i>offices and operations</i>
-of the holy Spirit.</p>
-
-<p>III. Lastly, what <i>returns of duty</i>, as corresponding
-to these <i>offices</i> of the Spirit, and as
-resulting from the <i>relations</i> in which we stand
-towards him, are, in consequence of this revelation,
-reasonably required of us.</p>
-
-<p>I. To understand in what <i>sense</i> the scriptures
-assert <i>everlasting life to be of the spirit</i>, it will<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">34</span>
-be necessary to form to ourselves a distinct idea
-of the divine œconomy in the whole work of our
-redemption; which (to sum up briefly what is
-revealed to us) appears to have been conducted
-in the following manner.</p>
-
-<p>God the Father of his mere grace, purposed
-and <i>willed</i><a id="FNanchor_35" href="#Footnote_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a>, from all eternity, the restoration of
-<i>life</i> to man, after his forfeiture of it by disobedience:
-but he saw fit to make our <i>title</i> to
-this free gift depend on the death and sacrifice of
-his son Jesus Christ: and, lastly, to give the
-<i>actual possession</i> of it only through the ministration
-of his holy Spirit.</p>
-
-<p>The whole of this process is full of wonder;
-but there is no contradiction, or inconsistency
-in its several parts.</p>
-
-<p>However, to open the œconomy of this dispensation
-a little more distinctly, it is to be
-observed, that eternal life may be taken in two
-senses. It may either imply <i>a mere state of</i>
-<small>ENDLESS EXISTENCE</small>; and, in this sense, it is
-solely and properly the gift of God through
-Christ; <i>for as in Adam all died, even so in
-Christ shall all be made alive</i><a id="FNanchor_36" href="#Footnote_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a>: Or, it may
-mean, what it always does mean in those passages<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">35</span>
-of scripture, where it is magnified so much,
-<i>a state of</i> <small>HAPPINESS</small>, in that existence; and
-then only a capacity of being put into this state
-is procured for us by the Redeemer. But this
-capacity, this <i>grace of God</i>, may be <i>frustrated
-by us</i><a id="FNanchor_37" href="#Footnote_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a>, may even turn against is, if we be
-not duly prepared to enjoy that <i>happiness</i> of
-which we are made capable; and such <i>preparation</i>,
-is the proper distinctive work of God’s
-holy spirit.</p>
-
-<p>Further, to see the necessity, the importance
-at least, of such preparation, we are to reflect,
-that, by the fall of man, not only life was forfeited,
-but the powers of his mind were weakened.
-Transgression had clouded his understanding,
-and perverted his will. He neither
-saw his duty so clearly as before, nor was disposed
-to perform it so vigorously. And this
-depravation of his faculties, we easily conceive,
-<i>might</i>, as an original taint, be transmitted to
-his posterity; nay, we certainly feel that it <i>is</i> so:
-yet, without any imputation on the author of
-our being, who might have placed us in this
-disadvantageous state, if he had pleased, from
-the beginning; and to whom we are accountable
-for the right use of the advantages we have,
-not of those we have not. Still, the purity of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">36</span>
-God’s nature might require what his wisdom
-has decreed, that <i>without holiness no man shall
-see the Lord</i><a id="FNanchor_38" href="#Footnote_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a>, and that Jesus should be <i>the
-author of eternal salvation to those</i> only, who,
-in a higher degree than our fallen nature of
-itself permits, <i>obey him</i><a id="FNanchor_39" href="#Footnote_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a>. And this change in
-our moral condition from bad to good, from a
-propensity to evil to a love of righteousness, is
-called in scripture, <i>a renewing of our minds</i>,
-<i>a new creation</i>, <i>a new man</i>; in opposition to the
-former so different state of our minds, which is
-called <i>the old man corrupted according to the
-deceitful lusts</i><a id="FNanchor_40" href="#Footnote_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>For the <i>change</i> itself, it is represented in
-scripture as proceeding, not from the virtue of
-our own minds, but from the influence of the
-Holy Ghost upon them<a id="FNanchor_41" href="#Footnote_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a>: and when it has taken
-place in us, then, and not till then, is <i>our
-election sure</i>, and we are <i>made heirs according
-to the hope of eternal life</i><a id="FNanchor_42" href="#Footnote_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>This extraordinary provision for restoring
-man to the image of God, to <i>the new man,
-which after God is created in righteousness
-and true holiness</i><a id="FNanchor_43" href="#Footnote_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a>, is what reason could not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">37</span>
-have hoped for, but, when made known by revelation,
-seems to have been expedient, may be
-conceived to have been even necessary, and is
-clearly an expression of the divine goodness,
-which, though it fill our minds very justly with
-wonder, well as gratitude, none of our natural
-notions contradict.</p>
-
-<p>We see, then, in general, <i>how</i> the new man
-receives the gift of eternal life from the spirit.
-Let us now consider more particularly,</p>
-
-<p>II. In the second place, in what <i>way</i> this new
-creation is carried on and perfected in us.
-And here we shall find all the marks of that
-wisdom and fitness, which are discernable in the
-thing itself.</p>
-
-<p><i>For</i> we are <i>renewed in the spirit of our
-minds</i><a id="FNanchor_44" href="#Footnote_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a>, <i>by the teaching of the spirit of truth</i><a id="FNanchor_45" href="#Footnote_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a>,
-<i>through sanctification of the spirit</i><a id="FNanchor_46" href="#Footnote_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a>, and
-<i>comfort of the Holy Ghost</i><a id="FNanchor_47" href="#Footnote_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a>: that is, we have
-a new and better turn given to our minds, by
-the light derived into them from the spirit; by
-the good thoughts and purposes which he excites
-in them; and by the joy and consolation
-with which he rewards our endeavours to profit<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">38</span>
-by the assistance thus graciously afforded
-to us.</p>
-
-<p>That we very much want these helps and
-encouragements, we <i>all</i> know: that we are
-very much indebted to them, we <i>Christians</i>
-believe: and that they are not the less real,
-because, perhaps, not distinguishable from the
-workings of our own minds, now that revelation
-assures us of the fact, we have no scruple to
-affirm.</p>
-
-<p>To this divine Spirit, then, <i>the spirit of the
-Father</i><a id="FNanchor_48" href="#Footnote_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a>, and <i>the spirit of the Son</i><a id="FNanchor_49" href="#Footnote_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a>, as he is
-equally styled, because proceeding from both;
-to this spirit, I say, <i>enlightening</i> our understandings,
-<i>purifying</i> our wills, and <i>confirming</i>
-our faith, we must impute all that is good in us,
-all that proficiency in <i>true holiness</i> which
-qualifies us for the enjoyment of heaven: and
-through this discipline it is, that they <i>who
-sow to the spirit</i>, are, in the end, enabled <i>of
-the spirit to reap everlasting life</i>.</p>
-
-<p>These <i>three</i> characters might be further
-opened and distinctly considered; and then
-it would appear, that all the revelations of
-God’s will, chiefly with regard to the redemption<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">39</span>
-of man, made to the patriarchs of old, to
-the prophets under the law, to the Apostles of
-our Lord, nay to our Lord himself, as <i>the
-man Christ Jesus</i>, and all the secret illuminations
-of the faithful in all times, are to be regarded
-as so many emanations from the spirit
-of God, <small>THE ENLIGHTENER</small>: that at the gradual
-improvements of our virtue, all the graces
-which first descend upon our hearts, and then
-manifest themselves in every good word and
-work, are the production of the same spirit, in
-his office of <small>SANCTIFIER</small>: and, lastly, that all
-the firmness and resolution we possess under
-every trial in this world, all the foretaste we
-have of future favour and acceptance, all our
-joy and peace in believing, are the signs and
-proofs of the <small>COMFORTER</small>, speaking to us, and,
-according to our Saviour’s promise, <i>abiding
-in us</i>.</p>
-
-<p>It is very conceivable that all this diversity
-of operations may be justly and reasonably ascribed
-to the influence of the holy Spirit, without
-supposing that our own freedom is impeded
-or infringed. For influence is not compulsion;
-and we are every day induced by others to do
-that which we should not have done of ourselves,
-without feeling or suspecting that the
-least violence is offered to our free-will. <i>A<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">40</span>
-convincing truth</i> clearly presented to us; <i>a
-virtuous thought</i> incidentally suggested; <i>a
-gleam of hope or gladness</i>, suddenly let in
-upon us; all this is no more than we frequently
-experience in the company of wise and good
-men, who yet would be much surprised, and
-would have reason to think themselves much
-injured, if we complained of any undue influence
-exerted by them. Yet thus it is, and
-thus only, that the holy spirit <i>constraineth us</i>:
-and the scriptures are so far from representing
-this constraint under the idea of force, or physical
-necessity, that they speak of it as the perfection
-of moral freedom: <i>Where the spirit of
-the Lord is</i>, says the Apostle, <i>there is liberty</i><a id="FNanchor_50" href="#Footnote_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Having, therefore, seen in <i>what sense</i> it is
-affirmed that the spirit <i>giveth</i> life; and in <i>what
-way</i>, consistently with the free use of our faculties,
-he dispenses this gift, and exercises a
-variety of offices towards us; it remains,</p>
-
-<p>III. In the last place, to see what <i>returns
-of duty</i>, as corresponding to the several characters
-of the holy Spirit, and resulting from
-the relations in which we stand to him, are required
-on our part; in other words, what we<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">41</span>
-are to do, before we can hope to be <i>transformed
-by the renewing of our minds</i>, under the influence
-of the holy Spirit.</p>
-
-<p>One previous indispensable condition of our
-obtaining that influence seems to be, that we
-<small>ASK</small> <i>it</i>, that is, put up our petitions to God for
-it: a consideration, which, while it shews the
-utility, the necessity of prayer, sufficiently accounts,
-I doubt, to many of us, for the little
-or no effect which, as we pretend and sometimes
-lament, this renovating power of the
-spirit has upon us.</p>
-
-<p>This duty of prayer being supposed; with
-regard to the holy spirit himself, <i>in general</i>,
-all the reverence, honour, worship, which his
-divine nature exacts from us, and all the love
-and gratitude which his gracious concurrence
-with the Father and the Son, in the great
-work of our redemption, so eminently deserves,
-are to be religiously paid to him.</p>
-
-<p>More <i>particularly</i>, we are to consider, that
-to the several characters or offices, sustained by
-this divine person, and exercised towards us,
-several duties respectively correspond; which
-indeed are obvious enough, but must just be
-pointed out.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">42</span></p>
-
-<p>1. If a ray of light break in upon us, if a
-new degree of knowledge be imparted to us,
-if we see the truth of the gospel more clearly
-in any respect than before we had done, we
-cannot mistake in ascribing this additional information
-or conviction (which comes very frequently
-we know not how, and when the general
-bent of our thoughts, perhaps, lies another
-way) to the illuminating spirit within us; and
-we are to see to what further purpose that illumination
-may serve, and how far it may go towards
-dissipating the darkness of our minds in
-other instances.</p>
-
-<p>2. If we feel (as at times we all of us do) a
-vicious inclination checked, a virtuous purpose
-encouraged, a moral or a pious sentiment suggested,
-these secret motions are, nay, must be,
-from the holy Spirit; and our duty is to entertain
-and to improve them.</p>
-
-<p>3. Or, again, if we perceive our devotions
-to be quickened, our hopes enlivened, our
-faith fortified, though the present state of our
-temper or constitution may be instrumental in
-producing these effects, yet, if they go no father
-than scripture warrants, and right reason
-allows, we shall not mistake (having the express
-promise of our Lord and Master) in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">43</span>
-ascribing these consolations of peace and joy
-to the <i>Comforter</i>; we may regard them as <i>the
-earnest and pledge of the spirit in our hearts</i><a id="FNanchor_51" href="#Footnote_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a>:
-and then, our part is so to cherish and use
-them, as to <i>go on from strength to strength</i><a id="FNanchor_52" href="#Footnote_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a>,
-till we arrive at perfection.</p>
-
-<p>You see there is enough for us to do, though
-<i>the spirit strive with our spirit</i><a id="FNanchor_53" href="#Footnote_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a>, and in such
-sort that we derive the power <i>to will and to do</i><a id="FNanchor_54" href="#Footnote_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a>
-what we ought, ultimately from him.</p>
-
-<p>I know that this, and other things, which
-on the authority of scripture, I have delivered
-on the present subject, will appear strange to
-natural reason. But so that scripture has prepared
-us to expect they would do. <i>For the
-natural man</i>, says the Apostle, <i>receiveth not
-the things of the spirit of God: for they are
-foolishness unto him</i><a id="FNanchor_55" href="#Footnote_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a>. And to the same purpose
-our divine Master himself, speaking <i>of
-the spirit of truth; whom</i>, says he, <i>the world
-cannot receive, because it seeth him not, neither
-knoweth him: but ye</i>, addressing himself<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">44</span>
-to his disciples [that is, to men, who walk by
-<i>faith</i>, and not by sight] <i>ye know him, for he
-dwelleth with you, and shall be in you</i>.</p>
-
-<p>On this assurance, then, we may reasonably
-believe what, by reason, we cannot understand.
-And the substance of what we are to believe
-on this whole subject, is contained in a single
-text of St. Peter, where the <i>three</i> divine persons,
-yet ineffably <i>one</i> God, “<i>the Trinity in
-unity</i><a id="FNanchor_56" href="#Footnote_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a>,” whom we adore, and their respective
-offices, are accurately distinguished. For
-in the opening of his first epistle, he pronounces
-the Christians, to whom he writes,
-<small>ELECT</small>, that is, entitled to salvation, <i>according
-to the foreknowledge</i>, or pre-determination<a id="FNanchor_57" href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">[57]</a>,
-<i>of God the father; through the sanctification
-of the Spirit unto obedience; and sprinkling
-of the blood of Jesus Christ</i>.</p>
-
-<p>In these memorable words, we have a brief,
-yet clear epitome of our whole faith. And<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">45</span>
-thus at length you see that, though eternal life
-be <i>the gift of</i> <span class="smcap">God</span> <i>in his</i> <span class="smcap">Son</span>, it is only ensured,
-and finally conveyed to us, by the ministry
-of <i>his</i> <small>HOLY SPIRIT</small>: to which blessed
-<span class="smcap">Trinity</span>, therefore, be all honour, and praise,
-and adoration, now and for ever! <span class="smcap">Amen.</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">46</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXII">SERMON XXXII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED JUNE 19, 1774.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">2 Cor.</span> vii. 1.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Having therefore these promises (dearly beloved)
-let us cleanse ourselves from all
-filthiness of flesh and spirit, perfecting
-holiness in the fear of God.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">Our</span> discourses from this place turning very
-much, as they ought to do, on the great
-Christian doctrine of salvation, that is, of
-<i>eternal life</i>, considered as the gift of God to
-mortal and sinful man, through the redemption
-of his Son, and the sanctification of his
-holy Spirit, it would be a strange neglect in us,
-if we did not take care to remind our hearers<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">47</span>
-of the effect which that doctrine ought to have
-upon them.</p>
-
-<p>This duty I mean now to discharge towards
-you: and I cannot do it more properly than
-by enforcing that advice which St. Paul gave
-the Corinthians, as the result of a long and
-eloquent discourse to them on the same subject.
-<i>Having</i> <small>THEREFORE</small> (says he) these promises
-[i. e. the promise of <i>eternal life</i>, and of
-<i>acceptance through Christ</i>, so as to become
-<i>the people of God</i>, nay <i>the sons of God</i>, with
-other assurances of the like sort<a id="FNanchor_58" href="#Footnote_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a>, interspersed
-in the two preceding chapters, <i>Having these
-promises</i>] <i>let us cleanse ourselves from all
-filthiness of flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness
-in the fear of God</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The inference, you see, is direct to our purpose:
-and common ingenuity, if nothing else,
-might well engage us, in return for such great
-and precious promises, to draw the same conclusion
-for ourselves. But, when we further
-consider that these promises are conditional,
-and made only to those who obey the giver
-of them<a id="FNanchor_59" href="#Footnote_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a>, interest, as well as gratitude, will
-oblige us to yield that obedience so expressly
-required of us.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">48</span></p>
-
-<p>This obedience is briefly summed up in the
-direction; <i>to cleanse ourselves from all filthiness
-of flesh and spirit</i>, that is, to take care,
-agreeably to the double obligation imposed
-upon us by the distinct parts of our constitution,
-that we consult the integrity both of our
-bodies and minds; and preserve them both
-from that defilement which each of them, according
-to its nature, is liable to contract in
-this state of moral probation.</p>
-
-<p>I. With regard to the <small>FLESH</small>, the gross vices
-which defile that part of our frame, are so expressly
-condemned by the law of reason, as
-well as of the gospel, and are so repugnant to
-the inbred modesty of every man, especially,
-a such as have had their natural sense of
-decency quickened by a good education, that
-but to mention them in this place, I would
-hope, is quite sufficient. If I go farther, it
-shall only be to remind you of one thing,
-which I have explained at large on a former
-occasion<a id="FNanchor_60" href="#Footnote_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a>, That Christianity hath added unspeakably
-to the worth and dignity of the
-human body, by considering it no longer as
-the store-house of impure lusts, but as the
-habitation, the <i>temple</i> of the living God, to
-whose sole use it is now dedicated<a id="FNanchor_61" href="#Footnote_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">49</span></p>
-
-<p>The turpitude, the dishonour, the impiety
-of desecrating this sanctuary of the holy Spirit
-by sordid, carnal excesses, is then apparent to
-every Christian.</p>
-
-<p>But the vices of the <small>SPIRIT</small> do not always
-strike the attention so forcibly; though they
-be as real as those of the body, and sometimes
-more fatal. The reason is, that the spiritual
-part of man does not lie so open to observation
-as the corporeal. The mind is not easily made
-an object to itself; and, when it is, we have a
-strange power of seeing it in a false light, and
-of overlooking its blemishes, or of even mistaking
-them for beauties. In short, <i>the filthiness
-of the spirit</i> may be long unobserved,
-and therefore <i>uncleansed</i>, if it be not pointed
-out to us by some friendly monitor, who is
-more practised in this mental inspection than
-ourselves, or has less interest, however, to conceal
-our depravity from us.</p>
-
-<p>Permit me, then, to assume the charitable
-office of holding up to your view these <i>spiritual
-vices</i>; not all of every sort (for that
-would be endless) but the chief of those which
-tend more immediately to defeat the gracious
-<i>promises</i> made to us in the gospel.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">50</span></p>
-
-<p>II. I say nothing of that corruption which
-direct and positive infidelity strikes through
-the soul, whether it be the infidelity of
-Atheism, or what is called Deism; because,
-on men who espouse either of these systems,
-the promises of the gospel take no hold; and
-because it ought not, cannot be supposed, that
-men of no religion, or of no faith, appear in
-these Christian assemblies. You will think me
-better employed in pointing out such corruptions,
-as may not improbably adhere even
-to believers; though concealed from their own
-observation, it may be, or disguised, at least,
-to themselves, under various pretences.</p>
-
-<p>1. The first of these that I shall mention is
-a sort of <small>HALF-BELIEF</small>, which floats in the
-mind, and, though it do not altogether renounce
-the hopes of the Gospel, is far from
-reposing a firm trust in them. Many professed
-believers have, I doubt, this infirmity,
-this taint of infidelity, still cleaving to them.
-They think Christianity an useful institution;
-nay, they think it not destitute of all divine
-authority. But then they reduce this authority
-to just nothing, by allowing themselves to put
-it as low as they can—by taking great liberties
-in explaining both its doctrines and precepts—by
-admitting such parts of this revelation, as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">51</span>
-they believe themselves able to make out to
-the satisfaction of their own minds, and by
-rejecting, at least by questioning in some sort,
-whatever they cannot perfectly understand—by
-treating some things as incredible, others,
-as impracticable; one part of their religion as
-too mysterious, and another as too severe.
-“They believe, they say, what they can: but,
-after all, there are many strange things in
-this religion; and the evidence for the truth
-of them is not so controuling, but that there
-is room for some degree of doubt and
-hesitation.”</p>
-
-<p>All this, perhaps, they do not say to others;
-nay, not to themselves, except when they are
-pressed by some conclusion from scripture,
-which either their prejudices, or their passions,
-make them very unwilling to admit; and then
-they take leave to be as sceptical as the occasion
-requires.</p>
-
-<p>But now from such a faith as this, no
-wholesome or permanent fruits can be expected.
-It has no root in them; and the
-<i>promises</i>, that should feed and nourish it,
-have but a faint and feeble effect; just enough,
-perhaps, to keep their hopes from dying outright,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">52</span>
-but much too little to push them into
-any vigorous efforts of obedience.</p>
-
-<p>The way for such to <i>cleanse themselves</i> from
-this pollution of spirit (for to the several defects,
-the proper remedy in each case shall, as
-we go along, be subjoined) is, once for all, to
-examine the foundations of their religion; and,
-if they find them, on the whole, solid and satisfactory,
-to rely upon them thenceforth with
-a confidence entire and unshaken. They should
-reflect, that every revealed doctrine, of whatever
-sort, as standing on the same ground of
-infallible truth, is equally to be admitted.
-There is no compromising matters with their
-divine Master: they must either quit his service,
-or follow him without reserve. And this,
-upon the whole, they will find to be the manly
-and the reasonable part for them to take. To
-halt between two opinions so repugnant to
-each other, to embrace so interesting a thing
-as religion by halves, is neither for the credit
-of their courage, nor of their understanding.</p>
-
-<p>Having then the <i>promise</i> of eternal life, let
-them reckon upon that promise, like men who
-know its value, and do not mistrust on what
-ground it stands. If they are Christians at all,
-they cannot justify it even to themselves not to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">53</span>
-be Christians in good earnest. And thus will
-they happily escape the disgrace of an <i>irresolved
-and indolent faith</i>; which involves
-them in much of the guilt, and in almost all
-the mischiefs, of infidelity. But,</p>
-
-<p>2. There are those who have not a doubt
-about the truth of Christianity, and yet,
-through a certain <small>LEVITY OF MIND</small>, derive but
-little benefit from their conviction.</p>
-
-<p>This spiritual vice is, perhaps, the commonest
-of all others; and, though it seems to
-have something prodigious in it, is easily accounted
-for from the intoxication of health,
-youth, and high spirits; from the restless pursuit
-of pleasure, which occupies one part of
-the world, and of business, which distracts
-another; from a too passionate love of society
-in many; from feverish habits of dissipation in
-more; and from a fatal impatience of solitude
-and recollection in almost all.</p>
-
-<p>But, by whichsoever of these causes the vice
-of inconsideration, we have now before us, is
-produced and nourished, it is of the most
-malignant sort, and being ready to branch out
-into many others, should be resolutely checked
-and suppressed. Though there be nothing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">54</span>
-directly criminal in the pursuit which takes us
-from ourselves, it is always dangerous to lose
-sight of what we are, and whither we are
-going, and may be fatal. For, not to believe,
-and not to call to mind what we believe, is
-nearly the same thing. And when a temptation
-meets us thus unprepared, it wants no
-assistance from infidelity, but is secure of
-prevailing by its own strength, under cover of
-our inattention.</p>
-
-<p>Such, I doubt not, is the sad experience
-of thousands, every day; while yet the misjudging
-world, that part of it, especially,
-whose interest it is to suppose that all men
-are equally destitute of religious principles,
-rashly conclude that there is no faith, where
-there is so much folly. “These hypocrites,
-say they, are convicted of the same unbelief,
-which they perpetually object to us:” Alas,
-no: they are convicted of inconsequence,
-only.</p>
-
-<p>Not that this consideration excuses their
-guilt: it even aggravates and inflames it. For,
-when <i>one thing</i>, only, <i>is needful</i>, and they
-know it to be so, not to retain a practical, an
-habitual sense of it, but to suffer every trifle
-to mislead, every sudden gust of passion to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">55</span>
-drive them from <i>the hope</i> and end <i>of their
-calling</i>, argues an extreme depravity of mind,
-and deserves a harsher name than we commonly
-give to this conduct.</p>
-
-<p>However, soften it to ourselves, as we will,
-under any fashionable denomination, the <i>spirit</i>
-must be cured of this vice, or the <i>promises</i> of
-the Gospel are lost upon us. And the proper
-remedy is but one. We must resolve, at all
-events, to acquire the contrary habit of consideration.
-We must meditate much and often
-on what we believe: we must force our minds
-to dwell upon it: we must converse more with
-ourselves, how bad company soever we take
-that to be, and less with the world, which so
-easily dissipates our thoughts, and oversets our
-best resolutions.</p>
-
-<p>If we would but every day set apart a small
-portion of our time, were it but a few minutes,
-to supplicate the grace of God, and to say seriously
-to ourselves; <i>I believe the promises,
-and I acknowledge the authority of the
-gospel</i>; (and less than this, who can think
-excusable in any man, whatever his condition
-of life may be, that calls himself a Christian?)
-this short and easy discipline, regularly pursued,
-and, on no pretence whatever, intermitted,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">56</span>
-would presently effect the cure we so much
-want, and restore the sickly mind to its health
-and vigour.</p>
-
-<p>3. Still, there may be a general belief in the
-promises of the Gospel, and a good degree of
-attention to them, and yet men may be but
-little impressed by what they thus believe and
-consider. This affection of the mind is sometimes
-experienced, but has hardly acquired a
-distinct name. Let us call it, if you please, a
-<small>DEADNESS</small>, or <small>INSENSIBILITY OF HEART</small>; which,
-so far as it proceeds from natural constitution,
-is a misfortune only; but, when cherished or
-even neglected by us, it becomes a fault.</p>
-
-<p>The danger of it lies here, lest by seeing
-with indifference the most important objects
-of our hopes and fears, we come by degrees to
-neglect or overlook them; to question, perhaps,
-the reality of them; or, to lose, however, the
-benefit which even a calm view of these objects,
-when frequently set before the mind,
-must needs convey to us.</p>
-
-<p>The rule in this case plainly is, To prescribe
-to ourselves such a regimen as is proper to
-correct this spiritual lethargy: that is, to stimulate
-the sluggish mind by the most poignant<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">57</span>
-reflexions; to bring the objects of our faith as
-near and close to us as we can; to paint them
-in the liveliest colours of the imagination,
-which, when touched itself, easily sets fire to
-the affections; and, above all, to keep our eye
-intently and steadily upon them.</p>
-
-<p>We may see the utility of this regimen, in a
-case which is familiar to every body.</p>
-
-<p>When we look forward to the end of life, it
-appears at a vast distance. The many, or the
-few years, that lie before us, take up a great
-deal of room in the mind, and present the idea
-of a long, and almost interminable duration.
-Hence the fatal security in which we most of
-us live, as conceiving that, when so much time
-is on our hands, we need not be sollicitous to
-make the most of it.</p>
-
-<p>But that all this is a mere delusion, we may
-see by looking back on the time that is already
-elapsed. We have lived in this world, twenty,
-forty, it may be, many more years: yet, in
-reflecting on this space, we find it just nothing:
-the several parts of it run together in
-the mind, and the first moment of our existence
-seems almost to touch upon the present.
-Now, by anticipating this experience, and applying
-it to the remaining period of our lives,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">58</span>
-we may satisfy ourselves, that the years to
-come will pass away as rapidly, and, when
-gone, will appear as inconsiderable as the past;
-and the effect of this anticipation must be, to
-convince us, that no part of this brief term is
-to be trifled with, or unimproved.</p>
-
-<p>Then, again, we have the power of imaging
-to ourselves, in a very lively manner, the circumstances
-in which death surprises very
-many thoughtless persons every day; and what
-we should feel in their situation.</p>
-
-<p>Lay then these two things together; make
-<i>the shortness of life</i>, and <i>the terrors of an
-unprepared death</i>, the frequent object of your
-meditation; and see if the most callous mind
-will not presently be much affected by them.</p>
-
-<p>4. The fourth and last vice of the spirit,
-which I have time to mention to you, is
-rather, perhaps, to be accounted a complication
-of vices. But what I mean is that unhappy
-turn of mind which prompts many persons to
-elude the effects of faith, reflexion, and even
-a lively sense, in matters of religion, by certain
-tricks of <small>SOPHISTRY</small>, which they practise on
-themselves. They believe, and they would
-gladly obtain, the promises of the gospel, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">59</span>
-repentance, they suppose, will supply the
-place of uniform obedience: they will repent,
-but not yet; there is time enough, and fitter
-for that purpose, when passion cools, and the
-heat of life is over: or, they fancy to themselves
-an inexhaustible fund of goodness in
-their religion; the terms of it may not be rigidly
-insisted upon; the promises may not be
-so conditional as they seem to be; and the
-threats, without doubt, will not be punctually
-executed. At the worst, there is no need to
-despair of mercy, considering the frailty of
-man, and the infinite merits of the Redeemer.</p>
-
-<p>Such reasonings as these argue a depraved
-mind, and tend, further, to deprave it. But
-your good sense prevents me in the confutation
-of them. I would only observe, that this vice
-is, as I said, a complicated one: for, together
-with the unfairness and disingenuity (which
-belongs to all sophistry, as such) we have here
-united (what is too common in religious
-sophistry) a great deal of unwarrantable presumption.</p>
-
-<p>The remedy in the case is, To cultivate in
-ourselves a modest and ingenuous love of
-truth; an awful reverence of the revealed word,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">60</span>
-and that simplicity of heart which excludes all
-artifice and refinement.</p>
-
-<p>From these so pernicious vices of the spirit,
-then, that is, from a <i>fluctuating faith</i>, an
-<i>inconsiderate levity</i>, an <i>inapprehensive deadness
-of heart</i>, and a <i>perverse sophistical
-abuse of the understanding</i>, let us emancipate
-ourselves by a firm, attentive, vigorous, and
-ingenuous dependance on the promises of the
-gospel; from these defilements, I say, in particular
-(having shaken off the other more
-sordid corruptions of the <i>flesh and spirit</i>)
-let us anxiously <i>cleanse</i> our minds, with the
-view of <i>perfecting holiness</i>, as the text admonishes,
-<small>IN THE FEAR OF GOD</small>.</p>
-
-<p>This last clause is by no means an insignificant
-one; as ye will see by recollecting, that
-the true temper of a Christian is, hope mixed
-with fear; <i>hope</i>, to animate his courage, and
-<i>fear</i>, to quicken his attention. For, unless
-this principle of fear, not a servile, but filial
-fear, inform the soul and invigorate its functions,
-we shall be far from <small>PERFECTING
-HOLINESS</small>; we shall at best exhibit in our
-lives but some broken, detached, incoherent
-parcels of it. A steady, uniform piety,
-such as begets that <i>hope, which maketh not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">61</span>
-ashamed</i><a id="FNanchor_62" href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">[62]</a>, is only kept up by a constant
-watchfulness and circumspection; which our
-probationary state plainly demands, and which
-nothing but <i>the fear of God</i> effectually
-secures.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">62</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXIII">SERMON XXXIII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED APRIL 8, 1776.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">1 Tim.</span> iii. 16.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Without controversy great is the mystery of
-godliness: God was manifest in the flesh;
-justified in the spirit; seen of Angels;
-preached to the Gentiles; believed on in the
-world; received up into glory.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">The</span> inspired writers, sometimes, dilate on
-the articles of the Christian religion; pursue
-them separately, and at length, for the fuller
-and more distinct information of the faithful.
-Sometimes, again, they give them to us, as it
-were, in clusters: they accumulate their awful
-doctrines and discoveries, to strike and astonish
-the mind with their united force.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">63</span></p>
-
-<p>This <i>last</i> is the method of the text, which I
-shall a little open and explain; but so as to
-conform myself to the Apostle’s purpose in
-giving a brief collective view of Christianity,
-that, the whole of it being seen together, we
-may be the more sensibly affected by it.</p>
-
-<p>1. This <i>great mystery of godliness</i> opens
-with—<span class="smcap">God manifest in the flesh</span>.</p>
-
-<p>When the scheme of man’s redemption was
-laid, it was not thought fit that an Apostle,
-a prophet, a man like ourselves, no nor an
-Angel or Archangel, should be the instrument
-of it; but that the <i>word of God</i>, the <i>Son of
-God</i>, nay <i>God</i> himself (as he is here and elsewhere<a id="FNanchor_63" href="#Footnote_63" class="fnanchor">[63]</a>
-called) should take this momentous
-office upon him: that heaven should stoop to
-earth, and that the divine nature should condescend
-to leave the mansions of glory, inshrine
-itself in a fleshly tabernacle, should be <i>made
-man</i>, should <i>dwell among us</i>, and <i>die for us</i>.</p>
-
-<p>If you ask, why may not a man, or angel,
-have sufficed to execute this purpose of man’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">64</span>
-salvation; or, if only this divine person was
-equal to it, why he did not rather assume a
-glorified, than our mortal body; why it was
-necessary for him to inherit all our infirmities
-(sin only excepted,) and yet be conceived, in
-so extraordinary a manner of the holy Spirit;
-nay, and why he should be so conceived, and
-born of a <i>virgin</i> (a miracle of that peculiar sort
-as scarce seems capable of proof, and, in fact,
-is only proved indirectly by the subsequent life
-and character and history of this divine person):
-If you ask these, and a hundred other such
-questions, I answer readily and frankly, <i>I
-know not</i>: But then consider, that <i>my</i> ignorance,
-that is, any man’s ignorance, of the
-reasons why these things were done, is no argument,
-not so much as a presumption against
-there being reasons, nay, and the best reasons,
-for so mysterious a dispensation. Consider,
-too, that these mysteries no way contradict
-any clear principle of your own reason: all that
-appears is, that you should not have expected,
-previously to the revelation of it, such a design
-to be formed; and that, now it is revealed,
-you do not understand why it was so conducted.
-But we are just in the same state of ignorance,
-with regard to almost every part of the divine
-conduct. This world, so unquestionably the
-work of infinite wisdom and goodness, is not,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">65</span>
-in numberless respects, what we should expect
-it to have been; of many parts we see not the
-use and end; in some, there is the appearance
-of deformity; in others, of mischief; in
-all, when attentively considered, of something
-above, or beside, our apprehension.</p>
-
-<p>Such then being the case of the natural world,
-why may not the moral have its depths and
-difficulties? You see God in the creation:
-why not in redemption? In the former, he
-condescends, according to our best philosophy,
-to manifest himself in the meanest reptile, all
-whose instincts he immediately prompts, and
-whose movements he directs and governs: why
-then might he not manifest himself in man,
-though in another manner, and by an union
-with him still more close and intimate?</p>
-
-<p>But I pursue these questions no farther. It
-is enough that, admitting the fact, on the faith
-of the revelation itself, we see a wonderful
-goodness and condescension in this whole procedure:
-that we understand the importance of
-having such a saviour and guide and example of
-life, as <i>God manifest in the flesh</i>; that we are
-led to conceive, with astonishment, of the
-dignity of man, for whose sake the Godhead
-assumed our nature, and, at the same time,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">66</span>
-with consternation, of the guilt of man, for
-the atonement of which this assumption, with
-all its consequences, became necessary.</p>
-
-<p><i>God manifest in the flesh</i>, is then the <i>first</i>
-chapter of this mysterious book: and yet, as
-mysterious as it is, full of the clearest and most
-momentous instruction.</p>
-
-<p>2. The <i>second</i> is, that this wonderfully compounded
-person was <small>JUSTIFIED IN THE SPIRIT</small>:
-that is, <i>by</i>, or <i>through</i> the Spirit: another
-mystery, which, however, acquaints us with
-this fact, that a third divine person ministered
-in the great work of our redemption.</p>
-
-<p>And his ministry was seen in directing the
-ancient prophets to foretell the Redeemer’s
-coming<a id="FNanchor_64" href="#Footnote_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a>; in accomplishing his miraculous
-conception<a id="FNanchor_65" href="#Footnote_65" class="fnanchor">[65]</a>; in assisting at his baptism<a id="FNanchor_66" href="#Footnote_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a>; in
-conducting him through his temptation<a id="FNanchor_67" href="#Footnote_67" class="fnanchor">[67]</a>; in
-giving him the power to cast out devils, which
-is expressly said to be <i>by the Spirit of God</i><a id="FNanchor_68" href="#Footnote_68" class="fnanchor">[68]</a>;
-in raising him from the dead, by which event
-he was <i>declared the Son of God with power,
-according to the spirit of holiness</i><a id="FNanchor_69" href="#Footnote_69" class="fnanchor">[69]</a>; in descending<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">67</span>
-on his disciples on the day of Pentecost<a id="FNanchor_70" href="#Footnote_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a>;
-in bestowing diversities of miraculous gifts<a id="FNanchor_71" href="#Footnote_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a>
-upon them, for the confirmation of his doctrine,
-and the propagation of it through the world;
-and lastly in sanctifying and illuminating the
-faithful of all times and places<a id="FNanchor_72" href="#Footnote_72" class="fnanchor">[72]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>In all these ways (and if there be any
-other) Jesus was <i>justified</i>, that is, his commission
-was authenticated by the testimony of the
-Holy Spirit. Here, again, many curious
-questions may be asked: but what we clearly
-learn is, the awful relation we bear to the
-Holy Ghost, as co-operating in the scheme of
-man’s redemption; and the infinite dignity of
-that scheme itself, the execution of which required
-the agency of that transcendantly divine
-person.</p>
-
-<p>Hitherto the mystery of godliness has been
-doubly mysterious, being wrapped up in the
-incomprehensible essence of the Deity. It now
-stoops, as it were, through this cloud of glory,
-and gives itself to be somewhat distinctly apprehended
-by us.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">68</span></p>
-
-<p>3. In the <i>next</i> view we have of the Redeemer,
-as being <small>SEEN OF ANGELS</small>.</p>
-
-<p>We have some grounds from analogy to
-conclude, that, as there is a scale of beings below
-us, there is also one above us: at least,
-the conclusion has been pretty generally drawn:
-and the belief almost universal of such a scale
-ascending from us to God, though the uppermost
-round of it still be at an infinite distance
-from his throne. But the direct, indeed the
-only solid proof of its existence, is the revealed
-word, which speaks of <i>Angels</i> and <i>Archangels</i>,
-nay <i>myriads</i><a id="FNanchor_73" href="#Footnote_73" class="fnanchor">[73]</a> of them, disposed into different
-ranks, and rising above each other in a wonderful
-harmony and proportion.</p>
-
-<p>Such is the idea which scripture gives us of
-the invisible world. Now, to raise our minds
-to some just apprehension of the great scheme
-of our redemption, it represents that world,
-as being put in motion by that scheme, as
-attentive and <i>earnest to look into it</i><a id="FNanchor_74" href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a>: and,
-to exalt our conceptions of the Redeemer
-himself, it speaks of that world as being in
-subjection to him; of all its inhabitants, the
-highest in place and dignity, as serving in his
-retinue, and paying homage to his person<a id="FNanchor_75" href="#Footnote_75" class="fnanchor">[75]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">69</span></p>
-
-<p>They accordingly ministered to him in this
-capacity, when they celebrated his birth in the
-fields of Bethlehem<a id="FNanchor_76" href="#Footnote_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a>; when they took part with
-him in his triumphs over the adversary in the
-desart<a id="FNanchor_77" href="#Footnote_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a>: when they flew to strengthen him in
-his last agonies<a id="FNanchor_78" href="#Footnote_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a>; when they attended, in their
-robes of state to grace his resurrection<a id="FNanchor_79" href="#Footnote_79" class="fnanchor">[79]</a>: and
-when they ranked themselves, with all observance,
-about him, as he went up into
-heaven<a id="FNanchor_80" href="#Footnote_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><i>Of the angels</i>, then, <i>he was seen</i>, on all these,
-and doubtless other, occasions. But how was
-he seen? With love and wonder unspeakable,
-when they saw their Lord and Master thus
-humbling himself for the sake of man; when
-they contemplated this bright effulgence of the
-Deity, <i>the express image of his person</i><a id="FNanchor_81" href="#Footnote_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a>, veiling
-all his glories in flesh, and,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">—<i>low-rooft beneath the skies</i>,<br /></span>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>as our great poet sublimely represents his humiliation<a id="FNanchor_82" href="#Footnote_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">70</span></p>
-
-<p>Still the <i>mystery</i> continues, though it now
-submits itself to the scrutiny of our senses; for
-it follows,</p>
-
-<p>4. That he was <small>PREACHED TO THE GENTILES</small>.</p>
-
-<p>To enter into the full meaning of this clause,
-we are to reflect, That, when the nations of
-the earth had so prodigiously corrupted themselves
-as to lose the memory of the true religion,
-and to give themselves over to the most abominable
-impieties, it pleased God to select one
-faithful family from the rest of the degenerate
-world, and in due time to advance it into a
-numerous people; which he vouchsafed to take
-into a near relation to himself, and, by a singular
-policy, to preserve distinct and separate
-from the surrounding tribes of Idolaters.
-Henceforth, the Jews (for of that people I
-speak) considered themselves as the sole favourites
-of Heaven (as they were, indeed, the sole
-worshippers of the true God), and all the
-heathen as the outcasts of its providence.</p>
-
-<p>This notion, in process of time, became so
-rooted in them, that when Jesus now appeared
-in Judea, they were ready to engross all his
-favours to themselves, and thought it strange
-and incredible, that any part of them should be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">71</span>
-conferred on the reprobate heathen. So that
-he himself was obliged to proceed with much
-caution in opening the extent of his commission,
-and St. Paul everywhere speaks of the
-design to save the Gentiles as the profoundest
-mystery, as <i>that which had been kept secret
-since the world began</i><a id="FNanchor_83" href="#Footnote_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>In the mean time, the mercy of God had
-much larger views, and sent the Messiah to be
-<i>the saviour of</i> <small>ALL</small> <i>men, especially of them</i>,
-out of every nation, <i>that believe</i><a id="FNanchor_84" href="#Footnote_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>But this mercy, so <i>mysterious</i> to the Jews,
-could not be much less so to the Gentiles, who
-must feel how disproportioned the blessing was
-to any deserts of man; and who saw how
-enormous and how general that corruption was,
-which in all likelihood must exclude them from
-it. Thus it might reasonably be matter of <i>silent
-wonder</i><a id="FNanchor_85" href="#Footnote_85" class="fnanchor">[85]</a>, to both parties, to hear <i>Christ
-preached to the Gentiles</i>: only, this <i>latter</i>
-(of which party we ourselves are) might say
-with a peculiar exultation, what the Jews, even
-in <i>glorifying</i> the Author of it, were not, without
-some reluctance, brought to acknowledge;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">72</span>
-<i>Then hath God, also, to the Gentiles granted
-repentance unto life.</i></p>
-
-<p>And if the surprize be deservedly great to
-hear Christ <i>preached to the Gentiles</i>, it must
-in all reason grow upon us to find,</p>
-
-<p>5. In the succeeding link of this <i>mysterious</i>
-chain, that he was even <small>BELIEVED ON IN THE
-WORLD</small>; that is, in the world both of Jews and
-Gentiles; in the former, to a certain extent;
-and, in the latter, to one which, though not
-universal, is truly astonishing.</p>
-
-<p>Of the Jews it is affirmed, that <i>multitudes</i><a id="FNanchor_86" href="#Footnote_86" class="fnanchor">[86]</a>
-of them believed: and what especially redounds
-to their honour and to our benefit, is, that out
-of the Jewish believers were taken those favoured
-servants of God, that opened the door
-of faith to the Gentiles, and became his instruments
-in conveying the light of the Gospel to
-all generations. And, considering the inveterate
-prejudices of that people, such a measure
-of faith, and such effects of it, could not
-well have been expected from that quarter.</p>
-
-<p>But then, for the Gentiles, it is astonishing
-to observe how quick and how general their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">73</span>
-conversion to the faith was: so that all men
-seemed to <i>press</i><a id="FNanchor_87" href="#Footnote_87" class="fnanchor">[87]</a> into the kingdom of God, and,
-as it were, to <i>take it by violence</i><a id="FNanchor_88" href="#Footnote_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a>. For, within
-forty years from the death of Christ, the sound
-of the Gospel <i>had gone out into all lands</i><a id="FNanchor_89" href="#Footnote_89" class="fnanchor">[89]</a>;
-and, in less than three centuries from that
-event, the empire itself, that is, all the civilized
-part of the earth, became Christian: and
-this, in spite of every obstruction, which the
-lusts of men, operating with all their force,
-and confederated together, could throw in the
-way of the new religion.</p>
-
-<p><i>So mightily grew the word of God, and
-prevailed<a id="FNanchor_90" href="#Footnote_90" class="fnanchor">[90]</a>!</i> and it still prevails: not every where
-indeed, nor any where to that degree in which,
-we trust, it one day will; but to a certain degree
-over a great part of the globe, and especially
-in the more enlightened parts of it: an
-evident proof, that reason is congenial with
-faith; and that nothing but ignorance, corrupted
-by vice, can hold out against the cross
-of Jesus.</p>
-
-<p>Yet this power of the cross must be thought
-prodigious; since its pretensions are so high,
-and its doctrine so pure, that, in a world overgrown<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">74</span>
-with presumption and vice, it could
-never have made its way to so much consideration,
-if the hand of God had not been with it.</p>
-
-<p>Such is the mystery of Christ <i>believed on in
-the world</i>!</p>
-
-<p>But now the Apostle, who had digressed a
-little from his main subject, or rather had anticipated
-some part of it, returns, from the
-effects which Christianity was to have on the
-world, to the person of its divine Author; who,
-as it follows in the</p>
-
-<p>6. <i>Sixth</i>, and last clause of this panegyrick,
-<small>WAS RECEIVED UP INTO GLORY</small>.</p>
-
-<p>And this circumstance was proper to shut up
-so stupendous a scene. It opened with a view
-of <i>God manifest in the flesh</i>, degraded, eclipsed,
-obscured by this material vestment; yet emerging
-out of its dark shade through the countenance
-of the <i>spirit</i>, and by the ministry of
-<i>angels</i>; then shining out in the face of the
-<i>Gentiles</i>, and gradually ascending to his meridian
-height in the conversion of the whole
-<i>world</i>. Yet was this prize of glory to be won
-by a long and painful conflict with dangers,
-sufferings, and death; in regard to which last<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">75</span>
-enemy (the most alarming of all) the Apostle
-affirms, that <i>it was not possible for so divine
-a person to be holden of it</i><a id="FNanchor_91" href="#Footnote_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a>. It follows, therefore,
-naturally and properly (to vindicate the
-Redeemer’s honour, and to replace him in that
-celestial state, from which he had descended),
-that, in his own person, he triumphed over
-hell and the grave, and went up visibly into
-heaven; there to sit down at the right hand of
-the Father, till, his great mediatorial scheme
-being accomplished, he himself shall voluntarily
-quit the distinction of his name and place,
-and <small>GOD SHALL BE ALL IN ALL</small><a id="FNanchor_92" href="#Footnote_92" class="fnanchor">[92]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>On this brief comment on the text, thus far
-unfolded to you, I have but one reflexion to
-make. Ye will not derive from it a clearer insight
-into the reasons of all the wonders presented
-to you: for I undertook only to lay before
-you those wonders themselves; not to
-account to you for them: but, if ye feel yourselves
-touched with a view of these things; if
-ye find your hearts impressed with an awful
-sense of your divine religion, and <i>nourished</i><a id="FNanchor_93" href="#Footnote_93" class="fnanchor">[93]</a>
-in the faith of it, then will ye be in a way to
-reap that fruit from this discourse, which is
-better than all wisdom and all knowledge; the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">76</span>
-fruit of <small>HOLINESS</small>, in this short but unspeakably
-momentous stage of your existence; and of
-<small>HAPPINESS</small> without measure, and without end,
-in the kingdom of glory.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">77</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXIV">SERMON XXXIV.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MAY 19, 1776.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Isaiah</span> l. 11.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Behold, all ye that kindle a fire, that compass
-yourselves about with sparks; Walk in the
-light of your fire, and in the sparks which
-ye have kindled: This shall ye have of my
-hand, ye shall lie down in sorrow.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">The</span> expression, we see, is figurative. By
-the <i>fire kindled</i>, and the <i>sparks, with which
-men compass themselves about</i>, may, indeed,
-be understood any of those worldly comforts,
-such as honours, riches, and pleasures, which
-the generality of men are studious to procure
-to themselves; and in the <i>light</i> of which they
-love to walk, as being that, which, in their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">78</span>
-opinion, contributes most to warm, to chear,
-and illustrate human life.</p>
-
-<p>The effect, however, of these comforts, is,
-that they who possess the largest share of them,
-and seek for no other, <i>lie down in sorrow</i>:
-that is, their lives are without joy, and their
-end is without hope. This is the recompense,
-which they receive from <i>the hand of God</i>; as
-might easily be shewn, if my purpose, at this
-time, were to enlarge of that common-place in
-morals, <i>the unsatisfactory nature of all earthly
-enjoyments</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But my design is to engage your thoughts on
-a different argument, to which the letter of the
-text more directly leads us. For <i>light</i>, in all
-languages, is the emblem of knowledge; which
-is to the mind, what that is to the eye: And,
-the speaker in the text being God himself, we
-are naturally led to interpret that light, of <i>religious
-knowledge</i>; that genial fire, which,
-more than the Sun itself, is necessary to warm
-our spirits, and guide our steps through the
-cold and dark passage of this life.</p>
-
-<p>The question is, Whether we are to kindle
-this <i>fire</i>, for ourselves; or, whether we should
-not derive it, if we have it in our power so to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">79</span>
-do, immediately from heaven: Whether we
-shall do best to walk in the light of those few
-<i>sparks</i>, which our Reason is able to strike out
-for us, on the subject of religion; or, whether
-it will not be our interest, and should not be
-our choice, to take the benefit of that pure and
-steady flame, which Revelation holds out to us.</p>
-
-<p>The text, in a severe, indignant irony, refers
-us to the former of these expedients, the better
-to excite our attention to the latter. <i>Walk</i>,
-says the Almighty, addressing himself to the
-idolaters of human reason, <i>Walk in the light
-of your fire, and in the sparks which ye have
-kindled</i>. But to what end is this advice given?
-To one, they little dreamt of, and would surely
-avoid—<i>This ye shall have of my hand</i>, in recompense
-of all your speculations, <i>Ye shall lie
-down in sorrow</i>.</p>
-
-<p>It seems, then, to be the purpose of the text,
-to inculcate this great truth, <i>That Revelation
-is the only sure and comfortable guide in matters
-of religion</i>. And, to second this purpose,
-so energetically expressed by the prophet, I
-would now shew you, that all the <i>sparks</i> of
-human knowledge, on this important subject,
-are but smoke; and all the <i>fire</i>, which human
-genius or industry can kindle at the altar of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">80</span>
-human reason, ice itself; when compared with
-the light and heat of divine Revelation.</p>
-
-<p>I <small>SUPPOSE</small>, that we are all convinced of what
-the voice of nature so loudly proclaims, that
-there is a God, a moral governor of the world;
-and that we are intimately related to him, and
-dependant upon him. The sum of our religious
-inquiries will then be</p>
-
-<p>I. <i>What we are to do, in order to obtain
-the favour of that God: And</i></p>
-
-<p>II. <i>What that favour is, which, when we
-have done our best, we have reason to expect
-from him.</i></p>
-
-<p>Now, it will be easy to shew, that the issue
-of our best reason, in the former of these enquiries,
-is suspense and doubt; and despair,
-or disappointment, in the latter. It will appear,
-that we cannot assure ourselves of the
-means, by which the favour of Heaven is to be
-obtained; and that the highest degree of favour,
-we have a right to claim, is not that to which
-we aspire. So fated are we, when trusting to
-the faint, delusive light of our own minds, on
-this great, this only important subject, <i>to lie
-down in sorrow</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">81</span></p>
-
-<p>I. To begin with the consideration of <i>what
-we are to do, in order to obtain the favour of
-God</i>.</p>
-
-<p>That we are to <i>worship</i> God, will be allowed
-by all reasonable theists.</p>
-
-<p>But in what way is he to be worshipped?
-By <small>GIFTS AND OFFERINGS</small>? So a great part of
-the world has believed. But, by <i>what</i> gifts
-and offerings, <i>how</i>, and <i>when</i>, and <i>where</i>, and
-<i>by whom</i> presented? Are <i>all</i> indifferent to
-him, and is no preference due to some above
-others? or, may not my offering lose its value,
-unless made in a certain <i>manner</i>? Is it of no
-moment with what <i>rites</i> I tender my gifts to
-God? Are all <i>seasons</i> equally fit; are all
-<i>places</i> equally pure; are all <i>persons</i> equally
-hallowed, for the oblation of them?</p>
-
-<p>Or, again, are gifts and offerings, to the
-lord of all things, impertinent and vain? And
-is my reverence of him to be expressed by acts
-of <small>SELF-DENIAL</small>, <small>PENANCE</small>, AND <small>MORTIFICATION</small>?
-So the pious of all times have very generally
-conceived. But by <i>what</i> penance, to what <i>end</i>
-referred, to what <i>degree</i> carried, and how <i>long</i>
-continued?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">82</span></p>
-
-<p>We may think of these questions, and of
-ourselves, what we will. But such questions,
-as these, have been asked by wise men, and,
-when those wise men had only to take council
-of their own reason, have rarely been answered
-to their satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>Or, let us advance a step further, and say
-that our dependance on God is to be signified,
-and his favour obtained, by <small>PRAYER</small>: that gifts
-are mercenary, and penance servile; both, a
-manifest affront to the all-sufficient and all-merciful
-Deity; and that the supplications of a
-devout mind are the only incense fit for heaven.
-Be it so: Good and wise men have at all times
-thought highly of prayer; and are generally
-agreed in recommending it as the most becoming
-expression of human piety. But here
-again, doubts and difficulties meet us. <i>How</i>
-are we to pray, and for <i>what</i>?</p>
-
-<p>Are all <i>forms</i> of address equally acceptable
-to him, we adore? The Gentile world thought
-not: they were solicitous to petition their Gods
-in a certain style, and to gain their ear by some
-favourite appellation. Let this, again, pass for
-a scruple of superstition. Still, is it indifferent
-with what sentiments we approach the throne of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">83</span>
-God, and with what ideas of his nature and
-attributes we prostrate ourselves before him?
-If those sentiments or ideas be not suited, in
-some degree, to the majesty of that great being,
-is there no danger that we may dishonour, may
-injure, may insult him by our addresses? May
-not our very prayers become affronts, and our
-praises, blasphemies?</p>
-
-<p>And is it so easy to think justly on this mysterious
-subject, as that reason, every man’s
-own reason, can instruct him? What if two
-or three divine men of the pagan world guessed
-right? Was their opinion any rule, was it
-even any authority, to the bulk of worshippers<a id="FNanchor_94" href="#Footnote_94" class="fnanchor">[94]</a>?</p>
-
-<p>But say, that it was their own fault to misconceive
-of the Deity: still, for <i>what</i> shall
-they pray to him? For every thing, they
-want or wish? But thus, they would most
-commonly pray amiss, for what they should
-pray against, for what would corrupt and hurt
-them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">84</span></p>
-
-<p>These difficulties, with regard both to the
-mode and matter of this duty, appeared so
-great to the old masters of wisdom, that some<a id="FNanchor_95" href="#Footnote_95" class="fnanchor">[95]</a>
-of them thought it the highest effort of human
-wit, to form a reasonable prayer; and others
-supposed that none but God himself could instruct
-man how to do it<a id="FNanchor_96" href="#Footnote_96" class="fnanchor">[96]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>There is a way, indeed, to cut these difficulties
-short; which is, by maintaining, as
-some<a id="FNanchor_97" href="#Footnote_97" class="fnanchor">[97]</a> have done, that prayer is no duty at all;
-but a vain superfluous observance, justly ranked
-with the fancies of superstition: that God is
-not honoured by any external, no, nor by any
-mental, applications to him: that a good conscience<a id="FNanchor_98" href="#Footnote_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a>
-is true piety, and a spotless life, the
-only religion.</p>
-
-<p>Admit this exalted idea of divine worship;
-yet, where shall we find, among the sons of
-Adam, one such worshipper? Who shall lay
-claim to that conscience, or this life? Where
-is the man, that passes a single day, an hour<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">85</span>
-almost, without doing that which he ought
-not to do, or omitting somewhat he ought to
-have done? And what multitudes are there,
-who cover themselves with infamy, and with
-crimes?</p>
-
-<p>And what shall the trembling mind do, when
-it looks up, as at times it cannot help doing,
-to that God, who <i>is of purer eyes, than to behold
-iniquity</i>?</p>
-
-<p><i>Repent</i>, it will be said: that species of piety
-is all-powerful with Heaven; it can efface sin,
-and restore tranquillity.</p>
-
-<p>Here, again, the general sense of mankind
-runs another way. For, if it be so clear, that
-repentance alone has this virtue, how came the
-idea of atonement and expiation into the
-world? and whence the almost universal practice
-of <i>propitiatory sacrifices</i>?</p>
-
-<p>It is easy, no doubt, to brand this disposition
-of the human mind, as so many others,
-with the opprobrious name of superstition.
-Let us see, then, what the merits and claims
-are, of <i>Repentance itself</i>.</p>
-
-<p>A man offends against God, and the sense of
-his own mind. On reflexion (what can he do<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">86</span>
-less?) he repents; and (if it please God) is
-forgiven. But passion revives; he offends again,
-and repents again; and so goes on, through his
-whole life, in a course of alternate transgression,
-and repentance. And is this all the claim he
-has to be received, at length, into the favour of
-God, that he never sinned, though he did it
-every day, but he was sorry for it?</p>
-
-<p>Yes, you will say, <i>If my brother trespass
-against me seven times in a day, and seven
-times in a day turn again and repent</i>, I am
-bound by the law of Christ himself to forgive
-him<a id="FNanchor_99" href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a>. And will God be less placable, than his
-creature man is required to be<a id="FNanchor_100" href="#Footnote_100" class="fnanchor">[100]</a>?</p>
-
-<p>This rule of conduct is very fit to be observed
-by one offender towards another: but is it past
-a doubt that it will, that it must take place
-between God and man? <small>WE</small> are bound to this
-repeated, this continual forgiveness of others,
-by a sense of our common infirmities. <small>HE</small> has
-a government to support; of what extent, over
-what worlds, and how connected with this, no
-man may say: And what would become of
-government in this world, if every convict was
-to be pardoned on repentance?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">87</span></p>
-
-<p>Nor is it enough to reply, that human governors
-cannot pronounce on the sincerity of
-such repentance. If they could, they would
-certainly not regulate their proceedings by that
-consideration. The law has denounced a penalty
-on such a crime: And the public interest
-requires that the penalty, for example-sake, be
-inflicted.</p>
-
-<p>Something, like this, may be true of God’s
-moral government. No man can say, it is not.
-And therefore repentance, as plausible as its
-plea may appear, can never free the guilty mind
-from all apprehension.</p>
-
-<p>But another dreadful circumstance attends
-this matter. We often satisfy ourselves, that
-we repent of a past crime: Yet we commit that
-crime again; perhaps the very next hour.
-Can we call that repentance sincere? Or, have
-we a right to conclude that God, who sees
-through all the prevarication and duplicity of
-our hearts, must accept such repentance, on
-our profession of it? Let what virtue there will
-be in repentance, when seen by the unerring
-eye of God to be true and unfeigned, how shall
-man reckon on the efficacy of it, when he may
-so easily mistake, and cannot certainly know
-the real worth and character of what he calls
-repentance?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">88</span></p>
-
-<p>Here then, whether we consider what the
-moral attributes of the Deity, and his righteous
-government, may demand; or whether we
-regard the weakness and inefficacy of our best
-purposes; there is room enough for the terrors
-of religion to invade and possess the mind, in
-spite of all that Reason can do to repell, or
-dislodge them from it.</p>
-
-<p>After all, in contemplation of that infinite
-mercy which surrounds the throne of God, and
-of the infirmity incident to frail man, I am
-willing to suppose (as it is our common interest
-to do) that <i>repentance</i>, at all times, and how
-oft soever renewed, is a ground, on which he
-may reasonably build fair hopes and chearful
-expectations. To repent, is always the best
-thing we can do: It is always a conduct right in
-itself; and, as such, is intitled, we will say, on
-the principles of natural religion, to the divine
-acceptance.</p>
-
-<p>But what does that <small>ACCEPTANCE</small> import?
-<i>The reward of eternal life? A remission of all
-punishment? or, only an abatement of it?</i>
-Here, again, fresh difficulties start up, and
-come to be considered,</p>
-
-<p>II. Under the second general head of this
-discourse; in which it was proposed to inquire,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">89</span>
-<i>What that favour is, which, when we have done
-our best to recommend ourselves to God, we
-have reason to expect at his hands?</i></p>
-
-<p>1. If presumptuous man could learn to estimate
-himself at his true worth, he might
-perhaps see reason to conclude, that his highest
-moral merit can pretend to no more, than
-to some <i>abatement</i> of present or future punishment.</p>
-
-<p>Let him calculate how oft, how knowingly,
-how willfully he hath offended; and, on the
-other hand, when he did his duty, how coldly,
-how remissly, how reluctantly he did it: with
-what a gust of passion he disobeyed; and
-with what indifference he repented: with how
-full a consent of his mind, with what deliberation,
-and against what conviction, he sinned;
-and then, again, with what hesitation, by what
-degrees, in what circumstances, and upon what
-motives, he recovered himself from any bad
-habit: In a word, how full and complete and
-contagious his vices have been; and how faint
-and partial and ineffective, his best virtues:
-Let him, I say, calculate all this, and then tell
-us where is the stock of merit, on the balance
-of the account, that should encourage him to
-do more than hope that some part of the punishment,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">90</span>
-he hath justly incurred, may by a merciful
-judge be struck off, in consideration of
-his virtues? If such a man recovered his
-health, when he left his intemperance; or his
-credit in the world, when he shook hands with
-his injustice; or, if his penitence could avail
-so far as to shorten the term, or qualify the
-rigour, of his sufferings in some other state
-of being, would he not have reason to think
-he had all the recompense he deserved? Could
-most men, at least, on a strict scrutiny of their
-hearts and lives, carry their pretensions higher?
-But,</p>
-
-<p>2. But let us be indulgent to human virtue,
-and suppose it pure and active enough to work
-out all the guilt, which vice had contracted,
-could it do more than cancel the punishment
-due to vice, and should we be authorized to
-expect more than a <i>full remission</i> of it? Suppose,
-that after a long life, checquered with
-good and bad actions, but in such sort as that
-the good equalled the bad, and perfectly atoned
-for them (and which of us will say, that this
-is not a favourable supposition?); suppose, I
-say, that after such a life, as this, the whole
-man were suffered to fall into a state of insensibility,
-that all his powers and faculties were
-suspended, or the man himself utterly extinguished,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">91</span>
-could we complain of this allotment,
-or could reason pretend that it was not according
-to the rules of strict justice?</p>
-
-<p>3. Still I agree to make a further concession
-to the pride of Virtue. Let the moral qualities
-of some men be so excellent, and the tenour
-of their lives so pure, as to entitle them to a
-<i>positive reward</i> from the great searcher of
-hearts and inspector of human actions: would
-not the daily blessings of this life be a suitable
-recompense for such desert; would not health,
-and prosperity, and reputation, and peace of
-mind, be an adequate return for their best services?
-Or, if all this did not satisfy their
-claims, could they require more than such a
-portion of happiness in a future state, as should
-correspond to their merits, and make them
-full amends for all the sacrifices they here
-made to Conscience and to Virtue? And might
-not a small degree of such happiness, and for
-a short term, be an equivalent for such sacrifices?
-Could they dream of living <i>for ever</i>,
-and of living <i>happily</i> for ever in heaven; and
-call such a reward, as this, a debt, a claim
-of right, which could not justly be withheld
-from them? Could any man in his senses
-pretend, even to himself, that a Virtue of sixty
-or seventy years, though ever so perfect, ever<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">92</span>
-so constant, deserved immortal life in bliss and
-glory? Incredible: impossible: the merit and
-the recompense are too widely disjoined, the
-disproportion between them is too vast, to give
-the least colour of reason to such expectations.
-A Saint, or a Martyr, has no claim of
-right to so immense a reward, so transcendant
-a felicity.</p>
-
-<p>’Tis true, Christianity gives us these hopes,
-which Reason forwardly assumes, and makes
-her own; forgetting at the same time, or unthankfully
-slighting, the only grounds on which
-they are founded. For, though eternal life be
-promised to favoured man in the Gospel, it is
-there promised to him, not as a debt, but as a
-free gift; and that, not in consideration of his
-good works, but of his faith in Jesus.</p>
-
-<p>See then, to what the hopes of nature, the conclusions
-of reason and philosophy, amount, on this
-interesting subject. We are in the hands of an
-all-wise and all-righteous God, and are undone
-without his favour. Yet how that favour is to
-be obtained, we know not; or, if we do know,
-we are unable of ourselves to obtain it in the
-degree, we wish, and to the ends, for which
-we aspire to it. Our best speculations on the
-<i>means</i> of propitiating Heaven, are mixed with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">93</span>
-uncertainty; and our best <i>hopes</i> dashed with
-mistrust and suspicion. For what man is so
-righteous as to have perfect confidence in his
-good works; or, so sanguine, as to think heaven
-the due reward of them? And yet will any
-thing, short of this, content our impatient
-desires? Should our virtues merit no more
-than some abatement of future misery, so justly
-due to our innumerable ill deserts, how sad a
-prospect have we before us? or, if they do but
-free us from punishment, what man is so abject
-as not to shudder at the thought of extinction
-or insensibility? or, lastly, if they supply some
-faint hope of future reward, what generous
-man but wishes more to himself, than a slight,
-a precarious, and short-lived happiness; beyond
-which, as we have seen, he has no right to extend
-his expectations?</p>
-
-<p>If the Gentiles, who had only the light of
-Nature to conduct them, had no way to get
-quit of these doubts and fears, their condition
-was certainly unhappy, but would bespeak the
-mercy of God: their disadvantages and distresses
-would be allowed for, and considered
-by him. But for those, who have now the
-light of Heaven shining about them, and yet
-chuse to walk in the dim, disastrous twilight of
-their own reason, what must be their folly, as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">94</span>
-well as misery? I say, their <i>misery</i>. For this
-last is no secret to observing men, notwithstanding
-the airs of gaiety and satisfaction, they
-sometimes assume; and indeed deserves the
-tenderest pity, though their perverse <i>folly</i> be
-apt to excite a different passion.</p>
-
-<p>But to conclude: It is enough to have shewn,
-in justification of the sacred text, that they
-who <i>walk in the light of their own fire, and
-in the sparks which they have kindled</i>, have
-this recompense of their choice, allotted to
-them by the hand of God, and the nature of
-things, <i>That they</i> do and must <i>lie down in
-sorrow</i>.</p>
-
-<p>To you, who have determined more wisely
-to govern yourselves by faith, and not by Reason
-only; who rejoice to walk in the clear sunshine
-of the blessed Gospel, and not in the
-malignant light of philosophical speculation,
-To you, I say, the reward of your better conduct,
-is, that ye know how to recommend
-yourselves to the favour of God; and ye know
-what to expect from that favour: Ye understand
-that, by <small>FAITH AND REPENTANCE</small>, ye have peace
-of mind in this transitory life, and assured
-hopes of immortal unspeakable felicity, reserved
-for you in the heavens.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">95</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXV">SERMON XXXV.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED NOVEMBER 15, 1767.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">2 Cor.</span> iv. 3.</h3>
-
-<p><i>If our Gospel be hid, it is hid to them that
-are lost.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">The</span> text implies, that the evidence, with
-which Christianity is attended, may fail of
-convincing the minds of some men. And indeed
-from the time that <i>the Sun of righteousness</i>
-rose upon the earth, there have always
-been those, who could not, or would not, be
-enlightened by Him.</p>
-
-<p>Now it might be a question, whether this
-effect were owing to the nature of the evidence<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">96</span>
-itself, or to some obscurity in the manner of
-proposing it. This, I say, might have been a
-question, even among Christians themselves,
-if the Apostle had not determined it to our
-hands. He who was fully instructed in the
-truths of the Gospel, knew the evidence, with
-which they were accompanied, was enlightened
-by the same spirit that had inspired them, and
-had great experience in the different tempers
-and capacities of men, roundly asserts that
-Infidelity has no countenance, either from
-within or without, neither from the sort or
-degree of evidence, by which the Christian
-Revelation is supported, nor from any mysterious
-conveyance of it; but that, universally,
-the fault lies in those, who do not receive it.
-<i>If the Gospel be hid, it is hid to them that
-are lost</i>: to those, who would not be convinced
-by any evidence whatsoever.</p>
-
-<p>What the evidences of Christianity, in fact,
-are, and how abundantly sufficient for the
-conviction of all reasonable men, I shall not
-now enquire. The subject is fitter for a volume,
-than a discourse in this place. Let it
-be supposed, on St. Paul’s authority, that
-those evidences are sufficient; still ye may be
-curious to know, and it may tend to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">97</span>
-establishment of your faith to understand, how
-it has come to pass, that so much light could
-be resisted.</p>
-
-<p>To this question a pertinent answer has been
-given from the prejudices and passions, from
-the vices and corruptions of unbelievers; it
-being no new thing that men should <i>love
-darkness rather than light</i>, when <i>their deeds
-are</i>, and when they have resolved with themselves
-they shall be, <i>evil</i><a id="FNanchor_101" href="#Footnote_101" class="fnanchor">[101]</a>. <i>For</i>, as our Lord
-himself argues in this case, <i>Every one that
-doth evil, hateth the light, lest his deeds should
-be reproved: But he that doth the Truth,
-cometh to the light, that his deeds may be manifested,
-that they are wrought in God</i><a id="FNanchor_102" href="#Footnote_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>But then it has been replied, that, though
-Vice may be many times the ground of infidelity,
-and the condemnation of such men be
-just, yet that some, too, have disbelieved from
-no such motives; that the Gospel has been rejected
-by persons, who appear to have been
-men of large and liberal minds, as free, as
-others, from all perverse prejudices, and as
-little subject to gross vice or passion: Nay,
-that, in the class of unbelievers, there have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">98</span>
-been those who have distinguished themselves
-as much by the purity of their lives, as the
-brightness of their understandings.</p>
-
-<p>All this may be true; and yet our Saviour
-affirms, <i>that he, who believeth not, is condemned
-already</i><a id="FNanchor_103" href="#Footnote_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a>; and St. Paul in the text,
-to the same purpose, <i>that if the Gospel be hid,
-it is hid to them that are lost</i>. There must
-needs, then, be some latent cause of this strange
-fact; some secret depravity lurking in the mind
-of those, who disbelieve the Gospel, thought
-appearances be thus fair and flattering. And,
-though Christian Charity be not forward <i>to
-think evil</i> of his neighbour, yet in this case
-we have reason to suspect it: and what we suspect,
-we may perhaps find, in a <small>VICE</small> so secret
-and insinuating, that it creeps upon men unawares;
-so congenial, as it were, to our depraved
-nature, that hardly any man can be sure
-of his being wholly free from it; and so ingenious
-in disguising itself, as to pass upon others,
-nay upon the man possessed by it, for one of
-his best qualities.</p>
-
-<p>By these characters, ye will easily see I speak
-of self-love, or rather the vicious exertion of it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">99</span>
-in what we call, <small>PRIDE</small>: A vice, which may as
-fatally obstruct our pursuit of Truth, as any
-the most vulgar immorality; and the rather,
-because it is not easily suspected or acknowledged
-by us.</p>
-
-<p>This vice then it may be, that <i>hides the
-Gospel from those</i> better sort of men, <i>to whom
-it is hid</i>. They had need examine themselves
-well, for it assumes, as I said, the most imposing
-forms. Who would look for it, in the
-cultivation of the mind, and the love of Virtue?
-Yet in either of these, it may lie concealed:
-and an inquirer into the truth of the most rational,
-and the purest of all religions, may be
-prejudiced against it by a double Pride, by the
-<small>PRIDE OF REASON</small>, and the <small>PRIDE OF VIRTUE</small>.</p>
-
-<p>I. <span class="smcap">First</span>, <i>Infidelity may proceed from the
-Pride of Reason</i>.</p>
-
-<p>When it pleased God to bestow the faculty
-of Reason on his creature, Man, he intended
-that this substitute of himself should be the
-guide of life, and the handmaid of Religion.
-And that it might serve to these purposes, it
-was made sagacious enough, if honestly exerted,
-to lead him to some competent knowledge
-of his Maker, and of his moral duty, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">100</span>
-to judge of the pretensions of any further light
-from Heaven, which might be graciously vouchsafed
-to him.</p>
-
-<p>Man, proud of this free Gift, was in haste to
-make trial of its strength; and finding it could
-do something, too easily concluded it could do
-every thing. Yet its weakness soon appeared;
-first, in man’s transgression, and consequent
-forfeiture of another free Gift, that of immortality;
-and next, in the portentous errors he
-fell into, both in respect of virtue and religion.
-For God, who had graciously intended for
-him, in due time, another and safer guide, to
-prepare him for the reception of it, and to
-convince him, in the mean time, how much
-it was wanted, had suffered him to abuse this,
-to the worst purposes, of immorality, and
-idolatry: by both which the earth was generally
-overspread for many ages, and even in the
-most enlightened times, notwithstanding his
-Reason might, and should have taught him
-better.</p>
-
-<p>But God’s wisdom and goodness foresaw this
-abuse, and provided, from the first, for the correction
-of it. He had signified his purpose
-from the moment of man’s transgression, and
-afterwards by a gradual opening of his scheme,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">101</span>
-in many successive revelations; all terminating
-in that universal redemption of mankind by
-the sacrifice, and through the Gospel, of his
-Son. This last and greatest instance of the
-divine love for man, it might be expected, after
-so much experience of his own debility and
-folly, he would gladly and thankfully receive;
-and, that he might be qualified to discern the
-hand of God from the practices of fallible and
-designing men, was one main end, as I said,
-which God designed in lighting up the lamp
-of Reason in him.</p>
-
-<p>But now this boasted Guide, though found
-to be poor and weak, grew proud and presumptuous.
-It would not only judge of the credentials
-of divine Revelation (which was its
-proper office, and without which faculty of
-judging there could be no security from the
-endless impostures of fanaticism and superstition,
-but not content with this power) it would
-decide peremptorily on the nature and fitness
-of the Revelation itself; and would either admit
-none, or such only, as it should perfectly
-comprehend.</p>
-
-<p>Here, then, Reason forgot its own use, and
-power: its use, which was to bring him to the
-acknowledgement of a divine Religion; and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">102</span>
-its power, which did not enable him to judge
-of the infinite counsels of God, but to try
-whether any such were revealed to him. In a
-word, he forgot that his utmost capacity extended
-no farther than just to see whether the
-proposed Revelation were such as might come
-from God, as contradicting no clear and certain
-principles of reason, and whether the
-evidences were such as proved that it did so. If
-it contained nothing repugnant to right Reason,
-that is, to a prior light derived from the same
-source of Truth, it might come from Heaven;
-if the attestations of it were clear and convincing,
-it must proceed from that quarter. To
-try its credibility and authority, was then
-within the province of Reason: to determine
-of its absolute necessity and fitness, and to
-explore the depth and height of those counsels,
-on which it is framed, was above its reach and
-comprehension.</p>
-
-<p>Yet Reason assumed to herself, too generally,
-this latter office; and this I call, the
-<small>PRIDE</small> of Reason. Hence all its wanderings
-and miscarriages; from this perverse application
-of its powers arose all the heresies that have
-distracted the Christian Church, and all the infidel
-systems that have been invented to overthrow
-it. In both cases, men would be wise
-<i>above</i>, or <i>against, what was written</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">103</span></p>
-
-<p>Of the Heresies, I have nothing to say at this
-time. They appear at large in the ecclesiastical
-historian. Of the dreams of infidelity, as arising
-from the fumes of pride, so much is to be said,
-as my present subject requires of me, but this
-in as few words as possible.</p>
-
-<p><i>The pride of Reason</i> has then pronounced
-(as it operated at different times, and on different
-tempers), that Revelation is unnecessary,
-because Reason could see and discover by its
-own light all that was needful to our direction
-and happiness—that, if it were wanted by us,
-it was impossible to be given consistently with
-the laws of nature and experience—that as to
-that pretended scheme of Revelation, called
-the Gospel, its morality indeed was pure
-enough, but that it carried no other internal
-marks of its divinity: that its doctrines were
-such as Reason would not expect, and in many
-cases could not understand: that it talked of
-divine things in a manner that was strange and
-extraordinary; of a purpose to redeem mankind
-which, if it were needful at all, might have
-been effected by more rational and less operose
-methods; and to save and sanctify them by
-such means as seemed fanciful and delusive:
-that the divine nature was spoken of in high
-mysterious terms, which puzzle and confound<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">104</span>
-our Metaphysics; and that the offices, in which
-the Godhead was employed, are either degrading,
-or such as imply an immoderate and inconceivable
-condescension.</p>
-
-<p>And what then, say others, is the basis on
-which this incredible Revelation rests? Why
-on <i>Miracles</i>, which we cannot admit, as being
-violations or suspensions of those laws, by
-which we know the Supreme Being governs
-the world; and on <i>Prophecies</i>, which may
-have been feigned, as many have been, or
-which imply such a prescience in the Deity of
-free contingent events, as is perhaps impossible.
-If the Gospel then is to be admitted as a truly
-divine Revelation, convince us, that its external
-proofs are above all doubt and suspicion;
-and that all its internal characters are such as
-lie open to the perfect scrutiny, and entire investigation
-of our faculties.</p>
-
-<p>Thus does the Pride of Reason vaunt itself,
-against Reason. For, if to any or all of these
-objections (on which so many infidel systems
-hang) we should only say, <i>that they are nothing
-to the purpose</i>, what could the objectors
-reply to us? If pressed closely, they could
-only take refuge in this principle, <i>that no
-Religion can be divine, all the reasons of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">105</span>
-which are not fully known to us</i>; a principle,
-for which they have surely no warrant from
-right Reason. How do they know what is
-necessary, or fit, or right, with regard to the
-divine dispensations, I mean (which is the case
-here) when they only silence, not contradict
-our Reason? Every thing may be fit and right,
-and might appear to be so, if the whole
-scheme of Providence were fully unveiled to
-us. It must be fit and right, whether we see
-it or no, if the Religion in question be credibly
-attested: And the credibility will depend not
-on our fancies or expectations of I know not
-what irresistible evidence (which it might be
-best and wisest not to give) but on the real
-moment of the arguments, on which it is
-established.</p>
-
-<p>So that the last effort of Infidelity is only an
-appeal to the ignorance of mankind; which
-proves nothing but the necessity of a long-forgotten
-virtue, Modesty, in our researches
-into Religion.</p>
-
-<p>We see then how the <i>Pride of Reason</i> has
-betrayed presumptuous men into a disbelief of
-Revelation, and how true it is that, <i>if the Gospel
-be hid, it is hid to them that are lost</i>, as well
-by <i>this</i> means, as by any other.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">106</span></p>
-
-<p>II. But, secondly, there is <small>A PRIDE OF VIRTUE</small>,
-as well as of Reason: and by this Pride, too,
-(such is the infirmity of our common nature)
-<i>the Gospel may be hid from us</i>.</p>
-
-<p>On whatever foundation a man chuses to
-build his moral system, he easily convinces
-himself of the worth and excellence of moral
-action. The reasonableness, the utility, and
-the beauty of Virtue are so conspicuous, that
-even the vicious look up to her with respect,
-and the virtuous easily grow enamoured of her.
-Thus it came to be among the extravagances
-of the Stoics, its best friends in the pagan
-world, that virtue was not only the perfection
-of man’s nature, but that it raised him in some
-sense, above the Divine<a id="FNanchor_104" href="#Footnote_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a>. And to make their
-arrogant system all of a piece, they further
-maintained that this super-celestial virtue, in
-which they gloried, was their own proper acquisition;
-that they derived it wholly from
-themselves, and that God did not, and could
-not give it<a id="FNanchor_105" href="#Footnote_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">107</span></p>
-
-<p>This, you will say, was stoical pride; but
-it is, too commonly, also, the pride of virtue,
-of whatever denomination. Penetrated with a
-lively sense of its use and excellence, virtuous
-men, especially of a certain temperament, take
-fire from their own heated ideas, and flame
-out into a kind of moral fanaticism. They
-consider virtue, as the supreme and only good,
-absolute in itself, and independant of any other.
-They exalt and deify themselves in their own
-imaginations; and, though their language may
-be more decent, the sense of their hearts is
-truly stoical.</p>
-
-<p>See, now, whether virtue, under this intoxication,
-be in a condition to benefit by the
-sober truths of the Gospel. It presents to us
-a frightful picture of the moral world; much
-is said concerning the weakness and inefficacy
-of moral virtue. This representation, of itself,
-is disgusting. But one great design of the
-Gospel was to reform this state of things: And
-thus far is well: But by what means would it
-reform it? Why, among others, by Faith and
-Hope. Yet, in Faith, the proud moralist
-sees no virtue, at all; and Hope, in his ideas,
-degrades and servilizes his adored virtue. The
-Gospel proposes to save us by the sacrifice of
-Christ: But He acknowledges no need of any<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">108</span>
-sacrifice; relies, with confidence, on his own
-merits; and disdains the notion of an intercessor.
-He holds, that nothing more could
-be intended by a Revelation, if such were
-given, than the promotion of our virtue; and
-that we want not its aid, for that purpose:
-that we read our duty in the sense of our own
-minds; which Reason enforces in as high terms,
-as the Gospel, in a more engaging way, and
-on principles more sublime and generous.</p>
-
-<p>Above all, the Gospel speaks much of the
-succours of Grace, as necessary to infuse and
-to confirm our virtue; a language, which the
-<i>Pride</i> of virtue will not understand: And of a
-Heaven, and a Hell; by which if any thing
-more be meant than the proper natural effects
-of virtue and vice itself, the idea is rejected, as
-superfluous and even childish.</p>
-
-<p>To such an extreme of folly, and even impiety,
-may the Pride of virtue carry us; and
-so fatally may <i>the Gospel be hid from those</i>,
-whom this last infirmity of human nature
-blinds by its specious illusions! And that this
-is no ideal picture, but one taken from the
-life, will appear to those who know any thing
-of human nature; and of the perverse prejudices,
-by which some ingenious, and otherwise<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">109</span>
-virtuous men, have suffered themselves to
-be misled in their religious inquiries<a id="FNanchor_106" href="#Footnote_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Enough has been said to shew the issue of
-intellectual and moral <i>Pride</i>: And how it
-comes to pass that men <i>lose</i> themselves, who
-reason, on Religion, without modesty, or would
-be virtuous without Religion.</p>
-
-<p>The application is short, but striking. It is,
-That men should examine themselves well,
-before they presume to think slightly of the
-Gospel. They may learn to suspect the power
-and influence of their grosser passions, when
-they see that even these refined ones may
-corrupt their judgement, and betray them into
-Infidelity.</p>
-
-<p>The Apostle says expressly, that <i>if the Gospel
-be hid, it is hid to them that are lost</i>: and
-who, that rejects the Gospel, but must tremble
-for himself, when his <small>REASON</small>, nay his <small>VIRTUE</small>,
-may be the instrument of his ruin?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">110</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXVI">SERMON XXXVI.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED NOVEMBER 13, 1774.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">1 Peter</span> iii. 15.</h3>
-
-<p><i>—Be ready always to give an answer to every
-man that asketh You a reason of the hope,
-that is in You, with meekness and fear.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">These</span> words have been often and justly
-quoted to prove the rational genius of our
-religion: but they have sometimes been
-quoted to prove much more, “The obligation,
-that Christians are under, to justify their
-religion, in the way of argument, against all
-opposers, and to satisfy all the difficulties
-and objections, that can be brought against
-it.” A magnificent pretension! but surely
-without authority from the text, as I shall
-briefly shew, by enquiring,</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">111</span></p>
-
-<p>1. Who the persons are, to whom this
-direction is given:</p>
-
-<p>2. What that <i>hope</i> is, <i>which is in them</i>,
-and concerning which they are supposed
-to be interrogated: And therefore</p>
-
-<p>3. Lastly, what the proper <i>answer</i>, or apology
-must be, of those persons, when required
-to give a reason of such hope.</p>
-
-<p>The resolution of these questions will afford
-us a clear insight into the meaning of the text:
-and then we shall be enabled to make some
-pertinent and useful reflexions upon it.</p>
-
-<p>1. St. Peter addresses himself to <i>the elect
-strangers scattered throughout Pontus, Galatia,
-Cappadocia, Asia, and Bythinia</i>—i. e.
-most probably, to Jewish Christians, dispersed
-through these countries, in which they were
-properly <i>strangers</i>; though, in some sense,
-all good men are strangers and sojourners on
-earth, and therefore the use of this term may
-not necessarily exclude such Heathen converts
-to the faith, as lived in those quarters. But
-whatever be the precise meaning of the term,
-it is clear, that all persons of this general
-denomination, or all the <i>stranger</i> Christians,
-residing in the places, here mentioned, are,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">112</span>
-without distinction, concerned in this catholic
-epistle. There is not a word that implies any
-difference of age, or sex, or education, or
-rank: not the least regard is had to the office
-of some, or the qualifications of others: all
-indiscriminately, of the class specified, who
-had knowledge and understanding enough to
-profess themselves Christians, are the objects
-of the Apostle’s address: and of these, universally,
-is the requisition made, that they be
-<i>ready always to give an answer to every man,
-that asketh a reason of the hope that is in
-them</i>. But what then</p>
-
-<p>2. Is that <i>Hope</i>, of which all such persons
-were expected and required to render a reason?
-Plainly the general hope of Christians, the
-hope of eternal life, the hope of a resurrection
-from the dead, the blessed hope, in short, of
-salvation through Jesus Christ.</p>
-
-<p>The context shews, that it was this hope,
-and this only, of which they were to give an
-account. For, in the preceding verse, the
-Apostle had been speaking of the trials which
-they should undergo for the sake of their religion.
-Possibly, they were, then, in a state of
-persecution; or, it was foreseen that they soon
-would be in that state. <i>But and if ye suffer,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">113</span>
-says he, for righteousness sake, happy are ye.</i>
-Why? because they knew the <i>hope</i> of their
-calling, and the ample recompense that would
-be made them in a future life for all such sufferings.
-Therefore, he advises that they should
-always have this precious hope present to
-them, and well established in their minds:
-nay, and that, for their own better support in
-the midst of their sufferings, and for the vindication
-of themselves to others, their persecutors,
-perhaps, who might ask on what
-grounds they exposed themselves to such torments,
-they should have in readiness an <i>answer</i>,
-or apology for their own conduct, setting
-forth the reason they had to confide in that
-hope; from which reason it would appear that
-they acted, as became prudent men, and not
-as blind, frantic enthusiasts.</p>
-
-<p>It being now seen, to whom the text is
-directed, and what the <i>hope</i>, under consideration,
-is, we have no difficulty in
-answering</p>
-
-<p>3. The last question, “What the proper
-<i>answer</i> might, or rather must be, of such
-persons, when required to give a reason of
-such hope?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">114</span></p>
-
-<p>For what other answer could they give (and
-this they all might give), than that their Lord
-and Master, Jesus Christ, by whom they had
-been encouraged to entertain this hope, had
-shewn himself well able to make it good by
-his own resurrection? They might say, in
-the words of the Apostle Paul (who apologized
-for himself to the Athenians, in like circumstances),
-We therefore think ourselves happy
-in suffering for righteousness sake,—<i>because
-God hath appointed a day in the which he
-will judge the world in righteousness, by that
-man whom he hath ordained; whereof he hath
-given assurance unto all men, in that he hath
-raised him from the dead</i><a id="FNanchor_107" href="#Footnote_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>This was an obvious reason of the <i>hope,
-that was in them</i>, and level to all capacities.
-It was, also, a sufficient reason, if it was any
-at all, that is, if the fact alleged be true;
-and, that it was so, they might appeal to the
-testimony of those, who had seen the Lord
-and conversed with him, after his resurrection;
-nay, whom themselves had seen confirming
-that testimony <i>by signs and wonders</i>, done in
-the name of Jesus.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">115</span></p>
-
-<p>We see, then, what is the true and full
-meaning of the text. The Apostle exhorts
-those, to whom he writes, all of them, the
-simpler, as well as more informed, to bear in
-mind the end of their religion, <small>EVERLASTING
-LIFE</small>; and the grounds, on which they expected
-it, the <small>WORD</small> of their divine <small>MASTER</small>, <i>confirmed
-to them by them that heared him</i><a id="FNanchor_108" href="#Footnote_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a>, and by his
-rising from the dead.</p>
-
-<p>And now we are at liberty to make some reflexions
-on the text, which may be useful and
-instructive to us.</p>
-
-<p>And, first, I observe, as most others have
-done, that Christians are allowed and encouraged
-to reason on the subject of their religion,
-and to build their faith on conviction. For the
-Apostle’s advice is, not to decline the way of
-argument, but to use such arguments as are
-cogent and satisfactory. And in this free exercise
-of the understanding, which is permitted,
-or rather enjoined to all Christians,
-the manly genius of our religion is seen, and
-by it is distinguished from that of every blind
-and servile superstition. But then,</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">116</span></p>
-
-<p>Secondly, I observe, that this work of reason
-is enjoined, only, with regard to <i>the hope, that
-is in us</i>, that is, to the end and scope of
-Christianity, and to the authority on which it
-rests; in other words, with regard to the
-<small>EVIDENCES</small> of this Religion.</p>
-
-<p>It is true, these evidences are a different
-thing to different persons, according to their
-respective situations. To the primitive
-Christians, such as those to whom the exhortation
-of the text is addressed, it was
-evidence sufficient, “That they had the great
-facts of the Gospel, especially that decisive
-fact, the resurrection of Christ, reported to
-them by persons, who had been eye-witnesses
-of those extraordinary transactions,
-or, who had heared them, at least, from
-eye-witnesses, and were endowed, besides,
-with the power of working miracles in confirmation
-of their testimony.” For in those
-days, it is to be observed, they, who were
-commissioned to plant the Gospel in the
-world, <i>went forth, and preached every where,
-the Lord working with them, and confirming
-the word with signs following</i><a id="FNanchor_109" href="#Footnote_109" class="fnanchor">[109]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">117</span></p>
-
-<p>This state of things continued through
-what is called the Apostolic Age, and perhaps
-longer, during which time it was easy for the
-plainest Christian to give such an <i>answer</i>, to
-these who required a reason of <i>the hope that
-was in him</i>, as was perfectly satisfactory. But,
-when the Gospels were admitted by the faithful,
-as authentic accounts of their Master’s history
-and doctrine, and when the Apostles had
-further drawn out and explained the principles
-and proofs of Christianity in their several
-writings, that is, when the Canon of the New
-Testament was completed, and generally received
-(all which was done within the first
-century from the Christian æra), Then the
-appeal lay to these scriptures, and the ground
-of a Christian’s persuasion was, the authority
-of the inspired writers. And now, if believers
-were asked the reason of <i>the hope that was in
-them</i>, the answer was, “That so it was written
-in books, which were in all hands, and allowed
-by all to contain nothing but infallible
-truth.” Nor could the force of this answer
-be disputed, when the memory of certain
-facts was recent, when the places where,
-and the person to whom, or for whose use
-the sacred books were written, could be
-pointed out, and when the writers of them
-were known, by the miracles wrought by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">118</span>
-them, to have been under the direction of the
-Holy Ghost.</p>
-
-<p>On the conviction, which this apology carried
-with it, the world became Christian. But
-in process of time, and after a course of many
-ages, it might be doubted whether those books
-had been transmitted pure and uncorrupted.
-And under these circumstances the <i>answer</i>,
-being somewhat enlarged, stands thus: “That
-the hope of a Christian is founded on the
-authority of the sacred canon, composed by
-inspired men, as was universally allowed in
-the first ages of Christianity, and not materially
-altered, as we have reason to believe,
-to this day.”</p>
-
-<p>The answer given in these three periods, is,
-you see, very general, because the question is,
-on what grounds of reason a plain man could
-justify his profession of Christianity: and the
-answer, in each case, is a proper one, and of
-real weight. But the answer of knowing and
-skilful men is more particular, may indeed be
-infinitely varied and extended according to the
-abilities of the answerer; and, from such minute,
-and laboured apologies much additional
-light and conviction hath been derived. Still
-you see the subject of inquiry, is, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">119</span>
-<small>EVIDENCES</small> of Christianity, how different soever
-in different ages, and in the view of different
-persons in the same age. All that unbelievers
-have a right to ask, is, on what
-grounds we affirm the truth and divinity of
-our religion: and the sole duty which the text
-imposes upon us, is to satisfy that question.
-Their curiosity, and our labour, should not, at
-least needs not, be extended beyond these
-bounds. But</p>
-
-<p>Thirdly, what if inquisitive men should go
-farther, and, when they have set forth the
-evidences of Christianity to their own satisfaction,
-and that of others, should proceed to
-give us a <i>rationale</i> of its doctrines: Would not
-their pains be useful, as tending very much to
-promote the honour of our divine religion?</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps, they might, if <i>soberly</i> employed
-and if inquirers would set out with a resolution
-of stopping in their curious researches, when
-they had no ideas, or no clear or distinct
-ones.</p>
-
-<p>But, even with this restriction, <i>two</i> things
-are, further, to be observed. <span class="smcap">One</span> is, that no
-Christian is bound to make this solicitous inquiry
-into the doctrinal, no, nor into the moral<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">120</span>
-part of the Gospel. It is enough that his faith
-and life be regulated by its doctrines and precepts,
-whether he do, or do not, see the
-grounds in reason, on which they stand. Nay,
-possibly his conduct is then most acceptable,
-when he looks no farther than to the authority
-of the Gospel; agreeably to that well-known
-decision of our Lord himself—<i>blessed is he,
-who hath not seen, and yet hath believed</i>:
-not, that he expects any man to believe or to
-obey him, without reason: but he most approves
-the ingenuous turn of that man’s mind,
-who admits his divine mission, on a sufficient
-indeed, but not the highest, degree of evidence;
-and much more, therefore, who yields
-obedience to his laws, acknowledged on such
-evidence to be divine, without inquiring further
-into the reasons of them. Indeed, to what
-purpose do I scrupulously ask a reason of that,
-which I already know to be just and fit, because
-reasonably admitted to proceed from divine
-authority?</p>
-
-<p>The <small>OTHER</small> observation I would make, is,
-That, if after the most diligent inquiry, we
-should not, yet, be able to penetrate the
-reasons of many things, or to give ourselves
-entire satisfaction about them, this unacceptable
-experience should not in the least affect<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">121</span>
-our belief and esteem of the Gospel. For all
-that follows from such disappointed curiosity
-is only this, That we are weak and blind; and
-not that the things themselves are either false
-or unreasonable. Our duty, therefore, is to
-confide in the <i>revealed word</i>; not questioning
-its authority, or torturing its language; but
-accepting with thankfulness, what we do understand,
-and with reverence, what we do
-not.</p>
-
-<p>When these two conditions are inviolably
-observed, the way of minute inquiry into the
-doctrines of Christianity, so far forth as they
-are the objects of inquiry, at all, may be usefully
-and commendably employed. For then
-none but men of leisure and ability will think
-themselves concerned in making such inquiry:
-and even these, if they should not obtain all
-the satisfaction they propose to themselves,
-will neither attempt to disturb the faith of
-others, nor suffer their own faith to be disturbed
-by their curious speculations. Still:
-when learned men are taken up in those profound
-inquiries, and seem most confident that
-they have penetrated far into the reasons of
-many things which are kept secret from others,
-they should especially remember (and that is
-the Fourth, and <i>last</i> observation I shall make<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">122</span>
-on the text), to present their <i>answer</i> or apology
-to mankind, <i>with meekness and fear</i>.</p>
-
-<p>1. With <small>MEEKNESS</small>, or a soft and gentle
-spirit, breathing in words, neither passionate,
-nor assuming; that so they may gain as many,
-and exasperate as few, as they can. This was
-a caution more than commonly necessary to
-the first apologists for Christianity, who had
-to plead its cause at the tribunal of Kings, at
-that time, their enemies and persecutors. But
-the rule is always a good one to be observed by
-the advocates of the Gospel, who never serve
-it better, than when its prime virtue, <small>CHARITY</small>,
-corrects, or rather consecrates, their zeal.</p>
-
-<p>2. The <i>reason of the hope, that is in them</i>,
-should, also, be given <i>with</i> <small>FEAR</small>: that is, not
-only with a <i>fear</i> of giving needless offence to
-those, to whom they address their apology,
-but chiefly with a <i>reverential awe</i> of that
-transcendantly great Being, whose ways they
-desire to contemplate, and some part of whose
-councils it is their ambition to unfold. For,
-when we speak of God, farther than we are
-authorized by himself to speak, we are in constant
-danger of ascribing to him our own
-weaknesses, and of degrading his ineffable
-wisdom, when we think to exalt it most.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">123</span></p>
-
-<p>Such reason there is, even when we apologize
-for the truth of God, to do it <i>with meekness
-and fear</i>.</p>
-
-<p>To conclude: Religious inquiries, when thus
-conducted (and only then) are commendable
-and useful. They exercise our best faculties
-on the noblest subjects: They may be the
-means of bringing some to the kingdom of
-God, and they can alienate none from it. Or,
-whatever the merit and the success of these
-inquiries may be, the authors of them will
-have the satisfaction of knowing, that they
-have inquired in a right manner; and, that,
-how little soever their <small>UNDERSTANDINGS</small> have
-<i>profited</i> the Almighty<a id="FNanchor_110" href="#Footnote_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a>, they have honoured
-Him with the noblest sacrifice, which a mortal
-can offer to his Maker, that of an <small>HUMBLE AND
-SUBMISSIVE SPIRIT</small>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">124</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXVII">SERMON XXXVII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED FEBRUARY 4, 1770.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">John</span> vii. 46.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Never man spake like this man.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">If</span> by speaking, be here meant what is called
-<i>fine</i> speaking, or a discourse artificially composed
-according to the rules of human eloquence, the
-subject is unworthy of this place, and the
-praise, infinitely disproportioned to the divine
-character of Jesus. A pagan philosopher, nay,
-and a Christian preacher, might haply so far
-forget himself, as to affect the credit of <i>fine
-speaking</i>; or, his followers might think to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">125</span>
-honour him by applauding this talent<a id="FNanchor_111" href="#Footnote_111" class="fnanchor">[111]</a>: But
-the Son of God spake with other views, and
-to nobler purposes; and his inspired historians
-would not have condescended to make the
-panegyric of their Master, from so trivial a
-distinction.</p>
-
-<p>Let us see, then, to what the encomium of
-the text amounts; and what those <small>CIRCUMSTANCES</small>
-are, in the discourses of Jesus, which
-give real weight and dignity to the observation—<i>that
-never man spake like this man</i>.</p>
-
-<p>This will be an inquiry of use, and not of
-curiosity only; we shall find, in the course of
-it, very much to confirm our faith, as well as
-to excite our admiration.</p>
-
-<p>I. The first particular, that strikes an attentive
-mind in considering the discourses of
-Jesus, is the <small>MATTER</small> of them; the most important;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">126</span>
-and, at the same time, the most
-extraordinary; of the utmost consequence to
-mankind, and the most remote from all their
-natural apprehensions.</p>
-
-<p>But, by the discourses of Jesus, so qualified,
-I mean chiefly those, which are truly his own,
-and properly <i>Christian</i>: such as acquaint us
-with the dignity of his person, and nature of
-his office; with the purpose of his mission,
-and the manner in which that purpose was to
-be effected.</p>
-
-<p>His moral discourses, though they be divine
-too, yet, being intended, for the most part, to
-deliver the religion of nature, or the religion of
-Moses, in all its purity, may be thought to
-contain nothing more than what human reason
-had, or might have discovered, or what the
-Law of God, at least, had already revealed.
-Yet it may deserve to be mentioned as an argument
-of his superiority to all other moral
-instructors, that <span class="smcap">He only</span> has delivered a
-doctrine of life and manners, free from all
-mixture of error, and carried in some instances
-to a degree of perfection which, I do not say
-Reason, but, no Doctor of reason ever prescribed;
-and that he penetrated further into the
-true meaning of the Jewish Law, than any of
-its expositors had ever done.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">127</span></p>
-
-<p>But, as I said, I confine myself to his <i>peculiar
-doctrines</i>, such as constitute the substance
-of that religion, which we properly call
-Christian.</p>
-
-<p>And here, the weight of his doctrine must
-be felt by those persons who reflect that,
-coming into a world overrun with vice and
-misery, he proclaimed pardon and peace in
-this life, and everlasting happiness and glory
-in the life to come, to all who with penitent
-hearts and true faith turned to him. What
-Doctor, Philosopher, or Legislator <i>ever spake
-as He spake</i>, on these important articles?
-What had Nature taught the Gentile world?
-Some fine lessons of morality, indeed, which
-might direct their lives for the future; but
-none that could set their minds at ease from
-past guilt, none that could free their consciences
-from instinctive terror, much less
-could erect their hopes to any assured prospect
-of immortality. What had Moses taught the
-Jews? A divine religion, it is true, but such
-as left them under the burthen of a painful and
-oppressive ritual, in which the neglect of any
-one precept, or the irregular performance of
-any, might shake their security; and of which,
-when punctually observed, the reward was
-only some present ease or convenience in this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">128</span>
-world. What was there in either institution,
-that could deliver men from all doubt and uncertainty
-about their future condition, or that
-could disarm and appease the universal guilt of
-mankind?</p>
-
-<p>Let this then admonish us of what, from its
-familiarity, we are, now, so prone to forget,
-the importance, which characterized the doctrine
-of Jesus.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>extraordinary nature</i> of it equally appears;
-but will further and chiefly be seen, if
-we attend to the means, by which this supreme
-blessing is said to be conveyed, and effected.</p>
-
-<p>That a divine person, divine in the highest
-sense of the word, should descend from heaven
-and take our nature upon him; <i>the Heir of
-all things</i><a id="FNanchor_112" href="#Footnote_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a> should be content to appear <i>in the
-form of a servant</i><a id="FNanchor_113" href="#Footnote_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a>; and, having <i>life in himself</i><a id="FNanchor_114" href="#Footnote_114" class="fnanchor">[114]</a>,
-should chuse to suffer death; that, by
-this astonishing humiliation, he should propose
-to effect an end, equally astonishing, The salvation
-of a ruined world; that, being without
-sin himself, he should offer himself a sacrifice<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">129</span>
-for sin; that in virtue of his all-atoning
-death, he should undertake to abolish death,
-and open the gates of eternal life to the whole
-race of mortal man; that, in this way, he
-should assume to be our <i>Wisdom and Righteousness</i>,
-our <i>Sanctification and Redemption</i><a id="FNanchor_115" href="#Footnote_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a>;
-These are the great things of which Christ
-<i>spake</i>; these the amazing topics with which he
-filled his discourses. And must we not conclude,
-that <i>he spake as never man spake</i>? I
-do not, at present, urge the accomplishment
-of all these wonders. That is a distinct consideration.
-But it must be allowed, that he
-<i>spake</i> in this tone, and to this effect. And did
-ever any man before him utter such things?
-Did it ever enter into the heart of man to conceive
-such things? which surely are enough
-to arrest our attention; to turn our thoughts on
-the evidence, with which they are accompanied;
-and, till we admit the force of that evidence,
-to convince us, at least, that such a speaker
-as this, is eminently distinguished from all
-other speakers, that ever addressed themselves
-to mankind. He discovered, on other occasions,
-no defect of mind, or temper; nothing,
-that should lead us to suspect him of weakness,
-or enthusiasm; And when such a person so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">130</span>
-speaks, the sublime and extraordinary nature
-of his doctrine is no small presumption of its
-truth.</p>
-
-<p>II. Another circumstance that distinguishes
-the discourses of Jesus, is the <small>AUTHORITY</small>, with
-which they were delivered. The people themselves
-remarked this circumstance, and were
-astonished at it; <i>for he taught them</i>, says the
-sacred historian, <i>as one who had authority,
-and not as the Scribes</i><a id="FNanchor_116" href="#Footnote_116" class="fnanchor">[116]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Interpreters differ in explaining what this
-<i>authority</i> was; but it consisted, very clearly,
-in these three things. 1. He taught mankind
-without any degree of doubt and hesitation,
-with the air of one who knew the truth of what
-he said, and was perfectly assured of all he
-spake. <i>Verily, verily, I say to thee, we
-speak that we do know, and testify that we
-have seen<a id="FNanchor_117" href="#Footnote_117" class="fnanchor">[117]</a>.</i> 2. He taught his great lessons of
-morality and religion, not as derived from the
-information of others, or from the dictates of
-his own reason, but as immediately conveyed
-to him from the source of light and truth, from
-God himself. <i>Whatsoever I speak, even<span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">131</span>
-as the Father said to me, so I</i> speak<a id="FNanchor_118" href="#Footnote_118" class="fnanchor">[118]</a>. 3. Lastly,
-He delivered his doctrine on very many occasions,
-as the proper author of it, as one who
-had a right to propose the terms of Salvation,
-in his own name. I <i>say unto You</i>—is the
-formulary, with which he prefaces his momentous
-instructions. <i>He that believeth on
-the Son, hath everlasting life, and</i> I <i>will raise
-him up at the last day</i><a id="FNanchor_119" href="#Footnote_119" class="fnanchor">[119]</a>. <i>Be thou faithful
-unto death, and</i> I <i>will give thee a crown of
-life</i><a id="FNanchor_120" href="#Footnote_120" class="fnanchor">[120]</a>. Nay, he goes so far as to assert expressly,
-<i>that he hath life in himself, even as
-the Father hath life in himself</i><a id="FNanchor_121" href="#Footnote_121" class="fnanchor">[121]</a>. And though
-he says, at the same time, that he had this
-privilege given him by the Father, and though
-he declares, elsewhere, that as the <i>Father had
-taught him, so he spake</i><a id="FNanchor_122" href="#Footnote_122" class="fnanchor">[122]</a>; yet there is no
-contradiction in these affirmations; for he tells
-us expressly—<i>All things that the Father
-hath, are mine</i><a id="FNanchor_123" href="#Footnote_123" class="fnanchor">[123]</a>; <i>And I and the Father are
-one</i><a id="FNanchor_124" href="#Footnote_124" class="fnanchor">[124]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>These three circumstances, taken together,
-constitute the proper authority of Christ’s doctrine.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">132</span>
-It was the authority of one, who spake
-from conviction; who spake by the special
-appointment of God the Father, who even
-spake, by virtue of his own essential right,
-from himself, and in his own name.</p>
-
-<p>Compare, now, this <i>authoritative</i> way of
-speaking, with that of the Jewish scribes; who
-explained their Law, as they could, by the
-precarious traditions of their forefathers, and
-the uncertain glosses of their celebrated Doctors:
-Compare it with that of the Gentile
-Philosophers; who quibbled, by the help of a
-little logick or metaphysicks, on the nature of
-God and the Soul; who advanced their doctrines
-of futurity, on the credit of an old fable, or an
-old song; and even delivered their moral lectures
-on the weak grounds of their fanciful or
-discordant systems; in the way of negligent
-speculation, or, which was worse, of altercation
-and dispute: Compare it, lastly, with that of
-all others, who, in antient or modern times,
-have taken upon themselves to instruct mankind;
-and see, if any of these ever assumed
-the exalted tone, or spake with the <i>authority</i>
-of Jesus, of <i>the Carpenter’s Son</i>, as Julian
-and the followers of that school affect to call
-him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">133</span></p>
-
-<p>But high pretensions, you will say, prove
-nothing. Not much, indeed, when destitute
-of their proper supports; yet so much, as to
-verify the observation of the text—<i>that never
-man spake like this man</i>. And if they prove
-thus much, they prove more; the necessity,
-or reasonableness, at least, of examining whether
-these pretensions be well founded. For
-claims of so extraordinary a nature, as they
-must needs awaken our curiosity, so they may
-demand our belief. When a voice speaks, as
-from heaven, it naturally turns our attention
-to that quarter; and, when it speaks in <i>inimitable
-thunder</i><a id="FNanchor_125" href="#Footnote_125" class="fnanchor">[125]</a>, it speaks, methinks, like
-itself, and in accents that cannot well be misunderstood.</p>
-
-<p>But our next observation will carry us further.
-For I make it</p>
-
-<p>III. A third circumstance, in the character
-of Christ’s <i>speaking</i>, that he expressed himself
-with more than mortal WISDOM, on many occasions,
-when the malice and captious subtlety
-of his enemies put that wisdom to its utmost
-test.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">134</span></p>
-
-<p>He gave early proofs of his wisdom, when,
-at the age of twelve years, he reasoned with
-the Doctors in the temple, to such effect, <i>that
-all who heared him, were astonished at his understanding
-and answers</i><a id="FNanchor_126" href="#Footnote_126" class="fnanchor">[126]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>These answers, indeed, are not recorded;
-but many others are, in the course of his
-ministry; answers to nice, insidious, and concerted
-questions of the ablest men among the
-Jews, in critical circumstances, and on the
-most trying emergencies. And to these questions
-he always replied with a presence of mind
-so unshaken, with a judgment so infallible,
-with a dexterity and prudence so conciliating,
-and at the same time with an integrity so pure
-and perfect, that no advantage could in any
-degree be taken against him. His adversaries
-came again and again to the charge; whom
-yet he repelled with so triumphant a superiority
-over all the efforts of their wit and malice, that
-he forced them in the end, <i>to marvel and hold
-their peace</i><a id="FNanchor_127" href="#Footnote_127" class="fnanchor">[127]</a>. His divine responses came out
-so contrary to their hopes and their interests,
-that they were discouraged and deterred from
-provoking any more of them—<i>they durst not
-ask him any more questions</i><a id="FNanchor_128" href="#Footnote_128" class="fnanchor">[128]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">135</span></p>
-
-<p>The limits of this discourse will not give
-room for a detailed account of these questions
-and answers. But they are thick sown in the
-Gospels: And ye will understand me to point
-more especially at those, that respected his
-divine character, and kingly office<a id="FNanchor_129" href="#Footnote_129" class="fnanchor">[129]</a>; in which
-conversations the danger was, lest he should
-drop something that might be made a handle
-against him before the Jewish Consistory, or
-the Roman Tribunals; while yet he was not
-to betray his cause, or bely his pretensions.
-The danger was instant, and, if he had fallen
-under it, must have been fatal. For, in withdrawing
-his claim of being the Messiah, the
-<i>King of Israel</i>, he must have owned himself
-an impostor; in asserting it, at this time,
-clearly and openly, he would have given his
-enemies a pretence for treating him, as a criminal
-of state; an imputation which could not
-consist with the truth or dignity of his mission.
-He came into the world to suffer death, indeed;
-but not as convicted of any crime, not
-as colourably condemned by any legal sentence.
-His innocence was to be conspicuous, and his
-honour unimpaired<a id="FNanchor_130" href="#Footnote_130" class="fnanchor">[130]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">136</span></p>
-
-<p>In this respect, then, it seems, as if it might
-be truly affirmed, that <i>never man spake as this
-man</i>. And, if this much must be allowed, we
-are, methinks, but a little way from a further
-conclusion, <i>That, therefore, he spake by a
-divine spirit</i>.</p>
-
-<p>If it be said, that this conclusion does not
-hold, <i>for that the same faculties of the human
-mind, which make us capable of</i> <small>SEEING</small> <i>this
-wisdom, may have</i> <small>PRODUCED</small> <i>it</i>, the ground
-of the observation is neither likely, nor true.
-Not likely in the present instance, where the
-wisdom in question appears to be exquisite and
-constant: qualities which we are not accustomed
-to find united in the efforts of human wisdom.
-But neither, in general, is the position true:
-For then, the power of perception and invention
-would be the same; then, the divine intellect
-would be levelled with the human; then,
-the wisdom of God himself, so far as it was
-acknowledged and understood by us, would be
-our wisdom. Whereas, common sense tells
-us, that to discover a truth and to apprehend
-it, to project a measure, and to conceive the
-fitness of it, are two things<a id="FNanchor_131" href="#Footnote_131" class="fnanchor">[131]</a>: And, though<span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">137</span>
-men differ widely in their capacities from each
-other, yet there is a capacity, which no man
-may claim, as there is a wisdom, to which no
-man pretends. The sublime views of God in
-the system of nature are comprehended, to a
-certain degree, and justly magnified and unfolded
-by many men, who, yet, have not the
-presumption to suppose that they were themselves
-capable, of planning such a system. In like
-manner, we may see and adore the wisdom,
-with which Christ <i>spake</i>, and yet conclude,
-upon good grounds, that as no man ever
-did, so no man ever could, speak with such
-wisdom.</p>
-
-<p>IV. A fourth circumstance (and the last I
-shall mention) which distinguished Jesus, as a
-Speaker, was the penetrating influence of his
-discourses, or the divine <small>ENERGY</small>, with which
-they were accompanied.</p>
-
-<p>Other speakers have thought it enough to
-convince their hearers by cogent arguments;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">138</span>
-to excite their passions by lively images; to
-touch the general springs of humanity, or to
-practise on the peculiar foibles and prejudices
-of the party addressed. But Jesus had the
-singular art to convince without reasoning, and
-to persuade without rhetorick. Few and simple
-words, from that mouth, attained their end
-with ease: they struck the soul with more
-than all the effect of that eloquence, which
-hath been compared to lightning: they needed
-no help from tropes and figures, from the acquired
-knowledge of human nature, or from
-the information of others, but went directly to
-the heart by their own proper and irresistible
-virtue. In a word, Jesus saw what no art
-could divine, he saw intuitively the naked conscience,
-the secret individual thoughts of those,
-with whom he had any concern; and being
-able, withal, to possess their minds with a
-consciousness of this intuition, his least word,
-his look, nay his silence must needs <i>speak</i> beyond
-the eloquence of other men.</p>
-
-<p>There are many instances of this sort, recorded
-in the Gospels. He saw the malice of
-the Scribes and Pharisees<a id="FNanchor_132" href="#Footnote_132" class="fnanchor">[132]</a>, while it was yet<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">139</span>
-latent in the heart, and only forming itself into
-secret purposes and mental propositions; and
-he surprized them by his answers, into shame
-and <i>madness</i><a id="FNanchor_133" href="#Footnote_133" class="fnanchor">[133]</a>. He saw the seeds of ambition
-putting forth in the minds of his disciples:
-and by a word or two, he prevented the growth
-of them<a id="FNanchor_134" href="#Footnote_134" class="fnanchor">[134]</a>. By only <i>looking</i> upon Peter<a id="FNanchor_135" href="#Footnote_135" class="fnanchor">[135]</a>, he
-struck him into remorse and tears. And by
-<i>answering nothing</i>, he <i>astonished</i>, at once,
-and convinced the Roman Governor, who sat
-in judgment upon him<a id="FNanchor_136" href="#Footnote_136" class="fnanchor">[136]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>This inspection of the heart, was that which
-confounded the officers, whom the chief priests
-had sent to apprehend him, and drew from
-them, on their return, the advantageous report
-of the text—<i>that never man spake like this
-man</i>. For, by what he said in their hearing,
-he gave them to understand that he knew their
-commission before they had opened it: and so
-disarmed their rage, by only signifying his
-acquaintance with their design.</p>
-
-<p>The effect of what he said and did was, in
-many conjunctures, wholly disproportioned to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">140</span>
-his words and actions: and is only to be accounted
-for, from the clear insight he had into
-the mind, and from the secret influence which
-he knew, by an apt sentence<a id="FNanchor_137" href="#Footnote_137" class="fnanchor">[137]</a>, or by an expressive
-emblem<a id="FNanchor_138" href="#Footnote_138" class="fnanchor">[138]</a>, to inject into the conscience
-of his hearers. And what resistance can, indeed,
-be made to such a <i>speaker</i>, who hath
-the hearts of men in his hands, and <i>turneth
-them whithersoever he will</i><a id="FNanchor_139" href="#Footnote_139" class="fnanchor">[139]</a>?</p>
-
-<p>In all views, then, whether we consider the
-<i>matter</i>, the <i>authority</i>, the <i>wisdom</i>, or the <i>effect</i>
-of Christ’s discourses, we must needs be
-convinced that the text is amply verified, and
-that <i>never man spake like this man</i>.</p>
-
-<p>To conclude: I have not amused you, in
-this discourse, with vain declamation. I am
-not solicitous to establish the credit of Jesus,
-as a consummate orator. My views are other
-and far higher. I would convince you, by a
-reference to plain facts, that he was more than
-man; that he spake by the unerring spirit of
-God; that his word demands not your praise,
-but your adoration.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">141</span></p>
-
-<p>If men would take their ideas of this divine
-teacher immediately from his own doctrines,
-and not as they are misrepresented, or at best
-imperfectly represented by the glosses of
-others, they would come, of themselves, to
-this important conclusion: if they would make
-the Gospel their serious study, and not their
-casual amusement, they would want no monitor
-to let them into the merits, or the use
-of it. They would more than see, they
-would feel the spirit, with which Jesus
-spake; and they would readily offer to him,
-not their barren applause, but their sincere
-obedience.</p>
-
-<p>Till this salutary effect be wrought in those
-who call themselves the disciples of Jesus,
-it may not be improper to remind them of
-what he himself said to <small>ONE</small>, who was affected,
-as we may now be, by a sense of his
-divine power in speaking. He had been delivering
-great truths, with that authority
-and wisdom, which ever accompanied his
-instructions, and the effect was answerable.
-For <i>it came to pass</i>, as he <i>spake these things,
-that a certain woman of the company lifted
-up her voice, and said to him</i>, in the customary
-style of approbation, <i>Blessed is the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">142</span>
-womb that bare thee, and the paps that thou
-hast sucked. But</i> <small>HE</small> <i>said, Yea, rather blessed
-are they that</i> <small>HEAR THE WORD OF GOD, AND
-KEEP IT</small><a id="FNanchor_140" href="#Footnote_140" class="fnanchor">[140]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">143</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXVIII">SERMON XXXVIII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED NOVEMBER 20, 1774.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xiii. 10.</h3>
-
-<p><i>The Disciples came, and said unto him, Why
-speakest Thou to them in Parables?</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">Two</span> things are very observable in our Lord’s
-conduct towards the Jews. He came to <i>instruct</i>
-them in the principles of a new religion,
-and to <i>convince</i> them of its divine authority.
-Yet to such of them, as were least enlightened
-by his doctrine, he generally addressed himself
-in Parables: And before such, as were backward
-to admit his pretensions, he was sparing
-of his Miracles. Now the contrary of this conduct,
-it is said, might be expected: That he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">144</span>
-should have explained himself in the clearest
-manner to the uninformed Jews; and should
-have multiplied his miracles, for the conviction
-of the unbelieving.</p>
-
-<p>I propose to consider both these circumstances
-in the history of Jesus; and to shew
-that his conduct, in either case, was suitable
-to his character and mission.</p>
-
-<p>I, now, confine myself to the <small>PARABLES</small>;
-and shall take another occasion to consider the
-<small>MIRACLES</small>.</p>
-
-<p>The Disciples, having observed that their
-Master spoke to the Jews in a more obscure
-and indirect manner, than he was wont to do
-in private to themselves, <i>came and said unto
-him, Why speakest thou to them in Parables?</i></p>
-
-<p>This method of conveying instruction in Parables,
-that is, in some feigned story, where
-one thing is put for another, and in which the
-circumstances of the story are to be applied to
-something different in the intention of the
-speaker, is well known to have been of constant
-and familiar use in the old world, and
-especially in the Eastern nations. This figurative
-cast of language had its rise from necessity,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">145</span>
-the rude conceptions of men requiring general
-truths to be presented to them, in sensible
-images. But it soon came to be affected as an
-ornamental way of speaking or writing, the
-liveliness of the image awakening curiosity,
-and affording amusement to the mind. Lastly,
-it was sometimes employed as a mysterious
-cover of important truths, to which a more
-than ordinary attention was to be raised, and
-especially of such important truths as could
-not be communicated openly and directly without
-offence. Under this last idea, the Parable,
-properly so called, presents itself to us. It
-was contrived on purpose to throw some degree
-of obscurity over the information, it contained:
-And it is in reference to this use and character
-of the Parable, that the Disciples ask why
-Jesus thought fit to address the Jews in this
-way.</p>
-
-<p>To this question, why he spake to the Jews
-in Parables, and not to the Disciples, our
-Lord’s reply is in these words—<i>Because, to
-you it is given to know the mysteries of the
-kingdom of God, but to them it is not given</i>.</p>
-
-<p>By this answer we learn, <i>First</i>, that the
-things delivered by him in this obscure way
-were not the fundamental truths of the Gospel,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">146</span>
-but <i>the mysteries of the kingdom of God</i>, that
-is, certain secrets relating to the progress of
-the Gospel, and the event of it in the world;
-a consideration, which will be enlarged upon
-in its place: And, <i>Secondly</i>, that it was not
-<i>given</i> to the Jews, at large, to be let into those
-mysteries, but to the disciples only.</p>
-
-<p>But why <i>not given to the Jews</i>? why was
-it thought less fit for them, to be initiated in
-these mysteries, than for the Disciples? Our
-Lord condescends to answer, or rather to anticipate
-this question, likewise—<i>For whosoever
-hath, to him shall be given and he shall have
-more abundance; but whosoever hath not,
-from him shall be taken away even that he
-hath</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The answer, we see, is formed on this general
-principle, “That information in the councils
-of God is not to be claimed as a debt; but
-accepted as a reward: that he, who hath acquired
-some knowledge and improved what he
-hath, deserves a further communication of it;
-but that he, who hath been at no pains to acquire
-any, or who puts his knowledge to as
-little use, as if he had acquired none, is so far
-from having a right to more, that he even deserves
-to have the pittance, he may already<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">147</span>
-possess, taken from him.” And what more indisputable
-rule of reason, than this, That, in a
-matter of pure favour, we should deserve, by
-our good dispositions at least, this distinction
-before we obtain it. So that the answer comes
-out thus—“I speak to the <small>JEWS</small> in parables,
-because they do not deserve, by the pains they
-have hitherto taken to learn of me, and by the
-dispositions they have shewn to improve what
-I have taught them, to have further information
-plainly and openly conveyed to them: But
-to <small>YOU</small>, who have already profited by my doctrine,
-and are disposed still further to profit by
-it, to you I address myself in a plainer manner,
-because ye deserve to be more fully and abundantly
-instructed by me.” And to this answer,
-thus understood, what objection, or even what
-cavil, can be opposed?</p>
-
-<p>But, further, when Jesus said to his Disciples,
-that <i>to them it was given to know the
-mysteries of the kingdom of God, but to the
-Jews</i>, at large, <i>it was not given</i>, this determination
-must be understood as founded, not
-merely on the fitness of the thing, as here explained,
-but on the positive will and declared
-purpose of God. This appears from what follows.
-For <i>therefore</i>, proceeds our Lord,
-<i>speak I to them in Parables, because they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">148</span>
-seeing see not, and hearing they hear not,
-neither do they understand. And in them is
-fulfilled the prophecy of Isaias, which saith,
-by hearing Ye shall hear and shall not understand,
-and seeing Ye shall see and shall not
-perceive. For this people’s heart is waxed
-gross, and their ears are dull of hearing, and
-their eyes they have closed, lest at any time
-they should see with their eyes, and hear with
-their ears, and should understand with their
-hearts, and should be converted, and I should
-heal them.</i></p>
-
-<p>Hence it appears, that the way of speaking
-in Parables, which Jesus employed towards the
-Jews, was that which the word of prophecy
-had declared he should employ towards them.
-So that this was one, among others, of the
-marks, by which the Messiah should be known
-and distinguished. <i>To speak in Parables</i>,
-was a part of his office: It was a duty imposed
-upon him, in his very commission.</p>
-
-<p>But this, you will say, is only removing the
-difficulty one step backwards, and transferring
-it from the Gospel upon the Law; And you
-still ask, upon what reasons this strange way of
-proceeding with the Jews, thus foretold and
-enjoined, was founded?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">149</span></p>
-
-<p>Now, though it becomes us with much reverence
-to inquire into the reasons of God’s
-dispensations, yet as we see, in fact, that it
-was God’s will to treat the Jews in this manner,
-we may be allowed to indulge some conjectures
-on the subject; And, as we have
-traced this difficulty up to its source, this will
-be the proper place to attempt a more full solution
-of it.</p>
-
-<p>To make way for this solution, let it be observed,
-that there are two ways in which this
-famous prophecy of Isaiah may be regarded by
-us; either, first, as <i>a mere prediction of the
-event</i>, namely, that by this way of speaking to
-them in Parables, the Jews <i>would</i> not be converted;
-Or, secondly, <i>as a judicial determination
-of it</i>, namely, that this obscure way of
-teaching was therefore employed, because it
-was in the divine councils that they <i>should</i> not
-be converted. In either way of considering the
-Prophecy, this mysterious conduct may, I
-think, be cleared up.</p>
-
-<p>If we consider the <i>event</i> only, as pointed
-out by this Prophecy, then the reason, which
-Jesus himself gives of this conduct, and which
-has been before explained, namely the general
-fitness of such a procedure in itself, is a satisfactory<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">150</span>
-account of it. For what more just than
-to leave men to the consequences of their own
-behaviour, and not to reward them with that
-which they neither desire nor deserve?</p>
-
-<p>But, perhaps, the event was not simply predicted
-of the Jews, but <i>determined</i> upon them<a id="FNanchor_141" href="#Footnote_141" class="fnanchor">[141]</a>.
-And there may be reason to take the prophecy,
-the rather, in this light, because however fit
-such a conduct, as it describes, may be in itself,
-yet, in fact, it was not observed towards
-the Gentiles, nor even the Jews after the descent
-of the holy Ghost; the Apostles not addressing
-either in the way of Parables, as our
-Lord had done the unbelieving Jews: and this
-agreeably to their Master’s express injunctions
-to them—<i>for there is nothing covered that
-shall not be revealed, and hid that shall not be
-known; What I tell you in darkness that
-speak ye in the light, and what ye hear in the
-ear that preach ye upon the house-tops</i><a id="FNanchor_142" href="#Footnote_142" class="fnanchor">[142]</a>. This
-different conduct may then lead us to suspect
-that there was something peculiar in the situation
-of those Jews, to whom Jesus addressed
-his Parables, which this prophecy respected;
-and that it was God’s purpose, in the case of
-such of them as should stand out against this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">151</span>
-so long abused mode of information, when proceeding
-from the mouth of the Messiah himself,
-to leave them under a judicial blindness. And
-supposing this to be the case, the conduct (as
-severe as it seems) may be justified by the following
-considerations.</p>
-
-<p>1. All the notices, which it had pleased God
-to give to the ancient Jews of the Gospel dispensation,
-were conveyed in this way of Parable.
-The terms, employed in the old prophecies,
-were all taken from the Law, but the
-true meaning lay deeper, and the right application
-of those prophecies was to the Christian
-Covenant, and to the character and dispensation
-of the Messiah. This method of predicting the
-Gospel under legal ideas, was employed for the
-wisest reasons<a id="FNanchor_143" href="#Footnote_143" class="fnanchor">[143]</a>: The Jews had been constantly
-trained and brought up in it; and, notwithstanding
-the real obscurity this mode of teaching
-was intended to have, yet with fair attentive
-minds they might easily have apprehended
-the true drift and purpose of it. The Prophets
-call upon them perpetually to give this attention:
-they even drop frequent hints, that
-might lead them to the discovery: and, upon occasion,
-do every thing but expound in direct
-terms, their own parables.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">152</span></p>
-
-<p>What now was the effect of all this intelligence,
-so gradually, so repeatedly, so solicitously,
-as it were, imparted to them? Why,
-they would not hear, nor understand: they
-perversely and obstinately rested in the cover
-of these predictions; would look for nothing
-beneath or beyond it, indulged their prejudices
-about the eternity of their law, and the temporal
-power of their expected Deliverer, so far, that,
-when at length their Deliverer came, for whom
-this chain of prophetic instruction was meant
-to prepare them, they did not and would not
-acknowledge him. For this gross neglect of a
-mode of information, so long and so mercifully
-indulged to them, God thought fit to punish
-them by the very instrument of their offence.
-He commissioned Jesus still to continue that
-way of Parables, which they had so outrageously
-abused; and so, in his justice, <i>made it
-the occasion of blinding their eyes and hardening
-their hearts</i><a id="FNanchor_144" href="#Footnote_144" class="fnanchor">[144]</a>, to their final rejection and
-reprobation.</p>
-
-<p>This seems to be the true state of the case:
-and what has Reason to object to it? Can any
-thing be more just, than that a much abused
-mercy should end in punishment? And can
-any thing be more fit, than that such punishment<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">153</span>
-should be the forfeiture of that blessing, which
-the mercy was intended to convey, and should
-even be inflicted by the very means of that
-mercy<a id="FNanchor_145" href="#Footnote_145" class="fnanchor">[145]</a>? What is there in this œconomy of
-God’s religious dispensations, which contradicts
-our ideas of the divine attributes? Nay, what
-is there in it, which does not accord to the
-known methods of his ordinary and moral government
-of the world? Health and Prosperity,
-Parts and Learning, are the merciful gifts
-of God to some men. To these mercies,
-rightly improved, certain blessings are, in the
-order of his providence, annexed. Yet how
-often do we see men deprived of the blessings,
-for their misuse of those mercies, and deprived
-by means of the very mercies themselves! The
-mercies are a snare to them; and in the way of
-natural punishment inflict those evils, which
-they were intended to prevent. Thus, health
-and prosperity, ill employed, bring on a diseased
-old age, and an uncomfortable enjoyment
-of life; and parts and learning, so fitted to
-produce true knowledge, are the means by
-which many are led into presumption and
-mistake.</p>
-
-<p>And in this way, we easily conceive how
-justly the Jews were punished, in their rejection<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">154</span>
-of the Messiah, for their wilful abuse and misinterpretation
-of the Scripture Prophesies concerning
-him; and how fitly the punishment
-was conveyed by Christ’s <i>speaking to them in
-Parables</i>, that is, by that mode of instruction
-by that very instrument of mercy, which they
-had so much abused.</p>
-
-<p>But though this perverseness of the Jews
-may be reasonably thought judicial, yet even
-<i>in his Judgments God remembers mercy</i>. Let
-it therefore be considered</p>
-
-<p>2. In the second place, that, though Christ’s
-speaking to the Jews in Parables did eventually
-harden their hearts, yet not more so, perhaps
-not so much as the open communication of
-truth would have done.</p>
-
-<p>I before took notice, that the subject of
-Christ’s parables was not the fundamental tenets
-of the Gospel, but <i>the mysteries of the kingdom
-of God</i>. This we know from the mouth of
-Christ himself; and it deserves to be considered.
-That Jesus was the Messiah, that all men
-were to believe in him, and to be saved by him,
-these great fundamental articles of his religion,
-together with his moral doctrine, were published
-plainly to all; and the evidences of his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">155</span>
-Messiahship, as resulting from his miracles and
-an appeal to their own prophecies, were in no
-sense concealed from the Jews. So that, in
-truth, the light afforded to them was by no
-means so penurious, or so darkly conveyed, as
-the objection supposes. What was kept back
-from them and thrown into the shade, was only or
-chiefly, the future fortunes of the Gospel, called
-<i>the Mysteries of God’s kingdom</i>; of which the
-rejection of the Jews, and the call of the Gentiles,
-were principal. These Christ delivered
-to the Jews in parables, <i>and without a parable
-spake he not</i> on these subjects, <i>unto them</i>.
-Now, though it be true that, had people
-penetrated these mysteries, they might, by a
-right use of this knowledge, have been led to a
-just apprehension of many of their own prophecies,
-and, in the end, to an acknowledgement
-of the Christian faith; yet ’tis likely, considering
-their inveterate prejudices, that the clear
-delivery of these momentous truths would have
-had no such effect; nay, that their aversion to
-the faith of Jesus might have been increased by
-having this offensive information plainly and
-nakedly presented to them.</p>
-
-<p>And there will seem to be more weight
-in this conjecture, if we reflect that even to the
-Apostles themselves, till after his resurrection,
-our Lord proceeded with much caution in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">156</span>
-unfolding <i>the mysteries of his kingdom. Then</i>,
-indeed, <i>he opened their understandings<a id="FNanchor_146" href="#Footnote_146" class="fnanchor">[146]</a>; and,
-beginning at Moses and all the prophets, he
-expounded unto them, in all the Scriptures,
-the things concerning himself</i><a id="FNanchor_147" href="#Footnote_147" class="fnanchor">[147]</a>. But before
-that event had taken place, so much light only
-was let in upon the minds of the Disciples, as
-they were <i>able to bear</i><a id="FNanchor_148" href="#Footnote_148" class="fnanchor">[148]</a>: the <i>parables</i> were in
-some measure explained to them; yet a certain
-degree of obscurity was still left on the explanation
-itself.</p>
-
-<p>From which conduct of their great Master,
-apparently assumed by him in consideration of
-their infirmities, it seems reasonable to conclude,
-That his greater reserve towards the
-rest of the Jews, in speaking to them in <i>unexplained</i>
-parables, was, among other reasons,
-therefore chosen by him, because it was best
-adapted to their prejudices, and even gave them
-the fairest chance for apprehending and embracing
-his doctrine. But</p>
-
-<p>3. Thirdly, and lastly, what if we suppose
-(as we have the highest reason to do, after the
-trials, which had been already made of them)<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">157</span>
-that no evidence whatsoever, not the clearest
-possible information, would, under any management,
-have had its due effect on the unbelieving
-Jews? In this view of things, the proposing
-of these mysteries under the impenetrable
-cover of Parables was the greatest of all
-mercies to them, since a further degree of light
-would not only have indisposed them to the reception
-of it, but must have aggravated their
-guilt beyond measure, and have left them
-totally without excuse. To <i>blind their eyes
-and harden their hearts</i> was then a <i>judgment</i>,
-if you will, but surely a judgment in <i>mercy</i>, if
-ever there was any such thing; a punishment
-inflicted upon them in the most tender and
-compassionate manner, which goodness itself
-could contrive, or which their deplorable circumstances
-could admit.</p>
-
-<p>These things being considered, To the
-question, <i>Why did Jesus speak to the unbelieving
-Jews in parables</i>, we may now reply,
-<i>first</i>, That this conduct was reasonable in itself,
-on that general principle of <small>EQUITY</small>, <i>that
-he only, who hath, shall receive more abundantly</i>:
-That, <i>secondly</i>, the <small>JUSTICE</small> of God
-was fitly exercised upon them for their refusing
-to be instructed by him in the way of Parable,
-and by the very medium of Parable, so abused:<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">158</span>
-That still, <i>thirdly</i>, this parabolical method of
-instruction was, in all probability, better adapted
-to their circumstances, and more <small>LIKELY</small>
-to be effectual, than a plainer communication:
-And that, <i>lastly</i>, supposing it <small>CERTAIN</small>
-that no information whatever would have taken
-effect, this obscure and inefficient one of parables
-served, at least, as some excuse for their
-obstinacy, and was contrived, in mercy, to alleviate
-their guilt.</p>
-
-<p>The result of the whole, is, That we are
-hence taught to adore the awful ways of God’s
-providence, in this instance of <i>Christ’s speaking
-in parables</i>; in which both his Justice and
-Goodness are so equally and signally displayed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">159</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XXXIX">SERMON XXXIX.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED NOVEMBER 27, 1774.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Matthew</span> xiii. 58.</h3>
-
-<p><i>And he did not many mighty works there,
-because of their unbelief.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">There</span> were two things, I observed, very
-remarkable in the conduct of our blessed
-Saviour towards the Jews. One was, that
-he chose to instruct the more ignorant and
-uninformed of them, in the obscure way of
-<i>parable</i>: The other, that he wrought but <i>few
-miracles</i> for the conviction of such of them as
-were incredulous and unbelieving.</p>
-
-<p>These two circumstances may be thought
-strange; because the less informed the people<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">160</span>
-were to whom he addressed himself, the more
-need there seems to have been of the <i>plainest
-instruction</i>; and the less disposed they were
-to believe in him, the greater necessity we may
-think there was for subduing their unbelief by
-<i>the force of miracles</i>. Yet the conduct of
-Jesus was not according to these expectations,
-in either instance; and has accordingly furnished
-the occasion of <small>TWO</small> corresponding objections
-to his divine character and mission.</p>
-
-<p>To the <i>former</i> of these objections, that
-which respects his <i>way of speaking by parables</i>,
-I have already replied in a distinct discourse
-on that subject. The <i>latter</i>, which
-respects his <i>way of working miracles</i>, I now
-propose to consider.</p>
-
-<p>The text, you see, points out the subject,
-and confines me to it. Jesus, in discharge of
-his general office, and from a principle, as we
-may suppose, of private affection, <i>went into
-his own country</i>, that is, to Nazareth, where
-he had been brought up, with the intention of
-preaching the Gospel there, and of giving the
-people of that place the proper proofs of his
-authority and mission. Accordingly, the sacred
-historian tells us, <i>he taught them in their
-synagogue</i>; And we know, besides, that he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">161</span>
-wrought some miracles; for the people were
-astonished and said, <i>Whence hath this man
-this</i> <small>WISDOM</small>, and these <small>MIGHTY WORKS</small>?</p>
-
-<p>They were the more astonished, because
-Jesus was no stranger to them; and the rest
-of his family, people of an obscure condition,
-then lived among them. They knew him only
-under the idea of a <i>Carpenter’s Son</i>, and they
-had observed perhaps nothing extraordinary
-him; or, if they had, this very circumstance,
-as is not uncommon among neighbours and
-countrymen, might have infused some jealousy
-and dislike of him. Be that as it will, their
-prejudices against him were extreme, and they
-expressed them in the most contemptuous
-manner. <i>Is not this</i>, say they, <i>the Carpenter’s
-Son? Is not his Mother called
-Mary? and his Brethren, James, and Joses,
-and Simon, and Judas? And his Sisters,
-are they not all with us? Whence then hath
-this man all these things? And they were
-offended in him.</i> To these disparaging questions,
-which easily overpowered the evidence
-of conviction even from their own senses,
-Jesus only replied, <i>A prophet is not without
-honour, save in his own country, and in his
-own house</i>. And then the text follows, which
-says, <i>And he did not many mighty works
-there, because of their unbelief</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">162</span></p>
-
-<p>This is the <small>FACT</small>: And the question upon it,
-is, <i>Why Jesus forebore to work miracles
-among these people, because they did not believe
-in him?</i></p>
-
-<p>Before I reply distinctly to this question,
-permit me to premise <i>two</i> general observations;
-one, on the use of miracles, considered
-in themselves; and the other, on the use of
-miracles, as applied to the Christian dispensation.</p>
-
-<p><i>First</i>, then, I observe, that, a miracle being,
-for the time, an alteration or suspension of the
-laws of nature, our best ideas of the divine attributes
-lead us to conclude, that this violence
-on his own plan of government is only exerted
-for some very important end, and will be exerted
-no farther, nor oftener, than is necessary
-to that end. It is true, it may be difficult for
-us to judge, in many cases, of that importance,
-and of that necessity; but unless both be very
-apparent to us, in no case, can we be authorized
-to require or even expect, a continuance
-or repetition, much less a multiplication of
-these miraculous exertions. To judge otherwise
-on this subject, would be to charge God
-foolishly, and, in effect, to blaspheme his
-wisdom.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">163</span></p>
-
-<p><i>Secondly</i>, I observe, that the use of miracles,
-as applied to the Christian dispensation, is to
-give credit to the character and pretensions of
-Jesus. It is supposed in this argument that
-miracles, duly circumstanced and fully attested,
-are sufficient to this purpose; but there
-is no reason to suppose that more or greater
-will be wrought, than that purpose requires.</p>
-
-<p>These things being premised, to the question,
-<i>Why Jesus did not many miracles, before
-the unbelieving Jews of Nazareth</i>, I
-reply directly by saying</p>
-
-<p>I. In the first place, <i>because such a display
-of his power was not necessary to their conviction</i>.
-I mean not to say at present, that
-more or greater miracles would not have convinced
-them (though it be very unlikely, that
-they would), but that they were not necessary
-to the end proposed by them, which was to
-afford such an attestation to the character of
-Jesus as might be a reasonable and, in itself,
-a sufficient ground of their conviction. More
-than this the Jews had no right to expect.
-And less than this was not offered: For when
-it is said, that Jesus did not <i>many</i> miracles at
-Nazareth, it is implied that he did <i>some</i>; and
-thus much they confess themselves in asking,
-<i>whence hath this man these mighty works?</i></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">164</span></p>
-
-<p>Now <i>some</i> miracles, nay <i>one single</i> miracle,
-seen and confessed as such, was a reasonable
-ground of conviction. More therefore could
-not be esteemed <i>necessary</i>, that is, were not
-required to furnish the fit and proper means of
-such conviction. Without doubt, God, if he
-had been so pleased, might have shattered and
-confounded all the elements, and have driven
-the men of Nazareth, and even the Jewish
-Sanhedrim itself, by the force and terror of his
-almighty power, into an unwilling acknowledgment
-of his Son, Jesus. But this is not
-the way in which he treats his reasonable creatures,
-even when he exceeds the ordinary methods
-of his providence. He does that which
-is simply fit and right, in respect of the end he
-has in view, and leaves the rest to ourselves.
-This, as far as we know, is the universal mode
-of God’s government, and as far as we can
-judge, is the most worthy of him.</p>
-
-<p>Still, it will be said, though Jesus was not
-obliged to do more for the conviction of these
-unbelievers, though more or greater miracles
-could not strictly be required of him, yet so
-limited a display of his power on such an occasion
-seemed penurious, and even unkind.
-A little more zeal, and some supernumerary
-wonders, might have better expressed his concern<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">165</span>
-for his unhappy countrymen. I reply
-then,</p>
-
-<p>II. In the second place, that as more or
-greater miracles were not necessary to the end
-of giving a just proof of his mission, so they
-were most probably not expedient to any other
-good end, but, on the contrary, would have
-been hurtful and pernicious to his unbelieving
-countrymen.</p>
-
-<p>We have reason to conclude thus, if we
-consider that the same prejudices, which obstructed
-their conviction from <i>some</i> confessed
-miracles, would not have given way to <i>more</i>.
-We have an example in the other unbelieving
-Jews, especially in the rulers of that people,
-who, the more and greater miracles they saw
-performed by Jesus, were the more hardened
-in their unbelief, and the more exasperated
-against him. They even give it as a reason
-for their vindictive prosecution of him, that he
-<i>did</i>, and <i>was doing many miracles</i><a id="FNanchor_149" href="#Footnote_149" class="fnanchor">[149]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Taking the matter then in this light, what
-other effect could a waste of miracles have had,
-but to heap guilt and vengeance upon their
-heads? By leaving these perverse people to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">166</span>
-themselves, perhaps their prejudices might
-subside, and they might yield in time to the
-evidence they already had, or they might
-submit to other evidence, which they should
-collect for themselves hereafter. To have irritated
-their prejudices, now, by further miracles,
-might have fixed them absolutely in unbelief.</p>
-
-<p>This conclusion becomes the more probable,
-if we admit the pretensions of Jesus: For
-then he may be supposed to have certainly
-foreseen the present impracticability of converting
-these men, and to have restrained his
-power before them, on that account. But I
-am now arguing with those, who make this
-conduct an objection to his pretensions. I
-offer it therefore as a conclusion only very probable
-from the nature of the thing, that his
-<i>not doing many miracles</i> before his unbelieving
-countrymen, was, among other motives, from
-<i>a principle of mercy and kindness to them</i>.
-At least, the contrary, I think, cannot be affirmed
-with any shew or colour of reason.</p>
-
-<p>But whatever kindness our Lord might
-have for these men, his continuing to work
-more miracles among them, under the present
-circumstances, would have been improper,
-because</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">167</span></p>
-
-<p>III. In the next place (and this is my <i>third</i>
-answer to the objection) <i>this conduct would
-have opposed, and tended directly to defeat,
-the general end and success of his ministry</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The proper <small>END</small> of his ministry was to
-preach salvation to the Jews, and to give them
-such evidence of his being the Messiah, as was
-sufficient to their conviction. When he had
-done this in one place, if no very important
-considerations induced his longer stay, he was
-to proceed to another. This was so essential a
-part of his office, that it seems not to have
-been forgotten, even when there was no peculiar
-complaint of <i>unbelief</i>, in those with whom
-he had resided. For when the people of another
-place, of more <i>faith</i>, as it should seem,
-<i>came to him, and</i> would have <i>stayed him, that
-he should not depart from them</i>, He refused
-to comply with them, and <i>said, I must
-preach the kingdom of God to other cities
-also, for</i> <small>THEREFORE AM I SENT</small><a id="FNanchor_150" href="#Footnote_150" class="fnanchor">[150]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>This then was the end of his ministry. He
-was to preach the word; but was not obliged
-to see that it took effect, or to wait the success
-of it. How repugnant then had it been to this
-end, to waste unnecessary time and power on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">168</span>
-unbelieving Nazareth, when so many other
-cities, and those better disposed, claimed their
-share of each!</p>
-
-<p>But, further, the dispositions of these people
-towards him were such, as seemed likely, not
-only to retard and interrupt, but totally to
-<i>prevent</i> the execution of his ministry. They
-would either have found means, had he continued
-longer with them, to deliver him into the
-hands of the Jewish rulers, or by some act of
-violence would have taken away his life. This
-appears from the rage with which they drove
-him out of their city, and from their purpose,
-as St. Luke relates the story, to <i>cast him down
-headlong from the brow of the hill, whereon
-their city was built</i><a id="FNanchor_151" href="#Footnote_151" class="fnanchor">[151]</a>. So that his attempt to
-convert them by more miracles, might have
-put an untimely end to his ministry, when it
-was now but little more than begun. And,
-though this event might at any time have been
-prevented by an exertion of his miraculous
-power, and without doubt would have been
-prevented in that manner, had the conjuncture
-made it necessary; yet this was no reason for
-his exposing himself to that danger, since, as
-we before observed, miracles are not to be
-expected or employed, where the end in view<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">169</span>
-may be accomplished by human means. Accordingly,
-our Saviour consulted his own safety
-on all occasions during the course of his ministry,
-by every prudential method: And when
-he afterwards armed his disciples with the
-power of working miracles, he prescribed the
-same conduct to them, and, when they found
-themselves <i>persecuted in one city</i>, bade them
-<i>flee to another</i><a id="FNanchor_152" href="#Footnote_152" class="fnanchor">[152]</a>. It is generally thought, indeed,
-that nothing but a miracle rescued him
-out of the hands of the enraged people of Nazareth.
-If so, his danger among them must
-have been extreme, and shews the necessity of
-his removing from them. However, if this last
-miracle was wrought, it was one more added to
-the number of those he had worked in that
-city, and, like all the rest, was lost upon it.
-On the whole, it appears certain then, that the
-<i>unbelief</i> of these Nazarenes was a just reason
-for Christ’s <i>not doing many miracles among
-them</i>, since the opposite conduct would have
-tended <i>to defeat the end and execution of his
-general office</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Still, the most direct and convincing answer
-to the objection is behind: For,</p>
-
-<p>IV. Lastly, I observe that Jesus <i>did not
-many miracles</i> before the unbelieving men of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">170</span>
-Nazareth, <i>because</i> such a display of his power
-would have <i>been contrary to a general rule of
-conduct, which he prescribed to himself, and
-that, on the highest reason</i>.</p>
-
-<p>This rule was, <i>not to work a miracle upon
-them, or for them, who were deficient in
-faith</i>: By which term, <i>faith</i>, I do not mean
-a grounded faith in him, as the Messiah, (for
-that could only be produced originally by miracles)
-but such an honesty and probity of
-mind as might dispose them to believe on the
-evidence of miracles. It was in this case, as in
-that of <i>Parables, to him only who hath, more
-was given</i>. And therefore the first question
-be put to those, who repaired to him for a miraculous
-relief of their necessities, was, <i>Do Ye
-believe?</i> Are ye withheld by no fixed and
-willful prejudices from supposing that one,
-coming to you under the character of the Messiah,
-is empowered to do this for you, or from
-yielding to its evidence, when it is done? This
-was so indispensable a rule with him, that
-St. Mark, in relating this adventure at Nazareth,
-goes so far as to say that he <small>COULD
-NOT DO</small> many mighty works there because of
-their unbelief<a id="FNanchor_153" href="#Footnote_153" class="fnanchor">[153]</a>. The meaning of which is,
-that there was, no <i>natural</i> indeed, but a <i>moral</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">171</span>
-impossibility of his working more miracles
-there; that is, he <i>could not do it</i>, consistently
-with the general principles, on which he
-acted.</p>
-
-<p>And that these principles were founded in
-<i>the best reason</i>, no man can doubt who reflects,
-that the highest possible favour, which
-can be conferred on man, that is, a miracle
-wrought for his salvation, reasonably supposes
-some degree of desert, some prior dispositions
-to profit by it; who reflects farther, that,
-where such a preparation of mind is not,
-the miracle is thrown away; nay, worse than
-that, can only serve to the hurt and condemnation
-of that person, on whom, or for whom it
-is performed.</p>
-
-<p>Men have a strange notion, that when God
-intends to convince any one by the evidence of
-miracles, he should repeat and enforce that
-evidence, till it take effect, whether we will or
-not; nay, that the most obstinate and determined
-infidelity is only a stronger reason for
-his contending with it. But this is a very presumptuous,
-as well as injurious, conception of
-the divine nature: It is presumptuous in the
-highest degree, because it supposes that we
-have a right to prescribe terms to infinite<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">172</span>
-power and wisdom: It is greatly injurious to
-the Supreme Being, because it supposes that
-he has no regard to the moral worth of his
-creatures, or even to any reasonable end, in
-the wonders he does for them. The Scriptures
-represent this matter in another light: they require
-something, where much is given; they
-expect from us to <i>have</i>, before we receive;
-they suppose us in short to be moral agents,
-and not machines. And our Lord himself,
-speaking in the proverbial language of the
-Jews, gives it as a special command to his
-Disciples, <i>Not to cast that which is holy unto
-dogs, not to cast their pearls before swine</i><a id="FNanchor_154" href="#Footnote_154" class="fnanchor">[154]</a>.
-All this is agreeable to our best notions of the
-divine wisdom and goodness, as well as to the
-usual course of God’s providence; and therefore
-on this footing only the conduct of Jesus
-towards the unbelieving Jews of Nazareth is
-abundantly justified.</p>
-
-<p>To draw to a point, then, the substance of
-what has been said. To the question, <i>why
-Jesus did not more miracles, before the unbelieving?</i>
-We reply, That such conduct was
-not necessary to the end of miracles, which
-was to afford a reasonable conviction—that it
-was not likely to answer any good end, but, on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">173</span>
-the contrary, would have been hurtful to such
-unbelievers—that it tended to defeat the design
-and success of Christ’s ministry, by narrowing
-the sphere, of shortening the term of
-it—that, lastly and chiefly, it was unreasonable
-in itself, and contrary to the general
-scheme and order of God’s moral government.</p>
-
-<p>Let no man then abuse himself with foolish
-imaginations, as if Christ was wanting in that
-which became his office and mission; still
-less, as if he acted from any caprice, or unconcern
-for the souls of men, in not forcing
-their belief; but least of all, as if his pretensions
-had any thing to fear from the little faith
-of those to whom he addressed himself, and
-could only prevail with the weak and credulous,
-with those who were unable or indisposed
-to scrutinize his miracles. Even this last
-insinuation has been made, not only without
-grounds, but against the fullest evidence; the
-miracles of Jesus having been numerous, public,
-illustrious, and even acknowledged, at least
-not convicted of imposture, by his bitterest
-enemies, by those who were most active and
-most able to examine into the truth and
-reality of them.</p>
-
-<p>With regard to the miracles in question, let
-us be so ingenuous as to confess, that, if these<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">174</span>
-were necessary to announce his office and character
-to the men of Nazareth, more than
-these were unnecessary, and that their unbelief
-affords the best grounds to conclude, that they
-were so. Consider too, that, if no reasons had
-occurred to us for this conduct, it could not
-certainly appear that it was unreasonable.
-When we know, in fact, what the method of
-God’s dealing with mankind has been, in any
-instance, we may be able perhaps to discern
-good reasons for it. But we can seldom affirm
-with any shew of reason, from any preconceptions
-or general speculations of our own, what
-it should or must be. Here we are manifestly
-out of our depth, and cannot stir a step without
-the hazard of absurdity or impiety.</p>
-
-<p>If we have reason to admit the divine authority
-of our Religion, whatever conduct it
-ascribes to Jesus, must be fit and right, however
-impenetrable to us. If we admit it not,
-our concern is to see that we have reason for
-not admitting it. This matter is to be tried
-by the evidence given of that authority only,
-I mean by the external proofs, and historic
-testimony, on which it rests. When this is
-done, no slight cavils of reason, no fanciful
-suspicions, no plausible objections, nor any
-thing else but the most obvious contradiction<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">175</span>
-in something it asserts to the clearest dictates
-of the human understanding (which no man
-has ever yet found) can possibly shake, or so
-much as affect, that authority.</p>
-
-<p>In the present case, we have seen how entirely
-groundless the objection is to Christ’s
-conduct at Nazareth. But if this objection
-could not have been answered, nothing had
-followed but a conviction of our ignorance.
-It might still be true (as we now see it to be),
-that Jesus acted agreeably to his divine character
-<i>in not doing many miracles</i> before the
-people of Nazareth, <i>because of their unbelief</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">176</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XL">SERMON XL.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MAY 23, 1773.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">2 Cor.</span> iv. 5.</h3>
-
-<p><i>We preach not ourselves, but Christ Jesus the
-Lord.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">We</span> may consider these words, either as an
-<i>admonition</i> to the ministers of the Gospel, <i>To
-preach not themselves, but Christ Jesus the
-Lord</i>; or simply as a <i>fact</i>, which St. Paul
-asserts of himself and the other Apostles, <i>That
-they preached not themselves, but Christ Jesus
-the Lord</i>.</p>
-
-<p>In either sense, the words are instructive;
-but I take them in the latter sense, only. I
-would confirm and illustrate this assumed fact:
-and then employ it as a medium to prove the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">177</span>
-divine authority of the sacred writings. If it
-be true, <i>that the Apostles preached not themselves,
-but Christ Jesus the Lord</i>, it will,
-perhaps, be seen to follow, <i>That therefore
-they preached not from their own private
-suggestions, but by the direction of the spirit
-of God</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The assertion of the Text is, indeed, general,
-and to this effect, “That a number of
-persons, who were employed to convert the
-world to the Religion of Jesus, did, in the
-tenour of their lives and the course of their
-ministry, pay no regard to their own interests
-of any kind, and were only intent on the due
-discharge of their commission.”</p>
-
-<p>But the subject, in that extent, is too large
-for a discourse of this nature. What I would
-offer to your consideration, is <small>ONE SINGLE INSTANCE</small>
-of that indifference which the Apostles
-shewed to their own interests, I mean, <i>Their
-total disregard of human applause in preaching
-the Gospel</i>.</p>
-
-<p>In this restrained sense of the words, men
-may be said <i>to preach themselves</i>, in <small>TWO</small> respects:
-When they shew a solicitude to set
-themselves forth with advantage: 1. as to their
-<small>MORAL</small> character. And 2. as to their <small>INTELLECTUAL</small>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">178</span></p>
-
-<p>I. When men would give an advantageous
-idea of their <i>moral character</i>, they usually express
-this design, either, 1. <i>By representing
-or insinuating their superior worth and virtue</i>:
-Or, 2. <i>By suppressing or palliating what may
-render it suspected</i>: Or, 3. lastly, <i>By dwelling
-on such topics, and in such a manner, as may
-give occasion to others to think well of their
-moral qualities</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Let us try the Apostolic writings by each of
-these marks.</p>
-
-<p>1. The first way that men take to illustrate
-their <i>moral character</i>, is, <i>By representing,
-or insinuating their worth and virtue, on
-all occasions</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Consider those apologists for themselves,
-who have left us memoirs of their own lives.
-You will find, in most of these, an ambitious
-display of those moral virtues, by which they
-desire to be distinguished. They lose no
-opportunity of setting forth the purity of their
-designs, and the integrity of their practice.
-The rest, may do this with less pomp and affectation:
-they may preserve a modesty in the
-language, and a decent reserve in the air and
-cast, of their narration. Still, the same purpose
-is discoverable in all these writers, whether they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">179</span>
-openly proclaim, or nicely suggest and insinuate
-their own importance. When men are actuated
-with a strong desire of appearing in the
-fairest light to others, it unavoidably breaks
-out in some shape or other, and all the indirect
-ways of address cannot conceal it from the intelligent
-observer.</p>
-
-<p>We have a great example in two, the most
-extraordinary persons of the pagan world, I
-mean, <small>XENOPHON</small>, and <small>JULIUS CÆSAR</small>. These
-admired men thought fit to record their own
-acts and atchievements; and have done it with
-that air of neglect and unpretending simplicity,
-which has been the wonder of mankind. Yet,
-through all this apparent indifference, every
-one sees the real drift of these elaborate volumes:
-every one sees, that they are composed in such
-a way as to excite the highest opinion, not of
-their ability in the art of war only, but of the
-justice, generosity, benevolence, in short, the
-moral qualities of their respective authors. It
-evidently appears that they designed to be their
-own panegyrists; though none but such men
-could have executed that design, in so inoffensive
-and successful a manner.</p>
-
-<p>But now, if we turn to the sacred writers, we
-shall find no traces of their <i>preaching themselves</i>,
-in this respect. These plain fishermen<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">180</span>
-tell their story unambitiously, and without art;
-or, if we call it art, it is such an one as Greece
-and Rome had never been able to put in
-practice. No exaggerations of what may be
-thought praise-worthy in themselves: no oblique
-encomiums on their own best qualities or actions:
-no complacent airs in the recital of what may
-reflect honour on their own characters: no
-studied reserve and refinement in the turn and
-language of their history.</p>
-
-<p>If there be any virtue, which we may suppose
-them more than commonly anxious to
-arrogate to themselves, any moral quality, in
-which they would shine out to the observation
-of others, what more likely than an unshaken
-fidelity to their Master? that Master, whom
-they made it their glory, their sole glory, as the
-Text speaks, <i>to preach</i>? Yet they are so far
-from respecting their own credit in this particular,
-that they relate their own infirmities and
-miscarriages; they acknowledge how wavering
-and precarious their <i>faith</i> was; nay, they tell
-us that, in his last distresses, <i>they all forsook
-him, and fled</i><a id="FNanchor_155" href="#Footnote_155" class="fnanchor">[155]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>2. This last circumstance reminds us of the
-next artifice which men employ to set off their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">181</span>
-moral character, <i>that of suppressing or palliating
-whatever may render it suspected</i>.</p>
-
-<p>As accomplished persons, as the great men,
-before mentioned, were, can we doubt that
-many exceptionable steps were taken by them
-in the affairs, they managed: that, on some
-occasions, their prudence failed them, and their
-virtue, on others; that their counsels and
-measures were conducted, at times, with too
-little honesty, or too much passion? Yet, you
-will in vain look for any thing of this sort in
-their large and particular histories. All is candid
-and fair, judicious and well advised: every
-thing speaks the virtuous man, and able commander.
-The obnoxious passages are either
-suppressed, or they are turned in such a way
-as to do honour to their Relaters.</p>
-
-<p>Or, take another instance. When Cicero
-had offended against the capital law of his moral
-code, that, which enjoined the love of his
-country, first, by his backwardness to join the
-camp of Pompey, and, afterwards, by his
-prompt submission to the tyranny of Cæsar,
-What is the conduct of the illustrious Roman
-patriot, on this pressing occasion? Does he
-frankly condemn these false steps, or does he
-content himself with a simple relation of them?<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">182</span>
-Neither of these things: He softens and disguises
-the truth; he employs all his wit and
-eloquence to palliate this inglorious desertion of
-his principles, to himself and others.</p>
-
-<p>I might add many other examples. But ye
-see, in these, a striking contrast to the ingenuity
-of the sacred writers. They study no
-arts of evasion or concealment. They proclaim
-their own faults, and even vices, to all the
-world. One, acknowledges himself to have
-been a furious bigot, a persecutor, and blasphemer<a id="FNanchor_156" href="#Footnote_156" class="fnanchor">[156]</a>:
-Another, relates his own cowardice,
-ingratitude, and treachery<a id="FNanchor_157" href="#Footnote_157" class="fnanchor">[157]</a>. There is nothing
-like a concert between them to cover each
-other’s defects: They expose the vindictive zeal
-of one<a id="FNanchor_158" href="#Footnote_158" class="fnanchor">[158]</a>; the intolerant spirit of others<a id="FNanchor_159" href="#Footnote_159" class="fnanchor">[159]</a>; the
-selfish intrigues of all<a id="FNanchor_160" href="#Footnote_160" class="fnanchor">[160]</a>. In a word, they give
-up their moral character to the scorn and censure
-of their readers, and appear solicitous for
-nothing but the honour of their Master—<i>They
-preach not themselves, but the Lord Jesus
-Christ</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But ye will say, this apparent candour was
-the most consummate art; and that they confessed
-some obnoxious passages in their lives,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">183</span>
-to procure themselves credit in other instances.
-This, no doubt, is sometimes the case
-with artful writers and speakers: But then only,
-when small defects and miscarriages are confessed;
-or, when the facts are too notorious to
-be dissembled; or, if perhaps they confess such
-things of themselves, as are highly blameable,
-and might otherwise have been concealed, they
-do it to gain the praise of a more than ordinary
-frankness and ingenuity, they apparently make
-a matter of vanity, even of that confession<a id="FNanchor_161" href="#Footnote_161" class="fnanchor">[161]</a>.
-The case is much otherwise with the preachers
-of Jesus. They scruple not to tax themselves
-with the most odious vices; and these too,
-many times of such a nature as shews, they
-might well have been kept secret from all the
-world; while yet the discovery is made in such
-a way, that suspicion itself cannot charge them
-with the design of drawing any credit to themselves
-from it.</p>
-
-<p>Hitherto, we have considered how many men may
-contrive to celebrate or insinuate their own
-virtues, to suppress or disguise their own
-vices, in narratives or memorials of their lives;
-and how free the Apostles are from the suspicion
-of doing either. But the same design
-may be prosecuted in writings of another<span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">184</span>
-sort: and we have writings of another sort
-from the hands of the Apostles. I observe
-then</p>
-
-<p>3. That, when writers are studious of their
-own fame, they find means, in any moral or
-historic work, though themselves be not the
-professed subject of it, to do honour to their
-own character, <i>by dwelling on such topics, and
-in such a manner, as may give occasion to
-others to think well of their moral qualities</i>.</p>
-
-<p>They declaim, perhaps, with much heat
-against certain vices, or expatiate with much
-complacency on certain virtues; or, they labour
-some disgraceful portraits of bad men,
-and draw their favoured characters with all the
-heightenings of panegyrick: And who will
-suppose, after this specimen of their zeal, that
-they themselves are not adorned with those
-good qualities, which they so studiously recommend,
-or are not exempt from those bad
-ones, which they so industriously expose? The
-artifice is so common, that we have it played
-upon us every day; and yet so imposing, that
-it constantly succeeds with us. How many
-popular characters does every one call to mind,
-that have no foundation but in this favourable
-prejudice! But let me carry your thoughts<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">185</span>
-back to ancient times, and fix them on far
-higher instances. Who that reads the moral
-prefaces and digressions of the historian <small>SALLUST</small>,
-but must imagine the author to have
-been a model of ancient frugality and austere
-manners? And who that looks into the philosopher
-<small>SENECA</small>, and finds him all on fire in
-celebrating some distinguished characters, and
-exposing some detested ones, but will conclude
-the writer to have been himself accomplished
-in all virtue?</p>
-
-<p>I make no enquiry, at present, into the real
-characters of these illustrious persons: I pass
-no judgment on the real merit of their books.
-Their zeal might be an honest one; and the
-form of their writings might be owing to that
-zeal. But this, I observe, that the form itself
-is well suited to the purpose of those who
-would <i>preach themselves</i>; and that the sacred
-writers have not thought fit to adopt this method.</p>
-
-<p>Their books indeed are full of moral sentences
-and moral precepts (for they are teachers of
-morality by profession); but short, and simple;
-and though earnestly enforced, not ostentatiously
-displayed. The historic part of their
-writings is wonderful for its calmness, I had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">186</span>
-almost said, insensibility. No attempt to colour
-their good or bad characters. Even the
-transcendant virtues of their Master are left to
-be collected rather from the simplest exposition
-of what he said and did, than from any formal
-representation of them: And, what is stranger
-still, his betrayers and murderers are loaded
-with no invective, nor set to scorn in any odious
-lights<a id="FNanchor_162" href="#Footnote_162" class="fnanchor">[162]</a>. These divine men are superior to the
-prejudices even of virtue itself; and have so
-little thought of deriving a vanity from their
-own honest feelings, that we are almost left in
-doubt, whether they were, indeed, actuated by
-them.</p>
-
-<p>II. Thus much for the indifference of the
-sacred writers to their moral character: Let us
-now see whether they are more concerned for
-their <small>INTELLECTUAL</small>.</p>
-
-<p>There are two ways which men take to display
-their mental qualities: 1. <i>By labouring
-to make appear an extraordinary acuteness of
-understanding</i>: And 2. <i>By aiming at the
-praise of extraordinary wit and eloquence</i>.</p>
-
-<p>It is superfluous to observe to you how
-these two characters predominate in all the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">187</span>
-writings and speeches of uninspired men.
-Consider, if there be one exception in all
-those whom the world most approves and admires:
-Consider, if there be not evident symptoms
-of this vanity in every single writer or
-speaker, that has undertaken to instruct or
-reform mankind. I deny not, that many of
-these have been persons of great modesty and
-distinguished virtue: Yet they never lose sight
-of their own mental accomplishments; they
-never forget, under some shape or other, in
-this respect, to <i>preach themselves</i>. Even He,
-who now so freely censures this infirmity in
-others, is, perhaps, at the instant, an example
-of it, himself.</p>
-
-<p>Let us see, then, if <i>the preachers of the
-Gospel</i> have the singular prerogative to stand
-clear of this general imputation.</p>
-
-<p>1. They certainly lay no claim to any superior
-quickness of understanding. On the
-contrary, they relate many circumstances,
-which clearly imply their own dulness and inapprehension.
-They acquaint us with the gross
-mistakes, they were apt to fall into, in their
-conversations with their Master; they are at a
-loss to comprehend his parables, nay to look
-beyond the literal sense of the plainest figures;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">188</span>
-they even record the reproaches which Jesus
-made to them on these occasions.</p>
-
-<p>But this slowness of conception, it will be
-said, was in their early unenlightened state,
-and was, perhaps, affected by them to do honour
-to their subsequent illuminations. Be it
-so. But how do these illuminated men employ
-the divine light, that was imparted to
-them? In advancing curious theories in Morals,
-or in framing subtle Metaphysical systems?
-Do they affect a philosophic depth or accuracy
-in their researches into human nature, or a
-superior penetration in their reasonings about
-spiritual things? Do they shine in paradoxes?
-or strike with quaint aphorisms? Do they entertain
-us with exquisite positions, or remote
-conclusions? Nothing of all this. What they
-teach of moral and divine things, is with the
-air of men, not who make discoveries, but who
-deliver known and familiar truths. They tell
-us many things, which we knew not before:
-But they tell them as matters of divine commission,
-not of their own collection or investigation.
-And, for the rest, they presume not
-to speculate upon them, at all.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, the general subject of their discourses
-was such, as gave no scope to the exercise,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">189</span>
-and afforded no gratification to the pride, of
-Reason. They publish to the world a matter
-of fact, of which they were eye-witnesses;
-they attest the death and resurrection of Jesus,
-and preach remission of sins in his name.
-These were the points <i>they witnessed both to
-small and great; saying none other things
-than those, which they had seen and heard,
-and which the Prophets and Moses did say
-come to pass</i><a id="FNanchor_163" href="#Footnote_163" class="fnanchor">[163]</a>. Is there any thing in
-such a doctrine, as this, that looks like <i>preaching
-themselves</i>? Can it be thought that such
-teachers had an eye to the credit of their own
-abilities, or that they meant to advance the reputation
-of their own understandings above
-that of other men?</p>
-
-<p>2. Still less reason is there to charge this
-ambition on their manner of preaching, or
-to imagine that they sought the fame of ingenuity
-from the terms in which they conveyed
-their instructions to mankind. If the substance
-of their doctrine was plain facts, their
-language was that of plain men. They spake
-not <i>with the enticing words of man’s wisdom</i>;
-scarcely with the ordinary propriety, certainly,
-not with what is called the purity and elegance,
-of their tongue.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">190</span></p>
-
-<p>But the fact is not disputed, rather is objected
-to them by such as question their inspiration
-(with what reason, we shall presently
-see); so that I may fairly conclude, that such
-men could have no purpose to recommend themselves
-by the arts of speaking, or, that, with
-regard to the praise of wit and eloquence, they
-could not possibly mean to <i>preach themselves</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Not let it be said, that this unornamented
-style of preaching was the effect of their ignorance,
-and inability to reach the graces of a
-juster manner. For, besides that it is no new
-thing for men to affect what they have no
-talents for, it is certain that <small>ONE</small> at least of the
-Apostles, He, whose province it was to convert
-the Gentile world, long since enamoured
-of the study of eloquence, and who, of all the
-Apostles, wrote most, it is certain, I say, that
-this great man was not disqualified by a want
-of parts or learning, from pretending to this
-prize of eloquence, if his ambition had condescended
-to it.</p>
-
-<p>III. It appears then, with a reasonable degree
-of evidence, that the writers of the New
-Testament had no regard <i>to themselves</i>, that
-is, to the reputation either of their Moral or
-Intellectual virtues, in composing those books.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">191</span>
-The fact, as singular as it is, seems well established:
-And I draw this interesting conclusion
-from it, <i>That, therefore, they preached, not
-from their own private suggestions, but by the
-direction of the Holy Spirit</i>.</p>
-
-<p>This conclusion follows undeniably from that
-fact. For, if such a number of persons, of
-different tempers, educations, and professions,
-could be so disinterested as to overlook their
-own credit in a point, which all other men
-have so exceedingly at heart, and which no
-other men, nay which no other single man has
-ever been able to give up; and that too, when
-they were teaching a divine religion, and might
-therefore seem to have a decent pretence for
-assuming all sorts of merit to themselves; if
-this, I say, be a certain fact, what can we
-conclude, but that the Spirit of God, to whose
-enlightening influences they ascribed their
-doctrine, over-ruled their natural self-love in
-the manner of preaching it, and that <i>these
-holy men spoke, as they were moved by the Holy
-Ghost</i>?</p>
-
-<p>To return then to the Text, and to conclude.
-<i>We preach not ourselves</i>—said St. Paul, in his
-own name and that of the other Apostles—<i>We
-preach not ourselves, but Christ Jesus<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">192</span>
-the Lord</i>. The writings of these men are still
-extant; and bear the fullest testimony to the
-truth of what they assert. This, then, among
-many others, is an intrinsic character, impressed
-on those writings, of their divine original.
-It may be regarded, as a standing
-miracle, which, as oft as we revolve and consider
-them, speaks aloud, as in a voice from
-Heaven, that the Scriptures, they have left us,
-are the <i>word and work of God</i>.</p>
-
-<p>If their uninspired successors in the ministry
-of the word be unable to copy so bright an
-example of humility and self-denial, forgive
-them this defect, or impute it, if you will, to
-natural vanity and unsubdued self-love. But,
-when ye chance to observe this infirmity in
-others, forget not to say to yourselves, that
-this high privilege of <i>preaching not themselves</i>
-was reserved to the Evangelists and Apostles
-only, to dignify their character; and to excite,
-confirm, and support our faith; in a word, to
-manifest to all the world, in the very frame and
-texture of the sacred Oracles, that they were,
-indeed, dictated by the Spirit of God.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">193</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLI">SERMON XLI.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED DECEMBER 15, 1771.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xi. 5.</h3>
-
-<p><i>The Poor have the Gospel preached unto
-them.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">Many</span> circumstances, attending the Gospel
-of Jesus, are such, as we should not previously
-have expected: Yet, when duly considered,
-they fully approve themselves to our best
-reason.</p>
-
-<p>We have a memorable instance, in the Text.
-Among other marks, by which it pleased our
-blessed Lord to authenticate his mission, one
-was, <i>That the Poor had the Gospel preached<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">194</span>
-unto them. Go</i>, (says he to the disciples of
-John the Baptist, who had sent them to know
-of Jesus, whether he were indeed the Messiah)
-<i>Go, and shew John again those things which
-ye do hear and see: The blind receive their
-sight, and the lame walk, the lepers are
-cleansed, and the deaf hear, the dead are
-raised up, and</i> <small>THE POOR HAVE THE GOSPEL
-PREACHED UNTO THEM</small>.</p>
-
-<p>We are surprized, perhaps, on the first mention
-of these words, to find this last circumstance
-put upon a level with the rest, even with
-that greatest of all miracles, <i>the raising of
-the dead to life</i>. We may not immediately
-apprehend, why the <i>Poor</i> should be thus considered
-by the Saviour of the world; or how
-the truth of his pretensions comes to be concerned
-in this treatment of them. But, upon
-inquiry, we shall find there were some important
-reasons which determined our Lord to
-this conduct, and which made that conduct, in
-a peculiar manner, expressive of his person
-and office.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">First</span>, This character was directly applied
-to the Messiah, in the ancient prophecies. Our
-Lord himself, in the text, quotes the very words
-of Isaiah: So that, <i>in preaching the Gospel to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">195</span>
-the Poor</i>, he fulfilled that prediction, and so
-far corresponded to the character, which the
-word of prophecy had given of the Messiah.</p>
-
-<p>But this circumstance, we may suppose,
-would have been no part of the Messiah’s
-character, but for reasons which made it fit and
-right, that He should be thus distinguished.
-Let us, further, inquire, then,</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Secondly</span>, what those reasons, probably
-were; only premising one word, to ascertain
-the objects, both of the prophecy, and of our
-Lord’s charitable attention.</p>
-
-<p>There is no doubt but the word, <i>poor</i>, in the
-prophecies alledged, and in Christ’s application
-of them, is very capable of being understood in
-a metaphorical or spiritual sense, and was even
-intended to be so understood; I mean, in that
-sense, which our Lord gives to the word, <i>Poor</i>,
-when he says—<i>Blessed are the poor in spirit,
-for theirs is the kingdom of heaven</i><a id="FNanchor_164" href="#Footnote_164" class="fnanchor">[164]</a>. But
-this metaphorical sense does not exclude, it
-rather supposes, the literal. For, who are <i>the
-poor in spirit</i>, for the most part, but <i>the poor
-in fortune</i>? they, whom neither the pride of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">196</span>
-knowledge and education, nor the pride of
-wealth and place, has corrupted with vain ideas
-of their own sufficiency? But, there is a peculiar
-reason for the literal interpretation of the
-Text. For the words, <i>blind</i>, <i>lame</i>, and <i>deaf</i>,
-have, likewise, their metaphorical sense in the
-prophet, as well as the word, <i>poor</i>. Yet our
-Lord alledges the completion of the prophecy,
-in the literal meaning of those words; for he
-refers the messengers of John to what <i>they saw
-and heared</i>; to the miracles, he was then working,
-or had worked, on <i>the blind, lame, and
-deaf</i>, that is, in restoring their bodily senses
-and members<a id="FNanchor_165" href="#Footnote_165" class="fnanchor">[165]</a>. So that, when the poor are
-spoken of by Jesus, at the same time, we must
-needs understand him as speaking of the <i>poor</i>,
-properly so called, that is, of the lower ranks
-of people, whom he was even then instructing,
-as well as healing.</p>
-
-<p>We see, then, That Christ <i>preached the
-Gospel to the poor</i>, in the literal, as well as
-spiritual sense of that word: And, in so doing,
-he both fulfilled the whole extent of the prophecy;
-and, as we shall now find, gave an
-eminent proof of the <small>GOODNESS</small> and <small>WISDOM</small> of
-his own character.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">197</span></p>
-
-<p>For, consider the state of the <i>poor</i>, how
-much they wanted, and how much better, than
-the rich, they deserved, instruction, when our
-Lord, in mercy, came <i>to preach the Gospel to
-them</i>.</p>
-
-<p>I. The condition of the <i>poor</i>, that is, of the
-people at large, was truly deplorable, at that
-time. They were every where treated by their
-superiors with the utmost contempt, and left
-to struggle with an almost invincible ignorance
-and corruption.</p>
-
-<p>The Jews, indeed, had the benefit of a divine
-law: but their Scribes and Doctors <i>had made
-it of none effect, by their traditions</i><a id="FNanchor_166" href="#Footnote_166" class="fnanchor">[166]</a>. They
-had corrupted the word of God, by their fanciful
-cabbalistical glosses; and had debased their
-holy ritual, into a frivolous and sordid superstition.
-They had <i>the key of knowledge</i> in
-their hands; but they neither employed it to
-the purpose of opening the true meaning of the
-Scriptures, themselves, nor would suffer the
-people to make this use of it. In the mean
-time, their pride increased with their other
-vices: they thought themselves <i>wise and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">198</span>
-prudent<a id="FNanchor_167" href="#Footnote_167" class="fnanchor">[167]</a>, and righteous</i><a id="FNanchor_168" href="#Footnote_168" class="fnanchor">[168]</a>; and, in sovereign admiration
-of their own worth and knowledge,
-<i>they despised others</i>. Their insolence to the
-<i>poor</i> was so transcendant, that they reproached
-them for that ignorance, which themselves had
-occasioned; and even checked their endeavours
-to understand the true meaning of their law, in
-terms of the bitterest scorn and execration.
-<i>Have any of the Rulers or Pharisees</i>, said
-they, <i>believed in Jesus? But this people<a id="FNanchor_169" href="#Footnote_169" class="fnanchor">[169]</a>,
-that knoweth not the law, are accursed.</i></p>
-
-<p>Such was the state of the <i>poor</i>, among the
-Jews: and that of the Gentile poor was no
-better. As the former were only insulted, and
-not instructed, by their <small>RABBIS</small>; So the <i>latter</i>
-were just as ill treated by their <small>PHILOSOPHERS</small>.</p>
-
-<p>These men, indeed, <i>professed themselves
-wise</i>; and had, in some respects, a juster claim,
-than the Jewish doctors, to that proud, distinctive
-appellation. Though their reasoning,
-on many subjects (on which, however, they
-valued themselves most) was little better than
-that of the Cabbalists; yet, in moral matters,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">199</span>
-which are of the highest concern to mankind,
-they had been able to trace out some plausible
-and ingenious theories, and had even penetrated
-so far as to apprehend some general and
-fundamental principles of natural religion. Yet
-all this was matter of vanity among them, rather
-than of public use. Their most interesting
-speculations were either confined to their
-schools, or secreted from the common eye, in
-their mysteries. Their moral systems were
-calculated to amuse, to polish, and, we will
-say, to instruct the higher ranks of men; but
-they were composed in such a way, and proceeded
-on such principles, that the vulgar could
-be little benefited by them. And, for what
-they knew of religious truth, they studiously
-kept it from the <i>poor</i>, and left them to the
-tyranny of their senseless, their impure, their
-abominable superstitions. Even Socrates himself,
-though he laboured very commendably to
-reform the lives of his fellow-citizens, yet laboured
-to little effect, as he would not, or
-durst not, disgrace their idolatries, the source
-of all their corruption and misery. The rest
-of these wise men were well contented, at most,
-with being <i>wise to themselves</i>; they stood aloof
-from the prophane vulgar; and contemplated,
-with much complacency, or with much disdain,
-the popular errors.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">200</span></p>
-
-<p>Such, and so wretched were the <i>poor</i>, when
-our blessed Lord came to announce the good
-tidings of salvation to them! Incapable of
-themselves to find out or to understand their
-duty, and misled, neglected, or contemned by
-those who should have been their instructors;
-lost in error and in vice, with no prospect of
-recovering themselves out of either; without
-guides, and without friends; in a word, <i>without
-hope, and without God in the world</i><a id="FNanchor_170" href="#Footnote_170" class="fnanchor">[170]</a>;
-What could equal their wants and their distresses?
-And how loudly did they cry to
-Heaven for some friendly hand to be stretched
-out, some celestial light to be dispensed, to
-them?</p>
-
-<p>But, perhaps, these unhappy men deserved
-not the care of Heaven. And, without doubt,
-if we put their claim on that footing, it will be
-difficult to make out their title to such distinction.
-Yet they had something, too, to plead
-for themselves, something to engage the regards
-of their merciful Creator, if it be true, as I
-observed,</p>
-
-<p>II. In the next place, that their hearts, depraved
-as they were, were yet not so utterly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">201</span>
-perverse, as those of the <i>rich and great and
-wise</i>, who poured such contempt upon them.</p>
-
-<p>And, for our satisfaction in this point, we
-need but look into the Gospel-history; where
-we find, from many facts and testimonies, that
-the poorer sort among the Jews were they who
-gave the best proofs of their disposition to embrace
-the doctrine, and acknowledge the pretensions,
-of Jesus.</p>
-
-<p>When he <i>preached</i> to the Jews, the Scribes
-and Pharisees, that is, the <i>rich and wise</i>, almost
-universally and without exception, cavilled at
-his doctrine, perverted his words, and sought
-occasion only <i>how they might entangle him in
-his talk</i><a id="FNanchor_171" href="#Footnote_171" class="fnanchor">[171]</a>. But the people, giving way to the
-ingenuous sense of their own minds, <i>heared
-him gladly</i><a id="FNanchor_172" href="#Footnote_172" class="fnanchor">[172]</a>: They were even <i>very attentive
-to hear him</i><a id="FNanchor_173" href="#Footnote_173" class="fnanchor">[173]</a>. Nor let it be thought, that the
-love of novelty, or some worse motive, which
-oft seduces the populace in such cases, was the
-cause of this attention. They give another, and
-better reason of it—<i>Never man</i>, say they,
-<i>spake like this man</i><a id="FNanchor_174" href="#Footnote_174" class="fnanchor">[174]</a>: Again, <i>they were
-astonished at his doctrine, for he taught them<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">202</span>
-as one having authority, and not as the
-Scribes</i><a id="FNanchor_175" href="#Footnote_175" class="fnanchor">[175]</a>; That is, they had the sense to perceive
-there was a weight and force and importance
-in his doctrines, which they had never
-found in any other, and, least of all, in the
-light, frothy, and frivolous doctrines of their
-Scribes; and they had the honesty to acknowledge
-and proclaim their own feelings.</p>
-
-<p>Again; When Jesus wrought his miracles
-before the Jews, while their superiors were unconvinced,
-or blasphemed against conviction,
-the multitudes cried out in admiration, <i>Is not
-this the Son of David<a id="FNanchor_176" href="#Footnote_176" class="fnanchor">[176]</a>?</i>—<i>It was never</i>, they
-say, <i>so seen in Israel</i><a id="FNanchor_177" href="#Footnote_177" class="fnanchor">[177]</a>—With a becoming
-candour and piety, <i>they marvelled, and glorified
-God, who had given such power unto
-men</i><a id="FNanchor_178" href="#Footnote_178" class="fnanchor">[178]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Thus much for the Jews. And the same
-difference, between the <i>rich and poor</i>, afterwards
-appeared, when the Apostles turned
-themselves to the Gentiles. So that St. James
-reasons upon it, as a certain fact. <i>Do not rich
-men oppress you, and draw you before the
-Judgment seats? Do they not blaspheme<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">203</span>
-that worthy name by which ye are called<a id="FNanchor_179" href="#Footnote_179" class="fnanchor">[179]</a>?</i>
-And St. Paul to the same purpose, when
-appeals to the Gentile Christians themselves—<i>Ye
-see your calling, my brethren, how that
-not many wise men after the flesh, not many
-mighty, not many noble, are called</i><a id="FNanchor_180" href="#Footnote_180" class="fnanchor">[180]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>And, if we extend our inquiries beyond the
-Apostolic age, we still find, that, while councils
-and synagogues, priests and philosophers, governors
-and kings, were confederated against
-the rising church, the <i>poor</i>, the <i>weak</i>, the <i>ignorant</i>,
-the <i>ignoble</i>, very readily, and in great
-numbers, pressed into it.</p>
-
-<p>Considering then this fairness of mind, which
-distinguished the <i>poor</i>, together with their
-multiplied necessities, we shall cease to think
-it strange that our blessed Lord should first and
-principally <i>preach the Gospel to them</i>; and
-that this circumstance should be predicted of
-him, and urged by himself, as characteristic of
-his person and office. For what could distinguish
-the divine Messiah more, than this
-condescension to those who most needed, and
-best deserved, his instruction? Who can wonder
-that, <i>when he saw the multitudes</i>, thus<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">204</span>
-circumstanced, <i>he was moved with compassion
-on them, because they fainted</i><a id="FNanchor_181" href="#Footnote_181" class="fnanchor">[181]</a>, under the
-merciless vexations of their superiors, <i>and were
-scattered abroad</i><a id="FNanchor_182" href="#Footnote_182" class="fnanchor">[182]</a>, and left exposed to every
-injury, <i>as sheep having no shepherd</i><a id="FNanchor_183" href="#Footnote_183" class="fnanchor">[183]</a>? Could
-any splendor of miracles more illustrate his
-character, than that affectionate address to the
-poor people, groaning under all their burthens,
-of which the pride of wealth and wisdom was
-not the least, <i>Come unto me, ye that labour
-and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest.
-Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me,
-for I am meek and lonely in heart, and ye shall
-find rest to your souls</i><a id="FNanchor_184" href="#Footnote_184" class="fnanchor">[184]</a>?</p>
-
-<p>Our Lord’s whole ministry seems uniformly
-directed to this end of beating down the insolence
-of all worldly distinctions, which had too
-much vilified and degraded human nature.
-For this purpose, he condescended, himself,
-to be born in the lowest rank of life, to be
-brought up in what the world calls a mean and
-mechanic profession, to converse chiefly with
-the poor and indigent, to take for his companions
-and disciples the most sordid of the
-people, and to propagate his religion by the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">205</span>
-weakest and most unpromising instruments:
-<i>Chusing</i>, as St. Paul divinely expresses it, <i>the
-foolish things of the world, to confound the
-wise; the weak things of the world, to confound
-the things that are mighty; And the
-base things of the world, and things which
-are despised, yea, and things which are not,
-to bring to nought things that are: That no
-flesh should glory in his presence</i><a id="FNanchor_185" href="#Footnote_185" class="fnanchor">[185]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>In a word, he seems studiously to have bent
-his whole endeavours, to vindicate the honour
-of depressed humanity; to support its weakness,
-to countenance its wants, to ennoble its misery,
-and to dignify its disgrace.</p>
-
-<p>Nor let any one presume to insinuate, that
-this conduct of our blessed Saviour was directed
-to other ends; As if he sought, by this application
-to the people, to engage <i>them</i> in the
-support of his new kingdom, and then, by
-their noise and numbers, to force the rest into
-it. The suspicion is utterly without grounds.
-Jesus made no factious use of the popularity
-he acquired by his condescension; he discountenanced
-and repressed every effort of that
-nature; and, though his care was chiefly employed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">206</span>
-about the <i>poor</i>, it was not confined to
-them: He <i>preached</i> indiscriminately to all,
-he did his miracles before all, in public, in
-open day-light, in the presence of the greatest
-persons, and in places of the greatest resort;
-in short, his doctrines and his credentials were
-equally offered to the examination of men of
-all ranks and all denominations, of the doctors
-and rulers of the Jewish people, as well as of
-the people themselves. This, an impostor
-most assuredly would not have done.</p>
-
-<p>We have now, then, a reasonable account
-given us, why it pleased God that the Saviour
-of the world should be known by this mark,
-among others, of <i>his preaching the Gospel to
-the poor</i>. The <small>GOODNESS</small> of his character was
-signally illustrated, by this gracious conduct.
-I have only to observe, further, that his <small>WISDOM</small>
-was equally displayed by it: And both
-together must needs furnish a presumptive argument
-of his divine mission.</p>
-
-<p>Had the ablest speculative philosopher been
-consulted about the proper method of reforming
-the world, though with the attending evidence
-and authority of miracles, I suppose his plan
-for effecting this design would have been wholly
-different from that, which was taken. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">207</span>
-would have counselled an application, not to the
-<i>poor</i> chiefly, if to them at all, but to the <i>rich</i>,
-the <i>great</i>, and the <i>wise</i>. The minister of this
-important charge would have been directed to
-shew himself in the most conspicuous scene,
-to make the capital of the world, imperial
-Rome, the head-quarters of his mission, to
-perform his miracles before the Roman senate,
-and to proselyte, first of all, the wise and
-learned of that empire; As conceiving this to
-be the readiest way to the establishment of his
-new Religion, and trusting to the power of
-these great instruments, as to some irresistible
-vortex, to draw the people with them, into
-the general profession of it.</p>
-
-<p>This, or something like this, we may imagine,
-would have been the language of human
-wisdom. But what would have been the event
-of these profound and politic counsels? Most
-probably, the design would not have taken
-effect. The interests, the prejudices, the pride,
-and the very philosophy of the world would
-have revolted against it. The plainest miracles
-would have been shuffled over, as the sleights
-of magick: and the divinest truths, been derided
-as unlearned and ignorant conceits.</p>
-
-<p>But what if the event had been otherwise?
-What, if the new religion had prospered and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">208</span>
-acquired an establishment by these mighty
-means? Posterity would then have turned the
-argument in another manner. They would
-have accounted, and with some reason, for
-this revolution in the sentiments of mankind,
-not from the will of Heaven, but the power
-and policy of men. They would have sought
-the origin of this triumphant religion in the
-operation of human causes, and not in the
-controlling influence of divine. The new system
-might be preferred to many others that
-have prevailed in the world, but would be
-thought to have made its way by the same
-means. It would still be considered, as a mere
-human engine, calculated to serve the ends of
-society, and not to interest the conscience, as
-proceeding from the sole authority of God.
-And what could have been opposed to these
-suggestions? The cause is plainly adequate to
-the effect: And, thus, the glory of God would
-have been obscured; and the dispensation itself,
-exposed to contempt.</p>
-
-<p>See then <i>the riches both of the goodness and
-wisdom of God</i>: Of his <small>GOODNESS</small>, in caring
-for the poor; and of his <small>WISDOM</small>, in providing by
-his use of so unlikely means, <i>that our faith
-should not stand in the wisdom of man, but in
-the power of God</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">209</span></p>
-
-<p>To conclude; <i>the ways of God are</i>, very
-frequently, <i>not our ways</i><a id="FNanchor_186" href="#Footnote_186" class="fnanchor">[186]</a>; Yet, when the
-difference is most striking, a diligent inquiry
-will sometimes convince us (as in the case before
-us) that they may be justified even to our
-apprehensions: The use of which conviction
-should be, to satisfy us, in other cases, that
-his ways are always adorable, even when to US,
-in this state of weakness and blindness, they
-are <i>past finding out</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">210</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLII">SERMON XLII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED JANUARY 24, 1773.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">John</span> xiv. 2.</h3>
-
-<p><i>In my Father’s house are many mansions</i>: <small>IF
-IT WERE NOT SO, I WOULD HAVE TOLD YOU</small>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">These</span> words are not a little remarkable;
-and, if carefully considered, will be found to
-make very much for the honour of the Christian
-religion, and its divine author.</p>
-
-<p>Our blessed Lord was now upon the point of
-leaving the world. He foresaw, distinctly, his
-own approaching death, and the discouragements
-of all sorts, which, of course, would
-oppress his disciples, when he should be taken<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">211</span>
-from them. He therefore applies himself, in
-this farewell address, to animate their courage
-by the assurance of future glory. “<i>Let not your
-heart be troubled</i>, says he, at the worst that
-may befall you: <i>Ye believe in</i> the general providence
-of <i>God</i>: <i>believe also in me</i>, in the
-care which I shall especially take to see an
-ample recompence made you for all your sufferings
-on my account. <i>For in my Father’s
-house are many mansions</i>; wherein each of you,
-according to his deserts, shall for ever enjoy
-an inviolable repose and felicity. And on this
-promise ye may rely with the most entire confidence:
-for know this, That, <i>if it were not
-so</i>, no consideration should have induced me
-to fill your minds with vain hopes; on the
-other hand, <i>I would have told you</i> the plain
-truth, how unwelcome soever it might be to
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>We have here, then, from the mouth of
-Christ himself, an express disavowal of <small>RELIGIOUS
-FRAUD OR IMPOSTURE</small>; and that, in a
-point where wise men have sometimes thought
-themselves at liberty, nay under an obligation,
-to <i>lye</i> for the public service, and in a conjuncture,
-too, when, if ever, it might seem allowable
-for a good man to deceive his friends on a
-mere principle of compassion.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">212</span></p>
-
-<p>For what so beneficial, it may be said, to
-mankind, at large, as the persuasion of a future
-state, in which their happiness shall be proportioned
-to their virtue? And who, that has
-any bowels, would carry his attachment to
-strict truth so far, as not to suffer an unhappy
-friend to <i>die</i>, at least, in this persuasion, when
-the hopes of life, or the comforts of it, had
-entirely forsaken him?</p>
-
-<p>These questions are plausible: but our Lord,
-who was <i>the Truth</i>, as well as <i>the Life</i>, governed
-himself by other maxims. He knew
-that the real interests of mankind are only, or
-are best promoted by veracity; that every degree
-of fraud, though it may have some immediate,
-or temporary good effects, is, in the
-order of things, productive of much mischief;
-is injurious to our moral and reasonable nature,
-which was made for truth, and finds its proper
-satisfaction in it; is liable to detection, to suspicion,
-at least; and if it be but the latter
-(entertained on probable grounds, and become,
-as it soon will be, universal), not only the
-chief benefits of the imposture are, thenceforth,
-lost, but truth itself, in other cases, is taken
-for imposture: of which there is not a more
-deplorable instance, than in the subject we are
-now considering: for, it being well known<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">213</span>
-that men have been forward to deceive each
-other in matters of religion, and particularly
-in what concerns the hope or fear of a future
-state, hence, an incurable suspicion has sunk
-deep into the minds of too many, concerning
-Christianity itself; as if, in this momentous
-doctrine of life and immortality, it amused us
-only, as many other schemes of religion have
-done, with a plausible and politic fiction.</p>
-
-<p>But our blessed Lord, as I said, had other
-views of this matter, and governed himself by
-other principles. He knew, who it was that
-had been <i>a liar</i>, and therefore <i>a man-slayer
-from the beginning</i><a id="FNanchor_187" href="#Footnote_187" class="fnanchor">[187]</a>; and left it to him, the
-adversary of God and man, to signalize himself
-by <i>murderous</i> deceit and imposture. For
-himself, he tells his disciples, whom of all
-men, it concerned him most to possess with
-this salutary belief of a future state; He tells
-them, I say, that, instead of deluding them
-with a groundless hope, he would certainly,
-and even at this season, which made that hope
-so infinitely precious, declare to them the
-simple truth, and on no account permit them
-to continue under a false (if it had been false),
-though flattering persuasion.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">214</span></p>
-
-<p>Shall we believe this great teacher, on his
-own word? Or, will you suspect, that even
-this uncommon declaration, uncommon in the
-founder of a new religion, was only a refinement
-of art and policy; and that Jesus hoped,
-by this shew of frankness, to propagate his
-favourite imposture the more successfully in
-the world?</p>
-
-<p>I know, and have just now observed, to what
-lengths our ingenious suspicions on this subject
-are apt to run. But consider the circumstances;
-and then judge for yourselves, whether
-the suspicion, in this case, be well founded.</p>
-
-<p><i>In my Father’s house</i>, says he, <i>are many
-mansions: if it were not so, I would have told
-you</i>. And can we doubt his sincerity in this
-declaration, when he was now to make an
-experiment of its truth; and the deception, if
-it were one, was first to operate on himself,
-before it affected others? A speculative reasoner,
-or a politic legislator, when planning his system
-at his ease, and in no danger of being called
-upon to make trial of his own principles, might
-discourse with much complacency, though with
-little inward belief, of a happy futurity. But
-for one, who was just stepping into that world,
-of which he announced such wonders, who was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">215</span>
-going, by one confident venture, to put his
-doctrine to the proof, and to expire in torments
-from a view to his own promises; for one, I
-say, thus circumstanced, knowingly to delude
-himself and others, is not in human nature,
-unless perverted by such a degree of weakness
-or vanity, as no man will think chargeable on
-the character of Jesus. Socrates, the ablest and
-the honestest of the ancient sages, had, on
-moral principles, reasoned himself into a
-favourable opinion of the soul’s immortality.
-He had often expressed this opinion to his
-friends, in terms of some force; and there were
-times in which he seemed very little, if at all, to
-question the truth of it. Yet, when he came
-to die, and had taken the fatal cup into his
-hand, his resolution gives way, he hesitates,
-and leaves his followers, after first of all confessing
-himself to be left, in the utmost uncertainty
-on this momentous topic: a conduct
-surely very natural, and becoming a wise man,
-who had not, and who knew he had not, the
-most convincing evidence of its reality!</p>
-
-<p>But there are further reasons to think that
-Jesus was sincere in making this declaration to
-his disciples, suggested to us by <i>the terms of
-his religion</i>, and by <i>his own personal character</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">216</span></p>
-
-<p>Those <i>terms</i> were, that whoever believed in
-the name of Christ, that is, became a convert
-to his religion, was thenceforth to encounter all
-sorts of difficulties, and dangers, and distresses,
-nay, death itself, and that, in every dreadful
-shape, which the malice of the world could
-invent, rather than to retract or forego his open
-profession of it. This, the disciples had been
-often told by their Master: who, whether as a
-prophet, or a wise man (it matters not which,
-to our present purpose) had distinctly foreseen,
-and had set before them in all its force, what
-they were to expect and to suffer for his sake,
-and the sake of the Gospel. Other teachers of
-religion and philosophy required no such terms
-of their followers, or had reason to apprehend
-no such consequences from the propagation of
-their opinions. They might therefore keep
-their doubts to themselves, if they had any,
-of a future state: In Jesus, such reserve, or
-dissimulation, would have been the most unfeeling
-cruelty.</p>
-
-<p>And against whom is this suspicion indulged?
-Why against <small>HIM</small> (and that was the other consideration
-I mentioned) whose personal character
-was that of goodness and philanthropy itself.
-This character shines out in every page of the
-Gospel. We see it in all he said and did to his
-disciples, whom he calls his <i>friends</i>, and treats<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">217</span>
-as such on all occasions: witness his condescension
-to their infirmities, his concern for their
-safety (while it might consist with their duty),
-his compassion for their sufferings, his friendliness
-of temper, we may even say, his affection
-for their persons and virtues. In short, the
-sympathetic tenderness of his nature was
-evidenced in all ways, in which it could possibly
-shew itself, even by that of tears.</p>
-
-<p>Now, put these two things together, his <i>deep
-concern for the interests of his disciples</i>, on the
-one hand, and <i>the severe injunctions he gave
-them</i>, on the other, and see if there be any
-possibility of mistrusting our Lord’s good faith
-in that memorable declaration—<i>In my Father’s
-house there are many mansions</i>: <small>IF IT WERE
-NOT SO, I WOULD HAVE TOLD YOU</small>.</p>
-
-<p>His language on the subject, so interesting
-to them, had, indeed, been always the same.
-<i>Blessed are ye, when men shall revile you,
-and persecute you, and shall say all manner of
-evil against you falsely, for my sake. Rejoyce,
-and be exceeding glad: for great is your
-reward in heaven<a id="FNanchor_188" href="#Footnote_188" class="fnanchor">[188]</a>.</i> This he said in the beginning
-of his ministry: This he now repeats in
-the close of it; but with that remarkable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">218</span>
-assurance (now for the first time given, and,
-from the <i>time</i> of giving it, not more important,
-than it is credible) <i>if it were not so</i>, if your
-<i>reward in heaven</i> were not such, and so great,
-as I have ever affirmed it to be, in recompence
-of all your sufferings, past and to come, for my
-sake, I would not have left you under an error
-in what so infinitely concerns You—<i>I would</i>
-expressly <i>have told you of it</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The use</span> we have to make of these reflections
-is, to see what our <i>Lord’s character</i> truly was;
-and what our reasonable <i>hopes and expectations</i>
-from him are.</p>
-
-<p>I. But for this declaration, it might be
-thought, that Jesus, pushed on by an eager ambition
-of being the founder of a sect, had, for
-his <i>own</i> ends, preached up this alluring doctrine
-of a future state; or, that, heated by a moral
-enthusiasm, he had overlooked the mischiefs
-of his scheme, in contemplation of the <i>public</i>
-ends, it might serve, as applied to the important
-interests of virtue and religion. Surmises of
-this sort might have sprung up in the minds of
-men, not prejudiced against the author of our
-faith; and would certainly have been cherished
-and malignantly insisted upon by his enemies.
-But it now appears, that he disclaimed all such
-views and purposes: that he was cool enough<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">219</span>
-to see the iniquity of all religious deception;
-and just enough to acknowledge the cruelty of
-it, in the present instance. If he had not
-certainly known the truth of his doctrine, he
-would have recalled and disowned it. He felt,
-in his own case, what it was to encounter death
-for conscience-sake: and he knew what deaths
-others were to encounter on the like grounds of
-persuasion. But <i>for the joy that was set before
-him</i>, how could the shame and agony of that
-cross be endured? And, if there be no recompence
-of reward, should he expose to such, or
-to equal sufferings, his honest, unsuspecting,
-affectionate followers? The instant moment<a id="FNanchor_189" href="#Footnote_189" class="fnanchor">[189]</a>,
-the imposed duty<a id="FNanchor_190" href="#Footnote_190" class="fnanchor">[190]</a>, the foreseen event<a id="FNanchor_191" href="#Footnote_191" class="fnanchor">[191]</a>, the
-upright mind<a id="FNanchor_192" href="#Footnote_192" class="fnanchor">[192]</a>, the feeling heart<a id="FNanchor_193" href="#Footnote_193" class="fnanchor">[193]</a>, all conspire
-to satisfy us, that Jesus was not, could not,
-be the fraudulent, that is, the insensible, the
-unrelenting, the merciless inventor or publisher
-of a politic fable, but a teacher of truth
-and righteousness sent from God.</p>
-
-<p>Thus much for our Lord’s <i>general character</i>;
-which we shall do well to keep in mind,
-when we meditate on any part of his instructions<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">220</span>
-to us; but more especially, when, for
-our singular comfort, we attend to his great
-doctrine of a <small>BLESSED IMMORTALITY</small>. Our
-divine Master has in the clearest and fullest
-terms, announced this doctrine to us; and,
-what is more, he has anxiously removed the
-only possible doubt, which we could have of
-its truth, by disclaiming the politic use, which
-too many others had presumed to make of it.</p>
-
-<p>II. It follows, that we may rely, with confidence,
-on this invaluable promise of a future
-life; the only source of peace and comfort to
-the mind, without which the disordered scene
-of this life is inexplicable to the wisest men,
-and scarce supportable by the happiest; we
-may, I say, rely with safety on this <i>glorious
-hope</i><a id="FNanchor_194" href="#Footnote_194" class="fnanchor">[194]</a> of immortality, unless we will suppose
-that Jesus meant to deceive us even then, when
-he most deliberately and solemnly pledged
-himself to us for his veracity: a supposition,
-which is, in truth, as foolish as it is indecent.</p>
-
-<p>Assured therefore, as we are, that our Saviour
-both taught this doctrine, and taught it
-without the least mixture of guile or dissimulation,
-let us hold fast our expectation of it to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">221</span>
-the end; and in all the troubles of this life,
-whether endured for conscience-sake or not,
-provided only they be such as consist <i>with</i> a
-good conscience, let us reckon with certainty
-on our title to one of those eternal <i>mansions</i>,
-of which there are so <i>many in the house of our
-heavenly Father</i>; and that, for the sake and
-through the merits of our <small>LORD JESUS CHRIST</small>;
-the author of our salvation, as well as the proclaimer
-of it: our merciful Redeemer, at once,
-and infallible Instructor; to whom be all honour,
-praise, and thanksgiving, now and for ever. Amen.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">222</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLIII">SERMON XLIII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MAY 5, 1776.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">John</span> xvi. 12, 13.</h3>
-
-<p><i>I have yet many things to say unto you, but
-ye cannot bear them now. Howbeit, when
-he, the Spirit of truth, shall come, he will
-guide you into</i> <small>ALL TRUTH</small>: <i>for he shall not
-speak of himself; but whatsoever he shall
-hear, that shall he speak: and</i> <small>HE WILL
-SHEW YOU THINGS TO COME</small>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">There</span> is scarce a page in the Gospels,
-which to an attentive reader may not afford a
-striking proof of their divine original.</p>
-
-<p>We have an instance in the words before
-us: in which, Jesus, now about to leave the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">223</span>
-world, tells the disciples, that he had <i>many
-things to say unto them</i>, which were not proper
-for their ear at this time, but that these,
-and all other necessary truths should hereafter
-be imparted to them by a <i>divine spirit</i>, to be
-sent from heaven to be their guide and instructor:
-that, from <i>him</i>, they should learn
-what, for the present, he forbore to communicate
-to them, of his views and purposes in the
-religion, they were to teach mankind; nay,
-and that this divine <i>Spirit of truth would
-shew them things to come</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Now Jesus, I suppose, whatever else may
-be thought of him, will be readily acknowledged
-to have been, at least, a discreet and
-wise man: for without a very high degree of
-discretion and wisdom, it was plainly impossible
-for him to do the great things, he did; I
-mean, to be so successful, as he was, in imposing
-a new faith and religion on mankind.
-They, who take Christianity for an imposture,
-must confess, at least, that it was an imposture,
-artfully contrived, and ably conducted:
-otherwise, the effects of it could never have
-been, what we see they are.</p>
-
-<p>But would any man, acting on the principles
-of human wisdom, only, have given an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">224</span>
-assurance of this kind (an assurance, too, that
-seemed not <i>necessary</i>) to those whom he
-thought fit to entrust with the care of his imposture,
-when yet he must certainly know that
-he could not make good to them what he had
-promised; and when they, to whom such assurance
-was given, might easily, and, as he
-must foresee from his knowledge of human
-nature, would certainly abuse it, to selfish
-ends of their own, not consistent with his,
-and to the hurt of that very cause, which he
-wanted to promote?</p>
-
-<p>Say, that he had, only, told them—<i>this divine
-spirit shall instruct you in many things
-concerning my religion, which I have not,
-myself, thought fit to reveal to you</i>—would
-not this general promise have opened a door
-to all sorts of fraud, or extravagance? And
-could he reasonably expect that any well-concerted
-scheme of religion, such as was likely
-to make its fortune in the world, would be
-delivered and established by men, who were
-commissioned to enlarge his system, at pleasure,
-and as their various passions, or fancies,
-might suggest? And all this, on the same
-authority with that which he had claimed to
-himself?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">225</span></p>
-
-<p>Suppose, they were <i>honest</i>, or, <i>faithful to
-him</i>, that is, disposed to teach nothing but
-what should agree to their Master’s doctrine,
-yet who could answer for their skill or judgment?
-And, if they were <i>dishonest</i>, or <i>unfaithful</i>,
-what ruin must not this license of
-building on his doctrine, have brought on the
-structure, he had already raised?</p>
-
-<p>When Mark Antony was allowed to <i>forge</i> a
-will for Cæsar, we know the use he made of
-that liberty. But had he been a better man,
-than he was, and inclined to give out that only
-for Cæsar’s will, which might probably seem
-to be so, yet his capacity to make a will for
-Cæsar, in all respects uniform, and consistent
-with that great man’s known views and character,
-might well be called in question, notwithstanding
-the whole contrivance depended
-on himself; much more, if the arduous task
-had been entrusted to <i>eleven</i> persons, besides,
-of different abilities and dispositions.</p>
-
-<p>Still, the case is more desperate, than we
-have hitherto supposed. Besides a liberty of
-adding what new consistent doctrines, they
-pleased, to the doctrine of Jesus, the disciples
-have a greater and more dangerous power
-committed to them, a power of <i>prophesying</i>,
-or foretelling <i>things to come</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">226</span></p>
-
-<p>To see how the case stands on this last supposition,
-consider, 1. <i>What is implied in this</i>
-<small>PROPHETIC</small> <i>power</i>. 2. <i>What abuses are likely
-to be made of such an assumed power by</i> <small>ANY</small>
-<i>men whatsoever</i>. And, 3. <i>What peculiar
-abuses of it were to be expected from</i> <small>SUCH</small>
-<i>men, as the disciples</i>. Consider, I say, these
-three particulars, and then, upon the whole,
-determine for yourselves, whether any man of
-ordinary prudence would have commissioned
-his followers to exercise such a power; or, if
-he had done so, and had been an impostor,
-whether the event could possibly have been
-what it clearly was.</p>
-
-<p>1. The <i>prophetic power</i>, implies an ability
-of looking into the future history of mankind;
-of foreseeing what revolutions shall happen in
-states and kingdoms; what shall be the issue
-of depending wars, or counsels: what the prosperous,
-or adverse fortune shall be of public,
-or private persons; of those, who have any
-authority over us, or connexion with us; of
-individuals, or collective bodies of men; of
-friends, or enemies. Whoever has this extraordinary
-power committed to him, or who
-thinks he has, has the characters of all men
-at his mercy; can blast the reputation of, the
-wisest and best men, by a charge of follies and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">227</span>
-crimes, <i>not yet committed</i>; or can raise the
-credit of the worst and weakest, by covering
-their <i>future</i> life with wisdom and honour.
-He can intimidate the greatest men by announcing
-their disgrace and ruin; or exalt
-the meanest by bringing out to view their
-successes and triumphs. In a word, he can
-speak peace or war, fame or infamy, life or
-death, to any state or person, against whom
-he thinks fit to level this powerful engine of
-inspiration.</p>
-
-<p>And as all men, so all <i>times</i>, are equally
-within his reach. He can pursue the objects
-of his love or hate through ages to come; and
-can excite hopes and fears in the breasts of
-those, who are not to appear on the stage of
-the world, till many centuries after he has left
-it, and when himself has nothing to apprehend,
-let his predictions take what turn they will,
-from the shame of detection.</p>
-
-<p>Such then being the nature of this mighty
-privilege to foretell <i>things to come</i>, you cannot
-but see</p>
-
-<p>2. In the next place, <i>how liable this power
-is to be abused by</i> <small>ANY</small> <i>men whatsoever, who
-have a pretence to assume it</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">228</span></p>
-
-<p>Make, if you will, the most favourable supposition,
-that these pretended prophets are
-<i>able and learned</i>: But then, what endless
-schemes of fraud, of policy, of imposture, may
-ye not expect from the dextrous management
-of this faculty! Revolve with yourselves the
-history of ancient divination, or modern prophecy,
-when lodged in the hands of artful and
-designing men; and see, what portentous
-abuses must needs arise from this commission,
-and yet what certain disgrace and confusion to
-the memory of those, to whom it is given.</p>
-
-<p>What blessings will not men, entrusted with
-this convenient foresight of futurity, lavish on
-their own friends, or party! And what curses,
-what terrors, equally belied in the event, will
-they not scatter over the persons or affairs of
-rivals and enemies, for the gratification of a
-present passion or interest!</p>
-
-<p>Suppose them cool enough to distrust the
-reality of their inspiration, yet the temptation,
-to make the pretence of it subservient to their
-own views, would be almost irresistible: Or
-suppose them, on the other hand, to prophesy
-with good faith, this genuine enthusiasm might
-enable them to act their part more naturally
-indeed, but, in the end, not more successfully.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">229</span></p>
-
-<p>Had then the Apostles been, each of them,
-as provident and wise, as their Master himself,
-and as much persuaded of their own inspiration,
-as he could desire them to be, they would
-not, we may be sure, have been encouraged by
-him, if an impostor only, to think themselves
-possessed of a prophetic power, when it must
-have turned to the ruin of his cause, on every
-supposition; I mean, equally on the supposition
-of its being regarded as a real or pretended,
-power; that is, whether the Apostles
-were guided by the views of a dishonest policy
-themselves, or were the honest dupes of their
-Master’s policy. But there is</p>
-
-<p>3. Still more to be said on the improbability
-of a wise man’s giving such an assurance to
-men <i>qualified and circumstanced</i>, as the Apostles
-were, in other words, <i>to men of their</i>
-<small>PECULIAR</small> <i>character and situation</i>.</p>
-
-<p>1. The <i>character</i> of the Apostles, was that
-of plain, uneducated, illiterate men; men,
-totally unacquainted with the world, and with
-those arts, which are necessary to conduct a
-great design with ability and success; men, of
-good sense, indeed, and of honest minds, but,
-from their singular simplicity, only qualified to
-report what they had seen or heared, and by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">230</span>
-no means provident or skillful enough to round
-and complete a scheme, but half-disclosed by
-its author, and that half delivered incidentally
-and by parcels to them, and ill understood.</p>
-
-<p>Yet to these men, Jesus declares, that much
-was wanting to the integrity of that religious
-system, which they were appointed to teach:
-and that all defects in it were to be supplied
-not by himself, but by a <i>divine spirit</i>, who
-should hereafter descend upon them, and <small>LEAD
-THEM INTO ALL THE TRUTH</small><a id="FNanchor_195" href="#Footnote_195" class="fnanchor">[195]</a>; nay, who should
-not only instruct them in such parts of his
-religion, as he had imperfectly, not at all,
-explained, but should, further, open to their
-view I know not what scenes of futurity, and
-<small>SHEW THEM THINGS TO COME</small>.</p>
-
-<p>These magnificent promises, you see, were
-likely to make a deep impression on the rude
-minds of the disciples; half-astonished, we
-may suppose, at the idea of such superior privileges,
-and more than half-intoxicated with
-the conceit of that pre-eminence, which those
-privileges were to bestow.</p>
-
-<p>Their implicit faith, too in a beloved and
-revered Master, would incline them to expect,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">231</span>
-with assurance, the completion of these promises:
-And thus, every principle, whether of
-simplicity, vanity, or credulity, would make
-their presumption violent, and leave it without
-controul.</p>
-
-<p>2. If we turn, next, to the <i>situation</i> of these
-men, buoyed up with such exalted hopes and
-expectations, we shall find it apt to create a fanaticism,
-which, of itself, might drive them,
-in the absence of their politic Master, into
-any excess. These simple, over-weening men
-were, at the same time, poor, friendless, despised,
-insulted, persecuted; exposed to every
-injury from the number, power, and malice of
-their enemies, as Jesus indeed, had honestly
-forewarned them; yet stung with the desire of
-founding a temporal kingdom (contrary, it
-must be owned, to his express declaration) and
-of rising themselves to the first honours of it.
-Could any thing flatter their ambition more,
-than to be told that they had the modelling of
-their own scheme left to themselves, under the
-cover of a supernatural direction? Or, could
-any thing gratify their resentments, all on fire
-from ill usage, more effectually, than to be assured
-that the fates of their adversaries, all the
-secrets of futurity, lay open to their view?
-How oft has oppression turned faith into fanaticism,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">232</span>
-and made prophets of those, whom it
-only found zealots! And do we think that secular
-ambition, concurring with religious zeal,
-in the like circumstances, could have any other
-issue; especially, when the prophetic impulse
-was looked for by such zealots, and, on the
-highest authority, actually engaged to them?
-Or can we, who see the probability, the certainty,
-of this consequence, conceive so meanly
-of Jesus, considered in the view of a wise man
-only, as to imagine that He should not be
-aware of it?</p>
-
-<p>As then it is very unlikely that any politic
-impostor should make such a promise, as the
-text contains, a promise liable to be abused by
-<i>any</i> sort of men, and most of all by <i>those</i>, to
-whom it was made; so neither is it conceivable
-that, if a rash enthusiast had authorized his
-followers to rely on such a promise, the issue
-of it could have been that, which we certainly
-know it to have been.</p>
-
-<p>For consider, what were the additions, made
-to the scheme of Jesus by his enlightened followers,
-and what the prophecies delivered by
-them? Only, such additions, as served to open
-and display the scheme of the Gospel, in a
-manner that perfectly corresponded with the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">233</span>
-declared views of its author, or at least no way
-contradicted them: And only, such prophecies,
-as have either been clearly fulfilled, or not convicted
-of imposture, to this day.</p>
-
-<p>Then, again, those additions, were directly
-contrary to the preconceived notions and expectations,
-of those who made them; such, for
-instance, as the doctrines concerning <i>the rejection
-of the Jews</i>, <i>the call of the Gentiles</i>,
-<i>the abolition of the Mosaic ritual</i>, and <i>the
-spirituality of Christ’s kingdom</i>; doctrines,
-which, in the life-time of their Master, and till
-enlightened by the promised Spirit of truth,
-they had either not understood, or had rejected
-as false and incredible; yet doctrines, which
-made the principal part of those <i>truths</i>, into
-which they were <i>led by the Spirit</i>.</p>
-
-<p>And as to the prophecies, delivered by them,
-what less could one expect from so general,
-and so flattering a promise, than that they
-should be <i>numerous</i>, and, at the same time,
-replete with <i>presages of good fortune</i> to
-themselves and their party, and with <i>terrible
-denunciations of wrath</i> against their opposers?
-Yet nothing of all this followed. The predictions,
-they gave out, were indeed so many
-as to shew that the promise was performed to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">234</span>
-them; yet, on the whole, but <i>few</i>; in truth,
-much fewer than can be imagined without a
-particular inquiry into the number of them:
-And of these few, the greater part were employed
-in declaring the corruptions, that
-should hereafter be made of the new religion,
-they were teaching, and the disasters that
-should befall the teachers of it; and scarce
-<i>one</i>, directed against their present and personal
-enemies.</p>
-
-<p>All this is astonishing, and unaccountable
-an the common principles of human nature,
-if left to itself in the management of such a
-faculty as that of prophetic inspiration. And,
-though, on these principles, it was to be supposed,
-nay, might certainly have been concluded,
-that a set of the craftiest impostors, or
-of the honestest fanatics, that ever lived, must,
-in the end, dishonour themselves by the exercise
-of such a power, and defeat their own
-purpose; yet, to the surprize of all reflecting
-men, they have maintained, to this day, their
-character of veracity, not one of their prophecies
-having fallen to the ground; and, what is
-more, with so many chances against the success
-of their cause, they have triumphed over
-all opposition, and have established in the
-world a new religion with that force of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">235</span>
-evidence, which, as their Master divinely foretold,
-<i>all their adversaries have not been able
-to gainsay</i>.</p>
-
-<p>In a word, the <small>EVENT</small> has been, and is such,
-as might be expected, if the divine assistance
-promised, was actually imparted to them; but
-improbable in the highest degree, or rather
-impossible to have taken place, if fraud, or
-enthusiasm, had been concerned, either in
-giving, or fulfilling, this promise.</p>
-
-<p>It would be equally an abuse of your patience,
-and an affront to your good sense, to
-enlarge farther on so plain a point. From recollecting,
-and laying together, the circumstances,
-which have been now briefly touched,
-and pointed out to you, ye will conclude,
-That, when Jesus gave this extraordinary <i>promise</i>
-of the Spirit to his followers, he certainly
-knew, that he should be able to make good his
-engagements to them: And that this <i>spirit</i>,
-being of God, would not be at the command
-of his followers, to be employed by them, as
-their passions, or short-sighted policies, might
-direct; but would operate in them, according
-to the good pleasure and unerring wisdom of
-<small>HIM</small>, who sent this celestial guide; or, in the
-words of the text, <i>that he should not speak of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">236</span>
-himself, but whatsoever he should hear, that</i>,
-only, <i>he should speak</i>.</p>
-
-<p>No ill effects would, then, proceed from the
-privilege of being let into <i>new truths</i>, or, of
-being entrusted with the power of foretelling
-<i>things to come</i>. And, from the very consideration,
-that Jesus had <i>engaged</i> to confer such
-privileges upon his disciples, who, if not over-ruled
-in the use of them, that is, if not truly
-and immediately inspired, would, or rather
-must, have employed them to the discredit
-and subversion of his own design; from this
-single consideration, I say, it may fairly be
-concluded, especially when we can now compare
-the assurance with the event, That He
-himself was the person, he assumed to be, that
-is, <small>A DIVINE PERSON</small>; and his religion, what
-we believe it to be, <small>THE WORD AND WILL OF
-GOD</small>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">237</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLIV">SERMON XLIV.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MAY 29, 1774. T. S.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Acts</span> i. 11.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up
-into heaven? This same Jesus, which is
-taken up from you, shall so come, in like
-manner as ye have seen him go into heaven.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">As</span> the entrance of Jesus into the world, so
-his departure out of it, was graced, by the
-ministry of angels. Events, so important as
-these, deserved, and, it seems, required, to
-be so dignified. His birth was, indeed, obscure
-and mean; and therefore the attendance
-of those <i>flaming ministers</i> might be thought
-necessary to illustrate and adorn it. But his
-ascension into heaven was an event so full of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">238</span>
-glory, that it needed not, we may think, any
-additional lustre to be thrown upon it by this
-celestial appearance. For what so likely to
-raise the ideas and excite the admiration of
-those, who were witnesses of this event, as the
-fact itself, so sublimely and yet so simply related
-in these words of the sacred historian—<i>while
-they beheld, he was taken up, and a cloud
-received him out of their sight</i>?</p>
-
-<p>We may presume, then, that the heavenly
-host were not sent merely to dignify this transaction,
-in its own nature so transcendently
-awful; but for some further purpose of divine
-Providence. And we find that purpose expressed
-very plainly in the words of the text;
-which contain an admonition of great importance,
-and direct the attention of the disciples
-to the true end, for which this scene of
-wonder was displayed before them. For <i>while
-they looked stedfastly toward heaven, as he
-went up, two men stood by them in white apparel;
-which, also, said, Ye men of Galilee,
-why stand ye gazing up into heaven? This
-same Jesus which is taken up from you into
-heaven, shall so come, in like manner as ye
-have seen him go into heaven.</i></p>
-
-<p>The Apostles, we may suppose, were only
-occupied with the splendor of the shew; or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">239</span>
-they were wholly absorbed in the contemplation
-of its miraculous nature; or they were
-speculating, perhaps, on the circumstances of
-it. They were asking themselves, as they gazed
-(at least, if they had possessed the philosophic
-spirit of our days, they might be tempted to
-ask), how the natural gravity of a human body
-could permit its ascent in so light a medium—how
-a cloud, which is but a sheet of air, impregnated
-with vapours, and made visible by
-reflected light, could be a fit vehicle of a gross
-and ponderous substance, and serve for the
-conveyance of it into the purer regions of æther,
-which we call <i>heaven</i>—or, what need indeed
-there was, that Jesus should be carried up
-thither; as if the God, to whom he ascended,
-were not in every place, alike; as if there were
-any such distinction, as high and low, with
-regard to him; as if all space were not equally
-inhabited by an infinite spirit; and as if his
-throne were not in the depths beneath, as well
-as the heights above, every where, in short,
-without respect to our descriptions of place,
-where himself existed.</p>
-
-<p>From such a state of mind, or from such
-meditations as these, the Angels divert the
-Apostles, and call off they attention to a point,
-which deserved it better, and concerned them<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">240</span>
-more nearly. ’Tis, as if they had said, “Suspend
-your admiration of this glorious spectacle;
-suppress all your fond and useless speculations
-about the causes of this event, and learn
-from us the proper uses of it. Ye have seen
-your Master thus visibly carried up from you
-into heaven; by what means, ye need not
-know, and may well forbear to inquire. But
-this intelligence receive from us (and it much
-imports you to be made acquainted with it);
-this same Jesus, who is thus gone up from you
-for a time into heaven, will come again with
-the same, or even additional glory, to judge
-the world in righteousness; to see what improvements
-ye have made of all he has done
-and suffered for you; and to fix your final
-doom according to your respective deserts, or
-miscarriages. Think well of this instruction,
-which so naturally results from all he said
-while he was with you on earth, and from what
-has now passed before your eyes; drop all
-your other inquiries, and resolve them into
-this, above all, deserving your best attention,
-how ye may prepare yourselves for that day,
-when <i>he shall so come, in like manner as ye
-have seen him go into heaven</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>The weight of this angelic admonition was
-enough to put all curious imaginations to flight,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">241</span>
-and to convince the Apostles then, and all
-believers at this day, “That their true wisdom
-consists in adverting to the moral and practical
-uses of their religion, instead of indulging
-subtle, anxious, and unprofitable speculations
-concerning the articles of it; such especially as
-are too high, or too arduous for them; such,
-as they have no real interest in considering, and
-have no faculties to comprehend.”</p>
-
-<p>Permit me then to enforce this conclusion,
-by applying it to the case of such persons, and
-especially of such Christians, as have been, at
-all times, but too ready to sacrifice conduct to
-speculation; to neglect the ends of religious
-doctrines, while they busy themselves in nice
-and fruitless and (therefore, if for no other
-reason) pernicious inquiries into the grounds
-and reasons of them.</p>
-
-<p>1. In the days of ancient paganism, two
-points in which religion was concerned, chiefly
-engaged the attention of their wise men; “<small>GOD</small>,”
-and the “<small>HUMAN SOUL</small>:” interesting topics
-both; and the more necessary to be well considered,
-because those wise men had little or
-no light on these subjects, but what their own
-reason might be able to strike out for them.
-And, had they been contented to derive, from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">242</span>
-the study of God’s works, <i>all that may be
-known of him</i>, by natural reason, <i>his eternal
-power and Godhead</i>, and had then glorified
-him with such a worship, as that knowledge
-obviously suggested; or, had they, by adverting
-to their own internal constitution, deduced
-the spirituality of the soul, together with its
-free, moral, and accountable nature, and then
-had built on these principles, the expectation
-of a future life, and a conduct in this, suitable
-to such expectation; had they proceeded thus
-far in their inquiries, and stopped here, who
-could have blamed, or, rather, who would not
-have been ready to applaud, their interesting
-speculations. But, when, instead of this reasonable
-use of their understandings in religious
-matters, they were more curious to investigate
-the essence of the infinite mind, than to establish
-just notions of his moral attributes; and
-to define the nature of the human soul, than to
-study its moral faculties; their metaphysicks
-became presumptuous and abominable: they
-reasoned themselves out of a superintending
-providence, in this world, and out of all hope,
-in a future; they resolved God into fate, or
-excluded him from the care of his own creation,
-and so made the worship of him, a matter of
-policy, and not of conscience; while, at the
-same time, they dismissed the Soul into air, or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">243</span>
-into the spirit of the world, either extinguishing
-its substance, or stripping it of individual
-consciousness; and so, in either way, set aside
-the concern, which it might be supposed to
-have in a future state, to the subversion of all
-morality, as well as of religion.</p>
-
-<p>Such was the fruit of pagan ingenuity! The
-philosophers kept <i>gazing</i> upon God, and the
-Soul, till they lost all just and useful conceptions
-of either: And thus, as St. Paul says, <i>they
-became vain in their imaginations; and their
-foolish heart was darkened</i><a id="FNanchor_196" href="#Footnote_196" class="fnanchor">[196]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>If from the Grecian, we turn to the oriental,
-and what is called, barbaric philosophy, what
-portentous dreams do we find about angels and
-spirits, or of two opposite principles, contending
-for mastery in this sublunary world; ingeniously
-spun out into I know not what fantastic
-conclusions, which annihilate all sober piety, or
-subvert the plainest dictates of moral duty? So
-true is it of all presumptuous inquirers into the
-invisible things of God, that, <i>professing themselves
-wise, they become fools</i>!</p>
-
-<p>But these extravagancies of the heathen world
-deserve our pity, and may admit of some excuse.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">244</span>
-The worst is, that, when Heaven had revealed
-of itself what it saw fit, this irreverent humour
-of searching into the deep things of God, was
-not cured, but indeed carried to a greater, if
-possible, at least to a more criminal excess;
-as I shall now shew in a slight sketch of the
-mischiefs, which have arisen, from this audacious
-treatment even of the divine word.</p>
-
-<p>2. Of the <i>Jewish</i> corruptions I shall say nothing,
-because they did not so directly spring
-from a licence of speculation in the Rabbins:
-though their readiness in admitting unauthorized
-traditions, and in giving way to evasive
-glosses on the Law, had something of the
-same character in it, and led to the same ill
-effects.</p>
-
-<p>But when the <i>Gospel</i>, that last and best
-revelation of the divine will, was vouchsafed to
-mankind, it might be expected, that the most
-curious would keep themselves within the
-bounds of modesty and respect: that they
-would thankfully receive the information imparted
-to them, would improve it to its right
-use, and acquiesce in the want of that light,
-which it was not thought proper to give.</p>
-
-<p>But, no; the same ungoverned curiosity,
-that had wantoned so long in the schools of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">245</span>
-pagan philosophy, rioted, with a still more luxuriant
-extravagance, in the Christian church:
-as if that unholy flame had catched new strength
-from the fires of the altar; and the revealed
-articles of our creed had been only so much
-fresh fuel to feed and augment it.</p>
-
-<p>Hence, in the days of the Apostles themselves,
-we hear much of men that, <i>strove about
-words, to no profit</i>—of <i>profane and vain babblings</i>,
-that tended to nothing but <i>ungodliness</i><a id="FNanchor_197" href="#Footnote_197" class="fnanchor">[197]</a>,
-of arrogant reasoners, who <i>intruded
-into those things, which they had not seen,
-vainly puft up by their fleshly minds<a id="FNanchor_198" href="#Footnote_198" class="fnanchor">[198]</a>, of</i> extravagant
-speculatists, who allegorized and explained
-away the fundamental articles of the
-faith, even the <i>resurrection</i> itself<a id="FNanchor_199" href="#Footnote_199" class="fnanchor">[199]</a>: which, in
-the literal sense, was rejected as a gross doctrine,
-not suited to the apprehensions of wise
-men.</p>
-
-<p>Thus the seeds of this evil were early sown,
-and began to shoot up in those rank heresies,
-of which a full harvest presently appeared.</p>
-
-<p>The Gnostic and Manichæan impieties led
-the way. Others, of as ill name, followed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">246</span>
-from all quarters; especially from the sects of
-pagan philosophy; which now pressed into the
-church, and, in their haste, forgot to leave
-their quibbles and their metaphysicks behind
-them. The evidences of the Gospel had, indeed,
-extorted their assent: but how ill prepared
-they were for the practice of the new religion,
-sufficiently appeared, when, instead of
-submitting themselves to the word of God,
-they would needs torture it into a compliance
-with their own fancies. Every convert found
-his own tenets in the doctrine of Jesus: and
-would be a Christian only, on the principles of
-his pagan theology.</p>
-
-<p>Thus the pure and simple faith of the Gospel
-was adulterated by every folly, which delirious
-reason could invent and propagate; till,
-instead of <i>joy and peace in believing</i>, the destined
-fruits of Christianity <i>through the power
-of the holy Ghost</i><a id="FNanchor_200" href="#Footnote_200" class="fnanchor">[200]</a>, all was dissonance and distraction:
-contentious pride, and fierce inexorable
-debate.</p>
-
-<p>These mischiefs continued very long; when
-Plato, at one time, and Aristotle, at another,
-gave the law to the Christian world; and decided<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">247</span>
-in all questions, or rather confounded all,
-which the subtlety of human wit could extract
-from the plainest articles of the Christian
-faith.</p>
-
-<p>Even the barbarous ages could not suppress
-this fatal ingenuity. The wits of the school-men
-teemed with fresh chimæras, in the shade
-of their cloysters; as the minds of disturbed
-visionaries are observed to be more than commonly
-active and prolific in the dark.</p>
-
-<p>At length Reason grew ashamed of these
-more than fruitless altercations: and a few
-divine men, at the Reformation, seemed resolved
-to take the scriptures for their guide, and to
-shut up all their inquiries in a frank and full
-submission to the written word. Still their
-former bad habits, imperceptibly almost, stuck
-close to them; for which they had only this
-excuse to make, that the zeal of their opponents
-forced them into dispute. Necessity, sharpened
-their invention; their successes, begot
-pride; and persecution, engendered hate. In
-this way, and by these steps, it was, that the
-Protestants grew ingenious and dogmatical. In
-opposition to the church of Rome, they would
-explain doctrines, of which they had no just
-ideas; founded on texts of Scripture, which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">248</span>
-they did not understand. Presently, as was
-natural for men in their blind situation, they
-quarrelled among themselves; and their presumption,
-we may be sure, was not lessened,
-but increased, by this misadventure. The issue
-of all these conflicts was, an inundation of
-dark and dangerous writings, on subjects<a id="FNanchor_201" href="#Footnote_201" class="fnanchor">[201]</a>,
-which confound human reason, and in which
-religion has no concern.</p>
-
-<p>In process of time, however, these evils were,
-in part, removed. Philosophers<a id="FNanchor_202" href="#Footnote_202" class="fnanchor">[202]</a> examined
-the scriptures with care, and explained them
-with reverence: and, what is more, Divines<a id="FNanchor_203" href="#Footnote_203" class="fnanchor">[203]</a>
-became, in the best sense of the word, philosophers.
-Between them, much light was thrown
-on the general scheme of revelation. Its utility,
-its necessity, was shewn: its sublime views
-were opened: its evidences were cleared: its
-doctrines, vindicated: and its authority, maintained.
-Reason saw to distinguish between its
-own province, and that of faith: It grew severe
-in exacting its own rights: and modest in
-prescribing to those of the revelation itself.</p>
-
-<p>But while men of superior sense were thus
-intent on reforming the bad theology of former<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">249</span>
-times, the rest were too generally involved in it.
-They were unwilling to give up their darling
-habit <i>of gazing up into heaven</i>: that is, of
-framing, or adopting theories, which had
-neither solidity, nor use; and of explaining
-mysteries, which they could not understand<a id="FNanchor_204" href="#Footnote_204" class="fnanchor">[204]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was the effect of this folly, merely to
-disgrace themselves. Christianity was too frequently
-seen in the false light, in which these
-rash adventurers had placed it: And men of
-shallow minds, and libertine principles, were
-ready enough to take advantage of all their
-indiscretions. For on this ground only, or
-chiefly, the various structures of modern infidelity
-stand. The presumptuous positions of
-particular men, or churches, are forwardly
-taken for the genuine doctrines of Christianity:
-And those positions, being not unfrequently
-either wholly unintelligible, or even contrary to
-the plainest reason, the charge of nonsense, or
-of falshood, is, thus, dexterously transferred on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">250</span>
-the Gospel itself. And, though the abuse be
-gross and palpable, yet, when dressed out with
-a shew of argument, or varnished over with a
-little popular eloquence, it shall easily pass on
-ill-inclined, or unwary men.</p>
-
-<p>It is surely time for us to benefit by this sad
-experience. We, the teachers of religion,
-should learn, not to be <i>wise above what is
-written</i>: And you, who would profit in this
-school, should not think much to restrain your
-curiosity within these bounds, which, not the
-Scriptures only, but, right reason prescribes.</p>
-
-<p>For let it not be surmized, that, in deducing
-this account of the mischiefs, which have
-sprung from ill-directed inquiries into religion,
-my purpose is in any degree to discountenance
-the use of reason in such matters. Christianity,
-if it be indeed divine, will bear the strictest
-examination; and it is the prerogative of our
-protestant profession to support itself on the
-footing of free inquiry. The way of argument
-is so far from being hurtful to the cause of revelation,
-that it is, in truth, the basis and
-foundation of it. We dishonour, we affront
-our holy faith, if we believe it hath, or can
-have any other. Only let us take heed, that
-Reason do her proper work; and that we do<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">251</span>
-not dream, or fancy, or presume, when we
-think we reason.</p>
-
-<p>In the instances, before given, the fault was
-in concluding without premises, and in arguing
-without ideas. When men call this <i>reasoning</i>,
-they forget the meaning of the term, as well as
-mistake the extent of their own faculties. We
-cannot reason on all subjects, because there
-are many subjects which we cannot understand:
-And by the term, <i>reasoning</i>, is only meant
-an act of the mind, which draws right conclusions
-from intelligible propositions. The
-nature of the infinite Being, the mode of his
-existence, the œconomy of his providence, are
-inscrutable to us, and probably to the highest
-angels. Why then intrude into such things,
-as no man hath seen, or can see? All that remains
-is, to admit no proposition, which is
-not clearly revealed; and, for the rest, to admit,
-on the authority of the revealer, what must
-be true, though we cannot, in the way of reason,
-perceive that it is so.</p>
-
-<p>The inutility of all researches into divine
-things, without a strict adherence to this well-grounded
-principle, is apparent; the presumption
-of them, is ridiculous; but, above all,
-the mischiefs of them, are deplorable.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">252</span></p>
-
-<p>Men bewilder themselves, in inextricable
-difficulties: they disbelieve, on incompetent
-grounds: they give up the Gospel, and, with
-it, their best hopes, for the gratification of the
-idlest vanity: or they mis-spend their time in
-exploring articles of faith, instead of attending,
-to the obvious end and use of them.</p>
-
-<p>To return to the text, which led us into
-these reflexions. The disciples were <i>looking
-up into heaven</i>, when they should have been
-considering how to follow him thither. Is not
-our folly the same, or rather is it not more
-inexcusable, when gazing, with our weak
-reason, on celestial things, we neglect the ends,
-for which a glympse of them is afforded to us?
-For there is not an article of our creed, which
-may not make us better, if not wiser: And
-obedience, that is, <i>faith working by love</i>,
-whatever some may think, is of another value
-in the sight of God, and of higher concern to
-man, than all knowledge.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">253</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLV">SERMON XLV.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED JUNE 23, 1776.</span></h2>
-
-<h3>St. <span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xiii. 55, 56.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Is not this the carpenter’s son? Is not his
-mother called Mary? And his brethren,
-James and Joses and Simon and Judas?
-And his sisters, are not they all with us?
-Whence then hath this man all these things?
-And they were offended in him.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">We</span> have, in these words, a striking picture
-of <small>ENVY</small>; which makes us unwilling to
-see, or to acknowledge, any pre-eminence in
-those, whom we have familiarly known and
-conversed with, and whom we have been long
-used to regard as our inferiors, or, at most,
-but on a level with ourselves. Our Lord’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">254</span>
-neighbours and countrymen, who had been
-acquainted with him from his youth, could
-repeat the names of his whole family, and
-knew the ordinary condition, in which they
-lived, were out of patience to think that, so
-descended and so circumstanced, he should be
-grown at once into distinction among them,
-and should be taken notice of for abilities
-and powers, which they, none of them, possessed.</p>
-
-<p>This temper of mind, I say, is here very
-graphically expressed; and it operated among
-the Jews with a more than common malignity,
-shedding its venom on those, whom not their
-own industry, but the special favour of Heaven
-had raised above their fellows, and had commissioned
-to go forth with extraordinary powers
-(of which they had frequent instances in their
-history) for the common benefit of themselves
-and of mankind. Whence it acquired even
-the authority of a proverbial sentence,—that <i>a
-prophet hath no honour in his own country,
-and in his own house</i><a id="FNanchor_205" href="#Footnote_205" class="fnanchor">[205]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>But, I mean not to enlarge, at present, on
-this moral topick. There is <i>another</i>, and very<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">255</span>
-important use to be made of these words, which
-is, to let us see, “how very small a matter
-will serve to overpower the strongest evidence
-of our religion, though proposed with all
-imaginable advantage to us, when we <i>hate to
-be reformed</i>, or, for any other reason, have
-no mind to be convinced of its truth.”</p>
-
-<p>This strange power of <i>prejudice</i> is exemplified
-in the text, and will deserve our serious
-consideration.</p>
-
-<p>Our blessed Lord had now given many
-proofs of the divine virtue, that was lodged in
-him; and was, therefore, moved, not only by
-the duty of his office, but, as we may suppose,
-by that regard which every good man hears to
-his country, to make a tender of his mercies to
-those persons, especially, among whom he
-had been brought up. Accordingly, we are
-told, that he came to his own city of Nazareth,
-and <i>preached in their Synagogue, insomuch
-that</i> the people of that place <i>were
-astonished, and said, whence hath this man
-this wisdom</i>, which appears in his doctrine,
-<i>and these mighty works</i>, which we have seen
-him perform? And then, calling to mind the
-mean circumstances of his birth and family,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">256</span>
-before repeated, they expressed their dissatisfaction,
-or, as the text says, <i>were offended in
-him</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But, were those circumstances a reason for
-rejecting a <i>doctrine</i>, which astonished them
-with its wisdom; and <i>works</i>, which they
-owned to be <i>mighty</i>, and above the common
-power of man? Rather, sure, the opposite conduct
-was to be expected; and, because they
-knew certainly, from the mean extraction and
-education of him who taught and did these
-things, that he had no means of <i>acquiring</i> his
-abilities (if they were at all to be acquired) in
-an ordinary way, they ought, methinks, to
-have had their minds impressed with a full
-assurance, that they were owing, as they were
-by himself ascribed, to the power of God.</p>
-
-<p>But, no: rather than admit a conclusion,
-which hurt their pride, and crossed their
-foolish prejudices, they stifle the strongest conviction
-of their own minds; and resolve not to
-receive a prophet, whom they had long desired
-and expected, who came to them with all the
-credentials of a prophet, and with the offer of
-what they most wanted, the remission of their
-sins, and the inestimable gift of eternal life.
-And all this, because the prophet was <i>the son<span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">257</span>
-of a carpenter</i>, in their own town, and because
-his <i>brethren and sisters</i>, persons of a
-mean condition, <i>were all with them</i>.</p>
-
-<p>When we contemplate such a conduct, as
-this, we are ready to say, that it sprung from
-a more than common perverseness of character,
-and that the people of Nazareth were more
-unreasonable and sottish, as the common
-proverb made them to be, than the rest of
-<i>Israel</i><a id="FNanchor_206" href="#Footnote_206" class="fnanchor">[206]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Yet, if we turn our thoughts on the other
-tribes and cities of that nation, on the inhabitants
-of Judæa, and even of Jerusalem, we
-shall find, that they reasoned no better than
-the men of Nazareth had done; and discovered
-equal, indeed, much the same prejudices as
-those, by which our Lord’s own countrymen
-had been misled.</p>
-
-<p>For, what else was it to say, as they commonly
-did, that <i>no prophet could come out of
-Galilee</i><a id="FNanchor_207" href="#Footnote_207" class="fnanchor">[207]</a>; that he could not be the Messiah,
-because his disciples were illiterate fishermen<a id="FNanchor_208" href="#Footnote_208" class="fnanchor">[208]</a>,
-and not Scribes and Pharisees; because none<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">258</span>
-of their rulers believed on him<a id="FNanchor_209" href="#Footnote_209" class="fnanchor">[209]</a>; because he
-conversed, sometimes, with publicans and sinners<a id="FNanchor_210" href="#Footnote_210" class="fnanchor">[210]</a>;
-because he did not observe their minute
-ceremonies or traditions<a id="FNanchor_211" href="#Footnote_211" class="fnanchor">[211]</a>; because he manifested
-his divine power in healing the sick, and
-casting out devils, and not in breaking to pieces
-the Roman empire and restoring the temporal
-kingdom of Israel<a id="FNanchor_212" href="#Footnote_212" class="fnanchor">[212]</a>; because—but I need
-not instance in more particulars: Universally,
-the Jews, of all places and denominations, rejected
-their Lord and Saviour for reasons, the
-most absurd and trivial; for reasons, that came
-from the heart, and not the head, which shewed
-they were under the power of some contemptible
-prejudice, and would yield to no evidence, unless
-that was complied with.</p>
-
-<p>Still, “the Jews, in general, you will say,
-were unlike other people. Tell us how the
-polished Heathens reasoned on the subject of
-Christ’s mission; and whether, when the Gospel
-was addressed to them, they opposed it on
-the footing of those senseless prejudices, which
-you have enough disgraced.”</p>
-
-<p>Luckily, I have it in my power to accept
-this challenge; and to shew you, on the best<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">259</span>
-authority, that those men of enlightened minds
-and renowned wisdom were as weak in their
-sophisms, and as childish in their cavils against
-the new religion, as the Jews themselves.</p>
-
-<p>We read in the Acts of the Apostles<a id="FNanchor_213" href="#Footnote_213" class="fnanchor">[213]</a>, that
-St. Paul came to Ephesus, a rich, learned,
-idolatrous city of Asia; that he applied himself
-more especially to the instruction of its
-Gentile inhabitants; <i>disputing daily, for two
-years together, in the school of one Tyrannus</i>,
-a teacher of rhetorick, or philosophy, as we
-may suppose, and a convert to the faith of
-Jesus. That his success was great, we may
-conclude, both from his long residence, and
-from <i>the special miracles</i>, which he wrought,
-among them. Yet, when <i>the word of God
-had grown mightily and prevailed, a certain
-silver-smith, who made silver shrines</i> for the
-Goddess of the place, had credit enough with
-this well instructed city, because its trade was
-likely to suffer by the downfall of idolatry, to
-raise such an uproar among the people, that
-the Apostle’s labours were, at once, overturned
-by this powerful argument, and he, himself,
-compelled to leave them to their old infatuations:
-which was much such treatment, as
-Jesus himself had received from the Gadarenes;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">260</span>
-who, because he had permitted the devils,
-ejected out of one of their people, to enter into
-a herd of swine, and to destroy them, would
-not be saved at this expence, and required him,
-but civilly indeed, <i>to depart out of their coasts</i>.
-Now, was that <i>craft</i>, or this <i>husbandry</i>, a
-matter to be put in competition with the saving
-of their souls, which they had reason to expect
-from the preaching of Paul and Jesus? Or, is
-it not clear, that a petty interest, that is, a
-sordid <i>prejudice</i>, prevailed against the most
-precious hopes, supported by the fullest evidence?</p>
-
-<p>But these were <i>prejudices</i> of the ignorant
-vulgar. Let us see, then, what success St. Paul
-had in a nobler scene, among wits and sages,
-men of refined sense and reason, in the head-quarters
-of politeness and civility, in the eye of
-Greece itself, in one word, Athens<a id="FNanchor_214" href="#Footnote_214" class="fnanchor">[214]</a>. Here,
-the great Apostle, who had the charity, and
-the ability, to <i>make himself all things to all
-men</i>, encountered their ablest philosophers;
-reasoning with them, even before their revered
-court of Areopagus, on their own favourite
-topics of <i>God, and the Soul</i>, in a strain of argument,
-which was clearly unanswerable; and
-concluding his weighty apology with <i>Jesus and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">261</span>
-the Resurrection</i>. But what was the effect of
-all this truth on the minds of these liberal heathens?
-Why the text says—<i>when they
-heared of the resurrection of the dead, some</i>
-(that is, the Epicureans) <i>mocked</i>; and why?
-because their philosophy admitted no future
-state: while <i>others</i> (the Stoics) <i>said, We will
-hear thee again of this matter</i>; but, for as poor
-reason, as the other, because their philosophy
-taught I know not what of a certain renovation
-of the world, which, for the credit of their sect,
-they were half inclined to confound with the
-Christian resurrection. You see, in both parties,
-the power of prejudice; where yet the
-occasion was the most interesting, the hearers
-the most capable, the ability or the speaker,
-independently of his assumed inspiration, unquestionably
-great, and where the conclusion,
-(so carelessly dismissed) was, after all, a question
-of <small>FACT</small>, which had no dependance on the
-fanciful tenets of either party.</p>
-
-<p>I should weary you and myself, should I
-carry on this deduction through the following
-ages of the Christian church; and shew, as I
-might easily do, that the ablest men of science,
-who opposed Christianity, did it on grounds
-no better than those of these Athenian sophists.
-We see what these grounds were, in the fragments,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">262</span>
-that remain to us, of many ancient unbelievers<a id="FNanchor_215" href="#Footnote_215" class="fnanchor">[215]</a>,
-men, the most acute and learned of
-their times; while yet every man of sense, that
-now reads and considers their objections, will
-own, whether he be himself a Christian or not,
-that they are altogether weak and frivolous,
-and have the face not so much of sound, or
-even colourable arguments, as of faint and
-powerless prepossessions against unwelcome
-truth.</p>
-
-<p>I shall only instance in <i>one</i> of these prepossessions,
-which you think prodigious.
-The Roman empire, labouring under its own
-vices, and many <i>physical</i> evils, which then lay
-heavy upon it, experienced, in the fourth century,
-that reverse of fortune, which, in its turn,
-the greatest nations must expect. But by this
-time Christianity had spread itself through all
-the provinces, and was become the religion of
-the state. In these circumstances, the Heathens,
-very generally, not the rabble only, but
-the gravest and wisest of the Heathens; ascribed
-these disasters to the abolition of idolatry;
-and thought it an unanswerable argument
-against the faith of Jesus, that it did not
-maintain their empire in that degree of splendour<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">263</span>
-and prosperity, to which, in the days of
-pagan worship, it had happily been raised.
-And this miserable superstition, which we now
-only pity, or, perhaps, smile at, made so deep
-an impression on the minds of men, that the
-greatest of the ancient fathers, and particularly
-St. Austin<a id="FNanchor_216" href="#Footnote_216" class="fnanchor">[216]</a>, were scarce able, with all their
-learning and authority, to bring it into
-contempt.</p>
-
-<p>Such was the power of <i>ancient</i> prejudice
-against the Christian religion. But I hasten to
-set before you, in few words, what its tyranny
-has been in <i>later</i> times.</p>
-
-<p>The accidental and temporary commotions,
-which reformed religion produced in our western
-world, furnished in the minds of many, a
-notable <i>argument</i> against the cause of Protestantism,
-which, when taken up and improved,
-as it soon was, by state-policy, had, indeed, a
-fatal influence on its success. But, even as to
-Christianity itself, that day-spring of knowledge,
-which broke upon us at the Reformation,
-and, as they say, has been brightening from
-that time to this, could not disperse those phantoms
-of prejudice, which are forever haunting
-the human mind.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">264</span></p>
-
-<p>Men, who piqued themselves on their sagacity,
-presently started up, and said, that, because
-popery had been found to be an imposture,
-Christianity was so too; and because the legendary
-tales of the cloysters had been convicted of
-falshood, that the Scriptures themselves deserved
-but little regard. And when afterwards
-these suspicions gave way to sober criticism and
-learned inquiry, <i>prejudices</i> still arose, in
-various shapes, against the <small>EVIDENCES</small>, and the
-<small>DOCTRINES</small> of the Gospel-Revelation. We were
-told, that the <i>prophecies</i> proved nothing, because
-some of them were too obscure, and
-others too plain. Could both these objections
-come from the oracle, Reason? Or, is it so
-much as likely, that either of them did so?
-when, for any thing it could tell, both the
-clearness, and the obscurity might be suitable
-to the occasion, and each, be fit, in its place.
-Then again, there were others bold enough to
-deny the existence of <i>miracles</i>, not, because
-many have been forged, but because none can be
-true. Was this, too, the voice of Reason? or,
-is not St. Paul’s appeal to common sense enough
-to disgrace this fancy to the end of the world—<i>Why
-should it be thought a thing incredible
-with you that</i> <small>GOD</small> <i>should raise the dead</i>?<a id="FNanchor_217" href="#Footnote_217" class="fnanchor">[217]</a>
-God, who surely has <i>power</i> to do this, or other
-miracles, when his <i>wisdom</i> sees fit.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">265</span></p>
-
-<p>The <i>contents</i> of the Gospel have also been
-treated, I do not say with as little respect, but
-with as little shew of reason and argument, as
-the evidences of it.</p>
-
-<p>For instance, it was current, not long ago,
-that “Christianity was as old as the Creation;”
-the meaning of which wise saying was, that
-Christianity could not be true, because the
-<i>moral</i> part of it was such, as nature taught, and
-had at all times been able to discover by its own
-light. Admit the fact: what follows? That
-therefore a divine revelation needs not repeat
-and could not occasionally enforce the laws of
-nature. Is reason, pure unmixed reason,
-accustomed to trifle at this rate?</p>
-
-<p>But the complaint now is, that nature does
-not teach the <i>doctrinal</i> part of the Gospel.
-And what then? Was it not equally to be expected
-that what concerns the essence and
-counsels and dispensations of God should be a
-secret to nature, unassisted by revelation, as
-that our practical moral duties should lie open
-to its view? And, if the force of this question
-be not generally felt, there is no doubt, I
-think, but it will, in a short time. For, it is
-to be observed of all these idle cavils, that they
-presently vanish one after another; and, when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">266</span>
-each has had its day, is, thenceforth, exploded
-even by unbelievers themselves.</p>
-
-<p>But, ’tis time to come to a conclusion of this
-matter. The purpose of all I have said is, only,
-this, to shew, what weak and idiot prejudices
-have, at all times, been taken up against
-Christianity, and how generally they have
-been mistaken by the acutest of its enemies,
-for reasons of much weight.</p>
-
-<p>And, if all, who hear me, be led by this experience,
-to suspect the infirmity of their own
-minds; if, having seen the disgraceful issue of
-so many fancies, which for a time have passed
-for shrewd <i>arguments</i>, but have, afterwards,
-appeared to be nothing more than childish <i>prejudices</i>,
-they can be brought to mistrust those,
-that occur to themselves; if, in a word, they
-can be induced to question the pertinence and
-force of what they too easily consider in the
-light of objections to Christianity, and to argue
-soberly and cautiously at least, if they will
-needs try their skill in arguing against it; the
-end, I have in view, will be answered, and
-neither my pains, nor your attention, will be
-thrown away on this discourse.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">267</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLVI">SERMON XLVI.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED FEBRUARY 4, 1776.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">James</span> iv. 7.</h3>
-
-<p>—<i>Resist the Devil, and he will flee from you.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">That</span> there are Angels and Spirits, good
-and bad; that, at the head, of these last, there
-is <small>ONE</small>, more considerable and malignant, than
-the rest, who in the form, or under the name,
-of a <i>Serpent</i>, was deeply concerned in the fall
-of man, and whose <i>head</i>, as the prophetic language
-is, the Son of man was, one day, to
-<i>bruise</i>; that this evil spirit, though that prophecy
-be, in part, completed, has not yet received
-his death’s wound, but is still permitted,
-for ends unsearchable to us, and in ways<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">268</span>
-which we cannot particularly explain, to have
-a certain degree of power in this world, hostile
-to its virtue and happiness, and sometimes
-exerted with too much success; all this is so
-clear from Scripture, that no believer, unless
-he be, first of all, <i>spoiled by philosophy and
-vain deceit</i>, can possibly entertain a doubt
-of it.</p>
-
-<p>The subject, indeed, in its full extent, cannot
-be discussed at this time, nor conveniently,
-perhaps, in this place. But it may not be
-improper to make some general reflexions
-upon it; such as may serve to rectify your
-<small>APPREHENSIONS</small> of the doctrine itself, which, as
-I said, is truly scriptural, and to suggest, at
-the same time, the <small>MORAL AND RELIGIOUS
-USES</small>, we ought to make of it.</p>
-
-<p>1. An opinion prevailed in the East very
-early, and was probably derived from some
-still more ancient tradition of the fall, corrupted,
-and misunderstood, that two, equally
-great and independent beings, a good and a
-bad, shared the government of the world between
-them; that these beings, of directly opposite
-characters, carried on a perpetual war
-with each other, crossed each other’s designs
-and operations, and, as either prevailed, produced<span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">269</span>
-the good or evil, the happiness or misery,
-of this life.</p>
-
-<p>This opinion was, afterwards, taken up by
-some, who called themselves Christians; and
-was especially applied by those, who loved to
-philosophize (as too many did, and, at all
-times, have been prone to do) on the secrets
-of divine Providence, to the solution of that
-great question, concerning the <i>origin of natural
-and moral evil</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Now, to this notion some countenance, it is
-thought, has been given by the scriptural doctrine
-of the Devil, who is spoken of, as <i>the
-Prince of this world</i><a id="FNanchor_218" href="#Footnote_218" class="fnanchor">[218]</a>, as the <i>Prince of the
-power of the air</i><a id="FNanchor_219" href="#Footnote_219" class="fnanchor">[219]</a>, as <i>the God of this world</i><a id="FNanchor_220" href="#Footnote_220" class="fnanchor">[220]</a>,
-and in other terms of the like sort, denoting
-as well the <i>power</i>, as malignity, of this evil
-Being.</p>
-
-<p>But, though these terms are, some of them,
-very strong, and certainly imply, not the
-existence only, but the extensive agency and
-influence, of this wicked Spirit, yet there is no
-pretence or colour for supposing that any thing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">270</span>
-like an equality to the God of heaven and
-earth, or an independency upon him, was intended
-to be expressed by them. For it is manifest,
-that no writings in the world exalt our
-ideas of that God so high, or set forth his supreme
-irresistible and sovereign dominion in so
-strong and decisive terms, as the Jewish and
-Christian scriptures. And with regard to the
-particular evil being under consideration, he is
-represented as <i>trembling</i><a id="FNanchor_221" href="#Footnote_221" class="fnanchor">[221]</a> at the very apprehension
-of the omnipotent Creator, as sentenced
-by his justice<a id="FNanchor_222" href="#Footnote_222" class="fnanchor">[222]</a>, and reserved for the
-execution of it<a id="FNanchor_223" href="#Footnote_223" class="fnanchor">[223]</a>; as exercising a partial, a precarious,
-a limited power in this world, working
-only in the <i>children of disobedience</i><a id="FNanchor_224" href="#Footnote_224" class="fnanchor">[224]</a>, and in
-them, consequently, no longer than they continue
-to deserve that character; and baffled in
-his attempts, not only by the Son of God, but
-by the <i>resistance</i><a id="FNanchor_225" href="#Footnote_225" class="fnanchor">[225]</a>, by the <i>prayers</i><a id="FNanchor_226" href="#Footnote_226" class="fnanchor">[226]</a>, by the
-<i>faith</i><a id="FNanchor_227" href="#Footnote_227" class="fnanchor">[227]</a>, of Christians; as a rebel indeed, yet a
-rebel cast out<a id="FNanchor_228" href="#Footnote_228" class="fnanchor">[228]</a> and disabled<a id="FNanchor_229" href="#Footnote_229" class="fnanchor">[229]</a>, and compelled
-to be an instrument, like all other things, in
-the hands of the Almighty<a id="FNanchor_230" href="#Footnote_230" class="fnanchor">[230]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">271</span></p>
-
-<p>But nothing shews more clearly, how abhorrent
-the spirit of Christianity is from the
-Manichæan doctrine, than the care that is
-taken throughout the Gospel-history to set
-forth the triumphs of Christ over the kingdom
-of Satan, in <i>casting out devils</i>; of which the
-instances are so many, and so circumstantially
-described, as if our Lord’s main or sole purpose
-had been to expose and explode that great impiety.
-He not only, himself, commanded, by
-a word, the devils to go out of the possessed,
-who accordingly obeyed him, and, in departing,
-deprecated that power<a id="FNanchor_231" href="#Footnote_231" class="fnanchor">[231]</a>, which they knew
-he had over them; but he, likewise, gave the
-same authority to his disciples, who went forth
-with his commission, and <i>returned again with
-joy, saying, Lord, even the devils are subject
-unto us, through thy name</i><a id="FNanchor_232" href="#Footnote_232" class="fnanchor">[232]</a>. On which occasion,
-<i>he said unto them</i>, as exulting in his
-dominion over the enemy, and in the rapid,
-instantaneous, irresistible effect of it, <i>I beheld
-Satan, as lightning, fall from heaven</i><a id="FNanchor_233" href="#Footnote_233" class="fnanchor">[233]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Thus much may suffice to shew, that,
-though the Gospel affirms the existence of evil
-spirits, and of one eminently so, yet that it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">272</span>
-gives no countenance to the doctrine of the
-two principles; as if the evil one were independent
-of the good, or that Satan could have
-the madness to think of rivalling the power of
-God, and of entering into a direct formal contest,
-as it were, with the Almighty. Whatever
-of this sort has been said, or insinuated,
-contradicts the express testimony, indeed, the
-whole tenour, of holy scripture, and is nothing
-but poetry, or misrepresentation.</p>
-
-<p>2. Still, on the face of that account, which
-Scripture itself gives, it must be owned, that
-the power of Satan is great and even dreadful.</p>
-
-<p>That he was permitted, in our Saviour’s
-time, to vex, and, in various ways, torment
-the <small>BODIES</small> of men, is clear from the number
-of <i>possessions</i>, we read of in the Gospel;
-which though some have laboured to explain
-away (as they have, indeed, the personality of
-the Devil himself) by reducing what is said of
-his agency to a mere figure of speech, yet I do
-not find that their attempts have, hitherto,
-been, or are likely to be, successful.</p>
-
-<p>That he was, also, permitted to lay such
-trains, and contrive such measures, as had a
-fatal effect, sometimes, on the <small>FORTUNES</small> of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">273</span>
-men, not of those only, who were the immediate
-instruments of his malice, but of good
-and innocent men, who stood at a distance
-from him, we see by the sad catastrophe of
-that council, which <i>he put into the heart of
-Judas to betray his master</i><a id="FNanchor_234" href="#Footnote_234" class="fnanchor">[234]</a>; first, in the untimely
-death of the traitor himself, and then,
-by a series of connected events, in the crucifixion
-of the holy Jesus; and by several other
-instances. And, that he still retains this last
-power, as formidable as it truly is, must be
-concluded, if it be true, as we shall presently
-see it is, that he insinuates himself into the
-minds of bad men, and is concerned in exciting
-and promoting their wicked purposes.
-But, whether he be allowed to tyrannize over
-the bodies of men, is more problematical.
-That, for any thing we know, he may operate
-in the way of <i>possession</i>, I do not see on what
-certain grounds any man can deny: that he
-does so, I would not affirm, because the Scripture,
-our only guide as to what respects the
-agency of spirits, is silent in that matter. But
-the inquiry is of the less moment, because,
-since the gift of <i>discerning</i> spirits hath ceased
-in the church, we have no means of distinguishing
-between <i>possessions</i> and <i>natural disorders</i>;
-and, because, if we had, there is no
-known cure, or antidote, for them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">274</span></p>
-
-<p>Had this been considered, all the mischiefs
-which have arisen from the trade of witchcraft
-and diabolism, would have been prevented.
-For they have proceeded, not from the supposed
-possibility of possessions, but from a
-fraudulent pretence of knowing when they take
-place, and from a superstitious belief of certain
-charms or spells, which may be applied, with
-effect, to the removal of them. Whereas, the
-fact is not cognizable by us, the symptoms,
-whether of the natural disorder, or of the
-pretærnatural infliction, being equivocal; and
-Christianity acknowledges no power in words,
-or ceremonies, to exorcise evil spirits. The
-only exorcism, which is now permitted to
-Christians, is that of faith and repentance, that
-is, of a good life; which every man may, and
-should apply, when it is needful, to his own
-case, and which, in that application, can surely
-do no hurt to himself, or others.</p>
-
-<p>And, with this explanation, I leave the matter
-of <i>possessions</i>. As I have no authority to
-affirm, that there <i>are</i>, now, any such, so neither
-may I presume to say, with confidence,
-that there are <i>not</i> any.</p>
-
-<p>But, then, with regard to the influence of
-evil spirits at this day upon the <small>SOULS</small> of men,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">275</span>
-I shall take leave to be a great deal more peremptory.
-For this influence is so constantly
-supposed in the Gospel; there are so many admonitions,
-cautions, advices, relating to it;
-there are so many warnings given us by Christ
-and his Apostles against the snares, the wiles,
-the devices, the depths, of Satan, and these, conveyed
-in the form of general precepts, plainly
-calculated for the use of Christians in all ages;
-it is so expressly said, in Christ’s own parable of
-the sower, that the <i>tares</i>, that is, bad men, <i>are
-sown by the devil</i>, and that this husbandry will
-be carried on by him to the end of the world;
-it is so apparent, that his empire over bad men
-is exercised in the way of temptation and seduction,
-by putting bad purposes into their
-minds, and filling their hearts with corrupt
-imaginations and intentions; it is, besides, so
-evident that we are continually in danger of
-this temptation, by that clause in the Lord’s
-prayer, the daily prayer of all Christians—<i>deliver
-us from the evil one</i><a id="FNanchor_235" href="#Footnote_235" class="fnanchor">[235]</a>—for such is the
-proper sense of these words, which we translate,
-<i>deliver us from evil</i>—All this, I say, is
-so manifest to every one who reads the scriptures,
-that, if we respect their authority, the
-question, concerning the reality of demonic
-influence upon the minds of men, is clearly
-determined.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">276</span></p>
-
-<p>Nay, there are many instances, in history,
-and common life, of prodigious, almost unimaginable
-wickedness, strangely conceived and
-executed, which, if they do not prove this
-doctrine, in the way of sensible experience,
-perfectly fall in, and harmonize with it. It
-seems, as if the soul of some men were demoniacal,
-as the bodies of others have been. Let
-me appeal to yourselves. Suppose that a person,
-duly commissioned for that purpose, had
-dislodged as many devils from Nero or Cæsar
-Borgia, as our Saviour did from the poor unhappy
-man of Gadara, would this exorcism
-have surprized you more in the former case,
-than the latter? or would not this miracle have
-furnished us with a better account, than we
-can now give, of the transcendant wickedness,
-which <i>possessed</i> the hearts of those monsters?</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, in the simpler ages, our forefathers,
-who read the scriptures, and believed what
-they read, constantly ascribed any crime, with
-which they charged another, to <i>the instigation
-of the devil</i>; as you may see from the language
-of those forms, which are used, in criminal
-prosecutions to this day: and, if those charges
-be vow considered as <i>mere forms</i>, it was not
-always so; and a better reason will be required,
-than can be presently given, why any Christian
-should so conceive of them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">277</span></p>
-
-<p>3. But to all this it be said, “that the
-doctrine, here laid down, as scriptural, is
-strange and incredible; that it makes the
-virtue and happiness of men depend on
-others, and not themselves; that it supposes
-a power, adverse to the great Creator
-and Governor, and able, on many occasions,
-to prevail against him, which, degrades both
-his <i>sovereignty</i> and his <i>wisdom</i>; and that,
-above all, it represents weak simple men as
-exposed to the practices of great and subtle
-tempters, which overturn all our ideas of the
-divine <i>justice</i> and <i>goodness</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>The objection might be expressed in more
-words, but you see the drift and force of it.
-Now, in answer, it would be enough to say,
-that, let the difficulties be what they will, the
-doctrine is scriptural. But then, as to those
-difficulties themselves, I must further say,
-that they are not peculiar to this doctrine,
-as revealed in scripture, but bear equally
-against the natural doctrine of God’s moral
-government.</p>
-
-<p>For do we not see that we all of us depend
-in a great measure, for the virtue and happiness
-we possess, on the conduct of others?
-Can we look about us, and not perceive an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">278</span>
-order of beings, I mean, <i>wicked men</i>, opposing
-themselves to the will of God, traversing his
-righteous purposes, and prevailing, for a time
-at least, against his primary intentions? Do
-they not pervert, corrupt, destroy multitudes
-every day; and are not the weak and simple
-permitted to fall into the snares of the wise
-and crafty? Do not these things evidently
-take place in our world, and is it thought any
-derogation from the attributes of God that
-they should be allowed to do so? Are not
-men, too oft, a sort of devils to each other,
-and can we wonder that vice and misery are
-much in the power of such agents? Yes, but
-<i>spiritual unseen</i> agents!—Does that make any
-mighty difference? Is it necessary to suppose
-that <i>spirits</i>, of whatever rank, are privileged
-from abusing their free-will, and from being
-perverse and wicked, as we see men are? And,
-what if they are <i>unseen</i>? Have we reason to
-expect, from the present constitution of things,
-that we should suffer only from the practices of
-known and visible tempters? As if much of
-the vice and wretchedness of this life did not
-come upon us by surprize, as we may say, and
-when we think little of the cause, or the
-agent! A lye, flies in the dark, and misleads
-many into errors, and even crimes. A libel,
-gets abroad, nobody knows from whom, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">279</span>
-yet shall tempt, perhaps drive, unwary multitudes,
-into rebellion. How many plots of
-wickedness are laid and succeed, when the
-plotter is out of sight and not so much as suspected!
-Nay, a certain cast of mind, or temperament
-of body, things, wholly unknown
-and unthought of by most men, shall, without
-great care and circumspection, be fatal to our
-virtue. Even the air, we breathe, (which,
-like the <i>prince of the power of the air</i>, is to
-us invisible) has a secret, and yet, sometimes,
-powerful influence on our passions. And shall
-we still disbelieve the seduction of an evil
-spirit, because he steals insensibly upon us?</p>
-
-<p>But the true answer to all objections of this
-sort, whether men or devils be the tempters,
-is, that neither shall prevail, but by our own
-fault, by some carelessness, or wilful corruption
-of our own hearts, which are always sufficiently
-admonished, that the enemy is at hand,
-when evil thoughts, however produced, begin
-to stir in them. Then is the time to watch,
-and <i>resist</i>: and our resistance, the text tells
-us, will not be in vain. And what though
-legions of spirits lay siege to us! We may call
-<i>more than twelve legions of angels</i>, even the
-holy Spirit of God himself, to our assistance, if
-we please; for <i>greater is</i> <small>HE THAT IS IN US</small>,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">280</span>
-<i>than he that is in the world</i><a id="FNanchor_236" href="#Footnote_236" class="fnanchor">[236]</a>. So <i>faithful is
-God</i>, after all our impious surmises and distrust
-of his gracious providence, <i>who will not
-suffer us to be tempted above that we are
-able</i>, though Satan himself be the tempter,
-<i>but will with the temptation also</i>, if we be
-careful to do our part, <i>make a way for us to
-escape</i><a id="FNanchor_237" href="#Footnote_237" class="fnanchor">[237]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>4. And this being the case, all objections
-to the doctrine here inculcated, fall to the
-ground; so that I have only to remind you, in
-two words, (for the time will not allow many)
-of the <i>moral and religious uses</i>, we ought to
-make of it.</p>
-
-<p>I shall but mention <small>ONE</small>, of each sort.</p>
-
-<p>1. In a <small>RELIGIOUS</small> view, the belief of this
-doctrine is of the utmost importance: for the
-whole scheme of Redemption is founded upon
-it. For <i>therefore</i> Christ came into the world,
-and suffered upon the cross, <i>that, through
-death</i>, as St. Paul says, <i>he might destroy him,
-that had the power of death, that is, the</i>
-<small>DEVIL</small><a id="FNanchor_238" href="#Footnote_238" class="fnanchor">[238]</a>. And, universally, <i>for this purpose</i>
-(I quote the words of St. John) <i>the Son of
-God was manifested, that he might destroy<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">281</span>
-the works of the</i> <small>DEVIL</small><a id="FNanchor_239" href="#Footnote_239" class="fnanchor">[239]</a>. It concerns us,
-then, infinitely, to take heed lest, by denying,
-or questioning, or explaining away, the existence
-and agency of the evil spirit, we subvert
-the foundation of our faith, detract from the
-glory of our Saviour’s passion, and unthankfully
-<i>despise the riches of his goodness</i> in
-dying for us: nay, and lest we blaspheme the
-Holy Ghost; who was given to <i>help our infirmities</i><a id="FNanchor_240" href="#Footnote_240" class="fnanchor">[240]</a>,
-to <i>strengthen us with might in the
-inner man</i><a id="FNanchor_241" href="#Footnote_241" class="fnanchor">[241]</a>, and therefore to save us, from the
-power of <i>that spirit, which worketh in the
-children of disobedience</i><a id="FNanchor_242" href="#Footnote_242" class="fnanchor">[242]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>2. In a <small>MORAL</small> view it is, also, of great importance,
-that we entertain right notions on
-this subject.</p>
-
-<p>I know that the <i>world</i> and the <i>flesh</i> are
-powerful enemies enough, and that we need
-not wish to signalize our courage by a contest
-with any <i>other</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But if there <i>be</i> another, we are concerned
-to know what our danger is, and to provide
-against it. Security is generally fatal; especially
-when the strength of the enemy is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">282</span>
-greater than we take it to be. Therefore, let
-us learn from scripture, what that strength is;
-and let us use all diligence in <i>resisting</i> (as we
-have long since engaged to do) not the <i>world</i>
-and the <i>flesh</i> only, but also, the <small>DEVIL</small>. This
-is the advice of the text—<i>Resist the</i> <small>DEVIL</small>.
-And then, too, is the advice of the Apostle
-Peter—<i>Be sober, be vigilant; become your
-adversary, the</i> <small>DEVIL</small>, <i>as a roaring lion,
-walketh about, seeking whom he may devour</i><a id="FNanchor_243" href="#Footnote_243" class="fnanchor">[243]</a>
-(words, by the way, which put the <i>personality</i>
-of the tempter out of all question); <i>Whom resist</i>,
-says he, <i>stedfast in the</i> <small>FAITH</small>; under the
-protection of which shield, <i>we shall be able to
-quench all the fiery darts of</i> <small>THE WICKED</small><a id="FNanchor_244" href="#Footnote_244" class="fnanchor">[244]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">283</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLVII">SERMON XLVII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MARCH 29, 1772.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Prov.</span> xvi. 6.</h3>
-
-<p><i>By the fear of the Lord, men depart from
-evil.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">All</span> the authority of Solomon’s name and
-wisdom will, I doubt, be no more than sufficient
-to procure respect to this observation;
-which some may consider as a <i>trite and vulgar
-truth</i>, scarce deserving their regard; while
-others, perhaps, will not so much as allow it
-to be a truth at all, but indeed a <i>vulgar mistake</i>,
-arising out of the narrow views of ignorant or
-superficial declaimers. It may be slighted by
-one set of men, as conveying <i>no</i> information,
-and by another, as conveying a <i>wrong</i> one.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">284</span></p>
-
-<p>Let me attempt then to rescue the sacred
-text from both these imputations. Permit me
-to shew you, that the observation, it contains,
-is neither so generally received, as to make all
-further discourse about it frivolous and unnecessary;
-nor yet, on the other hand, of so
-questionable a nature, as to justify the scorn
-with which it is sometimes rejected.</p>
-
-<p>I. To those, who are such fastidious hearers
-of the word, as to disregard an important truth,
-because repeatedly inforced upon them, I might
-reply that such truths can never be insisted
-upon too much, that our duty is to inculcate
-them, <i>in season, and out of season</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But the fact is mistaken. We are so far
-from nauseating our hearers, with a too common
-and superfluous truth, when we remind
-them perpetually, that, <i>by the fear of God,
-men depart from evil</i>, that, on the contrary,
-very many want to be informed, or at least
-convinced, of it.</p>
-
-<p>What the text affirms, is, that the <i>fear of
-God</i>, or the <small>RELIGIOUS PRINCIPLE</small>, is the proper
-guide of life. But look now into the <i>world</i>, at
-large: there the acknowledged rule of life, is
-<small>FASHION</small>. Look into the <i>civil or political</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">285</span>
-world: there the boasted rule of life, is <small>THE
-LAW OF THE MAGISTRATE</small>. Look into the
-<i>learned</i> world: there too commonly the only
-rule of life is each man’s own reason, or what
-he proudly calls <small>PHILOSOPHY</small>.</p>
-
-<p>And will it now be said that <i>the fear of God</i>,
-is a principle too stale and too unquestioned to
-be discoursed upon and recommended to you
-from this place, when we see so large and so
-considerable a part of the world actuated by one
-or other of these different and discordant principles?
-But neither</p>
-
-<p>II. Is the truth, though far enough from
-being generally received, so slightly grounded
-as to justify any man in the contempt of it.</p>
-
-<p>It is a truth, taught of God, and revered by
-all wise men. It has nature, and reason, and
-experience on its side; and is only combated
-by the folly, the short-sighted policy, or lastly,
-the pride, of half-thinking and presumptuous
-men.</p>
-
-<p>For to give, now, the godless principles,
-I before mentioned, a short and separate examination.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">286</span></p>
-
-<p>1. Tell <i>the man of the world</i>, that the religious
-principle is that by which alone he ought
-to govern himself, and you are presently told
-of the power and prerogatives of <small>FASHION</small>.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>The fear of God</i>, he will say, may be the
-proper rule of monks and hermits; but must
-be qualified, at least, in many respects, by such
-as live in the world and mix in the society of it.
-They who have to converse with mankind, are
-to accommodate themselves to their notions and
-practices: they are to think with the rest of the
-world, or at least they are to act with them:
-they are to found their moral systems on the
-liberal and enlarged basis of approved use or
-custom. Their observation of human life must
-inform them of the ways that men take to conciliate
-the good will of their fellows, to prosecute
-their own advantages in the world, and to
-acquire the confidence and esteem of that society,
-in which they are stationed. What they
-find to be the rule of others, must be a rule to
-themselves. To do otherwise is not weakness,
-only: It is, besides, arrogance, incivility,
-inhumanity.”</p>
-
-<p>All this is thought plausible by some men;
-and taken together, it must be owned, forms a
-very easy and commodious system: but how<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">287</span>
-consistent with conscience, with duty, and
-with common sense, they will do well to consider.
-For if <i>fashion</i> only be to regulate our conduct
-in all cases, I ask not what becomes of
-piety, but of humanity itself, I mean of those
-offices which we owe to others and to ourselves,
-and which reason dictates to us in every situation.
-Custom, you will say, is practical reason.
-But what! To be led blind-fold by the prevailing
-practice, whatever it be, what is it but
-to renounce our intelligent nature, and to live
-at hazard, and without reason? Further still:
-If it be sufficient to do as we see others <i>creditably</i>
-do, without examining any farther, we
-shall often find ourselves involved, I do not say
-in the most irrational, the most inconsistent,
-but the most horrid practices. Then, killing
-with malice and with forethought, if the point
-of honour prevail, will be no <i>murder</i>: And,
-adultery, if the law of politeness so ordain,
-shall hide its atrocious nature under the mask
-of <i>gallantry</i>: Then shall society at large
-become a scene of fraud and rapine; good faith,
-shall be termed <i>simplicity</i>, and fair dealing,
-<i>folly</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Go now, and say that <i>the fear of God</i> is a
-needless restraint on free spirits; and count the
-advantages which ye have reason to promise to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">288</span>
-yourselves, from acknowledging no other guide
-of life, but <i>imperious fashion</i>!</p>
-
-<p>2. A graver set of men come next, and tell
-us, “That <i>fashion</i> is indeed a very uncertain
-guide of life: But that <small>LAW</small>, the result of the
-public wisdom, armed with the public force,
-is an adequate rule of human action; that the
-legislator’s province is to enact such salutary
-laws, and the magistrate’s duty, to carry them
-into execution, as shall be sufficient to secure
-the peace and order of society; And that every
-other rule of life is at once unnecessary and ineffectual:
-<i>unnecessary</i>, because the interests
-of virtue are amply provided for by the wisdom
-of law; and <i>ineffectual</i>, because no other
-principle has force enough to exact obedience:
-That, in particular, <i>the fear of God</i> is too
-remote a consideration to restrain the tumultuous
-passions of men, which are held in subjection
-by nothing but the instant terrors of
-civil justice; in a word, that where the law of
-the state is duly enforced, there is no need of
-other restraints; and that, lastly, to lay a stress
-on <i>the religious principle</i> is to weaken the operation
-of law, as it opens a door to fanaticism
-and superstition.”</p>
-
-<p>This plea of the politician receives an apparent
-force from this certain truth, That law is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">289</span>
-indeed of indispensable necessity, and that the
-general virtue and happiness of a people cannot
-be maintained without it. We join him therefore
-very cordially in this encomium on civil
-justice; but must remind him, withal, that
-neither is the religious principle superseded by
-it, nor can civil justice itself maintain its due
-course, without the support of the religious
-principle: That, when the authority of law has
-done its best, there will be much for religion to
-controul and regulate; <i>much</i>, that is not
-within the reach of law, and without its jurisdiction:
-That <i>the fear of the Lord</i> penetrates
-deeper and farther, than the sword of the
-magistrate; and that, even within his own
-province, all his policy and all his power will
-take a very imperfect effect, without the concurrence
-of a higher principle; as he himself
-is abundantly convinced from the necessity of
-fortifying his own most important constitutions,
-by the religion of an oath; which is nothing
-else but an appeal to the fear of God, under a
-sense of its being a needful supplement to the
-fear of the magistrate.</p>
-
-<p>Yet society, they say, is entirely upheld by
-the authority of law; at least, the world may
-go on very well, by virtue of that only. Yes;
-It may go on, as we see it does, full of open<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">290</span>
-violence, which all its terrors cannot restrain;
-and of secret frauds, for which it cannot so
-much as project a remedy: It may go on, indeed,
-but polluted by vices of all sorts, which
-are not the objects of law, and even by crimes,
-which are often too strong for it: It may go
-on indeed, till the religious principle be quite
-effaced from the minds of men (if we may have
-leave for a moment, to put so desperate, and,
-thank God, so impossible a case); but, when
-that dreadful time comes, society itself, with
-all its bulwark of laws, must inevitably be
-swept away with it.</p>
-
-<p>Universal history bears testimony to this awful
-truth; there being no account of any state
-on the face of the earth, which could ever support
-itself in general virtue, or general happiness,
-by the mere force of its civil institutions.
-And how should it be otherwise, when the fear
-of God is requisite to enforce the law, as well
-as to observe it; to supply the state with faithful
-magistrates, as well as with obedient
-subjects?</p>
-
-<p>If then this vital principle of religion, so necessary
-to the conservation of all states, cannot
-be kept free from some mixture of fanaticism
-or superstition, we are surely to endure<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">291</span>
-the inconvenience, as we can, rather than put
-the interests of society to hazard by suspending
-them all on the weak and false supports of an
-irreligious policy.</p>
-
-<p>3. Lastly, the <span class="smcap">PHILOSOPHER’s</span> plea, though
-specious at first sight, is of all others the weakest.
-For <i>fashion</i>, if it chance to be on the
-side of virtue, will be punctually followed:
-And the sword of the <i>magistrate</i> can, in part,
-at least, enforce obedience. But what coercive
-power is there in <i>philosophy</i>? It may see and
-determine right: but who, or what shall compell
-this supreme directress of life to observe
-its own determinations? “The fitness, it may
-be said, of those determinations themselves;
-the very reason of the thing being the proper
-restraint of reasonable natures.” Still the question
-returns, What if I am disposed to throw
-off this restraint? I act against conviction,
-indeed, and am self-condemned, which to a
-liberal mind is no small punishment. But
-look into the world, and see if that punishment
-be sufficient to induce the bulk of mankind,
-nay the gross body of philosophers themselves,
-<i>to depart from evil</i>.</p>
-
-<p>And what, after all, is this magnified reason?
-One man admits no other rule of life but <i>abstract<span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">292</span>
-truth</i>, or what he calls <i>the differences of
-things</i>: Another, will hear of none, but an
-instinctive <i>moral sense</i>: And a third, entrenches
-himself within the narrow circle of
-<i>private happiness</i>. These several systems have
-been laid down, each in its turn, as the only
-proper basis of moral action: But could the
-patrons of them be made to agree in any one;
-or could their several schemes be made, as
-perhaps they might, to consist together: still,
-they could only serve to acquaint us what the
-nature of virtue is; they do but slenderly provide
-for the practice of it.</p>
-
-<p>Let the philosophers, then, debate this matter
-among themselves. It is enough for <i>us</i> to
-learn of Solomon, <i>to fear God</i>: To fear <small>HIM</small>,
-who is everywhere and essentially present;
-who is conscious to all our actions and all our
-thoughts; from whose knowledge there is no
-escape, from whose justice there is no appeal,
-and to whose power there is no hope, or possibility
-of resistance.</p>
-
-<p>With this principle, an unquestioned principle
-of reason, if there be any, deeply rooted
-in the mind, we have indeed an adequate rule
-of life; or, what is better, a controuling motive
-to put in practice whatever rule of life we<span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">293</span>
-chuse to follow. Moral systems, taken by
-themselves, are poor ineffective things; even
-virtue’s self is but a name, till the religious
-principle be infused into her. Then it is, that
-she lives and acts, and by her powerful influence
-inclines the hearts of men <i>to depart from
-evil</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Nor let any man apprehend that this religious
-fear will degrade, or servilize his virtue. To be
-free from sin, and only the servants of God, is
-the truest and noblest liberty.</p>
-
-<p>Dismissing, then, all other rules of life, let
-us adhere to that, which Solomon prescribes
-to us. It had been venerable from any hands,
-but comes with an extraordinary grace and
-propriety from <small>HIM</small>, who delivers it. So that
-none of the parties, concerned in this discourse,
-can excuse themselves from paying a peculiar
-deference to his judgment.</p>
-
-<p>1. The <small>MEN OF THE WORLD</small> can have no pretence
-for declining this determination. The
-author of it is no obscure sordid moralist,
-whose views of life are confined to a cloyster
-or a cottage. He addresses them from the
-throne of Israel, when it was the pride of the
-East; and from the center of a court, which he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">294</span>
-had made the envy of the surrounding nations.
-The followers of fashion will then act but agreeably
-to their own principles, if they respect the
-example of such a court, and the authority of
-its sovereign.</p>
-
-<p>2. The <small>POLITICIANS</small> will reflect, that their
-instructor is himself a great magistrate, consummate
-in the arts of government; who yet
-could find no secret, but that of <i>the fear of
-God</i>, by which he could reign securely himself,
-or promote the real welfare and prosperity
-of his people. With what complacency do
-they sometimes urge a political aphorism, taken
-from Aristotle! <i>But a greater than</i> Aristotle
-<i>is here</i>.</p>
-
-<p>3. Lastly, to you, the sages of the world,
-who are, or account yourselves <small>PHILOSOPHERS</small>,
-nothing can be so respectable to you, as the
-authority of <small>ONE</small>, whose name is the name itself
-of wisdom; of <small>ONE</small>, who, like you, <i>had given
-his heart to know wisdom</i><a id="FNanchor_245" href="#Footnote_245" class="fnanchor">[245]</a>; who had an understanding,
-at least, equal to yours, and an
-experience of life, far greater. Yet even <small>HE</small>
-delivers it, as the result of all his knowledge,
-<i>That by the fear of the Lord men depart from
-evil</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">295</span></p>
-
-<p>It is indeed this principle only, which gives
-its proper direction and integrity to every
-other. It controuls Fashion; supplies the
-defects of Law; and enforces the conclusions
-of Reason. It rectifies all our systems, and
-gives sense and solidity to all our speculations.</p>
-
-<p>To conclude, Let us all be wise enough to
-reverence the plain doctrine of the text, and to
-act upon it: The rather, as that doctrine is
-not only just and reasonable in itself, but proceeds
-from one, whom the Spirit of God had
-been pleased to inform with celestial wisdom.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">296</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLVIII">SERMON XLVIII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MAY 31, 1772.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">1 Cor.</span> vi. 12.</h3>
-
-<p><i>All things are lawful unto me; but all things
-are not expedient: All things are lawful
-for me; but I will not be brought under the
-power of any.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">It</span> would be taking up too much of your
-time, and of this discourse, to explain minutely
-the occasion of these words, and the connexion
-they have with the general argument of this
-chapter. Let it suffice to say, that they are
-introduced as an answer to something which
-the Corinthian Christians did, or might alledge
-for their neglect of the instructions, given<span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">297</span>
-them by the Apostle. We may conceive them
-to speak to this effect—“What you enjoin us
-so strictly to avoid, is not one of those practices
-which can be deemed unlawful: it is not,
-as we conceive, condemned by the law of nature,
-certainly, not by the law of that society
-to which we belong. Now in matters of this
-kind, there is no need of advice or direction:
-the things being indifferent in themselves, we
-may do as we please, and we are disposed, in
-the present case, to make use of our Christian
-liberty.”</p>
-
-<p>To this plea, or suggestion, the Apostle replies
-in the text: “Admitting, says he, the
-truth of what ye alledge for yourselves, it does
-not follow that I may not properly and usefully
-direct your conduct, in the present case. For
-suppose that <i>all things are lawful to me, all
-things are not expedient</i>: And, again, <i>though
-all things are lawful to me, I will not be
-brought under the power of any</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>St. Paul, you see, does not stay to consider
-whether the things forbidden to the Corinthians,
-were <i>lawful</i> or not (though possibly they might
-mistake in that assumption, as licentious or
-thoughtless people, we know, every day do)
-but, be this as it may, he insists that he had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">298</span>
-reason to lay them under some restraint even
-in <i>lawful</i> things, because the practice of such
-things was inexpedient, in many respects;
-And because, if all other considerations might
-be overlooked, it is enough that an unrestrained
-indulgence in them begets slavish habits, and
-would, in the end, destroy, or very much impair,
-their moral freedom.</p>
-
-<p>Of the words, thus far opened, I propose to
-make this use; to dissuade you from giving
-a full scope to the pursuit even of innocent
-pleasures; and that, from the two considerations,
-expressed in the text:</p>
-
-<p>I. That such devotion of ourselves to them
-is, on many other accounts, hurtful and improper—<i>all
-things are not expedient</i>: And</p>
-
-<p>II. That, in particular, it violates the dignity
-of human nature, by taking from us, or
-weakening to a great degree, that manly authority
-of reason, that virtuous self-command,
-which we should always retain, and be in a
-condition to exert, even in indifferent matters—<i>I
-will not be brought under the power of
-any</i>.</p>
-
-<p>1. Wealth and prosperity have a natural
-tendency to alter, that is, in the language of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">299</span>
-moralists, to <i>corrupt</i>, the public manners.
-Hence it is that the old English habits of
-plainness, industry, and frugality, are, now,
-exchanged for those of indulgence, dissipation,
-and expence. All the elegant accommodations
-of life have an unusual stress laid upon them;
-and there seems to be a general effort to advance
-them all to the last degree of refinement. The
-superfluous, which we call the fine arts, excite
-an universal admiration, and administer, in ten
-thousand ways, to a luxurious, which, again,
-takes the name of a polite, indulgence. Hence,
-society, which used to fill only the vacant intervals
-of business, is now become the <i>business</i>
-of life; and yet is found insipid (so insatiable
-is the love of dissipation) if it be not, further,
-quickened by amusements. These have multiplied
-upon us so prodigiously, that they meet
-us at every turn, and in every shape; nay, are
-grown so common, that they would almost lose
-the name of amusements, if every possible art
-were not employed to give a poignancy to
-them, and if fashion, after all, more than the
-pleasure they afford, did not support the credit
-of them. As the last resource of the weary
-disappointed mind, we have found means to
-interest our keenest passions in one species of
-amusement, which is therefore called <i>play</i>, by
-way of eminence; and is become the favourite<span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">300</span>
-one, because the most violent: just as the
-hottest cordials succeed to the free use of strong
-liquors.</p>
-
-<p>In this state of things (a very alarming one,
-in all views) nothing threatens the utter ruin of
-the little virtue, that is left among us, so much,
-as the general persuasion, that such pursuits
-may be indulged to any degree, because they
-are commonly acknowledged to be <i>lawful</i>.
-Here, then, the distinction of the Apostle
-comes in very seasonably, and may, one would
-hope, be pressed on the lovers of pleasure,
-with some effect. We may question, it seems,
-the <i>expediency</i> of these pursuits, how indifferent
-soever they be in their own nature; and
-a little reflexion will shew that they are, indeed,
-<i>inexpedient</i>, that is, unprofitable, unadvisable,
-improper, in a great variety of respects.</p>
-
-<p>I do not suppose, at present, that the expence
-of them is ruinous to those, who devote
-themselves to these pleasures (for then they
-would plainly not be <i>lawful</i> to such persons);
-but consider, if you can afford to pay the price
-of them ever so well, they take up too much of
-your time: abundantly too much, if you have
-any profession to follow, or to prepare yourselves<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">301</span>
-for, as most men have; but too much,
-if you have not, because it might, and should
-be employed on better things.</p>
-
-<p>Then, of the little time, they leave to yourselves,
-they disable you, in some degree, for
-making the proper use. For they dissipate
-the attention; they relax the nerves of industry
-and application; they spread a languor over all
-the faculties, and make the exertion of them,
-to any valuable purpose, painful at least, if not
-impossible. We hear it generally observed,
-that there is a scarcity of able men in all the
-departments of life. Can it be otherwise, when
-the vigour of the mind, which should nourish
-all great and laudable efforts, which is so requisite
-to push the active powers of invention,
-or recollection, to their full extent, is wasted
-on trifles, is checked by frivolous habits, and
-left to languish under them?</p>
-
-<p>Or say, that you have force of mind enough
-to elude this so natural effect of dissipation, is
-it nothing that, by giving your countenance to
-it, you draw in weaker spirits to make the
-dangerous experiment? that you help to propagate
-the enfeebling passion through all
-quarters, till, from this authorized scene of
-vanity, the Capital, the contagion spreads (as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">302</span>
-we see it now does) to the smaller towns, and
-even to private houses, in the remotest provinces?
-that you contribute to make respectable
-I know not what frivolous and worthless arts,
-and, of course, to multiply the professors of
-them, to the great discouragement and decay of
-useful industry? that you hurt the interests of
-society, by giving an air of importance to the
-veriest trifles, and by diverting on these the attention,
-and the passion, that should regularly,
-and would otherwise, exert themselves on nobler
-objects?</p>
-
-<p>I might push these questions still further.
-For I remember what history attests, and what
-wise men have said, on the chapter of <i>polite
-arts and elegant amusements</i>.</p>
-
-<p>“They tell us, how sad a sign<a id="FNanchor_246" href="#Footnote_246" class="fnanchor">[246]</a> of the times
-it is, when they grow into general repute among
-us; that from incessantly indulged appetites
-(let the object of them be what it will) such an
-impotence of mind may follow, such a lust of
-gratification, such an impatience of controuling
-a predominant fancy, as shall overleap all the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">303</span>
-fences of discretion and virtue. The dæmon
-of taste, say they, shall be obeyed, in defiance
-of every private and public duty, till distress,
-disgrace, and infamy break in upon us; till we
-seek the relief of our wants in fraud and rapine,
-involve the public ruin in our own, and, in the
-end, rush blindfold, through an extreme of
-profligacy, to desperation.”</p>
-
-<p>To this effect, and in this tone, have some
-inveighed against our more refined and elegant
-<i>amusements</i>. But I return to what are commonly
-known by that name: and with respect
-to these, allow me to say that the life of man is
-a serious thing<a id="FNanchor_247" href="#Footnote_247" class="fnanchor">[247]</a>: so serious, that dissolute, I
-mean, untempered, continued mirth, or pleasure,
-is not of a piece with it<a id="FNanchor_248" href="#Footnote_248" class="fnanchor">[248]</a>. Our virtue, our
-hopes, nay, our present happiness depends on
-keeping the mind in a firm and steady frame.
-Whatever encroaches on this manliness of
-temper, is pernicious, and unchristian.</p>
-
-<p>I will indulge the extreme candour to suppose,
-that, in a constant round of <i>lawful</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">304</span>
-amusements, you do not forget, or intermit
-your moral and religious duties. But with
-what spirit are they performed? With disgust,
-I doubt; but certainly, with indifference.
-Nor is this the worst. Temptations are to be
-expected in this life: and in what condition are
-we to meet them? Nay, we expose ourselves
-to needless temptation, even in the midst of
-these <i>lawful</i> pleasures; and we bring no power
-with us, hardly the inclination, to withstand
-it. The present scene distracts the mind, and
-fascinates the senses. And, in this delirium of
-the whole man, without God in his thought,
-or heaven in his eye, what wonder if he become
-the sport, and, almost before he is aware, the
-victim of every passion!</p>
-
-<p>Still he is not happy in this feverish state: at
-most, he but forgets himself, for a moment:
-and the intervals of his amusement, which, in
-the nature of things, must be many and long,
-are filled with disgust and languor. Nay, the
-very amusement wears out by frequent repetition.
-And then such a sickliness of mind succeeds,
-and such a weariness of living on in a
-too much used and exhausted world, as is insupportable
-and fatal to him<a id="FNanchor_249" href="#Footnote_249" class="fnanchor">[249]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">305</span></p>
-
-<p>You see then there are many good reasons,
-which shew the inexpediency of prosecuting
-even <i>lawful</i> pleasures with an unrestrained
-passion. But, if all others were away, there is
-ONE consideration still behind, and of so much
-weight, that St. Paul scruples not to make a
-distinct argument of it, and to press it on the
-Corinthian Christians, as fully decisive of the
-point in question—<i>All things are lawful for
-me; but</i> <small>I WILL NOT BE BROUGHT UNDER THE
-POWER OF ANY</small>—And to unfold this argument
-is what I proposed to myself</p>
-
-<p>2. <i>Under the second head of this discourse.</i></p>
-
-<p>It should be the ambition of every man to
-preserve the independency of his own mind on
-all his natural or acquired inclinations. The
-dignity of his character depends on this supremacy:
-and his virtue is no longer secure, than
-while he retains the power, on all occasions, to
-exert it.</p>
-
-<p>1. The stoical wise man was exposed to
-much ridicule by taking to himself the name
-and office of a king. The pretensions were
-high, no doubt, and the language, something
-arrogant and ostentatious. But, let the terms,
-we employ, be what they will, all philosophy,
-that deserves the name, must agree in this,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306">306</span>
-That to have the command of himself, is the
-duty, and chief distinction of a wise man<a id="FNanchor_250" href="#Footnote_250" class="fnanchor">[250]</a>.
-There is, then, a consistency and harmony in
-his whole conduct. We naturally respect those
-who give this proof of respecting themselves;
-and we place an entire confidence in the vigour
-and uniformity of their character.</p>
-
-<p>Again: though the virtue of self-denial shine
-out to most advantage in the conquest of ardent
-passions and violent temptations, its use is not
-inconsiderable in curbing all the lighter fancies.
-The reason is, that custom prevails insensibly,
-and reaches farther than we, at first, intended.
-By humouring the mind in trifles, we teach it to
-presume on its own importunity, in greater
-matters: and it will be found a convenient
-rule in the management of our passions, as of
-our children, to refuse a compliance with them,
-not merely when they ask improper things, but
-when they ask any thing with impatience.</p>
-
-<p>Even our curiosity, an innocent and useful
-passion, should be kept within bounds, and
-not indulged, as we see it is, on every occasion
-that presents itself to us.</p>
-
-<p>The continence of Scipio has been much and
-justly applauded. But he went a step too far,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">307</span>
-in seeing his captive. He triumphed, indeed,
-over the stronger temptation, but he was not
-enough on his guard against the weaker: by
-complying too easily with a frivolous curiosity,
-he risked the honour of that virtue, which a
-pagan historian finds so divine in <small>ONE</small>, who was
-<i>et juvenis, et cœlebs, et victor</i><a id="FNanchor_251" href="#Footnote_251" class="fnanchor">[251]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>To apply these reflexions to the case before
-us. It may seem to be a matter of great indifference,
-whether we indulge an inclination for
-<i>lawful</i> amusements, or not. But the dignity
-of our character is concerned in keeping a strict
-hand over our inclinations of every sort: and,
-if it were only for an exercise of self-government,
-it would be worth the while to moderate, that
-is, frequently to suspend, the use of a favourite,
-though innocent gratification. To be enslaved
-by vicious habits, is the ignominy of a little
-mind: to be superior to all, is the glory of a
-great one.</p>
-
-<p>2. But, in truth, there is no security in any
-case, if we let go this <i>habit</i> of self-government.
-One compliance inevitably brings on another;
-and, though we set out with the design of stopping
-at a certain point, we shall almost fatally<span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">308</span>
-be carried much farther. We meant to acquiesce
-in this, confessedly harmless, indulgence:
-constant use makes it insipid; and then
-we venture on one of a suspicious character.
-Being now on the confines of vice, we are easily
-pushed into that quarter; with some doubt and
-hesitation, at first; but scruples give way, as
-the habit strengthens, and all vices being connected
-with each other, especially all of one
-sort, we, by degrees, make the trial of all: and
-thus, from an innocent fancy, or inclination,
-indulged too freely, at setting out, we slip insensibly,
-and beside our purpose, into manifest,
-perhaps universal, dissolution.</p>
-
-<p>So salutary, so divine is the resolution of the
-Apostle! <i>All things are lawful for me: but
-I will not be brought under the power of
-any.</i></p>
-
-<p>To interdict amusements, altogether, to the
-vivacity of youth, would be severe and cynical.
-They are abundantly too numerous, at present,
-and too much frequented: but many of them
-are supposed to be, and some, without doubt,
-are, in themselves, <i>lawful</i>. Of these, only, I
-am now speaking: and even of these it must be
-affirmed, that the unrestrained use of them is
-<i>not expedient</i>; as, for the other reasons suggested<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">309</span>
-to you in this discourse, so chiefly,
-because it degrades the man, and enslaves
-him.</p>
-
-<p>To conclude; the safe and manly part is, <i>to
-be temperate in all things</i><a id="FNanchor_252" href="#Footnote_252" class="fnanchor">[252]</a>: to make our
-pleasures, the occasional relaxation<a id="FNanchor_253" href="#Footnote_253" class="fnanchor">[253]</a> of the
-mind, and by no means the employment of it:
-not, perhaps, to affect a total abstinence from
-them, which the world would account an incivility;
-but resolutely to forbear all vicious, or
-but suspected pleasures: and, for the rest, to
-keep a great deal on this side of what is thought
-allowable in the use of them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">310</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_XLIX">SERMON XLIX.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED JULY 5, 1772.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Matth.</span> v. 38, 39, 40, 41.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Ye have heared that it hath been said, an eye
-for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth. But I
-say unto you, that ye resist not evil</i>: but
-<i>whosoever shall smite thee on thy right
-cheek, turn to him the other also</i>: And, <i>if
-any man will sue thee at the law, and take
-away thy coat, let him have thy cloke also</i>:
-And <i>whosoever shall compel thee to go a
-mile, go with him twain</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">I suppose</span>, if these words had been found
-in any book whatsoever, except the Bible, no
-man of sense could have entertained the least
-doubt of their meaning. But, while one sort<span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">311</span>
-of readers think they do honour to God’s word
-by taking every precept in the most strict and
-rigid sense, and another, by the same mode of
-interpretation, hope to dishonour it, we may
-expect that, between them, the usual rules of
-criticism will be very little regarded.</p>
-
-<p>The text refers us to a law of Moses, which
-established the <i>jus talionis</i>, or <i>right of retaliation</i><a id="FNanchor_254" href="#Footnote_254" class="fnanchor">[254]</a>.
-This law, in the main, is consonant
-to natural equity; was of general use and authority
-in ancient times; has, with some modification,
-been adopted by legislators of all
-times; and was peculiarly fit, or rather necessary,
-in the Mosaic institute, composed in a
-very remote age of the world, and addressed to
-a fierce and barbarous people.</p>
-
-<p>But this, so reasonable law, had undergone
-a double abuse in our Saviour’s time. What
-was designed, in the hands of the magistrate,
-to prevent future injury, was construed into an
-allowance of private and personal revenge:
-And, again, what was calculated to prevent
-great and outrageous injuries, was pleaded in
-excuse for avenging every injury. The Jews
-retaliated, at pleasure, on those that offended
-them, and for the slightest offence.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">312</span></p>
-
-<p>Our divine Master, then, without derogating
-from the law, when administered in due form,
-and on a suitable occasion, applies himself to
-correct these so gross perversions of it—I <i>say
-unto you, that ye resist not evil</i>—that is, that
-ye do not retaliate on the person, that does
-you an injury, in the way of private revenge;
-or even of a public suit, for small and trivial
-injuries.</p>
-
-<p>You see, our Lord’s purpose was, to oppose
-the mild spirit of the Gospel to the rigid letter
-of the law, or rather to an abusive interpretation
-of it: And this purpose is declared in
-three familiar and proverbial sayings, which,
-together, amount to thus much; “That, when
-a small or tolerable injury is sustained by
-any one, either in his person, or property, or
-liberty, it is far better (and was, thenceforward,
-to be the law of Christians) to endure
-patiently that injury, or even to risk a repetition
-of it, than, by retaliating on the aggressor,
-to perpetuate feuds and quarrels in
-the world.”</p>
-
-<p>That such is the meaning of the text, would
-appear more evidently, if the injuries specified
-were, further, considered with an eye to the
-sentiments and circumstances of the Jewish<span class="pagenum" id="Page_313">313</span>
-people. <i>A blow on the cheek</i> was, always, an
-indignity, no doubt; but the sense of it was
-not inflamed in a Jew by our Gothic notions of
-honour; though, if it had, the divine Saviour<a id="FNanchor_255" href="#Footnote_255" class="fnanchor">[255]</a>
-would scarce have advised his followers to extinguish
-it in the blood of a fellow-citizen: the
-loss of a <i>vest</i><a id="FNanchor_256" href="#Footnote_256" class="fnanchor">[256]</a>, or under garment, was easily
-repaired, or not much felt, in the cheap and
-warm country of Judæa: and the <i>compulsion
-to attend another</i><a id="FNanchor_257" href="#Footnote_257" class="fnanchor">[257]</a>, on his occasions, was not
-much resented by a people, that had been
-familiarised to this usage by their foreign
-masters.</p>
-
-<p>But, without scrutinizing the expression farther
-(which, as I said, is of the proverbial cast,
-and, therefore, not to be taken strictly) it appears
-certainly, that the rule enjoined is no
-more than this, “That we are not to act on the
-old rigid principle of <i>retaliation</i>, but rather
-to exercise a mutual patience and forbearance,
-in our intercourse with each other, for
-the sake of charity and peace.”</p>
-
-<p>Still, it has been asked, whether this rule be
-a reasonable one, and whether the conduct, it
-prescribes, be not likely to do more hurt, than
-good to mankind?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_314">314</span></p>
-
-<p>The ground of this question is laid in
-following considerations:</p>
-
-<p>First, that resentment, being a natural passion,
-was, without doubt, implanted in us for
-valuable purposes, and that its proper and immediate
-use is seen in repelling injuries:</p>
-
-<p>Secondly, That to eradicate, or to suppress
-this movement of nature, is to dispirit mankind,
-and to effeminate their character; in
-other words, to make them unfit for the discharge
-of those offices, which the good of society
-requires:</p>
-
-<p>Lastly, That this softness of temper is injurious
-to the individuals, in whom it is found,
-as it exposes them to many insults, and much
-ill usage, which the exertion of a quick and
-spirited resentment would enable them to
-avoid:</p>
-
-<p>From all which, conclusions are drawn very
-unfavourable to the doctrine of the text, and
-to the honour of our divine Master. It will,
-then, be proper to give the premises a distinct
-and careful examination. And,</p>
-
-<p>I. <i>The use of the natural passion of resentment
-is not superseded by the law of Jesus.</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_315">315</span>
-For the legitimate use of this passion is to
-quicken us in repelling such injuries as would
-render human life wholly burthensome and
-uneasy to us, not of those petty affronts and
-discourtesies which afflict us much less by
-being dissembled and forgiven, than by being
-resented and returned. Now Christianity does
-not require us to renounce the right of nature
-in repelling injuries of the former class. The
-law in question, as explained by our Lord
-himself, does not, we have seen, import thus
-much: and for the rest, the appeal is open to
-the principles of nature and common sense—<i>Why
-even of yourselves judge ye not what is
-right<a id="FNanchor_258" href="#Footnote_258" class="fnanchor">[258]</a>?</i> The practice of the Apostles (the
-best comment on the law) shews, too, that, on
-certain critical and urgent occasions<a id="FNanchor_259" href="#Footnote_259" class="fnanchor">[259]</a>, they
-scrupled not to take advantage of those principles.
-So that universally, as it would seem,
-where the ends of self-preservation, or of prepollent
-public utility, require and justify resistance
-in other men, there it is left free for
-Christians, likewise, to <i>resist evil</i>; the purpose
-of their divine legislator being, in this instance,
-to explain the law of nature, and to
-guard it from the abuse of our hasty passions,
-not to abrogate, or suspend it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_316">316</span></p>
-
-<p>If any case be excepted from the general
-permission, it is that of <i>persecution for the
-sake of his religion</i>. And possibly this exception
-was made in the early days of Christianity,
-to afford a striking proof to the world
-that this religion owed its success to the divine
-protection only, and not to the power of men.
-Accordingly, the command given in that case
-has an extraordinary, that is, a suitable, promise<a id="FNanchor_260" href="#Footnote_260" class="fnanchor">[260]</a>,
-annexed to it. But the end of God’s
-special providence having been answered, and
-the prophecies accomplished<a id="FNanchor_261" href="#Footnote_261" class="fnanchor">[261]</a>, by the patience
-of the saints under the fiery trial of persecution
-in those days (whence the miraculous establishment
-of our religion is evinced) it seems
-allowable to suppose that the Christian world
-was, thenceforth, in this, as in other instances,
-to conduct itself by the ordinary rules and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_317">317</span>
-principles of human wisdom; provided that
-the object of that wisdom be necessary <i>self-defence</i>,
-and not dominion, or revenge, which,
-in all the forms of either, Christianity forbids
-and reprobates.</p>
-
-<p>But be this as it may, in cases where religion
-is not concerned, it seems clear that
-Christians are left at liberty to repell intolerable
-oppressions by all those means, which
-human wisdom dictates. And there is no need
-of drawing the line very exactly between <i>tolerable</i>
-and <i>intolerable</i> injuries, because the aggressor,
-knowing the force of instinctive passion,
-has reason, always, to fear, that it will
-begin to operate too soon, rather, than too
-late.</p>
-
-<p>The apprehension, then, that the proper use
-of the natural passion, “<i>resentment of injuries</i>”,
-is likely to be defeated by the patient
-genius of the Gospel, is weakly entertained:
-While, on the other hand, every one must see
-the convenience of putting this fiery sentiment
-of indignation under some restraint, and of
-interdicting the exertion of it in cases, to
-which so violent a remedy is ill and hurtfully
-applied.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_318">318</span></p>
-
-<p>But</p>
-
-<p>II. It is said, that this doctrine of the Gospel
-tends to <i>dispirit and effeminate mankind</i>, and
-to <i>render Christians unfit for many offices,
-which society requires of them</i>.</p>
-
-<p>What these offices are, one does not readily
-conceive, since it is allowed that <i>evil may be
-resisted</i>, when it becomes excessive, that is,
-when it is worth resisting. But, I suppose, the
-objectors mean, this patient spirit of Christianity
-damps the vigour with which it is for the
-interest of men in society that their civil rights
-should be asserted, or a foreign enemy repelled:
-they think, in short, it makes <i>bad
-citizens</i>, and <i>worse soldiers</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Now to the <small>FORMER</small> charge I reply, that it
-only tends to check, or prevent, the turbulent,
-the factious, the seditious spirit of any community
-(which is surely doing it no hurt) while,
-at the same time, it allows men to assert their
-essential civil interests by every reasonable exertion
-of firmness and courage; nay, inculcates
-those principles of a disinterested love for mankind,
-and what is properly called a public
-spirit, which make it their duty to do so. And
-they will not do it with the less effect, for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_319">319</span>
-waiting till the provocation given appear to all
-men to be without excuse. <i>The fury of a
-patient man</i>, is almost proverbial: and particularly,
-in this case, it is to be expected that,
-when the natural incitement to resistance, long
-repressed and moderated, comes at length to
-be authorised by necessity, and quickened by
-sense of duty, it will act with a force and
-constancy, not a little formidable to those
-against whom it is directed. There is no danger,
-then, that <i>true patriotism</i> should suffer
-by the meek principles of the Gospel of peace.</p>
-
-<p>As to the <small>OTHER</small> charge of their weakening
-the <i>military spirit</i>, it must be owned again,
-they would render wars less frequent than they
-now are, and less destructive—forgive Christianity
-this wrong—but, when the necessity of
-self-defence (the only justifiable ground of
-war) is real and instant, I know not, why the
-Christian prince, or Christian soldier, should
-want courage, because he had given proof of
-this equitable forbearance; or, that either will
-be likely to do his duty the worse, for knowing
-that what he does, <i>is</i> his duty.</p>
-
-<p>And, if we appeal to fact, it is enough
-known, that the Christian soldiery have been
-no disgrace to their profession; no, not even<span class="pagenum" id="Page_320">320</span>
-then, when the unresisting spirit was at its
-height, I mean, in the early days of our religion.
-Christians had many good reasons for
-not being forward to serve in the Roman
-armies; but some of them did serve there;
-without doubt, when they were released from
-such military obligations and observances, as
-they esteemed idolatrous: Nay, it appears, that
-the number of Christian soldiers was, on some
-occasions, considerable: Yet we no where find,
-that these patient men misbehaved themselves
-in a day of action; or, that they threw away
-their swords, when they had said their
-prayer.</p>
-
-<p>And I give this instance of bravery in the
-primitive Christians, the rather, because it
-cannot be imputed to a <i>fanatic spirit</i>, which
-is able, we know, to controul any principles:
-It cannot, I say, be imputed to a fanatic spirit,
-because religion was not the object of those
-wars, in which they were engaged: They were
-left, then, to the proper influence of their own
-principles; which at that time had their full
-effect upon them, and yet did not prevent
-them from acting with the true spirit of their
-profession, that is, with a full sense of the duty
-imposed upon them by their engagements to
-the state.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_321">321</span></p>
-
-<p>With regard to the <i>publick</i>, then, there is
-no reason to think that our Lord’s injunction
-will disserve it, in any respect.</p>
-
-<p>III. The last, and most plausible objection
-to the conduct prescribed in the text, is,
-“That the tame spirit, it discovers, is injurious
-to <i>individuals</i>, and only serves to provoke
-much insult and ill usage, which a
-quick resentment and return of injuries
-would prevent.”</p>
-
-<p>This is the common plea, and passes with
-many for a full justification, of that false honour,
-which predominates in the world, but is
-equally frivolous with the other pretences, already
-confuted.</p>
-
-<p>For,</p>
-
-<p>1. It is taken up on a groundless and mistaken
-notion, that the unfriendly and malevolent
-passions are the most natural to mankind.
-On the contrary, man is by nature, kind and
-generous; proud and vindictive, indeed, if stimulated
-by ill treatment, but prompted, again,
-by that very pride, to relent at the appearance
-of gentleness and submission in the party offending;
-and easily disposed to lay aside the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_322">322</span>
-thoughts of revenge, when no obstinate resistance
-seems to make it necessary. There are,
-certainly, few persons, at least in civilized life,
-of so base a temper, as to insult others, and
-much less to insult them the more, for their
-gentle inoffensive manners. Or, if such monsters
-there be, they will soon become detestable
-in society; while the objects of their unprovoked
-fury find an asylum in the general
-good-will and favour of mankind.</p>
-
-<p>They, therefore, who pretend that the world
-cannot be kept in order, but by resentment
-and revenge, will do well to make trial of the
-opposite conduct, before they have recourse to
-so boisterous a remedy. They will probably
-find, that <i>only by</i> <small>PRIDE</small> <i>cometh contention</i><a id="FNanchor_262" href="#Footnote_262" class="fnanchor">[262]</a>,
-and that they have injured their species, in
-thinking otherwise.</p>
-
-<p>2. Let it be remembered, that the Gospel
-neither forbids us to take the benefit of the
-laws in cases, where the injury is considerable,
-nor to resist, without law, in extreme cases;
-besides, that our corrupt nature will often get
-the better of <i>principle</i>, I mean, when the provocation
-is not of that size, as to justify either
-remedy. Whence it follows, that brutal force<span class="pagenum" id="Page_323">323</span>
-and malignity will lie under many restraints,
-and will rarely be encouraged by the passive
-temper of a conscientious Christian, to proceed
-to such lengths, as the objection supposes.
-But,</p>
-
-<p>3. Lastly, and principally, we should call to
-mind, that, though some ungenerous dispositions
-should take advantage of our dissembling
-smaller injuries, to repeat, or even increase
-them, till they come at length to the utmost
-verge of what we call <i>tolerable</i> injuries, yet it
-does not follow, from such inconvenience, that
-the law is to be accounted inexpedient. For
-the law has a general end in view, the good of
-society at large, or of the individual: And the
-law is a proper one, if the end be commonly
-and for the most part attained by the conduct
-prescribed, though with some exceptions.</p>
-
-<p>That the lawgiver foresaw the possibility of
-such exceptions, is clear from the language,
-employed by him. If a blow <i>on one cheek</i> be
-patiently received, it may be succeeded by a
-blow <i>on the other</i>: if we suffer our <i>coat</i> to be
-taken away, our <i>cloke</i> may follow it: and if we
-make no resistance to the requisition of going
-<i>one mile</i>, we may be compelled to go <i>two</i>.
-The inconvenience, then, is supposed and admitted<span class="pagenum" id="Page_324">324</span>
-in the law itself; but it was seen not to
-be of moment enough to evacuate the law.
-Generally speaking, it will be better to bear
-the inconvenience, than to violate the law;
-better for the injured party himself, but certainly
-better for society, at large.</p>
-
-<p>We are certain, that the law will operate
-this effect, because the lawgiver is, by supposition,
-divine. He, who knew <i>what was in
-man</i>, what his nature, and true interest, is,
-could not mistake in adapting the law to the
-subject of it. And then, for the <i>exceptions</i>,
-he has it in his power to make amends for
-those, and to recompense fully, as he engages
-to do, any sacrifice we make to conscience,
-acting within the scope and purpose of the
-law.</p>
-
-<p>So that, on the whole, it is but a just deference
-to the law, and to the authority of the
-lawgiver, to abstain from <i>resisting evil</i>, according
-to the true sense and spirit of the
-command, though, by so doing, we subject
-ourselves to some, nay to much inconvenience.
-For he must be slenderly instructed in the
-school of Christ, who is yet to learn, that
-greater sacrifices, than these, must be made,
-if need be, for the sake of <i>him who died for us</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_325">325</span></p>
-
-<p>Enough, I hope, has been now said, not
-only to vindicate the sacred text, but to let you
-see how repugnant the doctrine of it is to that
-contentious, vindictive, and even sanguinary
-spirit, which prevails so much among those,
-who, by a strange abuse of language, call
-themselves Christians.</p>
-
-<p>The root of this mischief, is, a pride of
-heart, nourished in us by an ill-directed education,
-and fostered, through life, by the corrupt
-customs and maxims of the world. To
-counteract this inveterate evil, we shall do well
-to consider who and what we are; weak, infirm,
-and sinful creatures, who are provoking
-Heaven every day, and should not therefore resent
-it much, if we receive but little respect
-from men. We should consider, too, that we
-are the followers of <small>HIM</small>, who suffered every
-indignity without deserving any, and yet requires
-no more from us, than he practised
-himself, and for our sakes.</p>
-
-<p>Such considerations will make us humble
-and meek and placable; ready to forgive, as
-we hope to be forgiven; and disposed to make
-allowance for those defects in others, which
-we have so much reason to lament in ourselves.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_326">326</span></p>
-
-<p>Still, if we find the duty, of <i>not resisting
-evil</i>, painful and uneasy to us, let us be careful
-to avoid the occasions, which require the
-exercise of it. A prudent Christian (and
-Christianity excludes not, nay enjoins, prudence)
-will rarely be put to this trial of his
-virtue. We bring an insult on ourselves by
-indiscreet liberties, by offensive actions or rash
-expressions; and then, rather than retract a
-folly, we commit a crime.</p>
-
-<p>After all, the most cautious, inoffensive conduct
-may not exempt us, in every instance,
-from discourtesies and affronts, from the petulance
-or injustice of unreasonable men. In
-this case the authority of our divine Master
-must controul the movements of nature. We
-must resolve to endure what we dare not resist;
-and, for the rest, may assure ourselves, that, in
-giving this proof of our Christian temper and
-principles, we do what is perfectly fit and right
-in itself, is singularly conducive to the good of
-society, and, whatever our impatient passions
-may suggest, will contribute more than any
-resistance, to our own true enjoyment, even in
-this world.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_327">327</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_L">SERMON L.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MAY 14, 1775.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Luke</span> ix. 26.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my
-words, of him shall the Son of man be
-ashamed, when he shall come in his own
-glory and in his Father’s, and of the holy
-Angels.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">If</span> we compare this text with the parallel one
-of St. Mark<a id="FNanchor_263" href="#Footnote_263" class="fnanchor">[263]</a>, it will seem probable that it
-more immediately concerned the Jews; who,
-in consequence of their being <i>ashamed</i> of
-Christ, and rejecting him, as their Messiah,
-should themselves be covered with shame, and
-be rejected by him from being his people,
-when he came to take vengeance of their crimes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_328">328</span>
-in the destruction of Jerusalem. In this view,
-the words are prophetical of what should, and,
-in fact, did, befall the <i>unbelieving Jews</i> of
-that age, in which Christ lived; for <i>before
-that age was passed, all these things were
-fulfilled on</i> that <i>adulterous and sinful generation</i>:
-were so remarkably fulfilled, that the
-unbelieving Jews, only, were involved in that
-calamity, while the Christians, even to a man,
-as we are told, providentially made their escape
-from it.</p>
-
-<p>But, though this be the primary sense of
-the text, we have reason to believe that something
-further, and still more terrible, was intended
-by it. For the destruction of Jerusalem
-was emblematical of that final destruction,
-which should await all the enemies of Christ
-in the day of judgment; as we may probably
-gather from the exaggerated terms in which the
-prophecy concerning Christ’s coming to judge
-Jerusalem is delivered, and as we certainly conclude
-from those passages of scripture, which professedly
-describe the final day of judgment, when
-<i>all that believe not shall be condemned</i><a id="FNanchor_264" href="#Footnote_264" class="fnanchor">[264]</a>, and
-concerning which our Lord himself says—<i>He
-that rejecteth me, and receiveth not my words,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_329">329</span>
-hath one that judgeth him: the</i> <small>WORD</small> <i>which
-I have spoken</i>, <small>THE SAME</small> <i>shall judge him in
-the last day</i><a id="FNanchor_265" href="#Footnote_265" class="fnanchor">[265]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Whence, you see, we are authorized to take
-the words of the text in their full force, and to
-understand them as a general declaration to
-<small>ALL</small>, who shall be <i>ashamed of Christ and of
-his words</i>, that <i>of them</i> shall Christ, also, <i>be
-ashamed</i>, in the great day of retribution, sublimely
-expressed by the circumstance of his
-<i>coming in his own glory, and in his Father’s,
-and of the holy Angels</i>.</p>
-
-<p>To be <i>ashamed of</i> <small>CHRIST</small>, is very intelligible
-language, and means to disown him for
-what he claims to be, The Messiah; and to
-take it for a degradation to us, a reflexion on
-our own sufficiency and importance, to regard
-him as our Lord and Saviour. In like manner,
-to be <i>ashamed of his</i> <small>WORDS</small>, is, to think it
-beneath us to receive his doctrine, and to observe
-it: It is to say, or to behave ourselves as
-if we said, with neglect and scorn, that we
-will not condescend to be influenced and directed
-by it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_330">330</span></p>
-
-<p>But how, and in what respects, may we be
-said to incur the guilt of this charge? in what
-ways, may we testify to the world that the
-shame of <small>CHRIST</small> and of his <small>WORDS</small> is predominant
-in us?</p>
-
-<p>The inquiry, you see, is of the last importance;
-for this <i>shame</i> of Christ, in whomsoever
-it prevails, and so far as it prevails, will
-be repaid in kind, in that day, when he shall
-<i>come in glory</i>, in that day when it so much
-concerns us to <i>have boldness</i> before him, <i>in
-the day of judgment</i><a id="FNanchor_266" href="#Footnote_266" class="fnanchor">[266]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>To assist you, then, in making this momentous
-inquiry, permit me to lay before you,
-gradually and distinctly, the <small>CHIEF</small> of those
-cases, which appear to me to express, or imply,
-the existence of this <i>false shame</i>; and may
-therefore let us see whether we are, or not,
-involved in the guilt of it.</p>
-
-<p>I. They (if any such there be) who reject
-Christianity on the grounds of a fair impartial
-inquiry, cannot so properly be said to be
-<i>ashamed</i> of Christ, as to be <i>convinced</i> that he
-has no claim to their respect and veneration.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_331">331</span>
-For they deny him, they will say, not from a
-principle of <i>shame</i>, or disrespect, but of what
-they take to be <i>right reason</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But then, if any oblique views have influenced
-their disbelief; if conceit, or vanity, or
-presumption, has any share in forming their
-conclusions; if a careless or fastidious neglect
-of the means, by which they might be better
-informed, has mixed itself with their inquiries;
-if they have felt the smallest disposition in
-themselves to struggle with evidence, or to be
-concluded by any thing but evidence; if any,
-or all, of these motives can be imputed to them,
-they will find themselves liable, more or less, to
-the charge of the text; and it surely concerns
-them to see that they stand clear of all such
-imputations: It concerns them the more, because,
-if the revelation be divine, the revealer
-knew what evidence was fit to be given of it,
-and that the evidence given was sufficient to
-the conviction of a reasonable inquirer. To
-the severe scrutiny of their own hearts, the
-disbelievers on principle are, therefore, referred:
-and, <i>if their heart condemn them</i> in
-any degree, let them reflect with awe, that
-<i>God is greater than their heart, and knoweth
-all things</i><a id="FNanchor_267" href="#Footnote_267" class="fnanchor">[267]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_332">332</span></p>
-
-<p>But, whatever these immaculate unbelievers
-may have to say for themselves, there are others
-who have the spots of <i>shame</i> indelibly impressed
-upon them.</p>
-
-<p>Such were the Jews of old, who rejected
-Christ, not because they wanted evidence of
-his mission (for they could not deny, nay they
-frankly owned, that <i>he did many miracles</i><a id="FNanchor_268" href="#Footnote_268" class="fnanchor">[268]</a>),
-but because he was the <i>Son of a Carpenter</i><a id="FNanchor_269" href="#Footnote_269" class="fnanchor">[269]</a>;
-because he was of <i>Galilee</i><a id="FNanchor_270" href="#Footnote_270" class="fnanchor">[270]</a>, and dwelt <i>at Nazareth</i>;
-because their <i>rulers did not believe in
-him</i><a id="FNanchor_271" href="#Footnote_271" class="fnanchor">[271]</a>; because they were afraid of being <i>put
-out of their synagogue</i><a id="FNanchor_272" href="#Footnote_272" class="fnanchor">[272]</a>; because <i>they loved
-the praise of men more than the praise of
-God</i><a id="FNanchor_273" href="#Footnote_273" class="fnanchor">[273]</a>; in plain words, because on one account
-or other, they were <small>ASHAMED OF HIM</small>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Such</span>, too, in succeeding times, were many
-of the pagan wise men, who disbelieved, because
-the doctrine of the cross was <i>foolishness</i>
-to them<a id="FNanchor_274" href="#Footnote_274" class="fnanchor">[274]</a>; because the Jews, who were the
-first converts to the faith and the first preachers
-of it, were, in their eyes, a contemptible<span class="pagenum" id="Page_333">333</span>
-people; because the vulgar were generally inclined
-to believe in him; because his doctrine
-contradicted and degraded their philosophy;
-because their pride of reason would not
-submit to be tutored by the Galilæan; in a
-word, for a hundred frivolous reasons, which
-only shewed, that they were <small>ASHAMED OF
-HIM</small>.</p>
-
-<p>Such, too, in later times (may we affirm
-without a breach of charity) have been, and
-are, many of those over-modest men, who
-know not how to withstand the raillery of
-prophane scoffers; who think the credit of
-their parts concerned in rejecting their creed,
-and applaud themselves for sitting loose to the
-principles, which they call the prejudices, of
-their Christian education; who affect to have a
-religion of their own making, if they have any
-at all, or, rather, disclaim all regard to religion,
-on the authority of this or that renowned
-patriarch of infidelity; to say all, in a word,
-who have the infirmity, and yet make it a
-matter of vanity, to be <span class="smcap">ashamed of Jesus</span>.</p>
-
-<p>Now, of such unbelievers it must be said,
-that they clearly come within the description
-of the text; they are <i>ashamed</i> of the Son of
-man, and yet, perhaps, <i>glory in their shame</i>:<span class="pagenum" id="Page_334">334</span>
-to what end, let them reflect, when they read
-on, and find, that of such <i>shall the Son of man</i>,
-in his turn, <i>be ashamed, when he shall came in
-his own glory, and in his Father’s, and of the
-holy Angels</i>.</p>
-
-<p>II. [1.] Of men <i>professing</i> Christianity,
-they are most exposed to the censure of the
-text, who, under a full conviction that Jesus
-is the Christ, yet, in <small>WORDS</small>, formally disown
-and reject him. Such was the Apostle Peter,
-who <i>thrice denied</i> his Lord, though he had not
-the least doubt of his divine pretensions. And
-why did he deny him? Because, it lessened
-him in the eyes of a stranger or two, to have it
-believed by them, that he was connected with
-a supposed criminal; because he had not the
-confidence to bear up against the reproach of a
-<i>maid-servant</i>, who <i>looked earnestly upon him,
-and said, This man was, also, with him</i>. Such
-was the power, which a false shame had upon
-this great, and otherwise fervent, disciple of
-Christ! A memorable instance of human
-frailty, which should admonish believers to be
-on their guard against all approaches towards a
-crime, the less pardonable, because committed
-against the clear sense of the mind, and almost
-without temptation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_335">335</span></p>
-
-<p>St. Peter, it is true, might alledge the passion
-of <i>fear</i>, as well as <i>shame</i>: he probably
-thought his life in some danger, and had an
-eye to his personal safety, as well as credit,
-when he denied his Master. Yet when he reflected
-on his unworthy conduct, though under
-these circumstances of alleviation, he <i>wept
-bitterly</i>, as he had reason to do. What then
-should they feel, who have not this cloke for
-their shame? who deny their Lord without any
-inducement to do so, but the weak apprehension
-of disgusting some persons, whose sentiments,
-after all, they do not really adopt,
-themselves. Yet is this no uncommon case.
-Men are ashamed to confess with their mouths,
-what they believe in their hearts; and give
-themselves airs of a frank libertinism, when
-they tremble at their own impiety: And all this
-to be well with a frivolous circle, which they
-frequent, or to merit the good word of certain
-fashionable blasphemers.</p>
-
-<p>[2]. Another sort of men seem to come
-within the description of the text, who, though
-neither prompted by a sense of danger to their
-persons, nor of disgrace to their reputation, are
-yet induced by a regard to their <i>interest</i>, when
-it presses upon them with a certain force, to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_336">336</span>
-dissemble their conviction, or rather openly to
-avow their shame of Jesus. Such are they, of
-whom our Lord himself speaks, <i>who for a
-while believe, and in time of temptation fall
-away</i><a id="FNanchor_275" href="#Footnote_275" class="fnanchor">[275]</a>: And such, in particular, was the
-young man in the Gospel, who had no vice to
-keep him from believing, nay who would gladly,
-perhaps have sacrificed any thing, but his
-fortune, to the Christian faith. It seems, as if
-he had been upon the point of entering, without
-reserve, into the service of his new master,
-when, being told, that he must part with <i>all
-he had</i>, and then <i>follow him, he grew sad at
-that saying, and went away grieved: for he
-had great possessions</i><a id="FNanchor_276" href="#Footnote_276" class="fnanchor">[276]</a>. Poverty was a <i>cross</i>,
-which this amiable young man was not prepared
-to <i>take up</i>. His faith, which, before, gave a
-promise of life and vigour, died away at the
-proposal. He now found, doubtless with some
-surprize to himself, that he had the seeds of
-infidelity lurking in him. He could not resolve
-to give this last proof of his sincerity: he,
-therefore, withdrew himself from Christ; in
-other words, he was <i>ashamed</i> of him. Let us
-pity the weakness of this unhappy young man;
-and only ask ourselves, if, in his circumstances,
-or in any approaching to them, we should not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_337">337</span>
-have hesitated, as he did, about <i>believing in
-the name</i> of the Lord Jesus. If we should, let
-us implore the divine grace to strengthen our
-faith, and frankly confess, that a secret principle
-of <i>shame</i>, though skulking behind some
-other and more venial infirmity, has taken hold
-of us.</p>
-
-<p>[3]. Still we may not have gone these lengths
-of infidelity. We assure ourselves, perhaps,
-that no consideration would induce us, simply
-and wholly, to renounce the faith, and that, if
-the hard alternative was proposed to us, we
-should rather give up wealth, fame, and life
-itself, than formally deny our Lord, and disclaim
-all hopes of interest in him. But let us
-explore our hearts a little, those <i>hearts</i>, which,
-as we are told and have reason to know, are
-<i>deceitful above all things</i><a id="FNanchor_277" href="#Footnote_277" class="fnanchor">[277]</a>. Have we never in
-lesser instances detected ourselves approaching
-somewhat towards this ignominious crime of
-apostacy?</p>
-
-<p>Have we not contented ourselves with being
-the disciples of Christ in private, and with <i>going
-to him</i>, as the Ruler of the Jews did, <i>by night</i>,
-in secrecy, and, as it were, by stealth, not to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_338">338</span>
-draw the observation of men upon us? Have
-we been willing and ready to serve him in the
-congregation, to attend his ordinances, and to
-revere his sacraments? Have we dared to let
-the world see that we are not ashamed of the
-cross of Christ<a id="FNanchor_278" href="#Footnote_278" class="fnanchor">[278]</a>? and that we glory in <i>remembering
-him</i>, as we are admonished to do, at
-his holy table<a id="FNanchor_279" href="#Footnote_279" class="fnanchor">[279]</a>? Have we no reluctance to let
-our friends, nay our servants, know<a id="FNanchor_280" href="#Footnote_280" class="fnanchor">[280]</a> that we
-live in a daily sense of our duty to him, and
-that we hope for all the blessings of this life and
-the next, only through his merits and intercession?
-Have we never heared his pretensions
-slighted, and his holy name blasphemed, without
-expressing a becoming zeal for the honour
-of our Redeemer? Have we testified out
-displeasure at freedoms of this sort by an open
-reprehension of them on all fit occasions; at
-least by a look and manner, which shewed how
-offensive they were to us? On the other hand,
-have we never, in such circumstances, by an
-assumed air of complacency, seemed to authorize
-what we secretly disapproved, and to yield
-our assent to propositions which we inwardly
-detested? In a word, have we none of us, at
-any time, given occasion to unbelievers to say<span class="pagenum" id="Page_339">339</span>
-or think of us, that we were <i>almost</i> inclined to
-be of their party; or at least that we had not
-the zeal, and firmness and resolution, which
-men ought to have, who profess themselves
-believers in Jesus?</p>
-
-<p>To these, and other questions of the like sort,
-it concerns us to think what answers we could
-honestly make. But of this be we assured: If
-we have not constantly and uniformly signified,
-declared, proclaimed our attachment to
-Christ; if we have not taken care to avoid all
-irreverence toward our Lord and Master; nay,
-if we have not been enough upon our guard to
-let no man suspect us of <i>indifference</i> towards
-him—we certainly have not done our duty; we
-have virtually denied <i>the Son of Man</i>; we have,
-in effect, been <i>ashamed</i> of him.</p>
-
-<p>And <small>THUS MUCH</small> may suffice for a commentary
-on that part of the text, which more immediately
-respects the <small>PERSON</small> of Jesus Christ—<i>Whosoever
-shall be ashamed of</i> <small>ME</small>—but
-our Lord goes farther, and says—<i>Whosoever
-shall be ashamed of me, and of</i> <small>MY WORDS</small>—<i>of
-him shall the Son of Man be ashamed</i>, in
-the day of judgment.</p>
-
-<p>Here, then, is a new subject of discourse. I
-call it a new one; because, though the two<span class="pagenum" id="Page_340">340</span>
-topics run into one, and he that is ashamed of
-Christ’s <i>words</i>, may not improperly be said to
-be ashamed of <i>Christ himself</i>, yet, for the
-sake of method, it may be convenient to keep
-these two points distinct, and to give to each a
-separate consideration.</p>
-
-<p>It remains, then, to set before you the
-principal of those ways, in which we may incur
-the guilt, especially, of being ashamed of our
-Lord’s <i>words</i>, that is, his <small>DOCTRINES</small>, and
-<small>LAWS</small>: a copious and important subject! on
-which I shall reserve what I have to say to
-another occasion. In the mean time, let us
-lay to heart what we have now heard concerning
-the honour due to the <small>PERSON</small> of our
-great Redeemer. <i>Be we not, therefore,
-ashamed of our Lord</i><a id="FNanchor_281" href="#Footnote_281" class="fnanchor">[281]</a>—but <i>let us</i> resolutely
-<i>abide in him, that when he shall appear, we
-may have confidence, and not be ashamed
-before him at his coming</i><a id="FNanchor_282" href="#Footnote_282" class="fnanchor">[282]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_341">341</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_LI">SERMON LI.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED MAY 21, 1775.</span></h2>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Luke</span> ix. 26.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Whosoever shall be ashamed of me, and of</i>
-<small>MY WORDS</small>, <i>of him shall the Son of man be
-ashamed, when he shall come in his own
-glory, and in his Father’s, and of the holy
-Angels</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">The</span> text distinguishes between <i>being ashamed
-of</i> <span class="smcap">Christ</span>, and being <i>ashamed of his</i> <small>WORDS</small>.
-And, though the two charges, in effect, run
-into one, yet I have found it convenient, in
-point of method, to observe that distinction.
-Considering the subject, in this double view,
-we shall see more clearly, <i>what</i> the crime is,
-which we are here cautioned to avoid, and <i>when</i>
-we are guilty of it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_342">342</span></p>
-
-<p>I have already gone through the first division
-of the text, and shall now enter on the second.
-If we have not formally disowned, or, in effect,
-at least, been <i>ashamed</i> of <small>CHRIST</small>, that is, of
-his name, dignity, and person, and of the relation,
-which we bear to him, as our <small>SAVIOUR</small>
-and <small>REDEEMER</small>, yet have we not felt in ourselves,
-and evidenced to others, something of
-that disposition in regard to his <small>WORDS</small>, that
-is, considering him in the light of our <small>LORD</small>
-and <small>MASTER</small>?</p>
-
-<p>Now, to do justice to this part of our subject,
-we must consider the <i>words</i> of Christ, first,
-in <small>THEMSELVES</small>, or as composing that form and
-manner of address, in which he thought fit to
-deliver himself to us: and, secondly, in the
-<small>SUBJECT MATTER</small> of them, that is, as comprehending
-both his <i>doctrines</i> and <i>precepts</i>, <i>articles
-of faith</i>, and <i>rules of life</i>, all that, as
-our heavenly <i>Instructor</i>, he requires us to believe,
-and, as our <i>lawgiver</i>, to put in practice.
-In both respects, I doubt, we shall, many of
-us, find that we have too much, and too often,
-been ashamed of Christ’s <i>words</i>.</p>
-
-<p>I. Under the first consideration of the words
-themselves, that is, of his <i>manner</i> in addressing
-himself to us, let it be observed, that, though<span class="pagenum" id="Page_343">343</span>
-it be true, in several respects, that <i>never man
-spake as this man</i>, yet this commendation
-must not be extended to the <i>language</i> of his
-discourses, in which no peculiar art or elegance
-is affected. He condescended to speak, as any
-other Jew might have done, and as his Apostle
-afterwards did, plainly and clearly enough to
-convey his meaning, but not with <i>the enticing
-words of man’s wisdom</i>, that is, of men cultivated
-and polished in the school of Greek or
-Roman learning. Hence, both in ancient and
-modern times, such as were, or pretended to
-be, so accomplished, have not unfrequently
-objected to the style of the Gospel, as rude and
-barbarous, and not composed with that beauty,
-which they have been taught to admire in
-the masters of fine writing. Now, though this
-pedantry might, perhaps, be excused in an
-old Pagan sophist, and is naturally enough
-assumed by a modern classical unbeliever, one
-is shocked to find it in professed Christians.
-And yet, I doubt, there are not a few of those,
-who are <i>half ashamed</i> of the Gospel, because
-not written in the best Greek, or according to
-the rules of the most approved rhetorick: I
-doubt, there are even those who might tell us,
-if they would (as a polite Italian philologist
-has done) that they read their bible but seldom,
-lest a familiarity with it should hurt their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_344">344</span>
-style; or perhaps abstain from reading it, altogether,
-because not fashioned according to their
-ideas of elegant composition.</p>
-
-<p>It would be paying too much respect to this
-frivolous delicacy, to enter into a formal confutation
-of it. What I shall say to it is, briefly,
-this; first, that the style of scripture, though
-not classical, is by no means destitute of life
-and beauty: secondly, that, although it were,
-where the matter of it concerns us so much, it
-is childish to lay any great stress on the manner:
-that, <i>further</i>, the very objection turns
-to the honour of the Gospel, which was purposely
-so composed that the effect of it, in the
-conversion of the world, might be seen to flow
-from supernatural causes, and <i>that our faith
-should not stand in the wisdom of men, but in
-the power of God</i>.</p>
-
-<p>To all which I might add, what perhaps is
-a secret to our polite objectors, that the rules
-of writing and speaking are more arbitrary than
-they are taken to be: that they refer to our
-customs and manners, and derive their merit
-from that reference, only; that, in different
-times and places and under different circumstances,
-the same manner may be good and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_345">345</span>
-bad; and that there is no universal archetype
-of perfect speech, existing in nature<a id="FNanchor_283" href="#Footnote_283" class="fnanchor">[283]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>But these minute inquiries are not for this
-time and place. On whatever principles the
-style of scripture may be vindicated, or if it
-cannot be vindicated at all to a fastidious reader,
-still I affirm, that the taking offence at it is a
-species of that false shame, which the text
-condemns, and which deserves condemnation.
-When the <i>word of God</i> is held up to us in the
-great day, and the inquiry is, what attention
-we have paid to it, think how poor a subterfuge
-it will be from the <i>shame</i>, that will then
-overtake us, to reply, in the face of men and
-angels, that it was not the <i>word</i> of Cicero or
-Plato.</p>
-
-<p>Having dismissed this trifling cavil, let us
-now see,</p>
-
-<p>II. In the next place, in what respects it
-may be charged upon us that we have been
-ashamed of Christ’s <i>words</i>; that is, of their
-<small>SUBJECT MATTER</small>; considered in the double
-view of the <i>doctrines</i>, and <i>precepts</i>, contained
-in them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_346">346</span></p>
-
-<p>1. As to the <small>DOCTRINES</small> of Christ, that
-is, the peculiar articles of Christian faith, one
-would think that to reject, or question, or explain
-away these, was inconsistent with the
-very profession of Christianity. Yet this conduct
-in some shape or other, presents itself to
-us every day, in those who are, or who desire
-to be thought, Christians; and one cannot but
-wonder at the pains they take to draw upon
-themselves this charge of inconsistency.</p>
-
-<p>Some, bolder than the rest, would expunge
-whole chapters, nay books, from the sacred
-canon, when the narrative rises above their
-faith, or the doctrine will not sink to a level
-with their wisdom; others content themselves
-with nibbling at single sentences, or, perhaps,
-words; and, if no obscure manuscript be at
-hand to favour the system they adopt, take
-refuge in a forced, unnatural punctuation. How
-many ancient and modern heresies have we seen
-supported by that presumptuous, or this minute
-strain of criticism!</p>
-
-<p>Some, again, when the text is not called in
-question, turn their ingenuity another way, and
-strike out new modes of interpretation. They
-mangle and disfigure plain facts, or resolve them
-into allegories: of this class were those primitive<span class="pagenum" id="Page_347">347</span>
-heresiarchs, who maintained that <i>Christ
-was not come in the flesh</i><a id="FNanchor_284" href="#Footnote_284" class="fnanchor">[284]</a>, and that <i>the Resurrection
-was past already</i><a id="FNanchor_285" href="#Footnote_285" class="fnanchor">[285]</a>; and of the same
-family, too, are those presumptuous moderns,
-of whatever name, who stumble at the cross of
-Christ, and sink the doctrine of Redemption in
-a metaphor.</p>
-
-<p>A third sort excell in puzzling a clear text,
-in putting a violent construction on artless
-words, in explaining mysteries by metaphysics,
-or, to get rid of them at once, in making
-the plain fishermen of Galilee speak the language
-of Platonism, or of the Jewish cabbala.</p>
-
-<p>In a word, it would be endless to specify all
-those, who by studied devices, of various kinds,
-mutilate, prevert, misinterpret, confound the
-word of God, obtruding their own sense upon
-it, and finding any thing there rather than the
-plain obvious mind of the Revealer.</p>
-
-<p>And why is all this industry employed, these
-daring liberties taken? Why to make <i>Christianity
-not mysterious</i>, to shew how reasonable
-its doctrines are, and to remove all objections
-against them. The pretence is fair. But shall
-we then admit nothing in scripture, in that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_348">348</span>
-scripture which we call divine, but what we
-perfectly understand, and can make appear, in
-all its parts, to harmonize with our systems?
-Alas, what is this, but to prescribe to the
-Spirit of God; to substitute our wisdom in the
-place of his; in a word, to be ashamed of
-Christ’s words, and to idolize our own reason.</p>
-
-<p>To give one remarkable instance, out of
-many, of this false shame. If there be any
-thing clearly revealed in holy scripture, it is,
-that there is a world of spirits, good and bad:
-and of the last, that there is <small>ONE</small>, placed at the
-head of them, who sets himself in opposition
-(as indeed all bad men do) to the will of God;
-who had a share in seducing our first parents,
-and still works in the children of disobedience;
-who was even permitted to tempt Christ, and to
-possess Judas; in a word, who is styled the
-<i>Prince of this world</i>, and, for the overthrow
-of whose empire, principally, the Son of God
-came down from heaven: If I say, there be any
-clear undisputed point of doctrine in the Gospel,
-it is this: the whole scheme of Christianity
-depends upon it: and yet what pains have not
-been taken to exterminate evil spirits, and disenchant
-the world of them; although by such
-methods, as would render language itself of no
-use, and confound all the rules of just criticism
-and sober interpretation?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_349">349</span></p>
-
-<p>These interpreters, I know, pretend (and
-many of them, I dare say, with good faith) a
-zeal for the honour of God, in their attempts of
-this nature. But let them look deep into themselves.
-They will, perhaps, find, that they are
-paying, at the same time, a secret homage to
-their own understandings, as if the whole of
-God’s moral government lay open to their view,
-and they were able to pervade every part of it;
-that they hold a revelation in no esteem, which
-puzzles their philosophy; and that, therefore,
-they force a meaning of their own on the words
-of Christ, because they are inwardly <i>ashamed</i> of
-that, in which his words are most naturally to
-be taken.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving, then, these rationalists to the scrutiny
-of their own inmost thoughts, let us inquire,</p>
-
-<p>2. What regard is due to the <i>words</i> of Christ,
-considered not as articles of belief, but <i>rules of
-practice</i>.</p>
-
-<p>And here, I doubt, it must be acknowledged
-that we have, all of us, more or less, been
-<i>ashamed</i> of our divine Master. For we are convicted
-of this shame, whenever we disobey his
-commands, seen and admitted to be <i>his</i>, on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_350">350</span>
-account of any repugnancy they have to the
-fashion of the world, and to the consideration
-we affect to have in it. And who is there, that,
-in this respect, can hope to stand clear of all
-blame, <i>when he is judged</i>?</p>
-
-<p><i>Be meek and lowly of heart</i>, says our Lord.
-On the contrary, we are proud and arrogant,
-that we may not be thought to want spirit.
-<i>Take no thought for to-morrow</i>, are the words
-of Christ: but the world says, be rich and great;
-and we think of nothing else but <i>to-morrow</i>.
-<i>Blessed are the pure in heart</i>, says our spotless
-Preceptor: Are we not <i>ashamed</i> of these words,
-when we had rather run the risk of any defilement,
-than appear unfashionable? And so
-in a multitude of other instances.</p>
-
-<p>Still, perhaps, we respect the rule, in some
-sort, and blame ourselves for the breach of it.</p>
-
-<p>But what shall we say of those, who reject
-the <i>word spoken</i> with a high hand, and offend
-against it on principle, as we may say, and by
-system?</p>
-
-<p><i>Go and sin no more</i>, says our Lord to an
-adulteress convict; and his words imply a severe
-censure of having sinned at all, in that instance.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_351">351</span>
-But are there none who think this a hard saying,
-who regard it as a narrow prejudice; who treat
-the observance of it as a needless scruple; nay,
-who pique themselves on the violation of it?
-Are there not some, who delight in this sin by
-way of preference? who lay it down for a maxim,
-that this commerce, under certain circumstances,
-and covered with a certain veil of manners,
-is allowable, is reputable, is meritorious? Nay,
-are there not those who would take it ill to be
-thought incapable of aspiring to that distinction,
-which, in certain quarters, this commerce
-supposes?</p>
-
-<p>But let me not enlarge farther on this horrid
-subject. Consider only, whether the parties
-concerned must not deride a precept, which
-they are proud to transgress, and whether in the
-saddest sense of the word, they may not be said
-to be <i>ashamed</i> of it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Another</span> instance occurs, the mention of
-which, I am sensible, can be of no farther use
-than to illustrate my subject. A placability of
-temper, the forgiveness of injuries, the love of
-our enemies, nothing is more insisted upon in
-the Gospel, than these virtues, which make
-the very essence of a Christian’s temper. The
-precepts to this purpose are numberless and express,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_352">352</span>
-and enforced with all possible authority.
-Yet, to persons, in certain conjunctures, and
-of a certain rank in the world, it would be an
-affront, but to remind them of their duty. We
-know, who it was, that, <i>when he was reviled,
-reviled not again, when he suffered, threatened
-not, but committed himself to him who judgeth
-righteously</i><a id="FNanchor_286" href="#Footnote_286" class="fnanchor">[286]</a>. But what then? Neither precept,
-nor example, moves him, who calls himself
-a man of honour, and is the slave of fashion.
-He has command enough of himself to assume
-an air of tranquillity, and to observe all the
-forms of good-breeding. But his hate is rancorous,
-his resentment hot as hell, his revenge,
-immortal. Let his pretences be what
-they will, his conduct cries aloud to all the
-world, “I renounce the Gospel, I am <i>ashamed</i>
-of the meek and merciful religion of Jesus.”</p>
-
-<p>To conclude: We now understand in what
-ways, and in how many respects, we may be
-<i>ashamed of Christ and his words</i>. In recounting
-those several ways, whether respecting the
-name and dignity of our Lord, or the rule of
-faith and practice, which he has given us, we
-have seen, at the same time, how little, how
-base, how ungrateful, how impious, how inexcusable,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_353">353</span>
-in all views, this <i>shame</i> is: especially
-in all those, who wear the name, and do not
-wholly disclaim the faith, of a Christian. More
-words would be thrown away on those, who
-are insensible to such considerations. Or, if
-any further remonstrance can be of use, if
-there be a motive left that can reach their case,
-it must be one, that alarms their fears, and
-shews the danger, the unspeakable hazard, to
-which they expose themselves by this miserable
-conduct. And, in the whole extent of God’s
-word, there is not, in the nature of things there
-cannot be, a more awakening, a more terrible
-denunciation, than that of the text, which
-therefore I cannot do better than leave with
-you in its own proper form, as pronounced by
-our Lord himself—<i>Whoever shall be ashamed
-of me and of my words, of him shall the Son
-of man be ashamed, when he shall come in his
-own glory, and in his Father’s, and of the holy
-Angels</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_354">354</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_LII">SERMON LII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED JANUARY 29, 1775.</span></h2>
-
-<h3>St. <span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xvi. 18.</h3>
-
-<p><i>I say also unto thee, that thou art</i> <small>PETER</small>, <i>and
-upon this rock I will build my church; and
-the gates of hell shall not prevail against it</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">The</span> way of giving a new name to an eminent
-person, more immediately concerned in
-any great transaction; a name, expressive of
-that transaction, and therefore proper to fix
-and perpetuate the memory of it; this custom,
-I say, was of known use in the ancient world.
-Thus, when God renewed his covenant with
-<i>Abram</i>, and engaged to <i>multiply him exceedingly</i>,
-the name of this patriarch was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_355">355</span>
-changed to <i>Abraham</i>; which name, in the
-Hebrew language, signifies <i>the father of a
-great multitude</i><a id="FNanchor_287" href="#Footnote_287" class="fnanchor">[287]</a>: and, for a like reason, the
-patriarch <i>Jacob</i> took the name of <i>Israel</i><a id="FNanchor_288" href="#Footnote_288" class="fnanchor">[288]</a>; to
-omit many other instances of this usage, which
-occur in the sacred scriptures.</p>
-
-<p>Just so, when one of the Apostles, known
-before by the name of <i>Simon</i>, had made a
-memorable confession of his Master’s being
-<i>the Christ, the son of the living God</i>, i. e. the
-redeemer, the prince of Israel, the Messiah
-foretold, our blessed Lord, to give weight and
-emphasis to this confession, confers a new
-name upon him. For he <i>answered and said
-unto him, Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-Jona;
-for flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto
-thee, but my Father which is in heaven</i>: That
-is, no man hath revealed this great truth to
-thee, nor has any interest of man, any thing,
-indeed, but the spirit of God, influencing thy
-impartial and well-disposed mind, prompted
-thee to entertain and avow it thus heartily and
-publicly (the proofs of it not being, at present,
-so strong, as they hereafter shall be): Therefore,
-to express my approbation of this great
-testimony to a truth, which is the fundamental<span class="pagenum" id="Page_356">356</span>
-article of my religion, and, at the same time,
-to signify to thee the honour, with which I
-mean to reward thee for it, <i>I further say unto
-thee, Thou art Peter, and upon this rock
-will I build my Church; and the gates of hell
-shall not prevail against it</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The name, <i>Peter</i>, signifying a <i>rock</i> in the
-Greek language, implies, we see, the immoveable
-truth of the confession, here made, on
-which the Christian religion was to be built;
-and the immoveable firmness, too, of the Confessor,
-who should have a share, with the other
-Apostles, in supporting the whole fabric, and
-be himself, in point of time, the first stone,
-on which the glorious superstructure was to be
-made.</p>
-
-<p>It follows—<i>and the gates of hell shall not
-prevail against it</i>—that is, <i>Death</i>, or <i>Destruction</i>
-(for that, only, the oriental phrase—<i>the
-gates of hell</i>—here signifies<a id="FNanchor_289" href="#Footnote_289" class="fnanchor">[289]</a>) shall<span class="pagenum" id="Page_357">357</span>
-never prevail against this church, being founded
-on thee, and the testimony, made by thee, as
-on a rock of ages, which shall never give way,
-or be removed.</p>
-
-<p>We see, then, the full meaning of this famous
-text, which contains, in effect, <small>TWO</small>
-prophecies: <small>ONE</small>, respecting the foundation of
-the Christian church, and (so far as the Apostle
-Peter was personally concerned in the prediction)
-then verified, when Peter laid the first
-stone of this august building in the converts
-made by him both among the Jews<a id="FNanchor_290" href="#Footnote_290" class="fnanchor">[290]</a> and Gentiles<a id="FNanchor_291" href="#Footnote_291" class="fnanchor">[291]</a>:
-the <small>OTHER</small> prophecy, respecting the
-perpetuity of this church; which the divine
-Providence would, in no future age of the
-world, permit to be destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>So that, not the supremacy of Peter over the
-rest of the Apostles (as the church of Rome
-vainly pretends), but the priority of his claim,
-in point of time, to signal services in the conversion
-of mankind, is expressed in this memorable
-promise made to Peter—<i>on this rock
-will I build my church</i>: and, for the second
-assurance, here given, and which, to so zealous
-a master-builder, as our Apostle, must have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_358">358</span>
-been singularly welcome—<i>that the gates of
-hell shall never prevail against it</i>—we may,
-now, by the experience of more than seventeen
-hundred years, understand, how far it has been,
-and how likely it is, in the full extent of the
-words, to be fulfilled.</p>
-
-<p>But, to see little more distinctly what this
-experience is, and what presumption arises
-out of it for the truth of our holy religion, let
-us call to mind, if you please, the more remarkable
-of those attacks, which have been
-made, at different times, on the church of
-Christ, and yet how constantly and successfully
-they have been repelled.</p>
-
-<p>I. No sooner had the foundations of the
-church been laid on the <i>rock</i> of this testimony—that
-<i>Jesus was the Christ, the Son of God</i>—than
-the storms of persecution arose, and
-beat violently upon it. Nor was it, indeed,
-strange, that this new doctrine, published every
-where, with great boldness, by men who had
-been eye-witnesses of what they affirmed, and
-calculated to overturn all the favourite maxims
-and usages of the world, should meet with the
-fiercest opposition. And how easy did it seem
-for that world to crush the infant society, now<span class="pagenum" id="Page_359">359</span>
-struggling for life in the hands of twelve poor,
-illiterate, and friendless men, if the decree of
-Heaven had not gone forth—<i>that the gates of
-hell should not prevail against it</i>!</p>
-
-<p>I know, indeed, that this violence of persecution
-was, in the end, of advantage to the
-Christian cause; and, from the nature of the
-human mind, when once persuaded of any
-thing, true or false, might be expected to be
-so. For cruelty, in such cases, only excites
-an unconquerable firmness and perseverance.
-But what was persuasion in succeeding converts
-to the gospel of Christ, was knowledge,
-or rather the infallible evidence of sense, in
-the first publishers of it. The Apostles witnessed
-a matter of fact, when they made known
-the resurrection of Christ, on which their
-whole doctrine rested. And it is not in nature
-for any single man, much less for twelve men,
-to suffer, and to die, for a false fact, not taken
-upon trust from others, but asserted on their
-own proper and personal experience. If Jesus
-did not rise from the dead, they neither saw,
-nor felt, nor conversed with him after his resurrection,
-that is, they had no persuasion for
-force to harden into obstinacy, but a consciousness
-of falshood in their attestation, which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_360">360</span>
-could not have held out against the rage of
-their persecutors<a id="FNanchor_292" href="#Footnote_292" class="fnanchor">[292]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>If it be said, that criminals are often supposed,
-and not without reason, to die with a
-falshood in their mouths, I answer, it is very
-possible: but, besides that the Apostles gave
-no signs, in the rest of their conduct, of a want
-of principle, by declaring the truth, in this
-case, they might have saved their lives, whereas
-a criminal, for the most part, is but the more
-likely to lose his, by a true confession.</p>
-
-<p>Or, if, lastly (for suspicion, I am aware, is
-not easily satisfied, if) the perseverance of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_361">361</span>
-martyred apostles be accounted for from a false
-point of honour, I admit, that this strange
-principle sometimes overpowers conviction;
-but rarely, in any number of men confederated
-in the same cause, and, least of all, in a number
-of men of so plain and artless characters, as the
-Apostles.</p>
-
-<p>On the whole, we have reason to conclude,
-that, if Christianity had not been true, it must
-have perished with its first preachers: at least,
-it cannot be denied, that in outliving the violence,
-with which it was assaulted, both by
-Jew and Gentile, on its appearance in the
-world, this religion has thus far verified the
-remarkable prediction of its author.</p>
-
-<p>II. The external peace of the church was
-scarce settled under Constantine, when internal
-commotions shook its frame, and with a
-violence, which was likely to bring on, and
-that in no long time, its entire dissolution. By
-these commotions, I mean the heresies, that
-sprung up in abundance, and distracted the
-Christian world for several centuries. The zeal,
-or rather fury, with which these disputes were
-carried on, was unappeasable; and, if it be true,
-that <i>a house divided against itself cannot
-stand</i>, there was reason to expect that the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_362">362</span>
-houshold of Christ would exemplify this
-maxim: While, at the same time, the Christian
-name was so dishonoured by these contentions,
-and the lives, as well as the faith, of
-Christians, so polluted by them, that believers
-themselves were almost tempted to renounce a
-profession, which laboured under so much infamy;
-and the rest of the world could scarce
-fail to contract an incurable aversion to it.</p>
-
-<p>This, indeed, was so much the case, and the
-advantage, given to the enemies of our faith, by
-these scandalous abuses of it, so great, that one
-is not surprised to find</p>
-
-<p>III. A <i>third</i>, and still more alarming danger
-of the Christian church, in the sudden rise
-and propagation of the Mahometan religion.</p>
-
-<p>For it was the corruption of Christianity,
-that gave occasion, or success, at least, to this
-daring imposture. And now it might seem,
-that <i>the gates of hell</i> were set wide open, and
-destruction ready to rush upon, and seize, its
-defenceless prey, the Christian church, disheartened
-and disabled by its own vices. The
-uncontroulable spirit of this ruthless sect was,
-indeed, alarming to the last degree; when a
-secret providence, first, softened its ferocity,
-and, then, put a stop to its successes.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_363">363</span></p>
-
-<p>I ascribe these effects to the <i>good providence
-of God</i>, watching over the preservation of our
-holy faith; for what else could make the disciples
-of Mahomet tolerant in spite of their
-ignorance and bigotry; and pacific, when their
-law breathed nothing but war and universal
-dominion?</p>
-
-<p>Still the church had other trials to undergo;
-and <i>hell</i> had yet in reserve some further engines
-of its wrath to employ against her. For</p>
-
-<p>IV. While the African and Asiatic Christians
-were in danger of a total suppression by
-the rage of their Ottoman masters, the European
-had almost as much to apprehend from exhaustless
-swarms of Northern barbarians. And,
-what darkened the prospect still more, all
-knowledge and learning had disappeared,
-during these turbulent ages. Hence, to the
-destructive fanaticism of the East, was added
-the grossest <i>superstition</i> of the West; which,
-growing up in a long night of ignorance, and
-yet directed by policy towards the establishment
-of a vast and gloomy empire, involved all Christendom
-in its pestilential shade, and threatened
-the very extinction of all true religion.</p>
-
-<p>Yet it pleased God, in this distressful state
-of his church, to provide for its continuance,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_364">364</span>
-and even integrity, in due time, by making the
-cloystered ignorance of the Monks serve to the
-preservation of the sacred canon; and the enslaving
-projects of a tyrannical hierarchy, to
-the restoration of religious and civil liberty.</p>
-
-<p>And thus, though the powers of <i>hell</i> had
-been successively let loose against the church of
-Christ in the terrible shapes, first, of Jewish
-and Gentile persecution; then, of heresy, in
-the church itself; next, of Mahometan enthusiasm;
-and, lastly, of Antichristian superstition;
-yet have they not prevailed against this
-sacred structure, founded on a <i>rock</i>, guarded,
-as we believe, by heaven itself, and therefore
-destined to be eternal.</p>
-
-<p>I have touched these several particulars
-slightly and rapidly, just to put you in mind of
-what the Christian religion has endured, since
-its appearance in the world; and to let you see
-how unlikely it is that this religion should have
-kept its ground against these various and multiplied
-attacks, if it had not been divinely
-protected.</p>
-
-<p>But of all the trials, to which it has been exposed,
-the greatest by far, if this religion had
-been an imposture, is <small>ONE</small>, which I have not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_365">365</span>
-yet mentioned; and that is, <i>the examination
-of severe, enlightened Reason</i>.</p>
-
-<p>And this trial, to complete its honour, our
-divine faith hath <small>TWICE</small> undergone: <i>once</i>, in
-the very season of its birth; and now, <i>again</i>,
-for two or three centuries, since the revival of
-letters, in our Western world: periods, both of
-them, distinguished, in the annals of mankind,
-by a more than common degree of light and
-knowledge; which must, in the nature of
-things, have been fatal to any scheme of religion,
-pretending only to a divine original, and
-not really so descended.</p>
-
-<p>But this part of the argument is too large, as
-well as too important, for me to enter upon at
-present. Let me therefore conclude with a short
-and interesting reflexion on so much of it, as
-we have been considering.</p>
-
-<p>It was natural, no doubt, for the author of a
-new religion, full of his scheme, and impressed
-with the importance of it, to promise to himself
-the perpetuity of his work. But a wise man
-might easily conjecture that a religion, like the
-Christian, would meet with the fiercest opposition:
-and, though this be not a proper time
-to shew it, it might be shewn, that <i>the spirit<span class="pagenum" id="Page_366">366</span>
-of Christ</i><a id="FNanchor_293" href="#Footnote_293" class="fnanchor">[293]</a> distinctly foresaw the several species
-of opposition, which his religion had to encounter<a id="FNanchor_294" href="#Footnote_294" class="fnanchor">[294]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>Yet, in the face of all these perils, our Lord
-predicts, in the most direct and positive terms,
-that his church should brave them all, and
-subsist for ever. It has subsisted to this day,
-after encountering such storms of persecution
-and distress, as must, in all likelihood, have
-overturned any human fabrick. Is not the
-true solution of the fact, this, that it was
-founded on <i>the word of God, which endureth
-for ever</i><a id="FNanchor_295" href="#Footnote_295" class="fnanchor">[295]</a>? The rest, then, follows of course.
-The wise master-builder (to use his own words
-on another occasion, near akin to this) <i>had
-built his house upon a</i> <small>ROCK</small>: <i>and the rain descended,
-and the floods came, and the winds
-blew and beat upon that house: and it</i> <small>FELL
-NOT</small>, <i>for it was founded upon a</i> <small>ROCK</small><a id="FNanchor_296" href="#Footnote_296" class="fnanchor">[296]</a>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_367">367</span></p>
-
-<h2 id="SERMON_LIII">SERMON LIII.<br />
-<span class="medium">PREACHED FEBRUARY 5, 1775.</span></h2>
-
-<h3>St. <span class="smcap">Matth.</span> xvi. 18.</h3>
-
-<p><i>And I say also unto thee, that thou art
-Peter, and upon this rock I will build my
-church; and the gates of hell shall not
-prevail against it.</i></p>
-
-<p class="drop"><span class="uppercase">The</span> religion of Jesus hath descended to us,
-through <small>TWO</small>, the most enlightened ages of the
-world. It was, first, published in the reign of
-Tiberius: It was re-published, as we may say,
-at the Reformation: and is it likely, that an
-imposture should have made its way in the
-<i>former</i> of these periods? Or, is it possible, it
-should still keep its ground against the influence
-of all that light and knowledge, by which
-the <i>latter</i> has been distinguished?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_368">368</span></p>
-
-<p>To see what force there is in these questions,
-permit me to lay before you a slight sketch of
-the trials, to which Christianity has been exposed
-from the improved reason of ancient and
-modern times, and of the effect, which those
-trials appear to have had on the credit and reception
-of that Religion.</p>
-
-<p>I. Jesus preached the Gospel in the reign of
-Tiberius: that is, in a time of profound peace,
-when arts and letters were generally diffused
-through the Roman empire; and in Judea, at
-that time a Roman province. So far was this
-thing from being <i>done in a corner</i><a id="FNanchor_297" href="#Footnote_297" class="fnanchor">[297]</a>!</p>
-
-<p>This religion, on its first appearance in the
-world, had therefore to encounter two sorts of
-men, well qualified, and not less disposed, to
-give it a severe examination; I mean, the
-learned <small>JEWS</small>, on the one hand, and the reasoning
-<small>GENTILES</small>, on the other. Yet it prevailed
-against all the efforts of both.</p>
-
-<p>It was, first, proposed to the <small>JEWS</small>, and its
-pretensions were to be tried by the correspondence
-of its principles and history to the doctrine
-and predictions of their sacred books.
-That vastly the greater part of the Jewish<span class="pagenum" id="Page_369">369</span>
-nation resisted the evidence of that appeal, is
-well known: but that great numbers did not,
-and, of these, that some, at least, were of principal
-note for their rank, and knowledge in the
-scriptures, is equally certain and allowed; with
-this further concession, that the evidence,
-whatever it was, prevailed over the most inveterate
-prejudices, that ever possessed any people,
-and the most alarming difficulties and discouragements,
-to which human nature can be
-exposed. Let the fact, then, be considered,
-with all its circumstances, on both sides. And
-as to the merit of the argument, we are well
-able to judge of it. The sacred writings of
-the Jews, to which the appeal lay, are in all
-hands: and with what triumphant superiority
-the followers of Jesus reasoned from them, we
-see, in their numerous works, still extant, and
-especially in those of the great Apostle, St.
-Paul. So that, if all the scriptural learning,
-and all the bigotry of Judaism, could not stop
-the progress of Christianity, as we know it did
-not, it may fairly be presumed, that the way
-of inquiry was not unfavourable to the new
-religion, and that truth and reason were on
-that side. But</p>
-
-<p>2. From the Jews, let us turn to the <small>GENTILES</small>,
-at that time flourishing in arts and letters.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_370">370</span>
-To them was the Gospel preached by
-the Apostles, and especially by their Apostle,
-St. Paul, through the whole extent of the Roman
-empire; and not without success in the
-head quarters of Gentilism, in the chief towns
-of Asia, in Greece, at Athens, and even at
-Rome itself.</p>
-
-<p>The pride of Gentile wisdom, indeed, kept
-its professors, for some time, from taking more
-than a superficial notice of the new religion.
-But its rapid progress among the people, joined
-to its declared purpose of prescribing to the
-general faith of mankind, broke through this
-real or affected indifference, rouzed, at length,
-the attention of the great and wise, and provoked
-the zeal of both to shew itself in every
-mode of opposition. The great persecuted, and
-the wise reasoned: and this latter species of
-hostility (the more alarming of the two, if
-Christianity had been an imposture) was carried
-on with vigour, and without intermission
-(whatever intervals there might be of the
-<i>former</i>) through several successive ages. The
-four Gospels, and the other authentic documents
-of our religion, were now in all hands,
-when this lettered war commenced against
-Christianity, and continued, till Paganism was
-utterly overthrown and subdued. Many adversaries<span class="pagenum" id="Page_371">371</span>
-of the Christian name engaged in this
-unequal contest: but the most distinguished
-are, <small>CELSUS</small>, in the second century; <small>PORPHYRY</small>,
-in the third; and <small>JULIAN</small>, in the fourth: all of
-them, eminent philosophers; and the last of
-this great triumvirate, an imperial one. The
-two first wrote with all freedom, because
-against a persecuted, and on the side of the
-predominant, religion; and the third had the
-whole power of the state in his own hands.</p>
-
-<p>The works of these great chieftains of infidelity,
-it must be owned, are not extant in
-their proper form. But Celsus is almost entire
-in Origen; a great part of Julian may be seen
-in Cyril; and considerable fragments of Porphyry’s
-work have been preserved in Jerom
-and other old writers.</p>
-
-<p>Ye do not expect me to produce, on this
-occasion, the substance of what these three
-philosophers have said against the Christian
-cause. Any that will, may see it in the original
-authors, just mentioned, or in many modern
-collections, that have been made out of
-them. It may be enough to say, that those,
-who give themselves this trouble, will find
-much abuse and misrepresentation, and some
-argument: but the last so weak, and inconclusive,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_372">372</span>
-that one cannot wonder much at what
-Chrysostom tells us, “That the early books,
-written against Christianity, soon fell into a
-general contempt; that they perished almost
-as fast as they appeared; and that, if they
-still subsisted any where, it was, because
-they had been preserved by the Christians
-themselves<a id="FNanchor_298" href="#Footnote_298" class="fnanchor">[298]</a>.”</p>
-
-<p>But, setting aside, for the present, the merits
-of the question, the fact<a id="FNanchor_299" href="#Footnote_299" class="fnanchor">[299]</a>, we know, is,
-that all the efforts of Greek and Roman philosophy
-were not successful: that the church
-was soon filled with its professors, even before
-the empire became Christian: and that this
-great event itself happened within little more
-than three centuries from the birth of Christ.
-<i>So mightily grew the word of God, and
-prevailed</i>, notwithstanding the severity, with
-which its pretensions were tried.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_373">373</span></p>
-
-<p>It will be said, however, “that the argument,
-drawn from the success of Christianity,
-is not altogether so convincing, as we
-pretend: that, for a time, the learned heathens
-paid but little attention to the new
-sect; that, when it had taken such root
-among the people as to become the general
-subject of inquiry, learning was now very
-much on the decline; that barbarism had
-prevailed to a great degree before the days of
-Constantine, and then increased so fast, especially
-after the irruption of the Northern
-nations, as to leave no traces, almost, of
-light and knowledge; and that to this sottish
-state of ignorance, and, its usual attendant,
-credulity, which continued through many
-ages, the widely extended and permanent
-establishments of Christianity are, therefore,
-most probably to be ascribed.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, though I cannot assent to what is here
-alledged, or insinuated, that the adversaries of
-Christianity wanted either time, or light, or
-zeal enough to discredit its pretensions, if the
-way of reason and disputation could have done
-it, before that long night of ignorance came
-on which is supposed to be so favourable to
-religious imposture; yet I will not deny that
-taste and literature were degenerating in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_374">374</span>
-Roman empire, from the time that learned
-pagans began to interest themselves in the
-controversy with the Christians; and that,
-therefore, had the last only prevailed through
-this period of declining letters, something
-would have been wanting to the force and
-integrity of that argument, which infers the
-truth of their cause, from its success. But the
-fact is, that the event has been the same, in
-opposite circumstances; as I shall now shew,</p>
-
-<p>II. Under the <small>SECOND</small> head of this discourse;
-in which I proposed to point out to
-you, very briefly, the influence of <small>REVIVING,
-AND REVIVED</small> letters on the credit and reception
-of the Christian faith.</p>
-
-<p>From the middle of the 14th century, and
-even earlier, there were some efforts made to
-break through that gloom of ignorance and
-superstition, which had so long overspread the
-Christian world; and, before the end of it, it
-was visible enough that these efforts would, in
-no long time, be attended with success. Accordingly,
-a zeal for true and ancient literature
-made its way through most parts of Europe,
-and with so rapid a progress, that multitudes
-of able men arose within the compass of the
-next century, and were enough instructed to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_375">375</span>
-assist in the reformation of religion, which
-followed in the commencement of the 16th.
-From that time to the present, arts and letters
-have been studied with unceasing application;
-and all the powers of reason put forth in the
-cultivation of knowledge, in the discovery of
-error, and the search of truth. It is pretended,
-that we are now enlightened beyond the example
-of all former ages: it is credible, that,
-in some places, where liberty has attended
-the pursuits of learning, the utmost ability
-of the human mind, on the most important
-objects of science, has been exerted and
-displayed.</p>
-
-<p>Now, amidst this blaze of light, gradually
-ascending from the dawn of science to its meridian
-lustre, what has been the fortune of the
-divine religion, we profess? It has been the
-first, and last object of attention. It has been
-examined with the most suspicious and sceptical
-curiosity. It has stood the attacks of wit,
-of learning, of philosophy; and, sometimes, of
-all these acting in concert, without any restraint
-or reserve whatsoever. Yet it keeps its
-ground; or rather the belief of it is entertained,
-not only by the multitude, but, more firmly
-than ever, by the ablest and wisest men.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_376">376</span></p>
-
-<p>For the truth of this assertion, I can only
-refer you to your own fair and candid observation;
-the proof of it being much too long to
-be given, at this time. For it would require
-me to set before you the several topics of
-argument, which have been employed against
-Christianity, and the futility of them. It
-would, further, oblige me to make appear, that
-the number of those, who still embrace Christianity,
-is not only vastly greater, but their
-names, too, beyond comparison, more respectable,
-than of those who reject it: all which it
-would be tedious, indeed, but not difficult to
-shew.</p>
-
-<p>However, till some such proof be produced,
-ye will be apt, I know, to remind me of many
-eminent persons, who have been the declared
-enemies of our religion: ye will object to me
-the complaints, which even divines make, of
-an overflowing infidelity in the present times.</p>
-
-<p>In abatement of this prejudice, I could say
-with much truth, that the character of those
-eminent persons has been raised too high; and
-that these complaints, though not without
-foundation, have been carried too far. But I
-have other, and more momentous considerations
-to suggest to you, on this subject.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_377">377</span></p>
-
-<p>At the revival of letters, when the manifold
-corruptions of Christianity had been discovered,
-it was too natural for the disabused
-mind to entertain some suspicions of the revelation
-itself; and when reason, now emancipated
-from authority, had tried its strength,
-and found itself able to detect innumerable errors
-in religion and science, it too hastily concluded
-that there was no subject too vast for
-its comprehension, and that its power and
-right to decide on all questions whatsoever was
-evident and beyond dispute. From that suspicious,
-and this delirious state of the human
-mind, infidelity sprung up, and on either stock
-it still grows. “We have been deceived in
-many things, with regard to this religion;
-therefore in every thing.” “We know much;
-therefore we are capable of knowing all
-things.”—These, as extravagant as they appear,
-are the two sophisms, into which all modern
-free-thinking is to be resolved.</p>
-
-<p>But now it is so evident to men of sense,
-that “a revelation may be true, though much
-imposture has been grafted upon it, and that
-its doctrines may challenge our belief, though
-they be not within the reach of our knowledge.”
-This, I say, is now so uncontroverted
-among men of sense, that, if the list of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_378">378</span>
-those, who, in the course of two or three centuries,
-have supported the infidel cause on
-those grounds, were ever so great or so conspicuous,
-it could furnish no argument, or
-even presumption, in favour of that cause
-itself.</p>
-
-<p>But the truth is, that list is neither formidable
-for its numbers, nor for the capacity of
-those, of whom it consists. It shrinks into
-nothing, when we oppose to it the multitudes
-of able men, who have been, during this period,
-and are, the advocates of Christianity;
-and, among these, when we recollect the
-names of Grotius, Pascal, Bacon, Locke,
-Boyle, Newton, and many others (not of the
-sacred order, though I know not why the authority
-of these should be left out of the account);
-when, I say, we look up to these great
-lights and ornaments of the Christian world.</p>
-
-<p>Nor let it be surmized, that the reasonings
-of infidel writers have been better, or other,
-than they are here represented to be, or that
-they have not been enforced with full liberty,
-and in all their strength. What the liberty,
-or rather licence, of these enlightened times
-has been, we all know: And of their arguments,
-ye may all judge: though this labour<span class="pagenum" id="Page_379">379</span>
-be the less necessary, as most of them have not
-only been triumphantly confuted by believers,
-but successively exploded by unbelievers themselves;
-and the rest of them, have not prevented
-men of thought and ability from being
-generally on the side of the Christian religion,
-even to this day.</p>
-
-<p>Ye see, I am as concise as possible, and
-omit very much of what might be said on this
-subject, not to exceed the limits usually prescribed
-to a discourse in this place. But when
-ye contemplate the present state of Christianity,
-in an age of the greatest light and freedom,
-and the respect that is still paid to it, I
-must just desire you to call to mind the state
-of pagan religion under the like circumstances;
-and to reflect that, when men of sense examined
-its pretensions in the Augustan age,
-there was not a single person, in the priesthood
-or out of it, of ability and learning, who
-did not see and know that the whole was a
-manifest imposture, and destitute of all evidence,
-that could induce a well-grounded and
-rational assent<a id="FNanchor_300" href="#Footnote_300" class="fnanchor">[300]</a>. Can any thing like this be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_380">380</span>
-said, or even suspected, of the Christian
-faith?</p>
-
-<p>I know, that fraud and falsehood, by being
-mixed with a great deal of acknowledged evident
-truth, may obtain respect even with some
-acute and inquisitive men; as, without doubt,
-has been the case of Popery, since the Reformation:
-I know, too, that a false religion,
-unsupported by any truth, may even keep its
-ground in a learned age, when restraint or
-other causes have prevented a free inquiry into
-that religion; as may have been the case of
-Mahometanism, in one stage of the Saracen
-empire: but that a religion, like the Christian,
-as delivered in the Scriptures, which
-must either be wholly false, or wholly true,
-and has been scrutinized with the utmost freedom
-and severity, should yet, if the arguments
-for it were weak and fallacious, maintain its
-credit, and subsist in the belief of the most
-capable and accomplished reasoners, is, I think,
-a prodigy, which never has appeared, or can
-appear among men.</p>
-
-<p>I suppose, enough has been, now, said to
-shew, that, in fact, the knowledge of past or
-present times has not discredited the cause of
-Christianity; and that what there is of infidelity<span class="pagenum" id="Page_381">381</span>
-may be well accounted for from certain prevailing
-prejudices, which unhappily sprung up
-with returning Letters, at the Reformation. I
-might go on to shew, that the evidences of the
-Christian religion, as drawn out, and set before us,
-by its modern apologists, are now
-stronger, and more convincing, than they ever
-were in any former period; and that, on the
-whole, this religion has not lost, but gained
-infinitely, by all the inquiries, which improved
-science has enabled men of leisure and curiosity
-to make into it. But it is time to return
-to the <small>TEXT</small>, and to conclude this commentary
-upon it, with one or two short reflexions.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">First</span>, if it be true, that after so many trials
-of every kind, those especially of reason, and
-philosophy, to which the religion of the Gospel
-has been exposed, the belief of it remains
-unshaken in the minds of men, Then is the
-prophecy of the text thus far signally verified;
-and it is indisputable, that <i>the gates of hell
-have not</i>, hitherto, <i>prevailed against it</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Secondly</span>, if it be scarce imaginable that
-any future trials, from without, should be
-more severe, than those which Christianity
-has already suffered; or that those, from within,
-I mean the trials of severe rational inquiry,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_382">382</span>
-should be more formidable, than what it has
-undergone in two periods, the most distinguished
-for the free exertion of the human faculties,
-of any that have occurred in the history
-of the world; then may it seem credible,
-or rather then is the presumption strong and
-cogent, that neither, hereafter, will the prophecy
-be confuted, and that the <i>gates of hell
-shall not</i>, at any time, or at all, <i>prevail
-against it</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Thirdly</span>, and lastly, We may learn, from
-both these conclusions, to put our trust in this
-impregnable fortress of our Religion; to embrace
-with stedfastness, and to observe with
-the utmost reverence, a <small>RULE OF FAITH AND
-LIFE</small>, which bears the signatures of immortality
-upon it, and appears to be under the special
-protection, as it proceeded originally from the
-special favour and authority, of God himself.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_383">383</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="xx-large" id="A_DISCOURSE">
-<small>A</small><br />
-LARGER DISCOURSE,<br />
-<small>BY WAY OF</small><br />
-COMMENTARY,<br />
-<small>ON</small><br />
-THAT REMARKABLE PART<br />
-<small>OF</small><br />
-THE GOSPEL-HISTORY,<br />
-<small>IN WHICH</small><br />
-<span class="medium">JESUS IS REPRESENTED,<br />
-AS DRIVING THE BUYERS AND SELLERS<br />
-OUT OF THE TEMPLE.</span><br />
-</h2>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_384">384</span></p>
-
-<h2><small>A</small><br />
-DISCOURSE<a id="FNanchor_301" href="#Footnote_301" class="fnanchor">[301]</a><br />
-<small>ON</small><br />
-<span class="medium">CHRIST’S DRIVING THE BUYERS AND
-SELLERS OUT OF THE TEMPLE.</span></h2>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_385">385</span></p>
-
-<p>I propose, in this discourse, to take into
-consideration a very remarkable part of the
-Gospel-history; in which Jesus is supposed to
-have exercised an act of authority on some
-persons, whom the Jews permitted to carry on
-a certain traffic within the walls of the Temple.</p>
-
-<p>I shall, <small>FIRST</small>, recite the several accounts,
-which the sacred historians have given of this
-transaction; and shall, <small>THEN</small>, hazard some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_386">386</span>
-observations, which will, perhaps, be found to
-lessen, or to remove, the objections commonly
-made to it.</p>
-
-<p>I begin with St. John’s account of it, which is
-delivered in these words:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>Ch. ii. 13-17.</p>
-
-<p>“And the Jews passover was
-at hand, and Jesus went up to
-Jerusalem, and found in the
-temple those that sold oxen,
-and sheep, and doves, and the
-changers of money, sitting:
-And when he had made a
-scourge of small cords, he
-drove them all out of the temple,
-and the sheep and the
-oxen; and poured out the
-changers money, and overthrew
-the tables; and said
-unto them that sold doves,
-Take these things hence; make
-not my Father’s house an house
-of merchandize. And his disciples
-remembered that it was
-written, The zeal of thine
-house hath eaten me up.”</p>
-
-</blockquote>
-
-<p>Thus far the Evangelist, St. John: And the
-order of the history shews, that this was done<span class="pagenum" id="Page_387">387</span>
-at the <i>first</i> Passover which Jesus attended, after
-he had taken upon himself his prophetic office.</p>
-
-<p>The other Evangelists relate a similar transaction,
-which had happened at the Passover, immediately
-preceding his crucifixion. Some
-have imagined that, on this last occasion, the
-same act was repeated by him, on two several
-days; but I see no sufficient ground for that
-supposition. St. Mark is easily reconciled with
-St. Matthew and St. Luke by only admitting,
-what is very usual in the sacred writers, some
-little neglect of method in the narration of one
-or other of those historians.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>Mat. xxi. 12, 13.</p>
-
-<p>“And Jesus went into the
-temple of God, and cast out
-all them that sold and bought
-in the temple, and overthrew
-the tables of the money-changers,
-and the seats of them
-that sold doves, and said unto
-them, it is written, My house
-shall be called the house of
-prayer, but ye have made it a
-den of thieves.”</p>
-
-</blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>Mark xi. 15-17.</p>
-
-<p>“And they come to Jerusalem:
-And Jesus went into the temple,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_388">388</span>
-and began to cast out
-them that sold and bought in
-the temple, and overthrew the
-tables of the money-changers,
-and the seats of them that sold
-doves; And would not suffer
-that any man should carry any
-vessel through the temple. And
-he taught, saying unto them,
-Is it not written, My house
-shall be called of all nations
-the house of prayer? But ye
-have made it a den of thieves.”</p>
-
-</blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>Luke xix. 45, 46.</p>
-
-<p>“And he went into the temple,
-and began to cast out
-them that sold therein, and
-them that bought, saying unto
-them, It is written, My house
-is the house of prayer: but ye
-have made it a den of thieves.”</p>
-
-</blockquote>
-
-<p>In reading these passages, one is led to conclude,
-that the <small>ACT</small> itself, here ascribed to our
-Lord, was of no small importance; for it is related,
-we see, by every one of the four Evangelists.
-The substance of what we learn from all
-of them, compared together, is this: “That
-Jesus, at two several times, <i>once</i>, before the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_389">389</span>
-first Passover which he attended after the entrance
-on his ministry, and <i>again</i>, before the
-Passover which preceded his passion, went up
-to Jerusalem, and entered into the <i>temple</i>;
-that is (as all interpreters agree, and as the
-nature of the thing speaks) into the <i>first</i>, or
-outermost court of the temple, or that which
-was called <i>the court of the Gentiles</i>; because
-the Gentiles, who acknowledged the one true
-God, were permitted to come and worship him
-there; that in this court (which was separated
-from the next or second court by a sept or low
-wall, and deemed by the Jews <i>prophane</i>, in
-contempt of the Gentiles, to whose use it was
-dedicated) <i>he found those that sold oxen and
-sheep and doves, and the changers of money</i>;
-that is, persons who attended there to furnish
-what was necessary for the service of the temple,
-and so made a kind of market, of this first
-court or division of it: that, upon observing this
-prophanation, <i>he made a scourge of small cords</i>,
-or, as the word in the original strictly means,
-of <i>rushes</i>, such as he may be supposed to have
-found upon the spot, and with this scourge
-drove these traffickers from their station;
-signifying, by this and such like actions, his
-displeasure at this pollution of a part of the
-temple; and saying to them, withall, <i>It is
-written, My house shall be called the house of
-prayer of all nations: But ye have made it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_390">390</span>
-an house of merchandize</i>, or, as the equivalent
-expression is, <i>a den of thieves</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>Thus stands the history itself: And the light
-in which it is commonly understood, is this;
-“That Jesus, in virtue of his prophetic, or, if
-you will, <i>regal</i> character, did this act of
-authority, to testify his zeal for the honour of
-God’s house, thus polluted and desecrated, contrary
-to its original purpose and design, by the
-base and commercial uses, that were now made
-of it;” and it is probable, that the Disciples
-themselves, <i>at the time</i>, considered it in this
-light, only, <i>for they remembered</i>, St. John says,
-<i>that it was written, The zeal of thine house
-hath eaten me up</i>—applying a passage out of
-the Psalms, to this act of zeal in their master.</p>
-
-<p>It is true, this circumstance is only related by
-St. John, who records the <i>former</i> transaction,
-and omits the <i>latter</i>: the reason of this difference
-will, perhaps, be seen, as we proceed in
-our inquiry.</p>
-
-<p>But to this solution of the case some objections
-have been made.</p>
-
-<p>Besides the strangeness and indecency, as
-many apprehend, of the proceeding itself, and
-the improbability that the persons concerned in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_391">391</span>
-this chastisement, who had public allowance for
-what they did, should patiently submit to it (for
-we hear of no resistance, nor of any complaint,
-made by them)—Besides, I say, these obvious
-considerations, the act itself was an act of
-<small>CIVIL POWER</small>, which Jesus always disclaimed,
-and for which, it will be said, he had no
-warrant, either from the ruling Jews, themselves,
-or from his regal, or prophetic character:
-not, from <i>the ruling Jews</i>, who, we know,
-were offended at his behaviour; not, from his
-<i>regal</i> character, which was not of this world;
-nor yet, lastly, from his <i>prophetic</i> office: for,
-though that might authorize him to declare his
-sense of this prophanation, it may be thought
-not to extend so far as to justify him in disturbing
-the civil rights of men, and doing a direct
-violence to their property and persons. Jesus
-himself, we understand, was so tender of <i>both</i>,
-that, upon another occasion, when it was proposed
-to him to divide a contested inheritance
-between two claimants, he said to the proposer,
-<i>Man, who made me a judge, or a divider over
-you</i><a id="FNanchor_302" href="#Footnote_302" class="fnanchor">[302]</a>? Whence it may seem reasonable to infer,
-that he would not have interposed, by an overt
-act of authority or jurisdiction, in <i>this</i> case; notwithstanding
-the reference it had to the honour
-of religion, or the right he might have to condemn<span class="pagenum" id="Page_392">392</span>
-an abusive practice, from his spiritual
-character.</p>
-
-<p>These difficulties seem to shew, that there is
-something more in the case, than a mere expression
-of zeal against the prophaners of the
-temple: not but this might be one end, but it
-could not be the sole or even principal end, of
-so extraordinary a transaction.</p>
-
-<p>I do not indeed find, that the ancient commentators
-on the Gospels have said any thing
-to the difficulties, I have mentioned. They
-seem to have looked no further than to the obvious
-sense of this transaction, and to have acquiesced
-in the opinion of its being intended to
-evidence our Lord’s zeal for the honour of God’s
-house, without any further view or purpose
-whatsoever. They found it related as a matter
-of fact; and they piously admitted the authority
-of Jesus to controul the civil usages and
-rights of the Jews, by virtue of his transcendant
-power and divine character.</p>
-
-<p>But the moderns have been aware of the objections,
-which lie against this interpretation.
-Our learned Selden, in particular, has an entire
-chapter, in his book <i>De jure naturali et gentium
-juxta disciplinam Hebræorum</i>, on this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_393">393</span>
-subject<a id="FNanchor_303" href="#Footnote_303" class="fnanchor">[303]</a>. His notion is, That Jesus exerted
-this act of power, in virtue of what the Jews
-called <span class="smcap">The right or privilege of zealots</span><a id="FNanchor_304" href="#Footnote_304" class="fnanchor">[304]</a>;
-by which they meant, not a general zeal or indignation
-(such as is before spoken of) against
-what they conceived to be derogatory to the
-honour of their religion; but a <i>right</i>, strictly
-so called, derived to them from the civil institutions
-and approved usages of their country,
-of interfering, in some extraordinary cases, to
-repel a manifest insult on their law, by private
-force, without waiting for the slow process of a
-judicial determination.</p>
-
-<p>The principal, or rather sole foundation, on
-which this notion is erected, is the case of <i>Phinehas</i>,
-related in the book of <span class="smcap">Numbers</span><a id="FNanchor_305" href="#Footnote_305" class="fnanchor">[305]</a>: which
-the Jews afterwards construed into a <i>law</i>, or
-embraced at least as a <i>traditionary</i> rule of conduct,
-derived to them, as they supposed, from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_394">394</span>
-the times of Moses. But this case will by no
-means bear the construction, which has been
-made of it. For,</p>
-
-<p>1. It was a single and very <i>particular</i> case,
-without any intimation from the historian, that
-it was afterwards to be drawn into precedent.</p>
-
-<p>2. It may seem to have been, if not commanded,
-yet in some measure authorized, or it
-was at least, by an express revelation, afterwards
-justified. For the matter is thus related. Upon
-the defection of the Israelites at Shittim into
-idolatry, in consequence of their prophane, as
-well as impure commerce with <i>the daughters
-of Moab</i>, God sent a plague among them, and
-besides commanded Moses to put to death all
-those who had been guilty of such abominations.
-Moses obeyed, and <i>said unto the
-judges of Israel, slay ye every one his men,
-that were joined unto Baal-Peor</i>.</p>
-
-<p>This command was issued very properly to
-the <i>Judges</i>: but a <i>private</i> man, <i>Phinehas, the
-son of Eleazer, the son of Aaron the priest</i>,
-instigated by his zeal, and presuming perhaps
-on his relationship to the high priest (from whose
-family, a more than ordinary zeal in such a case
-might be expected) did, under these circumstances,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_395">395</span>
-take upon himself to execute that command
-on two persons, surprized in the very
-act, for which the penalty had been denounced,
-in the presence of all the people. Now, though
-this proceeding was irregular in itself, yet the
-notoriety of the fact, the most atrocious that
-could be, and the most daring insult on the
-divine authority, seemed almost to supersede
-the necessity of a legal process. The consequence
-was, that God himself was pleased to
-accept and reward the deed, because the author
-of it, on such a provocation, and at such a time,
-<i>was zealous for his God, and had made an
-atonement for the children of Israel</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But to argue from a single instance, so circumstanced,
-that the same zeal was allowable
-in other cases, in which no such countenance
-had been given, and no such necessity or provocation
-could be pretended, is evidently so
-unreasonable, that no stress ought to be laid on
-this argument. The Jews, indeed, in succeeding
-times, might fancy a general rule to
-have been implied in this single instance; and
-we know from their history, to what enormous
-excesses this their easy belief, concurring with
-a natural violence of temper, afterwards transported
-them, during the last calamities of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_396">396</span>
-this devoted people<a id="FNanchor_306" href="#Footnote_306" class="fnanchor">[306]</a>: but our Lord was very
-unlikely to give a countenance to their traditions,
-or to add the sanction of his authority to
-a principle, so weakly founded, and so liable to
-the worst abuse.</p>
-
-<p>3. This <i>traffic of the merchants</i>, in the
-court of the Gentiles, how unfit soever it might
-be, depended on the same authority, as this
-pretended <i>right itself of the zealots</i>; that is,
-on the allowed usage and constant discipline of
-their country. No express precept of the law
-could be alledged for either. So that this <i>right</i>
-could not be exerted but at the expence of <i>another</i>,
-equally well founded.</p>
-
-<p>4. Mr. Selden himself appears to have had
-some distrust of his own hypothesis, by the
-care he takes to interweave, in his discourse, a
-charge of <i>fraud</i> on the merchants, together
-with their <i>prophanation</i> of the temple. But
-the learned writer forgets, that <small>ZELOTISM</small> (if I
-may have leave to use a new term) respected
-<i>religion</i> only, and not private morals. For
-even <i>the act of zeal</i>, performed by Phinehas
-(from which, only, the very idea of this <i>Jewish
-right</i>, if it were one, was derived) had, for its<span class="pagenum" id="Page_397">397</span>
-object, not the <i>fornication</i> simply, but the
-<i>idolatry</i>, of the criminals: it was a sacrifice,
-not to the honour of <i>virtue</i>, as such, but to
-the <i>honour of God</i>. And, indeed, nothing
-but the singular structure of the Jewish polity,
-in which the honour of God was so extraordinarily
-considered, could give any the least colour
-to the <i>fiction</i> of such a right.</p>
-
-<p>5. <i>Lastly</i>, whatever degree of credit this
-principle of <i>zelotism</i> might have acquired
-among the Jews, it was very unlikely, perhaps
-we may say, impossible, that Jesus should act
-upon it. When the Disciples, <i>James</i> and
-<i>John</i>, on a certain occasion, were instigated
-by this <i>zeal</i> to call for fire from Heaven on the
-heads of some persons, who had offered an
-insult to their master, Jesus himself rebuked
-them in these terms—<i>Ye know not what
-spirit ye are of: For the Son of man is not
-come to destroy men’s lives, but to save them</i>
-[Luke ix. 55.]—To <i>burn with fire</i>, is indeed
-something more than, <i>to scourge</i>: but, though
-the vengeance be not equal, in these two instances,
-the <i>spirit</i> is the same from which it is
-derived, and by which it is justified: and this
-<i>spirit</i>, we are expressly told, is not that by
-which Jesus chose to conduct himself. It was
-to no purpose to alledge the case of a Phinehas,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_398">398</span>
-or even an Elias: these were no precedents for
-<small>HIM</small>, who <i>came not to destroy men’s lives, but
-to save them</i>.</p>
-
-<p>I conclude then, upon the whole, that Jesus
-did not perform this act of driving the merchants
-out of the temple, in the Jewish character
-of <small>ZEALOT</small>; in what <i>other</i> character
-he might possibly perform it, I shall now inquire.</p>
-
-<p>The ingenious conjecture of Mr. Selden, already
-considered, was apparently taken up by
-him to avoid the difficulties which he found in
-accounting for this act of zeal in our Lord, from
-his <i>prophetic</i> character only. These difficulties,
-he saw very distinctly, and has explained with
-much force.</p>
-
-<p>“Though the Saviour of the world, says he,
-was undoubtedly both God and King, and,
-by his absolute dominion, not over the Jews
-only, but the whole race of mankind, must be
-supposed to have had a right of doing whatever
-he saw fit to do; yet since we know, that he
-constantly submitted himself in all things to
-the established forms of civil justice, whether
-of Jewish, or Roman institution; and, as being
-desirous to exhibit in his own person a most<span class="pagenum" id="Page_399">399</span>
-absolute example of obedience to the course of
-human authority, was careful always to abstain
-from every thing, that might be thought a
-violation of it in any private man; since, besides,
-we know, that, considering the peculiar
-envy, to which his life was exposed, he could
-not possibly have gratified his enemies more,
-than by putting it in their power to bring a
-criminal charge against him: it must, on all
-these accounts, be thought reasonable to suppose,
-that our Lord would not have ventured
-on so extraordinary an act, as that of driving
-the merchants out of the temple, unless it had
-been such, as, even in the opinion of those
-who were most prejudiced against him, he might
-lawfully and regularly perform<a id="FNanchor_307" href="#Footnote_307" class="fnanchor">[307]</a>.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_400">400</span></p>
-
-<p>All this, the reader sees, is prudently,
-piously, and ably said, by this very learned
-writer; and I readily subscribe to every word
-of it. We only differ in our conclusion from
-these premises. Mr. Selden holds, that what
-Jesus did on this occasion, <i>cannot</i> be reconciled
-to the idea of his <small>PROPHETIC CHARACTER</small>,
-as sustained by him in the course of his ministry:
-I, on the contrary, conceive, that it
-very well <i>may</i>. But then I consider that <i>character</i>,
-as exercised by our Lord, at this time,
-in <i>another manner</i>, and to <i>other ends</i>, than
-the learned writer supposed.</p>
-
-<p>In a word, I see Jesus in the light, not of a
-<small>ZEALOT</small>, but of a <small>PROPHET</small> only, in this whole
-transaction. I see him acting, not on precarious
-principles and rabbinical traditions, but
-on the sure basis of scripture; and regulating
-his conduct by the known ideas of his office,
-such as had at all times been entertained of it,
-and were even now familiar to the Jews in the
-times in which he lived.</p>
-
-<p>To make way for what I have further to
-advance on this subject, it will, then, be necessary
-to consider, <i>first</i>, the <small>PRACTICES AND
-USAGES</small> of the Jewish prophets, I mean the
-<i>manner</i>, in which that high office was sometimes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_401">401</span>
-discharged and exercised by them, even
-to the very times in question: and, <i>secondly</i>,
-to consider, the true scope and meaning of the
-<small>PROPHECY</small> itself, to which Jesus appeals, and
-on which he justifies this obnoxious part of his
-conduct.</p>
-
-<p>1. It is impossible for those, who have read
-the scriptures of the Old Testament, not to
-observe, how much they abound in figures and
-material images. Nay, the prophets are frequently
-represented as instructing those, to
-whom they are sent, not in figurative expression
-only, but in the way of action and by
-sensible signs. And this mode of information
-has been shewn by learned men<a id="FNanchor_308" href="#Footnote_308" class="fnanchor">[308]</a> to arise from
-the very nature of language, in its rude and
-imperfect state; being indeed an apt and necessary
-expedient to supply the defects of
-speech, under that circumstance. It has further
-been made appear, from the history of
-mankind, that this practice universally prevailed
-in all barbarous nations, as well as in
-Judæa; nay, that it every where <i>continued</i> to
-prevail, as an ornamental method of communication,
-long after the necessity was over,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_402">402</span>
-which had given birth to it; especially among
-the inhabitants of the East, to whose natural
-vivacity it was so well suited. Hence, the
-Jewish prophets, it is said, but conformed to
-the established practice of their own times,
-when they adopted this use of representative
-action: as, when one Prophet <i>pushed with
-horns of iron</i>, to denote the overthrow of the
-Syrians<a id="FNanchor_309" href="#Footnote_309" class="fnanchor">[309]</a>; and another, <i>broke a potter’s vessel
-to pieces</i>, to express the shattered fortune of
-the Jews<a id="FNanchor_310" href="#Footnote_310" class="fnanchor">[310]</a>; with innumerable other instances
-of the like nature.</p>
-
-<p>This the prophet Hosea calls, using <i>similitudes
-by the</i> <small>HAND</small> <i>of the prophets</i><a id="FNanchor_311" href="#Footnote_311" class="fnanchor">[311]</a>; and the
-effect of it was, to impress the proposed information
-on the minds of men with more
-force (being addressed to their eyes and senses)
-than could have been done by a mere verbal
-explication.</p>
-
-<p>This mode of teaching by signs, then, let
-it be remembered, was familiar to the Jewish
-nation, and prevailed even in the days of Jesus;
-as is clear from John the Baptist’s <i>wearing a
-garment of camel’s hair, and eating locusts and
-wild honey</i><a id="FNanchor_312" href="#Footnote_312" class="fnanchor">[312]</a>; to signify the mortification<span class="pagenum" id="Page_403">403</span>
-and repentance, which he was commissioned
-to preach—from Christ’s <i>riding into Jerusalem</i><a id="FNanchor_313" href="#Footnote_313" class="fnanchor">[313]</a>;
-to signify the assumption of his regal
-office—and from his directing his disciples to
-<i>shake of the dust of their feet<a id="FNanchor_314" href="#Footnote_314" class="fnanchor">[314]</a>, as a testimony
-against them</i>, who would not receive his
-Gospel.</p>
-
-<p>And we find that, sometimes, even a miracle
-was wrought to furnish a convenient <i>sign</i>—As
-when Simon’s <i>draught of fishes</i><a id="FNanchor_315" href="#Footnote_315" class="fnanchor">[315]</a>, was
-made to denote the success he should have in
-his ministry; according to the interpretation of
-Christ himself, who said to him, <i>Henceforth
-thou shalt catch men</i>—As, again, when Jesus
-<i>curst the barren fig-tree</i><a id="FNanchor_316" href="#Footnote_316" class="fnanchor">[316]</a>, to signify the unfruitfulness
-and rejection of the Jewish nation—And,
-as when he permitted <i>the unclean
-spirits to enter into a herd of swine</i>, which,
-thereupon, <i>ran violently down a steep place
-and perished in the waters</i><a id="FNanchor_317" href="#Footnote_317" class="fnanchor">[317]</a>: an exertion of
-his miraculous power, which, among other
-purposes, might be intended to express, in the
-way of <i>representation</i>, the tyranny of evil
-spirits, and their attendants, evil habits, over
-sensual and voluptuous men (of whom <i>swine</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_404">404</span>
-are the acknowledged emblems), and the consequent
-<i>perdition in which they drown them</i>.
-Nay, the very parables of our Lord, are but
-this mode of information, by material signs,
-once removed.</p>
-
-<p>It may, further, be observed, that the two
-Christian Sacraments themselves are founded
-on this principle: and so prevalent was the
-use of conveying information in this form, that
-even the Roman Governor, when he condemned
-Jesus, <i>took water and washed his hands<a id="FNanchor_318" href="#Footnote_318" class="fnanchor">[318]</a> before
-the multitude</i>, to signify to them, that
-he was innocent of that horrid crime.</p>
-
-<p>From all this we may certainly conclude,
-that it was very customary in our Saviour’s
-time for men to express themselves by outward
-and visible signs: that this mode of expression
-was especially of ancient and approved
-use among the Prophets, when they would inforce
-some high and important topic of instruction:
-and that, not impossibly therefore, the
-famous transaction in the temple may be only
-an information of this nature.</p>
-
-<p>If then we would know, what that <i>information</i>
-was, or, in other words, what was the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_405">405</span>
-peculiar <i>object</i> of it, it will be proper, in the
-next place,</p>
-
-<p>2. To turn to the <span class="smcap">Prophecy</span>, to which Jesus
-appeals, and to consider the true scope and
-purpose of it.</p>
-
-<p>The prophecies of Isaiah, it is well known,
-are chiefly taken up in predicting the future
-glories of Christ’s kingdom, of which <i>the call
-of the Gentiles</i> makes a conspicuous and shining
-part. This great event is foretold in a vast
-variety of places; and in different forms of expression,
-one while, plain and direct, at other times,
-figurative and obscure. The Messiah is spoken of
-as <i>bringing forth judgement to the Gentiles</i>;
-and more clearly still, as <i>being given for a
-light to the Gentiles</i><a id="FNanchor_319" href="#Footnote_319" class="fnanchor">[319]</a>. In other places, the
-expression is ænigmatical; as where the Heathen
-are mentioned as <i>prisoners</i>, who shall be
-set at liberty<a id="FNanchor_320" href="#Footnote_320" class="fnanchor">[320]</a>—as <i>strangers</i>, who should
-build up the walls of Jerusalem<a id="FNanchor_321" href="#Footnote_321" class="fnanchor">[321]</a>—<i>as blind
-people that have eyes, and deaf that have
-ears</i><a id="FNanchor_322" href="#Footnote_322" class="fnanchor">[322]</a>—and under a multitude of other
-images.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_406">406</span></p>
-
-<p>Full of these ideas, the Prophet begins the
-fifty-sixth chapter with the following triumphant
-exhortation—<i>Thus saith the Lord, Keep
-ye judgment, and do justice, for my salvation
-is near to come, and my righteousness to be
-revealed</i>; the very language, almost, in which
-the Baptist afterwards announced our Saviour
-to the Jews: whence it may appear, of <i>what</i>
-salvation the Prophet is here speaking. But
-to <i>whom</i> is this salvation promised? Why, in
-general, to those <i>who keep the Sabbath from
-polluting it</i>, ver. 2; that is, in the prophetic
-style, to those who should embrace the Christian
-faith: for the <i>Sabbath</i> being the sign or
-token of God’s covenant with the Jews, hence
-the prophets transfer this idea to the Christian
-Covenant; and, by <i>keeping the Sabbath</i>, they
-express the observance of that future covenant,
-to which mankind should be admitted under the
-ministry of Jesus.</p>
-
-<p>But, perhaps, the Jews <i>only</i> were to be admitted
-to this new covenant of salvation. The
-prophet expressly asserts the contrary: for not
-only the Jews of the captivity (to whom we are
-to suppose the course of the prophecy to be
-immediately directed) are concerned in this
-salvation, but <small>THE SONS OF THE STRANGER</small>, that
-is, the Gentiles (whom the Jews always considered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_407">407</span>
-under the idea of <i>Strangers</i>, just as
-the Greeks did the rest of the world, under that
-of <i>Barbarians</i>)—<i>Even them</i> (says the Prophet,
-speaking in the person of God) <i>will I
-bring to my holy mountain</i>, ver. 7, and make
-them joyful <i>in my house of prayer: their
-burnt-offerings and their sacrifices shall be
-accepted on my altar</i>. The language is still
-<i>Jewish</i>, according to the prophetic style, which
-describes the Christian dispensation under
-Jewish ideas: but by <i>holy mountain</i> is meant
-the Church of Christ; and by <i>Sacrifices</i>, the
-spiritual services of that new œconomy. And,
-to make this purpose of his prophecy the clearer,
-he even departs, in one instance, from his
-<i>legal</i> manner of expression, in saying, <i>I will
-make them joyful in my</i> <small>HOUSE OF PRAYER</small>;
-which is a spiritual and Christian idea; the
-Jewish temple being properly a <i>house of sacrifice</i>,
-and not of <i>prayer</i>; for which last service
-there is no express precept in the law. And
-then follows the prophecy, quoted by Jesus, as
-explanatory of what he was then doing—<i>for
-mine house shall be called an house of prayer
-for all people</i>. The prophet, as solicitous to
-be understood, repeats and marks out this distinction:
-I spoke of it, says he, as my house
-of prayer, <i>For my house shall</i> [in those latter
-days] <i>be called</i> [that is, shall <i>be</i>] a <i>house of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_408">408</span>
-prayer</i>, and that too, <i>for all people</i>; that is,
-not for the Jews only, but for <i>all the Gentiles</i>.
-And, as if all this were not still clear enough,
-he adds—<i>The Lord God, which gathereth the
-outcasts of Israel</i>, the Jews dispersed in the
-captivity, <i>saith, Yet I will gather</i> <small>OTHERS</small> <i>to
-him, besides those that are gathered him</i>,
-ver. 8. that is, the Gentiles.</p>
-
-<p>This famous text, then, is clearly a prediction
-of the call of the Gentiles into the
-Church of Christ, a prediction of that great
-event which should take place under the new
-dispensation, when the Jewish enclosure was
-to be laid open, and all men indifferently, the
-Gentiles, as well as the Jews, were to be admitted
-into the Christian covenant.</p>
-
-<p>It is true, our English version of this text,
-quoted by our Lord, very much obscures, or
-rather perverts, its sense. It stands thus in the
-Gospel of St. Mark—<i>My house shall be called
-of all nations the house of prayer</i>, xi. 17.
-Whence it appears, that our translators considered
-this text, as describing only the <i>destination</i>
-of the Jewish temple, and not as predicting
-the <i>genius</i> of the Christian religion.
-But the scope of the prophecy, as above explained,
-and the Greek text itself, clearly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_409">409</span>
-shews that it ought to have been rendered
-thus—<i>My house shall be called a house of
-prayer for all the Gentiles</i>: ὁ οἶκός μου,
-οἶκος προσευχῆς κληθήσεται πᾶσι τοῖς ἔθνεσιν.</p>
-
-<p>Thus much being premised, both <i>of the
-prophetic manner of teaching by signs</i>, and <i>of
-the true meaning of this prophecy</i>, let us see
-now what light these considerations afford to
-our present subject.</p>
-
-<p>Jesus enters into that court of the temple,
-which was called <i>the court of the Gentiles</i>;
-who had leave to worship the God of Israel
-there, but were permitted to advance no further.
-This <i>court</i>, he finds polluted by the
-sale of beasts, and the traffic of merchants; the
-Jews, in their sovereign contempt of these
-poor heathen, not only excluding them from their
-own place of worship, but debasing them still
-farther by the allowance of this sordid society
-to mix with them. What is the conduct of
-our Lord, on this occasion! Why, agreeably
-to his prophetic character, he declares himself
-sent to break through all these exclusive privileges
-and distinctions; to accomplish that
-great mystery, which the old prophets had so
-much and so triumphantly spoken of, as reserved
-to be revealed by him; and to admit<span class="pagenum" id="Page_410">410</span>
-the Heathen to an equal participation of the
-blessings, which the Gospel-covenant was to
-dispense, with the Jewish people.</p>
-
-<p>But, in what manner does he declare this
-purpose? Why, he <i>makes a scourge of small
-cords</i>, and, by the representative action of
-driving this prophane company out of the
-temple, shews that he is come to break down
-that partition-wall, which separated the Gentile
-and the Jewish worshippers, to vindicate the
-despised Heathen from the insults offered to
-them, and to lay open the means of salvation
-to all people. <i>He began to cast out them that
-sold therein and them that bought, saying to
-them, It is written, My house shall be called
-a house of prayer for all the Gentiles.</i> The
-action, we see, is used as <i>expressive</i> of his
-design; and his <i>design</i> is clearly ascertained,
-by applying to himself the express words of
-Isaiah. The whole is, then, <i>a prophetic information,
-by way of action</i>, of the genius of
-Christianity, which was to extend its benefits
-even to the Gentiles.</p>
-
-<p>I have before acknowledged, that a <i>secondary</i>
-purpose of this transaction might be, to give
-the Jews to understand, how culpable they had
-been in permitting even a lawful traffic to be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_411">411</span>
-carried on in any part of their temple. For it
-was usual with Jesus to accomplish several ends
-by the same act, and even to lay the greatest
-apparent stress on that end, which was not first
-in his intention: of which some examples may
-hereafter be given. But the primary design of
-<i>this</i> act (and but for the sake of which it
-would not have been undertaken) I suppose,
-was, to point out the diffusive nature and influence
-of his spiritual kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>It may be said, perhaps, that, if such was
-the intention of Jesus, it had been more properly
-and significantly expressed by a different
-act, I mean, by that <i>of bringing the Heathen
-into the temple</i>, rather than <i>of driving the
-merchants out of it</i>. But we are to reflect,
-that, as the Heathen were already permitted
-to come into this part of the temple (and it
-would have given, at this time, too great a
-shock to the prejudices of the Jews, to have
-carried them into any other), that act would
-have conveyed no new information; it being
-on all hands agreed that the devout Heathen
-might worship there. The business was, to
-shew that their religious privileges were, hereafter,
-to be the same with those of the Jews;
-and that no more contempt was to be countenanced,
-towards the one, than the other.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_412">412</span>
-All distinctions were to cease; and this information
-was, therefore, most fitly conveyed by
-an act, which expressed the same regard for
-the court of the Gentiles, as for the court of
-the Jews: that is, the honour of each is equally
-asserted, and no prophanation allowed of
-either.</p>
-
-<p>In further confirmation of the sense, here
-given to this transaction, it may be observed,
-that the relation of it is joined, or rather interwoven
-with that other of his <i>cursing the
-barren fig-tree</i>: which was plainly an emblem,
-and so is <i>confessed</i> to be, of <i>the rejection of
-the Jews</i>; just as that we have been considering
-is <i>presumed</i> to be, of <i>the call of the Gentiles</i>:
-these two things being closely connected in the
-order of God’s dispensations. Whence St. Paul
-speaks of the one, as the consequence of the
-other; of <i>the fall of the Jews</i>, as <i>the riches
-of the world</i>; and of <i>the loss of the Jews</i>, as
-<i>the riches of the Gentiles</i><a id="FNanchor_323" href="#Footnote_323" class="fnanchor">[323]</a>. Now, if we turn
-to St. Mark, we there find<a id="FNanchor_324" href="#Footnote_324" class="fnanchor">[324]</a>, that the <i>fig-tree
-is cursed</i>, as Jesus is coming from Bethany to
-Jerusalem—that, when he came to Jerusalem,
-he went into the temple, and <i>drove out the
-money-changers</i>, &amp;c.—and that the next<span class="pagenum" id="Page_413">413</span>
-morning, when he and his disciples were returning
-the same way, <i>as they passed by, they
-saw the fig tree dried up from the roots</i><a id="FNanchor_325" href="#Footnote_325" class="fnanchor">[325]</a>.</p>
-
-<p>If then it be allowed, that Christ meant, by
-the <i>sign</i> of the blasted <i>fig-tree</i> (the story of
-which is so remarkably incorporated with that
-other of purging the temple), to express and
-predict <i>the rejection of the Jews</i>, how natural
-is it to suppose that, in purging the temple, he
-meant to express and predict, by another
-sign, <i>the vocation of the Gentiles</i>! Or, if
-there be still any doubt in the case, Christ’s
-own parable of the <i>Vineyard</i> (which follows
-close in the history<a id="FNanchor_326" href="#Footnote_326" class="fnanchor">[326]</a>) will effectually remove
-it. For the application of this parable is made
-by Christ himself to <small>BOTH</small> these subjects<a id="FNanchor_327" href="#Footnote_327" class="fnanchor">[327]</a>—<i>What
-shall the Lord of the Vineyard do?—He
-shall come and destroy</i> <small>THOSE</small> <i>husbandmen,
-and shall give the Vineyard to</i> <small>OTHERS</small>—That
-is, He shall <span class="smcap">reject the Jews</span>, and <span class="smcap">admit
-the Gentiles</span>: an interpretation, so clear
-and certain that the Jews themselves could not
-avoid seeing it; <i>for they perceived that he had
-spoken this parable against them</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_414">414</span></p>
-
-<p>But I think it appears, from the conduct of
-the ruling Jews, on occasion of what had passed
-in the temple, that it was well understood for
-<i>what general purpose</i>, and under <i>what character</i>,
-Jesus had exhibited that extraordinary
-scene. For they presently come to him, and
-say, <i>By what authority doest thou these things,
-and who gave thee this authority<a id="FNanchor_328" href="#Footnote_328" class="fnanchor">[328]</a>?</i> That this
-question relates to <i>what things</i> he had done in
-the temple, when he applied the scourge to
-the merchants, the context clearly shews; and
-is indeed beyond all doubt, since we find the
-same question put to him, and almost in the
-same words, when he had performed this act
-before, at the first Passover: <i>Then answered
-the Jews, and said unto him, What sign shewest
-thou unto us, seeing thou doest these
-things<a id="FNanchor_329" href="#Footnote_329" class="fnanchor">[329]</a>?</i></p>
-
-<p>Now, if the Jews had seen this transaction
-in the light of an <i>act of authority</i> or of <i>violence</i>
-against the persons of the merchants, it neither
-agreed with their <i>character</i>, nor indeed with
-their <i>principles</i>, to put this question. <i>The
-chief priests and elders of the people</i> are the
-persons who interrogate Jesus in this manner<a id="FNanchor_330" href="#Footnote_330" class="fnanchor">[330]</a>:<span class="pagenum" id="Page_415">415</span>
-and would they, who constantly <i>laid wait for
-him, that they might accuse him</i><a id="FNanchor_331" href="#Footnote_331" class="fnanchor">[331]</a>, let slip so
-fair an opportunity of citing him before the
-magistrate, as a disturber of the public peace,
-and a violater of their civil rights and customs?
-Instead of taking this obvious advantage against
-him, they at once drop all the malice of their
-character, and only ask him, in the way of
-civil and almost friendly expostulation, <i>By what
-authority he did these things</i>. It is certain,
-they never had so specious a pretence, as this
-affair administered to them, of bringing a public
-accusation against him. Yet it seems never
-once to have entered into their thoughts. Nor
-can it be said, that they stood in awe of the
-<i>people</i> (as they sometimes did, when they
-were enough disposed to lay hands on him);
-for the people, in this case, when so free an
-attack was made on their privileges, as well
-as prejudices, would naturally be on their
-side.</p>
-
-<p>But neither would their <i>Principles</i> suffer
-them to put this question. Jesus had, as they
-conceived, committed a flagrant act of injustice,
-in assaulting the persons of men, who were
-under the protection of the state: and they call<span class="pagenum" id="Page_416">416</span>
-upon him only for <i>a sign, since he did these
-things</i>. Is it credible that men, so attached,
-as they were, to their own laws and customs,
-should demand, or accept a <i>sign</i>, in such a
-juncture? Could all Paul’s miracles justify him,
-in their opinion, for <i>not walking after their
-customs</i><a id="FNanchor_332" href="#Footnote_332" class="fnanchor">[332]</a>? Or, would a <i>sign</i> from heaven, of
-how transcendant a nature soever, have absolved
-Jesus in their apprehension, from a
-crime, so palpably proved upon him? They
-would certainly have said, as they did say on
-another occasion, <i>We have a Law</i>, which forbids
-all offences of this sort; and <i>by that Law</i>, he
-ought to be tried and judged.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, I think, the matter stands, if the
-Jews had regarded Jesus, in the light of a
-<span class="smcap">Criminal</span>. On the other hand, if they saw
-him only in the light of a <span class="smcap">Prophet</span>, of one
-who <i>assumed</i> that character, and had now, in
-the way of his office, employed this act to
-convey some important information to them,
-their conduct was very natural in demanding
-some proof of his being what he pretended to
-be: and that proof, could be no other than a
-<i>sign</i>, or miracle; which was the proper evidence
-of his being a person sent from God.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_417">417</span>
-This evidence, indeed, of his prophetic mission
-had already been given to the Jews, in the <i>signs</i>,
-or miracles, which he had wrought among
-them. But they wanted more than a general
-conviction of his being invested with the prophetic
-character. They were anxious to know
-by what <i>authority</i> he did <small>THESE THINGS</small>; in
-other words, what <i>Commission</i> he had, and how
-it came to be in his commission, to put the
-Jews and Gentiles on a level. A prophet he
-might be; but not a prophet, authorized to
-declare himself so roundly, as by this expressive
-act he had done, against the peculiar people of
-God, and in favour of the despised heathen. Of
-his commission to publish such a doctrine, as
-this, it was no ordinary <i>sign</i> that would satisfy
-them. They pressed him, therefore, for some
-<i>sign</i>, purposely and expressly wrought for this
-end; some <i>sign</i>, so extraordinary in itself, and
-so peculiarly adapted to the nature of the case,
-as to furnish an immediate and decisive answer
-to their demand, <i>Who gave thee</i> <small>THIS</small> <i>authority</i>?</p>
-
-<p>This question our blessed Lord thought fit
-to elude (for reasons, which will, in part, appear
-in the progress of this discourse) at both
-the times, when it was proposed to him: once,
-by referring them to the authority of John the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_418">418</span>
-Baptist: and, again, by referring them (but
-in ænigmatic terms) to his own resurrection.
-Yet even <i>the Baptist</i> would have let them into
-some part of the secret, which they desired to
-penetrate; for, knowing the master-prejudice
-of his countrymen, he addressed them in these
-remarkable words—<i>Think not to say within
-yourselves, We have Abraham for our Father:
-for I say unto you, God is able even of</i> <small>THESE
-STONES</small><a id="FNanchor_333" href="#Footnote_333" class="fnanchor">[333]</a> <i>to raise up children unto Abraham</i><a id="FNanchor_334" href="#Footnote_334" class="fnanchor">[334]</a>.
-And then, for the miracle of his own <i>resurrection</i>,
-that would not only be the fullest proof of
-his prophetic mission, but would, at the same
-time, be the completion of what he was now
-signifying to them, by this prophetic act: for
-the spiritual kingdom of the Messiah, into
-which all the nations were to be admitted, was
-to take place from that event. <i>Destroy</i>, says
-he, <i>this temple</i>, [meaning, as we are told, <i>the
-temple of his body</i>] <i>and in three days I will
-build it up</i><a id="FNanchor_335" href="#Footnote_335" class="fnanchor">[335]</a>. So that, although Jesus refused
-to gratify his questioners by working instantly
-before them the <i>sign</i>, which they demanded:
-yet he refers them to <i>such</i> a sign, which would
-be wrought in due time, and to the very purpose<span class="pagenum" id="Page_419">419</span>
-of their inquiry; that is, it would be a
-sign, which should, <i>both</i>, demonstrate his
-prophetic commission to declare, by this <i>significant
-act</i>, the favour which God intended to
-confer on the Gentiles, and should, <i>also</i>, realize
-his declaration, or set before them <i>the thing
-signified</i>. Such is the force of that divine
-answer—<i>Destroy this temple, and in three
-days I will build it up</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Where, by the way, we may, further, observe,
-that the <i>symbolic language</i>, in which
-he here predicts his resurrection, not being at
-all apprehended by the Jews, was afterwards
-made the foundation of a charge against him, as
-if he had entertained the criminal <i>design</i> of
-destroying the temple of Jerusalem<a id="FNanchor_336" href="#Footnote_336" class="fnanchor">[336]</a>. How
-much more would his enemies have laid hold on
-this symbolic <i>act</i>, which he performed in the
-temple, in order to found a charge of sedition
-against him, if they had not conceived of him
-as acting in the character of a <i>prophet</i> only,
-and so had clearly comprehended, at least, the
-<i>general</i> scope and meaning of that act!</p>
-
-<p>That it was taken in this light, I mean, of a
-<i>prophetic action</i>, by the very persons on whom<span class="pagenum" id="Page_420">420</span>
-this seeming outrage was committed, may be
-reasonably presumed, since they make no resistance
-to it, nor complain of any injury, done
-them by it: a conduct, very strange and unlikely,
-if the parties concerned had received any
-considerable damage: or if they conceived that
-any <i>intended</i> violence had been offered to them.
-It is plain, they considered the whole transaction,
-as a piece of <i>scenery</i>, or representation
-only; under the cover of which, Christ proposed,
-in the manner of the Eastern sages, and
-especially of the Jewish prophets, to convey
-some momentous information to them, and to
-impress it with much force and energy on their
-minds.</p>
-
-<p>Nor can it be concluded from the narration
-of the Evangelists, that any thing more was intended
-by their master. They relate this adventure,
-simply as <i>a matter of fact</i>; and it
-could not well be related otherwise, for the <i>information</i>
-was given in the <i>fact</i>. They intermix,
-indeed, no explanation; because they
-probably saw not, any more than the generality
-of the by-standers, the <i>specific</i> information,
-it was meant to convey. They only saw, in
-general, that <i>some</i> information was the end and
-purpose of the act. The ruling Jews, who interrogated
-Jesus concerning this act, I have no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_421">421</span>
-doubt, saw or suspected, at least, the real drift
-of it. But, as Jesus could not be brought to
-explain himself by any direct answer, they were
-left to their own conclusions about it: and were
-content, we may suppose, to keep these conclusions
-to themselves: the rather, as the turn,
-which our Lord thought fit to give to this act, as
-if it respected only the honour of God’s house,
-put it out of their power to charge that other
-meaning, decisively, upon him.</p>
-
-<p>We may further observe, that the <i>history</i>
-of this fact is not to be construed with the
-utmost rigour. Some of the evangelists express
-themselves in such terms, as, in the strict sense
-of them, imply, that Jesus actually drove all
-the beasts and traffickers out of the temple.
-But we need only suppose that he applied himself
-to this action, <i>as if</i> his purpose had been
-actually to drive them all out: and that he continued
-to employ himself in it in such sort,
-and for so long a time, as that the persons present
-might take notice of what he did, and so be
-able (I do not say immediately, but in due
-season) to interpret this <i>sign</i>, together with
-Isaiah’s <i>prophecy</i>, in the manner he intended.
-I say, <i>we need only suppose this</i>: because if no
-more was done by Jesus, the Evangelists, in
-their concise and simple way of narration<span class="pagenum" id="Page_422">422</span>
-would naturally express themselves, as they
-have done, their accounts of this fact; and I
-believe, if we consider the accounts we have of
-many other informations <i>by action</i>, recorded in
-the old Scriptures, we shall find it necessary to
-understand them with some such restrictions
-and qualifications.</p>
-
-<p>If, after all, it be thought, that some <i>violence</i>
-was offered to the merchants, and that
-some <i>inconvenience</i> was suffered by them, in
-consequence of it; I suppose they deserved
-this punishment for their pollution of the
-temple; and I admit that the prophetic character
-of Jesus authorized him, in the course of
-his ministry, to inflict it; just as, without doubt,
-it authorized him to destroy the barren <i>fig-tree</i>,
-when it served his purpose to discharge a part of
-his office by making use of that <i>emblem</i>, though it
-might be with some loss to the proprietor of it.
-The case was the same here, when he drove
-the traffickers from their station. But there is
-a wide difference between supposing the <i>violence</i>,
-offered to them, to be the <i>direct and
-proper purpose</i> of the act, and the <i>incidental
-effect</i> of it. And the silence of the merchants
-themselves, under this violence, sufficiently
-shews, as I observed, that they <i>felt</i> this difference.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_423">423</span></p>
-
-<p>But the main difficulty, perhaps, is still behind.
-For, it will be asked, Why was this
-<i>mysterious</i> method used by our Saviour at all,
-in conveying the supposed momentous information,
-when he might have expressed his meaning
-<i>directly</i>, in plain words?</p>
-
-<p>1. One reason, I suppose, might be, the
-inveterate and insurmountable prejudices of
-the Jewish converts to this part of the Messiah’s
-character. For, though the prophets
-had given frequent, and sometimes the most
-clear, descriptions of it: yet, so possessed were
-they with the notion of their <i>being</i>, and of
-their <i>continuing</i> to be, even under the dispensation
-of their Messiah, a chosen and peculiar
-people, that they never could hear (no, not
-the Apostles themselves, till enlightened by
-the holy Spirit, and by a special revelation for
-that purpose; they could never hear, I say)
-without the utmost indignation, <i>That God
-had opened the door of faith to the Gentiles</i><a id="FNanchor_337" href="#Footnote_337" class="fnanchor">[337]</a>.
-This indirect information was then in condescension
-to the weakness of his own disciples
-and followers.</p>
-
-<p>And of this tenderness to their infirmities
-we have a remarkable instance in the case of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_424">424</span>
-the <i>fig-tree</i>, so often mentioned; the drift of
-which was unquestionably to denote the approaching
-<i>rejection of the Jews</i>, for their unfruitfulness
-under the means of grace, and
-their rejection of the Messiah. But, the minds
-of the disciples being too infirm, at this time,
-to bear the open communication of so mortifying
-a truth, Jesus purposely diverts them
-from the main purpose of that miracle (though
-it was wrought, and the <i>sign</i> given, for their
-future information and recollection) and turns
-their attention on another and very remote
-circumstance, <i>the efficacy of faith</i> to enable
-them to work this and greater miracles<a id="FNanchor_338" href="#Footnote_338" class="fnanchor">[338]</a>. But
-it was a <i>general</i> rule with our Lord to consult
-the infirmities of his disciples, and to communicate
-to them only so much of his purposes
-and councils, as they could bear; leaving the
-rest to be collected by them, in due time, from
-casual hints and obscure passages, when they
-should afterwards call them to mind, and be
-in a condition, under the influence of the holy
-Spirit, to profit by them. Thus, in John xvi.
-12. <i>I have yet many things to say to you, but</i>
-<small>YE CANNOT BEAR THEM NOW</small>: and then refers
-them to the spirit of truth, for further information.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_425">425</span></p>
-
-<p>Connected with this tenderness for his disciples,</p>
-
-<p>2. A <i>further</i> reason, without doubt, was a
-prudential regard to the general <i>success</i> of his
-ministry, with the rest of the Jews.</p>
-
-<p>For that great event, the call of the Gentiles,
-was not to take place during the life of
-Jesus; <i>who was sent only to the lost sheep of
-the house of Israel</i><a id="FNanchor_339" href="#Footnote_339" class="fnanchor">[339]</a>; that is, he was <i>personally</i>
-to address himself only to <small>THEM</small>; the
-conversion of the Heathen being to be effected,
-after his ascension, by the ministry of his
-Apostles and followers. Hence, had our Saviour
-plainly unfolded this secret to the Jews,
-he would certainly have indisposed them for
-paying any regard to his mission. And yet,
-so important a part of his character was not to
-be wholly concealed. It was therefore signified
-in this covert way; and (being itself a prophecy
-of something yet to be deferred) in the
-mode, and with the usual obscurity, of a prophetic
-information.</p>
-
-<p>What I have just now observed of the caution
-with which our Lord revealed his purpose of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_426">426</span>
-calling the Gentiles, explains the reason why
-St. John’s account of the <i>first</i> transaction in
-the temple, differs so much from that which
-the other Evangelists give of the <i>second</i>. Jesus
-had just entered on his prophetic office,
-when he used the <i>sign</i> of purging the temple,
-of which St. John speaks: he therefore leaves
-the Jews to their own interpretation of that
-sign, saying only, <i>Take these things hence;
-make not my Father’s house an house of merchandize</i>;
-as though a zeal for that house had
-been his sole inducement to make use of it:
-and accordingly the disciples, as I before observed,
-so understood him. But, when he
-thought fit to employ this <i>significative action</i>
-a second time, of which the other Evangelists
-only speak, his ministry was then drawing to
-a conclusion. So that he is now less scrupulous
-of giving offence, and does all but directly
-interpret the sign himself, by referring his
-hearers to the prophecy of Isaiah, which was
-the proper key to it—<i>He taught them, saying,
-Is it not written, My house shall be called
-the house of prayer for all the nations</i><a id="FNanchor_340" href="#Footnote_340" class="fnanchor">[340]</a>?
-Still, there was some obscurity, which he did
-not think fit altogether to remove: but he had
-said enough to correct their former hasty conclusion.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_427">427</span>
-For we are not told by those other
-Evangelists, as we are by St. John, that the
-disciples considered what they had seen their
-Master do, as a pure act of <i>zeal</i> for the honour
-of the temple: the prophecy, without doubt,
-suggested something to their minds, which led
-them to apprehend a farther and higher purpose
-in that transaction.</p>
-
-<p>3. Lastly, we may suppose, that the information
-was given in this <i>symbolic way</i>, that,
-when men saw the event, they might be the
-more strongly convinced of its being Christ’s
-intention it should come to pass, by calling to
-mind the sensible and striking manner, in
-which it had been predicted by him.</p>
-
-<p>For these, or other reasons, the method here
-employed by Christ to signify his intended
-favour to the Gentiles, might be most proper.
-In the mean time, as I said, this intention was
-not wholly to be concealed: for then the call
-of the Gentiles might be deemed an afterthought,
-and not to have been originally in his
-commission. Accordingly, it is intimated very
-frequently in our Lord’s discourses to the Jews,
-and opened more clearly on many occasions to
-his Apostles; and was, in truth, so much in
-his view, and so constantly present to him,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_428">428</span>
-that, as we now find, it was one of the <i>first</i>,
-and <i>last</i> things he did, to go into the temple,
-and, by an expressive sign, to declare his gracious
-purpose towards the Heathen.</p>
-
-<p>We may, further, observe (so intent was
-The Divine Providence on gradually unveiling
-<i>the glory of this mystery</i><a id="FNanchor_341" href="#Footnote_341" class="fnanchor">[341]</a>, as St. Paul terms
-it) that the moment our blessed Lord expired
-on the cross, <i>the veil of the temple was rent
-in twain from the top to the bottom</i>: a <i>sign</i>,
-to some purpose, of that great event which
-Jesus had foretold, and which God himself
-held forth to the astonished Jews, as the clearest
-emblem of his purposed favour to the Gentiles;
-when the Sanctuary itself, as well as the outermost
-court of their temple, was thus laid open
-to the access, and vindicated to the use, of all
-nations.</p>
-
-<p><i>Finally</i>, in due time, this purpose was clearly
-and explicitly made known to Peter, in his
-famous vision: and thus it pleased God to reveal
-this adorable mystery, “The salvation of
-the Gentile world,” (which, though not the
-<i>immediate</i>, was the most important end of
-Christ’s commission) by every mode of communication,
-which he had ever employed in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_429">429</span>
-his intercourse with mankind; by the <i>word of
-prophecy</i>—by <i>similitudes</i>, <i>by the hand of
-Jesus</i>—by an <i>extraordinary sign from heaven</i>—and
-by <i>Vision</i>.</p>
-
-<p>After so minute a commentary on this famous
-act of <i>Christ’s driving the buyers and
-sellers out of the temple</i>, may I be permitted
-to conclude, that it, now, stands clear of those
-difficulties, which have been usually found
-it?—It was no indecent start of zeal in our
-Lord: it was no violent invasion of the rights
-of any: it was no act of civil authority, usurped
-by him: but a <i>prophetic information</i>, conveyed
-in a <i>prophetic form</i>, of an event, the
-most important to mankind, and to the accomplishment
-of his own office and ministry. It
-was a calm, rational, inoffensive act; not unworthy
-the person of our blessed Lord; or,
-rather, full of that wisdom, which adorned his
-character, and shone out in all his conduct and
-conversation.</p>
-
-<h3>THE END OF THE SEVENTH VOLUME.</h3>
-
-<p class="copy">Printed by J. Nichols and Son,<br />
-Red Lion Passage, Fleet Street, London.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<h2 id="FOOTNOTES">FOOTNOTES:</h2>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="label">1</a> The substance of this Discourse was delivered in a
-Sermon at Lincoln’s-Inn, May 15, 1768.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="label">2</a> Annal. xii. c. 54. Hist. v. c. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="label">3</a> Antiq. Jud. L. xx. c. 5.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="label">4</a> Acts xvi. 30.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="label">5</a> Heb. iii. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_6" href="#FNanchor_6" class="label">6</a> Gen. ii. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_7" href="#FNanchor_7" class="label">7</a> Ephes. iii. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_8" href="#FNanchor_8" class="label">8</a> 1 Pet. i. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_9" href="#FNanchor_9" class="label">9</a> Matth. xx. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_10" href="#FNanchor_10" class="label">10</a> 1 Cor. vi. 20.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_11" href="#FNanchor_11" class="label">11</a> Heb. ix. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_12" href="#FNanchor_12" class="label">12</a> 1 John ii. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_13" href="#FNanchor_13" class="label">13</a> 1 Thess. v. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_14" href="#FNanchor_14" class="label">14</a> 1 Pet. ii. 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_15" href="#FNanchor_15" class="label">15</a> 1 Pet. iii. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_16" href="#FNanchor_16" class="label">16</a> Heb. ii. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_17" href="#FNanchor_17" class="label">17</a> Eph. v. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_18" href="#FNanchor_18" class="label">18</a> Rom. v. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_19" href="#FNanchor_19" class="label">19</a> 1 Pet. i. 18, 19. 1 Cor. vi. 20.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_20" href="#FNanchor_20" class="label">20</a> 1 Cor. xv. 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_21" href="#FNanchor_21" class="label">21</a> Rev. xiii. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_22" href="#FNanchor_22" class="label">22</a> 1 Tim. iv. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_23" href="#FNanchor_23" class="label">23</a> 1 Cor. xv. 41.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_24" href="#FNanchor_24" class="label">24</a> Matth. xxv. 46.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_25" href="#FNanchor_25" class="label">25</a> Phil. ii. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_26" href="#FNanchor_26" class="label">26</a> John xv. 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_27" href="#FNanchor_27" class="label">27</a> John xv. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_28" href="#FNanchor_28" class="label">28</a> Matth. xxiii. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_29" href="#FNanchor_29" class="label">29</a> Rev. v. 9. 1 Tim. ii. 5.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_30" href="#FNanchor_30" class="label">30</a> Acts x. 42.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_31" href="#FNanchor_31" class="label">31</a> John iii. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_32" href="#FNanchor_32" class="label">32</a> John xx. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_33" href="#FNanchor_33" class="label">33</a> John v. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_34" href="#FNanchor_34" class="label">34</a> Rom. vi. 22, 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_35" href="#FNanchor_35" class="label">35</a> 2 Tim. i. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_36" href="#FNanchor_36" class="label">36</a> 1 Cor. xv. 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_37" href="#FNanchor_37" class="label">37</a> Gal. ii. 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_38" href="#FNanchor_38" class="label">38</a> Heb. xii. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_39" href="#FNanchor_39" class="label">39</a> Heb. v. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_40" href="#FNanchor_40" class="label">40</a> Eph. iv. 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_41" href="#FNanchor_41" class="label">41</a> Tit. iii. 5.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_42" href="#FNanchor_42" class="label">42</a> Tit. iii. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_43" href="#FNanchor_43" class="label">43</a> Eph. iv. 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_44" href="#FNanchor_44" class="label">44</a> John xvi. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_45" href="#FNanchor_45" class="label">45</a> John xvi. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_46" href="#FNanchor_46" class="label">46</a> Thess. ii. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_47" href="#FNanchor_47" class="label">47</a> Acts ix. 31.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_48" href="#FNanchor_48" class="label">48</a> Matth. x. 20.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_49" href="#FNanchor_49" class="label">49</a> Gal. iv. 6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_50" href="#FNanchor_50" class="label">50</a> 2 Cor. iii. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_51" href="#FNanchor_51" class="label">51</a> Eph. i. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_52" href="#FNanchor_52" class="label">52</a> Ps. lxxxiv. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_53" href="#FNanchor_53" class="label">53</a> Gen. vi. 3. Rom. viii. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_54" href="#FNanchor_54" class="label">54</a> Phil. ii. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_55" href="#FNanchor_55" class="label">55</a> 1 Cor. ii. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_56" href="#FNanchor_56" class="label">56</a> Athanasian creed.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_57" href="#FNanchor_57" class="label">57</a> So the word πρόγνωσιν means in this place; as it likewise
-does in Acts ii. 23. where the sense of it is clearly explained
-and defined by the words, τῇ ὡρισμένῃ βουλῇ, which
-introduce it. The participle προεγνωσμένου has the same
-sense in 1 Pet. i. 20.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_58" href="#FNanchor_58" class="label">58</a> Ch. v. 1. v. 18. And vi. 16, 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_59" href="#FNanchor_59" class="label">59</a> Heb. v. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_60" href="#FNanchor_60" class="label">60</a> See Sermon XXVI. in the preceding volume, p. 378.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_61" href="#FNanchor_61" class="label">61</a> 2 Cor. vi. 16. 1 Cor. iii. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_62" href="#FNanchor_62" class="label">62</a> ἡ δὲ ἐλπὶς οὐ καταισχύνει. Rom. v. 5.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_63" href="#FNanchor_63" class="label">63</a> For which reason it is not necessary for me to enter
-into the controversy, that divides the critics, concerning
-the authentic reading of this part of the text.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_64" href="#FNanchor_64" class="label">64</a> 2 Pet. i. 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_65" href="#FNanchor_65" class="label">65</a> Matth. i. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_66" href="#FNanchor_66" class="label">66</a> Matth. iii. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_67" href="#FNanchor_67" class="label">67</a> Matth. iv. i.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_68" href="#FNanchor_68" class="label">68</a> Matth. xii. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_69" href="#FNanchor_69" class="label">69</a> Rom. i. 4. 1 Pet. iii. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_70" href="#FNanchor_70" class="label">70</a> Acts ii. 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_71" href="#FNanchor_71" class="label">71</a> 1 Cor. xii. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_72" href="#FNanchor_72" class="label">72</a> 1 Cor. vi. 11. John xv. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_73" href="#FNanchor_73" class="label">73</a> Heb. xii. 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_74" href="#FNanchor_74" class="label">74</a> 1 Pet. i. 10, 11, 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_75" href="#FNanchor_75" class="label">75</a> Heb. i. 6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_76" href="#FNanchor_76" class="label">76</a> Luke ii. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_77" href="#FNanchor_77" class="label">77</a> Matth. iv. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_78" href="#FNanchor_78" class="label">78</a> Luke xxii. 43.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_79" href="#FNanchor_79" class="label">79</a> Matth. xxviii, 3. Luke xxiv. 4. ἐν ἐσθήσεσιν ἀστραπτούσαις.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_80" href="#FNanchor_80" class="label">80</a> Acts i. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_81" href="#FNanchor_81" class="label">81</a> Heb. i. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_82" href="#FNanchor_82" class="label">82</a> Milton.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_83" href="#FNanchor_83" class="label">83</a> Rom. xvi. 25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_84" href="#FNanchor_84" class="label">84</a> 1 Tim. iv. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_85" href="#FNanchor_85" class="label">85</a> Acts xi. 18. ἡσύχασαν.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_86" href="#FNanchor_86" class="label">86</a> Acts v. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_87" href="#FNanchor_87" class="label">87</a> Luke xvi. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_88" href="#FNanchor_88" class="label">88</a> Matth. xi. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_89" href="#FNanchor_89" class="label">89</a> Ps. xix. 4. Matth. xxiv. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_90" href="#FNanchor_90" class="label">90</a> Acts xix. 20.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_91" href="#FNanchor_91" class="label">91</a> Acts ii. 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_92" href="#FNanchor_92" class="label">92</a> 1 Cor. xv. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_93" href="#FNanchor_93" class="label">93</a> 1 Tim. iv. 6. ἐντρεφόμενος τοῖς λόγοις τῆς πίστεως, καὶ τῆς καλῆς
-διδασκαλίας.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_94" href="#FNanchor_94" class="label">94</a> “What this or that philosopher delivered, was but a
-saying of his. Mankind might hearken to it, or reject it,
-as they pleased; or, as it suited their interest, passions,
-principles, or humours. They were under no obligation;
-the opinion of this, or that philosopher, was of no authority.”
-<span class="smcap">Locke</span>, V. II. p. 578. fol. Lond. 1759.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_95" href="#FNanchor_95" class="label">95</a> The Stoics. Ὁ σοφὸς—μόνος εἰδὼς εὔξασθαι. See Casaub.
-ad Sat. 11. Persii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_96" href="#FNanchor_96" class="label">96</a> Plato. Alcib. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_97" href="#FNanchor_97" class="label">97</a> The Epicureans of old and modern times.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_98" href="#FNanchor_98" class="label">98</a></p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">—incoctum generoso pectus honesto.<br /></span>
-<span class="author"><span class="smcap">Persius.</span><br /></span>
-</div></div></div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_99" href="#FNanchor_99" class="label">99</a> Luke xvii. 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_100" href="#FNanchor_100" class="label">100</a> See this argument urged by Mr. Locke, V. II. p. 574.
-fol. Lond. 1759.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_101" href="#FNanchor_101" class="label">101</a> John iii. 19.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_102" href="#FNanchor_102" class="label">102</a> Ibid. 20, 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_103" href="#FNanchor_103" class="label">103</a> John iii. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_104" href="#FNanchor_104" class="label">104</a> Ferte fortiter: hoc est, <i>quo Deum antecedatis</i>: Ille
-extra patientiam malorum est, vos supra patientiam. <i>Sen.
-de Prov.</i> c. vi.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_105" href="#FNanchor_105" class="label">105</a> <i>Cic. Nat. Deor.</i> iii. 36.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_106" href="#FNanchor_106" class="label">106</a> Lord Shaftesbury, and others.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_107" href="#FNanchor_107" class="label">107</a> Acts xvii. 31.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_108" href="#FNanchor_108" class="label">108</a> Heb. ii. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_109" href="#FNanchor_109" class="label">109</a> Mark xvi. 20.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_110" href="#FNanchor_110" class="label">110</a> Job xxii. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_111" href="#FNanchor_111" class="label">111</a> Hence the name of Theophrastus, or <i>the divine speaker</i>,
-given to the favourite scholar and successor of Aristotle;
-And hence the stories told of Plato, whose eloquence
-Quintilian so much admired, that he thought it more than
-human—<i>Ut mihi, non hominis ingenio, sed quodam Delphico
-videatur oraculo instinctus</i>. Quintil. l. x. c. 1.—Hence
-too, the name of <i>Chrysostom</i>, given to the famous
-Greek Father.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_112" href="#FNanchor_112" class="label">112</a> Heb. i. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_113" href="#FNanchor_113" class="label">113</a> Phil. ii. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_114" href="#FNanchor_114" class="label">114</a> John v. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_115" href="#FNanchor_115" class="label">115</a> 1 Cor. i. 30.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_116" href="#FNanchor_116" class="label">116</a> Mark i. 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_117" href="#FNanchor_117" class="label">117</a> John iii. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_118" href="#FNanchor_118" class="label">118</a> John xii. 50.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_119" href="#FNanchor_119" class="label">119</a> John vi. 40.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_120" href="#FNanchor_120" class="label">120</a> Rev. ii. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_121" href="#FNanchor_121" class="label">121</a> John v. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_122" href="#FNanchor_122" class="label">122</a> John viii. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_123" href="#FNanchor_123" class="label">123</a> John xvi. 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_124" href="#FNanchor_124" class="label">124</a> John x. 30.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_125" href="#FNanchor_125" class="label">125</a> <i>Non imitabile fulmen.</i> Virg.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_126" href="#FNanchor_126" class="label">126</a> Luke ii. 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_127" href="#FNanchor_127" class="label">127</a> Luke xx. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_128" href="#FNanchor_128" class="label">128</a> Luke xx. 40.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_129" href="#FNanchor_129" class="label">129</a> See <span class="smcap">Locke’s</span> <i>Works</i>, vol. II. fol. p. 545-7. Lond.
-1759.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_130" href="#FNanchor_130" class="label">130</a> <span class="smcap">Locke’s</span> <i>Works</i>, vol. II. fol. p. 543. Lond. 1759.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_131" href="#FNanchor_131" class="label">131</a> Every one may observe a good many truths, which he
-receives at first from others, and readily assents to, as consonant
-to Reason, which he would have found it hard, and
-perhaps beyond his strength, to have discovered himself.
-Native and original truth is not so easily wrought out of
-the mine, as we, who have it delivered, ready dug and
-fashioned into our hands, are apt to imagine. And how
-often, &amp;c. <span class="smcap">Locke’s</span> <i>Works</i>, Vol. II. fol. p. 577 and 579.
-<i>Lond.</i> 1759.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_132" href="#FNanchor_132" class="label">132</a> Luke v. 22. vi. 8. xi. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_133" href="#FNanchor_133" class="label">133</a> Luke vi. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_134" href="#FNanchor_134" class="label">134</a> Luke ix. 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_135" href="#FNanchor_135" class="label">135</a> Luke xxii. 61.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_136" href="#FNanchor_136" class="label">136</a> Matthew xxvii. xiv. and xxiv.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_137" href="#FNanchor_137" class="label">137</a> John xviii. 4-6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_138" href="#FNanchor_138" class="label">138</a> Luke vii. 40. ix. 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_139" href="#FNanchor_139" class="label">139</a> Prov. xxi. 1.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_140" href="#FNanchor_140" class="label">140</a> Luke xi. 27, 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_141" href="#FNanchor_141" class="label">141</a> See John ix. 39.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_142" href="#FNanchor_142" class="label">142</a> Matth. x. 26, 27.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_143" href="#FNanchor_143" class="label">143</a> See D. L. Vol. V. p. 339, &amp;c. Lond. 1765.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_144" href="#FNanchor_144" class="label">144</a> D. L. Vol. V. p. 341. n.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_145" href="#FNanchor_145" class="label">145</a> See more on this subject in Dr. Warburton’s Sermons,
-Vol. I. p. 325.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_146" href="#FNanchor_146" class="label">146</a> Luke xxiv. 45.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_147" href="#FNanchor_147" class="label">147</a> Luke xxiv. 27.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_148" href="#FNanchor_148" class="label">148</a> John xvi. 12. Mark iv. 33, 34.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_149" href="#FNanchor_149" class="label">149</a> John xi. 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_150" href="#FNanchor_150" class="label">150</a> Luke iv. 43.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_151" href="#FNanchor_151" class="label">151</a> Luke iv. 29.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_152" href="#FNanchor_152" class="label">152</a> Matt. x. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_153" href="#FNanchor_153" class="label">153</a> Mark vi. 5.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_154" href="#FNanchor_154" class="label">154</a> Matth. vii. 6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_155" href="#FNanchor_155" class="label">155</a> Matth. xxvi. 56.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_156" href="#FNanchor_156" class="label">156</a> St. Paul. 1 Cor. xv. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_157" href="#FNanchor_157" class="label">157</a> St. Peter. Mark xiv. 71.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_158" href="#FNanchor_158" class="label">158</a> Luke xxii. 51.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_159" href="#FNanchor_159" class="label">159</a> Luke ix. 54.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_160" href="#FNanchor_160" class="label">160</a> Luke ix. 46.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_161" href="#FNanchor_161" class="label">161</a> See the Essais of <i>Montaigne</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_162" href="#FNanchor_162" class="label">162</a> Pensées de M. Pascal, c. xvi. § 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_163" href="#FNanchor_163" class="label">163</a> Acts xxii. 15. and xxvi. 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_164" href="#FNanchor_164" class="label">164</a> Matthew v. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_165" href="#FNanchor_165" class="label">165</a> Compare, <i>Luke</i> vii. 21, 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_166" href="#FNanchor_166" class="label">166</a> Matthew xv. 6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_167" href="#FNanchor_167" class="label">167</a> Matt. xi. 25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_168" href="#FNanchor_168" class="label">168</a> Luke xviii. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_169" href="#FNanchor_169" class="label">169</a> ὄχλος, <i>the mob</i>. John vii. 49.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_170" href="#FNanchor_170" class="label">170</a> Eph. ii. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_171" href="#FNanchor_171" class="label">171</a> Matth. xxii. 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_172" href="#FNanchor_172" class="label">172</a> Matth. xii. 37.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_173" href="#FNanchor_173" class="label">173</a> Luke xix. 48.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_174" href="#FNanchor_174" class="label">174</a> John vii. 46.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_175" href="#FNanchor_175" class="label">175</a> Matth. vii. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_176" href="#FNanchor_176" class="label">176</a> Matth. xii. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_177" href="#FNanchor_177" class="label">177</a> Matth. ix. 33.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_178" href="#FNanchor_178" class="label">178</a> Matth. ix. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_179" href="#FNanchor_179" class="label">179</a> St. James ii. 6, 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_180" href="#FNanchor_180" class="label">180</a> 1 Cor. i. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_181" href="#FNanchor_181" class="label">181</a> ἐσκυλμένοι—<i>vexati</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_182" href="#FNanchor_182" class="label">182</a> ἐῤῥιμένοι—<i>projecti</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_183" href="#FNanchor_183" class="label">183</a> Matth. ix. 36.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_184" href="#FNanchor_184" class="label">184</a> Matth. xi. 28, 29.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_185" href="#FNanchor_185" class="label">185</a> 1 Cor. i. 27-9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_186" href="#FNanchor_186" class="label">186</a> Isaiah lix. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_187" href="#FNanchor_187" class="label">187</a> ψεύστης—ἀνθρωποκτόνος—John viii. 44.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_188" href="#FNanchor_188" class="label">188</a> Matth. v. 11, 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_189" href="#FNanchor_189" class="label">189</a> John xiii. 1.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_190" href="#FNanchor_190" class="label">190</a> Matth. x. 32, 3. and 38, 9. Luke xiv. 26. 1 John
-iii. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_191" href="#FNanchor_191" class="label">191</a> John xvi. 2, 33.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_192" href="#FNanchor_192" class="label">192</a> Matth. vii. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_193" href="#FNanchor_193" class="label">193</a> Luke xix. 41. John xi. 35.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_194" href="#FNanchor_194" class="label">194</a> ἡ ἐλπὶς τῆς δόξης·—Col. i. 27.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_195" href="#FNanchor_195" class="label">195</a> εἰς πᾶσαν τὴν ἀληθείαν.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_196" href="#FNanchor_196" class="label">196</a> Rom. i. 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_197" href="#FNanchor_197" class="label">197</a> Tim. ii. 14 and 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_198" href="#FNanchor_198" class="label">198</a> Coloss. ii. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_199" href="#FNanchor_199" class="label">199</a> 2 Tim. ii. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_200" href="#FNanchor_200" class="label">200</a> Rom. xv. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_201" href="#FNanchor_201" class="label">201</a> <i>Divine prescience</i>, <i>absolute decrees</i>, &amp;c.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_202" href="#FNanchor_202" class="label">202</a> Bacon, Boyle, Locke, Newton.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_203" href="#FNanchor_203" class="label">203</a> Barrow, Clarke, Butler, Warburton, &amp;c.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_204" href="#FNanchor_204" class="label">204</a> “It hath been the common disease of Christians from
-the beginning, not to content themselves with that measure
-of faith, which God and the Scriptures have expressly
-afforded us: but out of a vain desire to know more than
-is revealed, they have attempted to discuss things, of which
-we can have no light, neither from reason nor revelation.”
-<span class="smcap">J. Hales</span> <i>Works</i>, Vol. I. p. 125. <i>Glasg.</i> 1765.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_205" href="#FNanchor_205" class="label">205</a> Matth. xiii. 57.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_206" href="#FNanchor_206" class="label">206</a> John i. 46.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_207" href="#FNanchor_207" class="label">207</a> John vii. 52.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_208" href="#FNanchor_208" class="label">208</a> Acts iv. 13. See Whitby on the place.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_209" href="#FNanchor_209" class="label">209</a> John vii. 48.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_210" href="#FNanchor_210" class="label">210</a> Matth. ix. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_211" href="#FNanchor_211" class="label">211</a> Matth. xv. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_212" href="#FNanchor_212" class="label">212</a> Luke xxiv. 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_213" href="#FNanchor_213" class="label">213</a> Acts <small>XIX.</small></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_214" href="#FNanchor_214" class="label">214</a> Acts xvii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_215" href="#FNanchor_215" class="label">215</a> Celsus, Porphyry, Julian.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_216" href="#FNanchor_216" class="label">216</a> In his famous book, <i>De Civitate Dei</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_217" href="#FNanchor_217" class="label">217</a> Acts vi. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_218" href="#FNanchor_218" class="label">218</a> John xii. 31.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_219" href="#FNanchor_219" class="label">219</a> Ephes. ii. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_220" href="#FNanchor_220" class="label">220</a> 2 Cor. iv. 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_221" href="#FNanchor_221" class="label">221</a> James ii. 19.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_222" href="#FNanchor_222" class="label">222</a> Gen. iii. 14, 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_223" href="#FNanchor_223" class="label">223</a> Matth. xxv. 41.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_224" href="#FNanchor_224" class="label">224</a> Eph. ii. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_225" href="#FNanchor_225" class="label">225</a> James iv. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_226" href="#FNanchor_226" class="label">226</a> Matth. xvii. 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_227" href="#FNanchor_227" class="label">227</a> 1 Pet. v. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_228" href="#FNanchor_228" class="label">228</a> John xii. 31.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_229" href="#FNanchor_229" class="label">229</a> Luke x. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_230" href="#FNanchor_230" class="label">230</a> Job i. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_231" href="#FNanchor_231" class="label">231</a> Matth. viii. 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_232" href="#FNanchor_232" class="label">232</a> Luke ix. 1. and x. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_233" href="#FNanchor_233" class="label">233</a> Luke x. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_234" href="#FNanchor_234" class="label">234</a> John xiii. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_235" href="#FNanchor_235" class="label">235</a> ἀπὸ τοῦ πονηροῦ· Matth. vi. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_236" href="#FNanchor_236" class="label">236</a> 1 John iv. 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_237" href="#FNanchor_237" class="label">237</a> 1 Cor. x. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_238" href="#FNanchor_238" class="label">238</a> Heb. ii. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_239" href="#FNanchor_239" class="label">239</a> St. John iii. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_240" href="#FNanchor_240" class="label">240</a> Rom. viii. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_241" href="#FNanchor_241" class="label">241</a> Eph. xiv. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_242" href="#FNanchor_242" class="label">242</a> Eph. xi. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_243" href="#FNanchor_243" class="label">243</a> 1 Peter v. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_244" href="#FNanchor_244" class="label">244</a> τοῦ πονηροῦ· Eph. vi. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_245" href="#FNanchor_245" class="label">245</a> Eccles. i. 17. and vii. 25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_246" href="#FNanchor_246" class="label">246</a> <span class="smcap">Signa, tabulas pictas, vasa cælata mirari</span>—reckoned,
-by the philosophical historian, among the prognosticks
-of falling Rome.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_247" href="#FNanchor_247" class="label">247</a> Homo, res sacra. Seneca.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_248" href="#FNanchor_248" class="label">248</a> Neque enim ita generati à naturâ sumus, ut ad ludum
-et jocum facti esse videamur; sed ad severitatem potiùs,
-et ad quædam studia graviora atque majora.</p>
-
-<p class="author">Cic. Off. L. i. 29.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_249" href="#FNanchor_249" class="label">249</a> Fastidio illis esse cœpit vita, et ipse mundus; et subit
-illud rabidarum deliciarum, <span class="smcap">Quousque eadem</span>? Seneca,
-de tranq. anim. c. xi.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_250" href="#FNanchor_250" class="label">250</a> <span class="smcap">Sapiens, sibique imperiosus</span>—are convertible terms
-in the moral poet.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_251" href="#FNanchor_251" class="label">251</a> Val. Max. IV. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_252" href="#FNanchor_252" class="label">252</a> 1 Cor. ix. 25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_253" href="#FNanchor_253" class="label">253</a> Ludo—uti quidem licet; sed, sicut somno et quietibus
-cæteris, tùm cùm gravibus seriisque rebus satisfecerimus.</p>
-
-<p class="author">Cic. Off. L. i. 29.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_254" href="#FNanchor_254" class="label">254</a> Exod. xxi. 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_255" href="#FNanchor_255" class="label">255</a> John xviii. 22, 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_256" href="#FNanchor_256" class="label">256</a> χιτῶνα.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_257" href="#FNanchor_257" class="label">257</a> ἀγγαρεύσει. See Grotius on the place.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_258" href="#FNanchor_258" class="label">258</a> Luke xii. 57.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_259" href="#FNanchor_259" class="label">259</a> Acts xvi. 37. xxv. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_260" href="#FNanchor_260" class="label">260</a> Matth, v. 11. x. 23. xxvi. 52. From the two last passages
-we learn, that the Jewish persecutors of Christ and
-his disciples were reserved for a <i>special</i> vengeance of Heaven;
-to be inflicted upon them in no long time, and here
-predicted, as it seems, to let the disciples know why, in
-this case, <i>resistance</i> was forbidden, God having taken the
-matter into his own hands.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_261" href="#FNanchor_261" class="label">261</a> The accomplishment of prophecy is given by Jesus
-himself as one reason, why he forbad resistance to the
-Jews—<i>how then shall the Scriptures be fulfilled, that thus
-it must be</i>, i. e. that the violence of the Jews should prevail?
-Matth. xxvi. 54.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_262" href="#FNanchor_262" class="label">262</a> Prov. xiii. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_263" href="#FNanchor_263" class="label">263</a> Ch. viii. 38.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_264" href="#FNanchor_264" class="label">264</a> Mark xvi. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_265" href="#FNanchor_265" class="label">265</a> St. John xii. 48.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_266" href="#FNanchor_266" class="label">266</a> John iv. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_267" href="#FNanchor_267" class="label">267</a> John iii. 20.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_268" href="#FNanchor_268" class="label">268</a> John xi. 47. Acts iv. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_269" href="#FNanchor_269" class="label">269</a> Mark vi. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_270" href="#FNanchor_270" class="label">270</a> John vii. 41. i. 46.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_271" href="#FNanchor_271" class="label">271</a> John vii. 48.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_272" href="#FNanchor_272" class="label">272</a> John xii. 42.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_273" href="#FNanchor_273" class="label">273</a> John xii. 43.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_274" href="#FNanchor_274" class="label">274</a> 1 Cor. i. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_275" href="#FNanchor_275" class="label">275</a> Luke viii. 13.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_276" href="#FNanchor_276" class="label">276</a> Mark x. 17, 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_277" href="#FNanchor_277" class="label">277</a> Jer. xvii. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_278" href="#FNanchor_278" class="label">278</a> Public Baptism, disused.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_279" href="#FNanchor_279" class="label">279</a> The Lord’s Supper, neglected.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_280" href="#FNanchor_280" class="label">280</a> Family Prayer, omitted.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_281" href="#FNanchor_281" class="label">281</a> 2 Tim. i. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_282" href="#FNanchor_282" class="label">282</a> 1 John ii. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_283" href="#FNanchor_283" class="label">283</a> See Bp. Warburton’s <small>DOCTRINE OF GRACE</small>, Ch. ix.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_284" href="#FNanchor_284" class="label">284</a> 1 John iv. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_285" href="#FNanchor_285" class="label">285</a> 2 Tim. ii. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_286" href="#FNanchor_286" class="label">286</a> 1 Peter ii. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_287" href="#FNanchor_287" class="label">287</a> Gen. xvii. 5.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_288" href="#FNanchor_288" class="label">288</a> Gen. xxxii. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_289" href="#FNanchor_289" class="label">289</a> Ἅδης, or <i>death</i> [see Grotius in loc.] is here personized:
-and, the gates of cities, being anciently the places of
-counsel and judgment, as well as their chief defence and
-strength, hence the <i>gates of death</i> are the power and policy,
-which this person should employ to accomplish his
-ends: which is, in other words, to say, that those ends,
-or <i>destruction</i>, should by no means be effected.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_290" href="#FNanchor_290" class="label">290</a> Acts ii. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_291" href="#FNanchor_291" class="label">291</a> Acts x. and xv. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_292" href="#FNanchor_292" class="label">292</a> An ancient apologist for Christianity seems to think,
-that, if a sect of philosophy had been persecuted, as Christianity
-was, it would presently have vanished out of the
-world. His words are—τὴν μὲν φιλοσοφίαν τὴν Ἑλληνικὴν
-ἐὰν ὁ τυχὼν ἄρχων κωλύσῃ, οἴχεται παραχρῆμα· [Clemens Alexandr.
-Strom. L. vi. p. 827. Oxon. 1715.] Perhaps, the
-learned father was mistaken. But a religion, founded on
-facts, not on opinions, and persecuted from the beginning,
-could not have supported itself, if those facts had
-been false. This is the case of Christianity. The subsequent
-persecutions, when the truth of Christianity was
-admitted on the credit of the first martyrs, might tend to
-advance this religion, even though it had been originally
-an imposture. The difference of the two cases is palpable.
-The Apostles shewed, by their sufferings, that they <i>knew</i>
-what they attested to be a true fact: Succeeding sufferers
-shewed, that they <i>believed</i> it to be so.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_293" href="#FNanchor_293" class="label">293</a> 1 Peter i. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_294" href="#FNanchor_294" class="label">294</a> Of Persecution. John xvi. 2.</p>
-
-<p>Of Heresies. Acts xx. 30. 1 Cor. x. 19.</p>
-
-<p>Of Mahomet’s impiety, ix. 1-12. See Mede.</p>
-
-<p>Of the great Apostasy. 2 Thess. ii. &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>Of these, and other woes still to come. The Revelation,
-<i>passim</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_295" href="#FNanchor_295" class="label">295</a> 1 Peter i. 25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_296" href="#FNanchor_296" class="label">296</a> Matth. vii. 24, 25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_297" href="#FNanchor_297" class="label">297</a> Acts xxvi. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_298" href="#FNanchor_298" class="label">298</a> Τοσοῦτός ἐστι τῶν ὑπ’ αὐτῶν γεγραμμένων ὁ γέλως, ὥστε ἀφανισθῆναι
-καὶ τὰ βιβλία πάλαι, καὶ ἅμα τῷ δειχθῆναι, καὶ ἀπολέσθαι τὰ πολλά. Εἰ
-δέ που τὶ καὶ εὑρεθείη διασωθὲν, παρὰ Χριστιανοῖς τοῦτο σωζόμενον εὕροι
-τις ἄν. Tom. II. p. 539. Ed. Bened.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_299" href="#FNanchor_299" class="label">299</a> “The Christian religion,” says the finest of our English
-writers, whom I need not therefore stay to name,
-“made its way through paganism with an amazing progress
-and activity. Its victories were the victories of
-reason, unassisted by the force of human power, and as
-gentle as the triumphs of light over darkness.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_300" href="#FNanchor_300" class="label">300</a> This effect of inquiry upon the Gentile religions was
-foreseen by men of sense—<i>Non sunt ista</i> [the traditionary
-tales of the heathen Gods] <i>vulgo disputanda, ne susceptas
-publicè religiones disputatio talis extinguat</i>. Cic. Frag.
-Olivet. T. III. p. 586.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_301" href="#FNanchor_301" class="label">301</a> The substance of this Discourse was delivered in a
-Sermon at Lincoln’s-Inn, May 15, 1768.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_302" href="#FNanchor_302" class="label">302</a> Luke xii. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_303" href="#FNanchor_303" class="label">303</a> L. iv. c. 5.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_304" href="#FNanchor_304" class="label">304</a> And to the same purpose, our excellent Archbishop
-Tillotson—“His [Christ’s] whipping of the buyers and
-sellers out of the temple, the only action of his life in
-which there appears any transport of anger, was no other
-than a <small>BECOMING ZEAL</small> for the honour of God’s house,
-which he saw so notoriously prophaned; which zeal was
-<small>WARRANTED</small>, after the example of Phinehas, by the extraordinary
-occasion of it.” Works, vol. iii. § 136. p. 222.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_305" href="#FNanchor_305" class="label">305</a> <i>Numbers</i>, ch. xxv.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_306" href="#FNanchor_306" class="label">306</a> <span class="smcap">Josephus</span>, <i>De Bello Judaico</i>, l. iv. c. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_307" href="#FNanchor_307" class="label">307</a> Certè, quamquam Servator humani generis et Deus
-et Rex erat, adeoque ita universi, nedum Judæorum,
-dominus, ut quicquid ei placeret illud non licitum fuisse
-nefas sit putare; attamen, cum cæteras res omnes etiam
-et seipsum receptis atque stabilitis reipublicæ formulis judiciariis,
-qua Ebraicæ eæ essent, qua Romanæ, permiserit,
-atque absolutissimum justitiæ exemplar ab omni vi illicitâ,
-veluti privatus, abstinere voluerit; quin et tanta ei imminuerit
-invidia, ut nihil magis incidentium in votis esset,
-quam ut cujuscunque delicti reum eum peragere potuissent;
-haud rationi sane ita consonum videtur existimare
-ejectionem illam factam seu vim illatam ab eo fuisse sine
-agnitâ, etiam ab ipsis qui tam malignè ei invidebant, lege
-seu more, quo in id genus homines templi sanctitatem ita
-polluentes incurrere licuerit, atque vi ejicere. L. iv. c. 5.
-p. 464.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_308" href="#FNanchor_308" class="label">308</a> Mr. Smith’s Discourses, <i>Disc.</i> vi. ch. vi. Bishop
-Chandler, <i>Def. of Christianity</i>, ch. iii. § 1. and, very
-lately, the Bishop of Gloucester, <i>Div. Leg.</i> b. iv. § 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_309" href="#FNanchor_309" class="label">309</a> 1 Kings xxii. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_310" href="#FNanchor_310" class="label">310</a> Jeremiah xix.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_311" href="#FNanchor_311" class="label">311</a> Hosea xii. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_312" href="#FNanchor_312" class="label">312</a> Matth. iii. 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_313" href="#FNanchor_313" class="label">313</a> Mark xi. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_314" href="#FNanchor_314" class="label">314</a> Matth. x. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_315" href="#FNanchor_315" class="label">315</a> Luke v. 6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_316" href="#FNanchor_316" class="label">316</a> Mark xi. 14</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_317" href="#FNanchor_317" class="label">317</a> Matthew viii. 32.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_318" href="#FNanchor_318" class="label">318</a> Matthew xxvii. 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_319" href="#FNanchor_319" class="label">319</a> Isaiah xlii. 1, 6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_320" href="#FNanchor_320" class="label">320</a> Ibid. ver. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_321" href="#FNanchor_321" class="label">321</a> Isaiah lx. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_322" href="#FNanchor_322" class="label">322</a> Chap. xliii. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_323" href="#FNanchor_323" class="label">323</a> Rom. xi. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_324" href="#FNanchor_324" class="label">324</a> Mark xi. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_325" href="#FNanchor_325" class="label">325</a> Mark xi. 15-20.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_326" href="#FNanchor_326" class="label">326</a> Mark xii. Luke xx. Matth. xxi.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_327" href="#FNanchor_327" class="label">327</a> Luke xx. 16-19.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_328" href="#FNanchor_328" class="label">328</a> Matthew xxi. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_329" href="#FNanchor_329" class="label">329</a> John ii. 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_330" href="#FNanchor_330" class="label">330</a> Matthew xxi. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_331" href="#FNanchor_331" class="label">331</a> Luke xi. 54.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_332" href="#FNanchor_332" class="label">332</a> Acts xxi. 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_333" href="#FNanchor_333" class="label">333</a> By <i>these stones</i>, the ancient interpreters universally understood
-<i>the Gentiles</i>. See Whitby <i>in loc.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_334" href="#FNanchor_334" class="label">334</a> Matt. iii. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_335" href="#FNanchor_335" class="label">335</a> St. John, ch. ii. 19.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_336" href="#FNanchor_336" class="label">336</a> Matthew xxvi. 61.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_337" href="#FNanchor_337" class="label">337</a> Acts xiv. 27.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_338" href="#FNanchor_338" class="label">338</a> Mark xi. 21, 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_339" href="#FNanchor_339" class="label">339</a> Matthew xv. 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_340" href="#FNanchor_340" class="label">340</a> Mark xi. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_341" href="#FNanchor_341" class="label">341</a> 1 Coloss. i. 27.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="transnote">
-
-<h3>Transcriber’s Note:</h3>
-
-<p>Inconsistent spelling and hyphenation are as in the original.</p>
-
-<p>Greek words beginning with ϖ have had the character replaced with π.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WORKS OF RICHARD HURD, VOLUME 7 (OF 8) ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/69816-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/69816-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ee05eae..0000000
--- a/old/69816-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69816-h/images/titlepage.png b/old/69816-h/images/titlepage.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 7395d3c..0000000
--- a/old/69816-h/images/titlepage.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ